Propiedad intelectual Formación en PI Respeto por la PI Divulgación de la PI La PI para... La PI y… La PI en… Información sobre patentes y tecnología Información sobre marcas Información sobre diseños industriales Información sobre las indicaciones geográficas Información sobre las variedades vegetales (UPOV) Leyes, tratados y sentencias de PI Recursos de PI Informes sobre PI Protección por patente Protección de las marcas Protección de diseños industriales Protección de las indicaciones geográficas Protección de las variedades vegetales (UPOV) Solución de controversias en materia de PI Soluciones operativas para las oficinas de PI Pagar por servicios de PI Negociación y toma de decisiones Cooperación para el desarrollo Apoyo a la innovación Colaboraciones público-privadas Herramientas y servicios de IA La Organización Trabajar con la OMPI Rendición de cuentas Patentes Marcas Diseños industriales Indicaciones geográficas Derecho de autor Secretos comerciales Academia de la OMPI Talleres y seminarios Observancia de la PI WIPO ALERT Sensibilizar Día Mundial de la PI Revista de la OMPI Casos prácticos y casos de éxito Novedades sobre la PI Premios de la OMPI Empresas Universidades Pueblos indígenas Judicatura Recursos genéticos, conocimientos tradicionales y expresiones culturales tradicionales Economía Igualdad de género Salud mundial Cambio climático Política de competencia Objetivos de Desarrollo Sostenible Tecnologías de vanguardia Aplicaciones móviles Deportes Turismo PATENTSCOPE Análisis de patentes Clasificación Internacional de Patentes ARDI - Investigación para la innovación ASPI - Información especializada sobre patentes Base Mundial de Datos sobre Marcas Madrid Monitor Base de datos Artículo 6ter Express Clasificación de Niza Clasificación de Viena Base Mundial de Datos sobre Dibujos y Modelos Boletín de Dibujos y Modelos Internacionales Base de datos Hague Express Clasificación de Locarno Base de datos Lisbon Express Base Mundial de Datos sobre Marcas para indicaciones geográficas Base de datos de variedades vegetales PLUTO Base de datos GENIE Tratados administrados por la OMPI WIPO Lex: leyes, tratados y sentencias de PI Normas técnicas de la OMPI Estadísticas de PI WIPO Pearl (terminología) Publicaciones de la OMPI Perfiles nacionales sobre PI Centro de Conocimiento de la OMPI Informes de la OMPI sobre tendencias tecnológicas Índice Mundial de Innovación Informe mundial sobre la propiedad intelectual PCT - El sistema internacional de patentes ePCT Budapest - El Sistema internacional de depósito de microorganismos Madrid - El sistema internacional de marcas eMadrid Artículo 6ter (escudos de armas, banderas, emblemas de Estado) La Haya - Sistema internacional de diseños eHague Lisboa - Sistema internacional de indicaciones geográficas eLisbon UPOV PRISMA UPOV e-PVP Administration UPOV e-PVP DUS Exchange Mediación Arbitraje Determinación de expertos Disputas sobre nombres de dominio Acceso centralizado a la búsqueda y el examen (CASE) Servicio de acceso digital (DAS) WIPO Pay Cuenta corriente en la OMPI Asambleas de la OMPI Comités permanentes Calendario de reuniones WIPO Webcast Documentos oficiales de la OMPI Agenda para el Desarrollo Asistencia técnica Instituciones de formación en PI Apoyo para COVID-19 Estrategias nacionales de PI Asesoramiento sobre políticas y legislación Centro de cooperación Centros de apoyo a la tecnología y la innovación (CATI) Transferencia de tecnología Programa de Asistencia a los Inventores (PAI) WIPO GREEN PAT-INFORMED de la OMPI Consorcio de Libros Accesibles Consorcio de la OMPI para los Creadores WIPO Translate Conversión de voz a texto Asistente de clasificación Estados miembros Observadores Director general Actividades por unidad Oficinas en el exterior Ofertas de empleo Adquisiciones Resultados y presupuesto Información financiera Supervisión
Arabic English Spanish French Russian Chinese
Leyes Tratados Sentencias Consultar por jurisdicción

Australia

AU444

Atrás

Corporations Act 2001 (consolidated as of July 1, 2017)

 Corporations Act 2001 (consolidated as of July 1, 2017)

Prepared by the Office of Parliamentary Counsel, Canberra

Corporations Act 2001

No. 50, 2001

Compilation No. 79

Compilation date: 1 July 2017

Includes amendments up to: Act No. 75, 2017

Registered: 6 July 2017

This compilation is in 6 volumes

Volume 1: sections 1–260E

Volume 2: sections 283AA–601DJ

Volume 3: sections 601EA–742

Volume 4: sections 760A–993D

Volume 5: sections 1010A–1369A

Volume 6: sections 1370–1637

Schedules

Endnotes

Each volume has its own contents

This compilation includes commenced amendments made by Act No. 45,

2017

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

About this compilation

This compilation

This is a compilation of the Corporations Act 2001 that shows the text of the

law as amended and in force on 1 July 2017 (the compilation date).

The notes at the end of this compilation (the endnotes) include information

about amending laws and the amendment history of provisions of the compiled

law.

Uncommenced amendments

The effect of uncommenced amendments is not shown in the text of the

compiled law. Any uncommenced amendments affecting the law are accessible

on the Legislation Register (www.legislation.gov.au). The details of

amendments made up to, but not commenced at, the compilation date are

underlined in the endnotes. For more information on any uncommenced

amendments, see the series page on the Legislation Register for the compiled

law.

Application, saving and transitional provisions for provisions and

amendments

If the operation of a provision or amendment of the compiled law is affected by

an application, saving or transitional provision that is not included in this

compilation, details are included in the endnotes.

Editorial changes

For more information about any editorial changes made in this compilation, see

the endnotes.

Modifications

If the compiled law is modified by another law, the compiled law operates as

modified but the modification does not amend the text of the law. Accordingly,

this compilation does not show the text of the compiled law as modified. For

more information on any modifications, see the series page on the Legislation

Register for the compiled law.

Self-repealing provisions

If a provision of the compiled law has been repealed in accordance with a

provision of the law, details are included in the endnotes.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Corporations Act 2001 i

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Contents

Chapter 2L—Debentures 1

Part 2L.1—Requirement for trust deed and trustee 1 283AA Requirement for trust deed and trustee ..............................1

283AB Trust deed..........................................................................2

283AC Who can be a trustee .........................................................2

283AD Existing trustee continues to act until new trustee

takes office ........................................................................3

283AE Replacement of trustee ......................................................3

Part 2L.2—Duties of borrower 5 283BA Duties of borrower ............................................................5

283BB General duties....................................................................5

283BC Duty to notify ASIC of information related to

trustee ................................................................................5

283BCA Register relating to trustees for debenture holders ............6

283BD Duty to replace trustee.......................................................6

283BE Duty to inform trustee about security interests ..................7

283BF Duty to give trustee and ASIC quarterly reports ...............7

283BG Exceptions to borrower’s duty to report to trustee

and ASIC.........................................................................10

283BH How debentures may be described ..................................10

283BI Offences for failure to comply with statutory

duties ...............................................................................11

Part 2L.3—Duties of guarantor 12 283CA Duties of guarantor..........................................................12

283CB General duties..................................................................12

283CC Duty to inform trustee about security interests ................12

283CD Exceptions to guarantor’s duty to inform trustee.............13

283CE Offences for failure to comply with statutory

duties ...............................................................................13

Part 2L.4—Trustee 14 283DA Trustee’s duties ...............................................................14

283DB Exemptions and indemnifications of trustee from

liability ............................................................................15

283DC Indemnity ........................................................................16

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

ii Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Part 2L.5—Meetings of debenture holders 17 283EA Borrower’s duty to call meeting ......................................17

283EB Trustee’s power to call meeting.......................................18

283EC Court may order meeting.................................................19

Part 2L.6—Civil liability 20 283F Civil liability for contravening this Chapter ....................20

Part 2L.7—ASIC powers 21 283GA ASIC’s power to exempt and modify ..............................21

283GB ASIC may approve body corporate to be trustee .............22

Part 2L.8—Court 23 283HA General Court power to give directions and

determine questions.........................................................23

283HB Specific Court powers .....................................................23

Part 2L.9—Location of other debenture provisions 25 283I Signpost to other debenture provisions............................25

Chapter 2M—Financial reports and audit 26

Part 2M.1—Overview 26 285 Overview of obligations under this Chapter ....................26

285A Overview of obligations of companies limited by

guarantee .........................................................................28

Part 2M.2—Financial records 31 286 Obligation to keep financial records................................31

287 Language requirements ...................................................31

288 Physical format................................................................32

289 Place where records are kept ...........................................32

290 Director access ................................................................33

291 Signposts to other relevant provisions.............................33

Part 2M.3—Financial reporting 35

Division 1—Annual financial reports and directors’ reports 35

292 Who has to prepare annual financial reports and

directors’ reports .............................................................35

293 Small proprietary company—shareholder direction ........36

294 Small proprietary company—ASIC direction .................36

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Corporations Act 2001 iii

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

294A Small company limited by guarantee—member

direction ..........................................................................37

294B Small company limited by guarantee—ASIC

direction ..........................................................................37

295 Contents of annual financial report .................................38

295A Declaration in relation to listed entity’s financial

statements by chief executive officer and chief

financial officer ...............................................................40

296 Compliance with accounting standards and

regulations .......................................................................42

297 True and fair view ...........................................................42

298 Annual directors’ report ..................................................43

299 Annual directors’ report—general information ...............44

299A Annual directors’ report—additional general

requirements for listed entities ........................................46

300 Annual directors’ report—specific information...............46

300A Annual directors’ report—specific information to

be provided by listed companies .....................................54

300B Annual directors’ report—companies limited by

guarantee .........................................................................59

301 Audit of annual financial report.......................................60

Division 2—Half-year financial report and directors’ report 62

302 Disclosing entity must prepare half-year financial

report and directors’ report ..............................................62

303 Contents of half-year financial report..............................62

304 Compliance with accounting standards and

regulations .......................................................................64

305 True and fair view ...........................................................64

306 Half-year directors’ report ...............................................64

Division 3—Audit and auditor’s report 66

307 Audit................................................................................66

307A Audit to be conducted in accordance with auditing

standards..........................................................................66

307B Audit working papers to be retained for 7 years..............67

307C Auditor’s independence declaration ................................70

308 Auditor’s report on annual financial report .....................73

309 Auditor’s report on half-year financial report..................74

310 Auditor’s power to obtain information ............................76

311 Reporting to ASIC...........................................................76

312 Assisting auditor..............................................................79

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

iv Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

313 Special provisions on audit of debenture issuers

and guarantors .................................................................79

Division 4—Annual financial reporting to members 81

314 Annual financial reporting to members ...........................81

315 Deadline for reporting to members..................................83

316 Member’s choices for annual financial information ........84

316A Annual financial reporting to members of

companies limited by guarantee ......................................85

317 Consideration of reports at AGM ....................................86

318 Additional reporting by debenture issuers .......................87

Division 5—Lodging reports with ASIC 88

319 Lodgment of annual reports with ASIC...........................88

320 Lodgment of half-year reports with ASIC.......................88

321 ASIC power to require lodgment.....................................89

322 Relodgment if financial statements or directors’

reports amended after lodgment ......................................89

Division 6—Special provisions about consolidated financial

statements 91

323 Directors and officers of controlled entity to give

information......................................................................91

323A Auditor’s power to obtain information from

controlled entity...............................................................91

323B Controlled entity to assist auditor ....................................91

323C Application of Division to entity that has ceased to

be controlled....................................................................92

Division 7—Financial years and half-years 93

323D Financial years and half-years .........................................93

Division 8—Disclosure by listed companies of information filed

overseas 95

323DA Listed companies to disclose information filed

overseas ...........................................................................95

Part 2M.4—Appointment and removal of auditors 96

Division 1—Entities that may be appointed as an auditor for a

company or registered scheme 96

324AA Individual auditors, audit firms and authorised

audit companies...............................................................96

324AB Effect of appointing firm as auditor—general .................96

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Corporations Act 2001 v

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

324AC Effect of appointing firm as auditor—

reconstitution of firm.......................................................97

324AD Effect of appointing company as auditor.........................98

324AE Professional members of the audit team..........................99

324AF Lead and review auditors.................................................99

Division 2—Registration requirements 101

324BA Registration requirements for appointment of

individual as auditor ......................................................101

324BB Registration requirements for appointment of firm

as auditor .......................................................................101

324BC Registration requirements for appointment of

company as auditor........................................................103

324BD Exception from registration requirement for

proprietary company......................................................105

324BE Exception from registration requirement—

reviewing financial reports of companies limited

by guarantee ..................................................................106

Division 3—Auditor independence 107

Subdivision A—General requirement 107

324CA General requirement for auditor independence—

auditors..........................................................................107

324CB General requirement for auditor independence—

member of audit firm.....................................................111

324CC General requirement for auditor independence—

director of audit company..............................................114

324CD Conflict of interest situation ..........................................118

Subdivision B—Specific requirements 120

324CE Auditor independence—specific requirements for

individual auditor ..........................................................120

324CF Auditor independence—specific requirements for

audit firm.......................................................................125

324CG Auditor independence—specific requirements for

audit company ...............................................................131

324CH Relevant relationships ...................................................139

324CI Special rule for retiring partners of audit firms and

retiring directors of authorised audit companies............146

324CJ Special rule for retiring professional member of

audit company ...............................................................147

324CK Multiple former audit firm partners or audit

company directors .........................................................147

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

vi Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Subdivision C—Common provisions 148

324CL People who are regarded as officers of a company

for the purposes of this Division....................................148

Division 4—Deliberately disqualifying auditor 150

324CM Deliberately disqualifying auditor .................................150

Division 5—Auditor rotation for listed companies 152

324DA Limited term for eligibility to play significant role

in audit of a listed company or listed registered

scheme...........................................................................152

324DAA Directors may extend eligibility term............................153

324DAB Requirements for directors to approve extension of

eligibility term...............................................................154

324DAC Notifications about approval to extend eligibility

term ...............................................................................155

324DAD Approval ineffective unless it complies with

requirements ..................................................................156

324DB Individual’s rotation obligation .....................................156

324DC Audit firm’s rotation obligation.....................................156

324DD Audit company’s rotation obligation .............................158

Division 6—Appointment, removal and fees of auditors for

companies 161

Subdivision A—Appointment of company auditors 161

325 Appointment of auditor by proprietary company ..........161

327A Public company auditor (initial appointment of

auditor) ..........................................................................161

327B Public company auditor (annual appointments at

AGMs to fill vacancies) ................................................161

327C Public company auditor (appointment to fill casual

vacancy) ........................................................................164

327D Appointment to replace auditor removed from

office .............................................................................164

327E ASIC may appoint public company auditor if

auditor removed but not replaced ..................................165

327F ASIC’s general power to appoint public company

auditor ...........................................................................166

327G Restrictions on ASIC’s powers to appoint public

company auditor............................................................166

327H Effect on appointment of public company auditor

of company beginning to be controlled by a

corporation ....................................................................167

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Corporations Act 2001 vii

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

327I Remaining auditors may act during vacancy .................167

328A Auditor’s consent to appointment..................................167

328B Nomination of auditor ...................................................168

Subdivision B—Removal and resignation of company auditors 169

329 Removal and resignation of auditors .............................169

330 Effect of winding up on office of auditor ......................172

Subdivision C—Company auditors’ fees and expenses 172

331 Fees and expenses of auditors .......................................172

Division 7—Appointment, removal and fees of auditors for

registered schemes 173

Subdivision A—Appointment of registered scheme auditors 173

331AAA Registered scheme auditor (initial appointment of

auditor) ..........................................................................173

331AAB Registered scheme auditor (appointment to fill

vacancy) ........................................................................175

331AAC ASIC’s power to appoint registered scheme

auditor ...........................................................................175

331AAD Remaining auditors may act during vacancy.................175

Subdivision B—Removal and resignation of registered scheme

auditors 176

331AC Removal and resignation of auditors .............................176

331AD Effect of winding up on office of auditor ......................177

Subdivision C—Fees and expenses of auditors 178

331AE Fees and expenses of auditors .......................................178

Part 2M.4A—Annual transparency reports for auditors 179 332 Meaning of transparency reporting auditor and

transparency reporting year..........................................179

332A Transparency reporting auditors must publish

annual transparency reports ...........................................179

332B Content of annual transparency report...........................180

332C Extension of period for publication of annual

transparency report ........................................................180

332D Exemption orders—applications by transparency

reporting auditors ..........................................................181

332E Exemption orders—class orders for transparency

reporting auditors ..........................................................182

332F Exemption orders—criteria for orders...........................182

332G Offences by members of audit firm...............................183

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

viii Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Part 2M.5—Accounting and auditing standards 184 334 Accounting standards ....................................................184

335 Equity accounting..........................................................184

336 Auditing standards.........................................................184

337 Interpretation of accounting and auditing standards ......185

338 Evidence of text of accounting standard or

auditing standard ...........................................................185

Part 2M.6—Exemptions and modifications 187 340 Exemption orders—companies, registered

schemes and disclosing entities .....................................187

341 Exemption orders—class orders for companies,

registered schemes and disclosing entities.....................187

342 Exemption orders—criteria for orders for

companies, registered schemes and disclosing

entities ...........................................................................188

342AA Exemption orders—non-auditor members and

former members of audit firms; former employees

of audit companies ........................................................189

342AB Exemption orders—class orders for non-auditor

members etc. .................................................................190

342AC Exemption orders—criteria for orders for

non-auditor members etc. ..............................................190

342A ASIC’s power to modify the operation of

section 324DA...............................................................191

342B Auditor to notify company or registered scheme of

section 342A declaration ...............................................192

343 Modification by regulations ..........................................193

Part 2M.7—Sanctions for contraventions of Chapter 194 344 Contravention of Part 2M.2 or 2M.3, or of certain

provisions of Part 2M.4 .................................................194

Chapter 2N—Updating ASIC information about

companies and registered schemes 195

Part 2N.1—Review date 195 345A Review date ...................................................................195

345B Company or responsible entity may change review

date ................................................................................196

345C When choice has effect..................................................196

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Corporations Act 2001 ix

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Part 2N.2—Extract of particulars 197 346A ASIC must give an extract of particulars each year.......197

346B ASIC may ask questions................................................197

346C Requirements in relation to an extract of

particulars......................................................................197

Part 2N.3—Solvency resolution 199 347A Directors must pass a solvency resolution after

each review date ............................................................199

347B Notice to ASIC..............................................................199

347C Payment of review fee is taken to be a

representation by the directors that the company is

solvent ...........................................................................200

Part 2N.4—Return of particulars 201 348A ASIC may give a return of particulars ...........................201

348B ASIC may ask questions................................................201

348C ASIC may require a solvency resolution and

statement .......................................................................201

348D General requirements in relation to a return of

particulars......................................................................202

Part 2N.5—Notice by proprietary companies of changes to

ultimate holding company 204 349A Proprietary companies must notify ASIC of

changes to ultimate holding company ...........................204

349B Another company becomes an ultimate holding

company ........................................................................204

349C A company ceases to be an ultimate holding

company ........................................................................204

349D Ultimate holding company changes its name ................205

Chapter 2P—Lodgments with ASIC 206 350 Forms for documents to be lodged with ASIC ..............206

351 Signing documents lodged with ASIC ..........................207

352 Documents lodged with ASIC electronically ................207

353 Electronic lodgment of certain documents ....................208

354 Telephone notice of certain changes..............................208

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

x Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Chapter 5—External administration 209

Part 5.1—Arrangements and reconstructions 209 410 Interpretation .................................................................209

411 Administration of compromises etc...............................209

412 Information as to compromise with creditors ................217

413 Provisions for facilitating reconstruction and

amalgamation of Part 5.1 bodies ...................................219

414 Acquisition of shares of shareholders dissenting

from scheme or contract approved by majority .............221

415 Notification of appointment of scheme manager

and power of Court to require report .............................225

415A Outcome of voting at creditors’ meeting

determined by related entity—Court powers.................225

415B Interim order on application under section 415A ..........227

415C Order under section 415A does not affect act

already done pursuant to resolution...............................227

Part 5.2—Receivers, and other controllers, of property of

corporations 228 416 Definitions.....................................................................228

417 Application of Part ........................................................228

418 Persons not to act as receivers .......................................229

418A Court may declare whether controller is validly

acting.............................................................................229

419 Liability of controller ....................................................230

419A Liability of controller under pre-existing

agreement about property used by corporation..............231

420 Powers of receiver .........................................................233

420A Controller’s duty of care in exercising power of

sale ................................................................................235

420B Court may authorise managing controller to

dispose of property despite prior security interest .........235

420C Receiver’s power to carry on corporation’s

business during winding up ...........................................237

421 Managing controller’s duties in relation to bank

accounts and financial records.......................................238

421A Managing controller to report within 2 months

about corporation’s affairs.............................................239

422 Reports by receiver or managing controller ..................239

422A Annual return by controller ...........................................241

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Corporations Act 2001 xi

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

422B End of control return .....................................................242

422C Transfer of books to new controller...............................243

422D Transfer of books to ASIC etc. ......................................244

423 Supervision of controller ...............................................247

424 Controller may apply to Court.......................................248

425 Court’s power to fix receiver’s remuneration ................248

426 Controller has qualified privilege in certain cases .........250

427 Notification of matters relating to controller .................250

428 Statement that receiver appointed or other

controller acting.............................................................251

429 Officers to report to controller about corporation’s

affairs ............................................................................252

430 Controller may require reports ......................................254

431 Controller may inspect books ........................................255

432 Auditing returns by controllers......................................255

433 Property subject to circulating security interest—

payment of certain debts to have priority ......................256

434 Enforcing controller’s duty to make returns ..................258

434A Court may remove controller for misconduct................259

434B Court may remove redundant controller........................259

434C Effect of sections 434A and 434B.................................260

434D Appointment of 2 or more receivers of property of

a corporation..................................................................260

434E Appointment of 2 or more receivers and managers

of property of a corporation...........................................261

434F Appointment of 2 or more controllers of property

of a corporation .............................................................261

434G Appointment of 2 or more managing controllers of

property of a corporation ...............................................262

434H Regulations may provide for reporting to ASIC............262

Part 5.3A—Administration of a company’s affairs with a view

to executing a deed of company arrangement 263

Division 1—Preliminary 263

435A Object of Part ................................................................263

435B Definitions.....................................................................263

435C When administration begins and ends ...........................264

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

xii Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Division 2—Appointment of administrator and first meeting of

creditors 266

436A Company may appoint administrator if board

thinks it is or will become insolvent ..............................266

436B Liquidator may appoint administrator ...........................266

436C Secured party may appoint administrator ......................267

436D Company already under administration.........................267

436DA Declarations by administrator—indemnities and

relevant relationships.....................................................267

436E Purpose and timing of first meeting of creditors ...........270

Division 3—Administrator assumes control of company’s affairs 271

437A Role of administrator.....................................................271

437B Administrator acts as company’s agent .........................271

437D Only administrator can deal with company’s

property .........................................................................271

437E Order for compensation where officer involved in

void transaction .............................................................273

437F Effect of administration on company’s members ..........273

Division 4—Administrator investigates company’s affairs 277

438A Administrator to investigate affairs and consider

possible courses of action..............................................277

438B Directors to help administrator ......................................277

438C Administrator’s rights to company’s books...................278

438D Reports by administrator ...............................................279

Division 5—Meeting of creditors decides company’s future 281

439A Administrator to convene meeting and inform

creditors.........................................................................281

439C What creditors may decide ............................................282

Division 6—Protection of company’s property during

administration 283

440A Winding up company ....................................................283

440B Restrictions on exercise of third party property

rights..............................................................................283

440D Stay of proceedings .......................................................285

440E Administrator not liable in damages for refusing

consent ..........................................................................285

440F Suspension of enforcement process...............................285

440G Duties of court officer in relation to property of

company ........................................................................285

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Corporations Act 2001 xiii

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

440H Lis pendens taken to exist..............................................287

440J Administration not to trigger liability of director or

relative under guarantee of company’s liability.............287

440JA Property subject to a banker’s lien—exemption

from this Division..........................................................288

Division 7—Rights of secured party, owner or lessor 290

Subdivision A—General 290

441 Application of Division .................................................290

Subdivision B—Property subject to security interests 290

441AA Application of Subdivision—PPSA security

interests .........................................................................290

441A Secured party acts before or during decision period......290

441B Where enforcement of security interest begins

before administration.....................................................292

441C Security interest in perishable property .........................293

441D Court may limit powers of secured party etc. in

relation to secured property ...........................................293

441E Giving a notice under a security agreement etc. ............294

441EA Sale of property subject to a possessory security

interest ...........................................................................294

Subdivision C—Property not subject to security interests 295

441EB Scope of Subdivision.....................................................295

441F Where recovery of property begins before

administration................................................................296

441G Recovering perishable property.....................................296

441H Court may limit powers of receiver etc. in relation

to property used by company ........................................296

441J Giving a notice under an agreement about property ......297

Division 8—Powers of administrator 298

442A Additional powers of administrator ...............................298

442B Dealing with property subject to circulating

security interests ............................................................298

442C When administrator may dispose of encumbered

property .........................................................................299

442CA Property subject to a possessory security interest—

inspection or examination by potential purchasers

etc. .................................................................................301

442CB Property subject to a security interest or to a

retention of title clause—administrator’s duty of

care in exercising power of sale ....................................301

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

xiv Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

442CC Proceeds of sale of property ..........................................302

442D Administrator’s powers subject to powers of

secured party, receiver or controller ..............................304

442E Administrator has qualified privilege ............................305

442F Protection of persons dealing with administrator ..........305

Division 9—Administrator’s liability and indemnity for debts of

administration 307

Subdivision A—Liability 307

443A General debts.................................................................307

443B Payments for property used or occupied by, or in

the possession of, the company .....................................307

443BA Certain taxation liabilities..............................................309

443C Administrator not otherwise liable for company’s

debts ..............................................................................310

Subdivision B—Indemnity 310

443D Right of indemnity ........................................................310

443E Right of indemnity has priority over other debts ...........311

443F Lien to secure indemnity ...............................................313

Division 10—Execution and effect of deed of company

arrangement 314

444A Effect of creditors’ resolution........................................314

444B Execution of deed..........................................................315

444C Creditor etc. not to act inconsistently with deed

before its execution .......................................................315

444D Effect of deed on creditors ............................................316

444DA Giving priority to eligible employee creditors...............317

444DB Superannuation contribution debts not admissible

to proof..........................................................................318

444E Protection of company’s property from persons

bound by deed ...............................................................319

444F Court may limit rights of secured creditor or

owner or lessor ..............................................................320

444G Effect of deed on company, officers and members........321

444GA Transfer of shares ..........................................................322

444H Extent of release of company’s debts ............................322

444J Guarantees and indemnities...........................................322

Division 11—Variation, termination and avoidance of deed 323

445A Variation of deed by creditors .......................................323

445B Court may cancel variation............................................323

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Corporations Act 2001 xv

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

445C When deed terminates ...................................................323

445CA When creditors may terminate deed ..............................324

445D When Court may terminate deed ...................................324

445E Creditors may terminate deed and resolve that

company be wound up...................................................325

445FA Notice of termination of deed........................................325

445G When Court may void or validate deed .........................326

445H Effect of termination or avoidance ................................327

Division 11AA—Notification of contravention of deed 328

445HA Notification of contravention of deed of company

arrangement...................................................................328

Division 12—Transition to creditors’ voluntary winding up 329

446A Administrator becomes liquidator in certain cases ........329

446AA Administrator becomes liquidator—additional

cases ..............................................................................330

446B Regulations may provide for transition in other

cases ..............................................................................332

446C Liquidator may require submission of a report

about the company’s affairs...........................................332

Division 13—Powers of Court 335

447A General power to make orders.......................................335

447B Orders to protect creditors during administration..........335

447C Court may declare whether administrator validly

appointed.......................................................................336

447F Effect of Division ..........................................................336

Division 14—Qualifications of administrators 337

448A Appointee must consent ................................................337

448B Administrator must be registered liquidator ..................337

448C Disqualification of person connected with

company ........................................................................337

Division 15—Removal and replacement of administrator 340

449A Appointment of administrator cannot be revoked .........340

449C Vacancy in office of administrator of company ............340

449CA Declarations by administrator—indemnities and

relevant relationships.....................................................341

Division 16—Notices about steps taken under Part 344

450A Appointment of administrator .......................................344

450B Execution of deed of company arrangement .................345

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

xvi Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

450C Failure to execute deed of company arrangement .........345

450D Termination of deed of company arrangement ..............345

450E Notice in public documents etc. of company.................345

450F Effect of contravention of this Division ........................346

Division 17—Miscellaneous 347

451A Appointment of 2 or more administrators of

company ........................................................................347

451B Appointment of 2 or more administrators of deed

of company arrangement ...............................................347

451C Effect of things done during administration of

company ........................................................................348

451D Time for doing act does not run while act

prevented by this Part ....................................................348

Part 5.4—Winding up in insolvency 349

Division 1—When company to be wound up in insolvency 349

459A Order that insolvent company be wound up in

insolvency .....................................................................349

459B Order made on application under section 234, 462

or 464 ............................................................................349

459C Presumptions to be made in certain proceedings...........349

459D Contingent or prospective liability relevant to

whether company solvent ..............................................350

Division 2—Statutory demand 351

459E Creditor may serve statutory demand on company........351

459F When company taken to fail to comply with

statutory demand ...........................................................352

Division 3—Application to set aside statutory demand 354

459G Company may apply......................................................354

459H Determination of application where there is a

dispute or offsetting claim .............................................354

459J Setting aside demand on other grounds .........................356

459K Effect of order setting aside demand .............................356

459L Dismissal of application ................................................356

459M Order subject to conditions............................................356

459N Costs where company successful ..................................356

Division 4—Application for order to wind up company in

insolvency 357

459P Who may apply for order under section 459A ..............357

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Corporations Act 2001 xvii

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

459Q Application relying on failure to comply with

statutory demand ...........................................................358

459R Period within which application must be

determined.....................................................................358

459S Company may not oppose application on certain

grounds..........................................................................359

459T Application to wind up joint debtors in insolvency .......359

Part 5.4A—Winding up by the Court on other grounds 360 461 General grounds on which company may be

wound up by Court ........................................................360

462 Standing to apply for winding up ..................................361

464 Application for winding up in connection with

investigation under ASIC Act .......................................362

Part 5.4B—Winding up in insolvency or by the Court 363

Division 1A—Preliminary 363

465 Definitions.....................................................................363

Division 1—General 364

465A Notice of application .....................................................364

465B Substitution of applicants ..............................................364

465C Applicant to be given notice of grounds for

opposing application......................................................365

466 Payment of preliminary costs etc...................................365

467 Court’s powers on hearing application ..........................366

467A Effect of defect or irregularity on application

under Part 5.4 or 5.4A ...................................................367

467B Court may order winding up of company that is

being wound up voluntarily...........................................368

468 Avoidance of dispositions of property, attachments

etc. .................................................................................368

468A Effect of winding up on company’s members ...............369

469 Application to be lis pendens ........................................372

470 Certain notices to be lodged ..........................................372

Division 1A—Effect of winding up order 374

471 Effect on creditors and contributories............................374

471B Stay of proceedings and suspension of

enforcement process ......................................................374

471C Secured creditor’s rights not affected ............................374

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

xviii Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Division 2—Court-appointed liquidators 375

472 Court to appoint registered liquidator............................375

473 Resignation of liquidators..............................................376

473A Vacancies in office of court-appointed liquidator .........376

474 Custody and vesting of company’s property .................376

475 Report as to company’s affairs to be submitted to

liquidator .......................................................................377

477 Powers of liquidator ......................................................379

478 Application of property; list of contributories ...............382

480 Release of liquidator and deregistration of

company ........................................................................383

481 Orders for release or deregistration ...............................383

Division 3—General powers of Court 385

Subdivision A—General powers 385

482 Power to stay or terminate winding up ..........................385

483 Delivery of property to liquidator..................................387

484 Appointment of special manager ...................................388

485 Claims of creditors and distribution of property............389

486 Inspection of books by creditors and contributories ......389

486A Court may make order to prevent officer or related

entity from avoiding liability to company .....................389

486B Warrant to arrest person who is absconding, or

who has dealt with property or books, in order to

avoid obligations in connection with winding up ..........392

487 Power to arrest absconding contributory .......................392

488 Delegation to liquidator of certain powers of Court ......393

489 Powers of Court cumulative ..........................................393

Subdivision B—Procedures relating to section 486B warrants 394

489A Arrest of person subject to warrant................................394

489B Procedure after arrest.....................................................394

489C Procedure on remand on bail .........................................394

489D Court’s power to make orders under other

provisions ......................................................................395

489E Jurisdiction under this Subdivision................................395

Part 5.4C—Winding up by ASIC 396 489EA ASIC may order the winding up of a company .............396

489EB Deemed resolution that company be wound up

voluntarily .....................................................................397

489EC Appointment of liquidator .............................................398

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Corporations Act 2001 xix

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Part 5.5—Voluntary winding up 399

Division 1A—Preliminary 399

489F Definitions.....................................................................399

Division 1—Resolution for winding up 400

490 When company cannot wind up voluntarily ..................400

491 Circumstances in which company may be wound

up voluntarily ................................................................400

493 Effect of voluntary winding up......................................401

493A Effect of voluntary winding up on company’s

members ........................................................................401

494 Declaration of solvency.................................................403

Division 2—Members’ voluntary winding up 406

495 Appointment of liquidator etc........................................406

496 Duty of liquidator where company turns out to be

insolvent ........................................................................406

Division 3—Creditors’ voluntary winding up 408

497 Information about the company’s affairs.......................408

499 Liquidators ....................................................................409

500 Execution and civil proceedings....................................412

Division 4—Voluntary winding up generally 413

501 Distribution of property of company .............................413

506 Powers and duties of liquidator .....................................413

506A Declarations by liquidator—relevant relationships

and indemnities .............................................................414

507 Power of liquidator to accept shares etc. as

consideration for sale of property of company ..............416

509 Deregistration ................................................................418

510 Arrangement: when binding on creditors ......................418

Part 5.6—Winding up generally 420

Division 1—Preliminary 420

513 Application of Part ........................................................420

513AA Definitions.....................................................................420

Division 1A—When winding up taken to begin 421

513A Winding up ordered by the Court ..................................421

513B Voluntary winding up....................................................421

513C Section 513C day in relation to an administration

under Part 5.3A .............................................................422

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

xx Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

513D Validity of proceedings in earlier winding up ...............423

Division 2—Contributories 424

514 Where Division applies .................................................424

515 General liability of contributory ....................................424

516 Company limited by shares ...........................................424

517 Company limited by guarantee......................................424

518 Company limited both by shares and by guarantee .......424

519 Exceptions for former unlimited company ....................425

520 Past member: later debts................................................425

521 Person ceasing to be a member a year or more

before winding up..........................................................425

522 Present members to contribute first ...............................425

523 Past member of former unlimited company ..................425

524 Past member of former limited company ......................426

526 Liability on certain contracts .........................................426

527 Nature of contributory’s liability...................................426

528 Death of contributory ....................................................426

529 Bankruptcy of contributory ...........................................427

Division 3—Liquidators 428

530 Appointment of 2 or more liquidators of a

company ........................................................................428

530AA Appointment of 2 or more provisional liquidators

of a company .................................................................428

530A Officers to help liquidator .............................................428

530B Liquidator’s rights to company’s books ........................430

530C Warrant to search for, and seize, company’s

property or books ..........................................................431

532 Disqualification of liquidator ........................................432

533 Reports by liquidator .....................................................434

534 Prosecution by liquidator of delinquent officers

and members .................................................................435

535 When liquidator has qualified privilege ........................436

537 Notice of appointment and address of liquidator ...........436

Division 4—General 437

541 Notification that company is in liquidation ...................437

543 Investment of surplus funds on general account............437

544 Unclaimed money to be paid to ASIC...........................438

545 Expenses of winding up where property

insufficient.....................................................................439

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Corporations Act 2001 xxi

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Division 6—Proof and ranking of claims 440

Subdivision A—Admission to proof of debts and claims 440

553 Debts or claims that are provable in winding up ...........440

553A Member cannot prove debt unless contributions

paid................................................................................441

553AA Selling shareholder cannot prove debt unless

documents given............................................................441

553AB Superannuation contribution debts not admissible

to proof..........................................................................441

553B Insolvent companies—penalties and fines not

generally provable .........................................................443

553C Insolvent companies—mutual credit and set-off ...........443

553D Debts or claims may be proved formally or

informally......................................................................443

553E Application of Bankruptcy Act to winding up of

insolvent company.........................................................444

Subdivision B—Computation of debts and claims 444

554 General rule—compute amount as at relevant date .......444

554A Determination of value of debts and claims of

uncertain value ..............................................................444

554B Discounting of debts payable after relevant date ...........446

554C Conversion into Australian currency of foreign

currency debts or claims................................................446

Subdivision C—Special provisions relating to secured creditors of

insolvent companies 447

554D Application of Subdivision............................................447

554E Proof of debt by secured creditor ..................................447

554F Redemption of security interest by liquidator................448

554G Amendment of valuation ...............................................449

554H Repayment of excess .....................................................449

554J Subsequent realisation of security interest.....................450

Subdivision D—Priorities 450

555 Debts and claims proved to rank equally except as

otherwise provided ........................................................450

556 Priority payments ..........................................................451

558 Debts due to employees.................................................458

559 Debts of a class to rank equally .....................................459

560 Advances for company to make priority payments

in relation to employees ................................................459

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

xxii Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

561 Priority of employees’ claims over circulating

security interests ............................................................460

562 Application of proceeds of contracts of insurance.........461

562A Application of proceeds of contracts of

reinsurance ....................................................................461

563 Provisions relating to injury compensation ...................463

563AA Seller under a buy-back agreement................................464

563A Postponing subordinate claims ......................................464

563AAA Redemption of debentures.............................................465

Subdivision E—Miscellaneous 465

563B Interest on debts and claims from relevant date to

date of payment .............................................................465

563C Debt subordination ........................................................466

564 Power of Court to make orders in favour of certain

creditors.........................................................................466

Division 7—Effect on certain transactions 467

565 Undue preference ..........................................................467

566 Effect of floating charge................................................467

567 Liquidator’s right to recover in respect of certain

transactions....................................................................467

Division 7A—Disclaimer of onerous property 471

568 Disclaimer by liquidator; application to Court by

party to contract.............................................................471

568A Liquidator must give notice of disclaimer .....................473

568B Application to set aside disclaimer before it takes

effect..............................................................................473

568C When disclaimer takes effect.........................................474

568D Effect of disclaimer .......................................................475

568E Application to set aside disclaimer after it has

taken effect ....................................................................475

568F Court may dispose of disclaimed property ....................476

Division 7B—Effect on enforcement process against company’s

property 478

569 Executions, attachments etc. before winding up............478

570 Duties of sheriff after receiving notice of

application .....................................................................479

Division 8—Pooling 483

Subdivision A—Pooling determinations 483

571 Pooling determination ...................................................483

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Corporations Act 2001 xxiii

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

572 Variation of pooling determination ...............................486

573 Lodgment of copy of pooling determination etc............486

577 Eligible unsecured creditors may decide to

approve the determination or variation..........................487

578 When pooling determination comes into force etc. .......487

579 Duties of liquidator........................................................489

579A Court may vary or terminate pooling

determination.................................................................489

579B Court may cancel or confirm variation..........................491

579C When Court may void or validate pooling

determination.................................................................492

579D Effect of termination or avoidance ................................493

Subdivision B—Pooling orders 494

579E Pooling orders ...............................................................494

579F Variation of pooling orders ...........................................498

579G Court may make ancillary orders etc. ............................498

579H Variation of ancillary orders etc. ...................................500

579J Notice of application for pooling order etc....................501

579K Notice of pooling order etc............................................502

579L Consolidated meetings of creditors ...............................505

Subdivision C—Other provisions 506

579M When debts or claims are provable in winding up.........506

579N Group of companies ......................................................506

579P Secured debt may become unsecured ............................507

579Q Eligible unsecured creditor............................................507

Division 9—Co-operation between Australian and foreign courts

in external administration matters 508

580 Definitions.....................................................................508

581 Courts to act in aid of each other ...................................508

Part 5.7—Winding up bodies other than companies 510 582 Application of Part ........................................................510

583 Winding up Part 5.7 bodies ...........................................510

585 Insolvency of Part 5.7 body...........................................511

586 Contributories in winding up of Part 5.7 body ..............512

587 Power of Court to stay or restrain proceedings..............513

588 Outstanding property of defunct registrable body .........513

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

xxiv Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Part 5.7B—Recovering property or compensation for the

benefit of creditors of insolvent company 515

Division 1—Preliminary 515

588C Definitions.....................................................................515

588D Secured debt may become unsecured ............................515

588E Presumptions to be made in recovery proceedings........515

588F Certain taxation liabilities taken to be debts..................518

Division 2—Voidable transactions 519

588FA Unfair preferences .........................................................519

588FB Uncommercial transactions ...........................................520

588FC Insolvent transactions ....................................................520

588FD Unfair loans to a company.............................................521

588FDA Unreasonable director-related transactions....................522

588FE Voidable transactions ....................................................523

588FF Courts may make orders about voidable

transactions....................................................................526

588FG Transaction not voidable as against certain persons ......528

588FGA Directors to indemnify Commissioner of Taxation

if certain payments set aside..........................................530

588FGB Defences in proceedings under section 588FGA...........531

588FH Liquidator may recover from related entity benefit

resulting from insolvent transaction ..............................532

588FI Creditor who gives up benefit of unfair preference

may prove for preferred debt .........................................533

588FJ Circulating security interest created within 6

months before relation-back day ...................................534

Division 2A—Vesting of PPSA security interests if not

continuously perfected 536

588FK Interpretation and application........................................536

588FL Vesting of PPSA security interests if collateral not

registered within time....................................................536

588FM Extension of time for registration ..................................539

588FN PPSA security interests unaffected by

section 588FL................................................................540

588FO Certain lessors, bailors and consignors entitled to

damages.........................................................................542

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Corporations Act 2001 xxv

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Division 2B—Security interests in favour of company officers

etc. 544

588FP Security interests in favour of an officer of a

company etc. void .........................................................544

Division 3—Director’s duty to prevent insolvent trading 547

588G Director’s duty to prevent insolvent trading by

company ........................................................................547

588H Defences........................................................................549

Division 4—Director liable to compensate company 551

Subdivision A—Proceedings against director 551

588J On application for civil penalty order, Court may

order compensation .......................................................551

588K Criminal court may order compensation .......................552

588L Enforcement of order under section 588J or 588K........552

588M Recovery of compensation for loss resulting from

insolvent trading............................................................552

588N Avoiding double recovery .............................................553

588P Effect of sections 588J, 588K and 588M.......................553

588Q Certificates evidencing contravention ...........................554

Subdivision B—Proceedings by creditor 554

588R Creditor may sue for compensation with

liquidator’s consent .......................................................554

588S Creditor may give liquidator notice of intention to

sue for compensation.....................................................555

588T When creditor may sue for compensation without

liquidator’s consent .......................................................555

588U Events preventing creditor from suing ..........................556

Division 5—Liability of holding company for insolvent trading

by subsidiary 557

588V When holding company liable.......................................557

588W Recovery of compensation for loss resulting from

insolvent trading............................................................557

588X Defences........................................................................558

Division 6—Application of compensation under Division 4 or 5 560

588Y Application of amount paid as compensation................560

Division 7—Person managing a corporation while disqualified

may become liable for corporation’s debts 561

588Z Court may make order imposing liability ......................561

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

xxvi Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Part 5.8—Offences 562 589 Interpretation and application........................................562

590 Offences by officers of certain companies ....................565

592 Incurring of certain debts; fraudulent conduct...............568

593 Powers of Court.............................................................570

594 Certain rights not affected .............................................571

595 Inducement to be appointed liquidator etc. of

company ........................................................................572

596 Frauds by officers..........................................................572

Part 5.8A—Employee entitlements 574 596AA Object and coverage of Part ..........................................574

596AB Entering into agreements or transactions to avoid

employee entitlements ...................................................575

596AC Person who contravenes section 596AB liable to

compensate for loss .......................................................576

596AD Avoiding double recovery .............................................577

596AE Effect of section 596AC ................................................577

596AF Employee may sue for compensation with

liquidator’s consent .......................................................577

596AG Employee may give liquidator notice of intention

to sue for compensation.................................................577

596AH When employee may sue for compensation

without liquidator’s consent ..........................................578

596AI Events preventing employee from suing .......................579

Part 5.9—Miscellaneous 580

Division 1—Examining a person about a corporation 580

596A Mandatory examination.................................................580

596B Discretionary examination.............................................580

596C Affidavit in support of application under

section 596B..................................................................581

596D Content of summons......................................................581

596E Notice of examination ...................................................581

596F Court may give directions about examination ...............582

597 Conduct of examination ................................................582

597A When Court is to require affidavit about

corporation’s examinable affairs ...................................585

597B Costs of unnecessary examination or affidavit ..............586

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Corporations Act 2001 xxvii

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Division 2—Orders against a person in relation to a corporation 588

598 Order against person concerned with corporation .........588

Division 3—Provisions applying to various kinds of external

administration 590

599 Appeals from decisions of receivers etc. .......................590

600AA Duty of receiver, administrator or liquidator—

parental leave pay..........................................................590

600F Limitation on right of suppliers of essential

services to insist on payment as condition of

supply ............................................................................591

600G Electronic methods of giving or sending certain

notices etc......................................................................592

600H Rights if claim against the company postponed ............594

600J Acts of external administrator valid etc.........................594

Division 4—Insolvency Practice Schedule (Corporations) 596

600K Insolvency Practice Schedule (Corporations)................596

Chapter 5A—Deregistration, and transfer of

registration, of companies 597

Part 5A.1—Deregistration 597 601 Definitions.....................................................................597

601AA Deregistration—voluntary.............................................597

601AB Deregistration—ASIC initiated .....................................599

601AC Deregistration—following amalgamation or

winding up.....................................................................600

601AD Effect of deregistration ..................................................601

601AE What the Commonwealth or ASIC does with the

property .........................................................................602

601AF The Commonwealth’s and ASIC’s power to fulfil

outstanding obligations of deregistered company..........605

601AG Claims against insurers of deregistered company..........605

601AH Reinstatement ................................................................605

Part 5A.2—Transfer of registration 608 601AI Transferring registration................................................608

601AJ Applying to transfer registration....................................608

601AK ASIC makes transfer of registration declaration............609

601AL ASIC to deregister company .........................................609

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

xxviii Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Chapter 5B—Bodies corporate registered as

companies, and registrable bodies 610

Part 5B.1—Registering a body corporate as a company 610

Division 1—Registration 610

601BA Bodies corporate may be registered as certain

types of companies ........................................................610

601BB Bodies registered as proprietary companies ..................611

601BC Applying for registration under this Part .......................611

601BD ASIC gives body ACN, registers as company and

issues certificate ............................................................615

601BE Registered office ...........................................................616

601BF Name .............................................................................616

601BG Constitution ...................................................................616

601BH Modifications of constitution ........................................617

601BJ ASIC may direct company to apply for Court

approval for modifications of constitution.....................617

601BK Establishing registers and minute books........................618

601BL Registration of registered bodies ...................................618

Division 2—Operation of this Act 619

601BM Effect of registration under this Part..............................619

601BN Liability of members on winding up .............................619

601BP Bearer shares .................................................................619

601BQ References in pre-registration contracts and other

documents to par value in existing contracts and

documents .....................................................................620

601BR First AGM .....................................................................621

601BS Modification by regulations ..........................................621

Part 5B.2—Registrable bodies 622

Division 1A—Preliminary 622

601C Definitions.....................................................................622

Division 1—Registrable Australian bodies 623

601CA When a registrable Australian body may carry on

business in this jurisdiction and outside its place of

origin .............................................................................623

601CB Application for registration ...........................................623

601CC Cessation of business etc. ..............................................624

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Corporations Act 2001 xxix

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Division 2—Foreign companies 627

601CD When a foreign company may carry on business in

this jurisdiction..............................................................627

601CDA Limited disclosure if place of origin is a prescribed

country ..........................................................................627

601CE Application for registration ...........................................627

601CF Appointment of local agent ...........................................628

601CG Local agent: how appointed...........................................629

601CH Local agent: how removed ............................................630

601CJ Liability of local agent ..................................................630

601CK Balance-sheets and other documents .............................630

601CL Cessation of business etc. ..............................................632

601CM Register of members of foreign company......................635

601CN Register kept under section 601CM ..............................636

601CP Notifying ASIC about register kept under

section 601CM ..............................................................637

601CQ Effect of right to acquire shares compulsorily...............637

601CR Index of members and inspection of registers ...............638

601CS Certificate as to shareholding ........................................638

Division 3—Bodies registered under this Part 639

601CTA Limited disclosure if place of origin is a prescribed

country ..........................................................................639

601CT Registered office ...........................................................639

601CU Certificate of registration...............................................640

601CV Notice of certain changes ..............................................640

601CW Body’s name etc. must be displayed at office and

place of business............................................................641

601CX Service of documents on registered body......................642

601CY Power to hold land.........................................................643

Division 4—Register of debenture holders for non-companies 644

601CZA Certain documents are debentures .................................644

601CZB Register of debenture holders to be maintained by

non-companies ..............................................................644

601CZC Location of register .......................................................644

601CZD Application of sections 173 to 177 ................................645

Part 5B.3—Names of registrable Australian bodies and foreign

companies 646 601DA Reserving a name ..........................................................646

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

xxx Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

601DB Acceptable abbreviations...............................................646

601DC When a name is available ..............................................647

601DD Registered Australian bodies and registered

foreign companies can carry on business with

some names only ...........................................................648

601DE Using a name and ARBN ..............................................649

601DF Exception to requirement to have ARBN on

receipts ..........................................................................650

601DG Regulations may exempt from requirement to set

out information on documents.......................................650

601DH Notice of name change must be given to ASIC.............650

601DJ ASIC’s power to direct a registered name be

changed .........................................................................651

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Debentures Chapter 2L

Requirement for trust deed and trustee Part 2L.1

Section 283AA

Corporations Act 2001 1

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Chapter 2L—Debentures

Part 2L.1—Requirement for trust deed and trustee

283AA Requirement for trust deed and trustee

(1) Before a body:

(a) makes an offer of debentures in this jurisdiction that needs

disclosure to investors under Chapter 6D, or does not need

disclosure to investors under Chapter 6D because of

subsection 708(14) (disclosure document exclusion for

debenture roll overs) or section 708A (sale offers that do not

need disclosure); or

(b) makes an offer of debentures in this jurisdiction or elsewhere

as consideration for the acquisition of securities under an

off-market takeover bid; or

(c) issues debentures in this jurisdiction or elsewhere under a

compromise or arrangement under Part 5.1 approved at a

meeting held as a result of an order under subsection 411(1)

or (1A);

regardless of where any resulting issue, sale or transfer occurs, the

body must enter into a trust deed that complies with section 283AB

and appoint a trustee that complies with section 283AC.

Note: For rules about when an offer of debentures will need disclosure to

investors under Chapter 6D, see sections 706, 707, 708, 708AA and

708A.

(1A) An offence based on subsection (1) is an offence of strict liability.

Note: For strict liability, see section 6.1 of the Criminal Code.

(2) The body may revoke the trust deed after it has repaid all amounts

payable under the debentures in accordance with the debentures’

terms and the trust deed.

(3) The body must comply with this Chapter.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2L Debentures

Part 2L.1 Requirement for trust deed and trustee

Section 283AB

2 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Note: Sections 168 and 601CZB require a register of debenture holders to be

set up and kept.

(4) The regulations may exempt a specified offer of debentures, or a

specified class of offers of debentures, from subsection (1).

283AB Trust deed

(1) The trust deed must provide that the following are held in trust by

the trustee for the benefit of the debenture holders:

(a) the right to enforce the borrower’s duty to repay;

(b) any charge or security for repayment;

(c) the right to enforce any other duties that the borrower and

any guarantor have under:

(i) the terms of the debentures; or

(ii) the provisions of the trust deed or this Chapter.

Note: For information about the duties that the borrower and any guarantor

body have under this Chapter, see sections 283BB to 283CE.

(2) An offence based on subsection (1) is an offence of strict liability.

Note: For strict liability, see section 6.1 of the Criminal Code.

283AC Who can be a trustee

Who can be trustee

(1) The trustee must be:

(a) the Public Trustee of any State or Territory; or

(aa) a licensed trustee company (within the meaning of

Chapter 5D); or

(b) a body corporate authorised by a law of any State or

Territory to take in its own name a grant of probate of the

will, or letters of administration of the estate, of a deceased

person; or

(c) a body corporate registered under section 21 of the Life

Insurance Act 1995; or

(d) an Australian ADI; or

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Debentures Chapter 2L

Requirement for trust deed and trustee Part 2L.1

Section 283AD

Corporations Act 2001 3

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(e) a body corporate, all of whose shares are held beneficially by

a body corporate or bodies corporate of the kind referred to in

paragraph (b), (c) or (d) if that body or those bodies:

(i) are liable for all of the liabilities incurred, or to be

incurred, by the trustee as trustee; or

(ii) have subscribed for and beneficially hold shares in the

trustee and there is an uncalled liability of at least

$500,000 in respect of those shares that can only be

called up if the trustee becomes a Chapter 5 body

corporate (see section 254N); or

(f) a body corporate approved by ASIC (see section 283GB).

Note: Section 283BD provides that if the borrower becomes aware that the

trustee cannot be a trustee, the trustee must be replaced.

Circumstances in which a person cannot be trustee

(2) A person may only be appointed or act as trustee (except to the

extent provided for by section 283AD) if the appointment or acting

will not result in a conflict of interest or duty. This subsection is

not intended to affect any rule of law or equity.

(3) An offence based on subsection (1) or (2) is an offence of strict

liability.

Note: For strict liability, see section 6.1 of the Criminal Code.

283AD Existing trustee continues to act until new trustee takes office

An existing trustee continues to act as the trustee until a new

trustee is appointed and has taken office as trustee, despite any rule

of law or equity to the contrary.

Note: This section applies even if the existing trustee resigns.

283AE Replacement of trustee

Related party of existing trustee may be appointed as a new trustee

(1) In addition to any other powers of appointment under the terms of

the debentures or provisions of the trust deed, the borrower may

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2L Debentures

Part 2L.1 Requirement for trust deed and trustee

Section 283AE

4 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

appoint a body corporate that is related to the existing trustee as

trustee in place of the existing trustee if:

(a) the body corporate can be a trustee under section 283AC; and

(b) the existing trustee consents in writing to the appointment.

The appointment has effect despite any terms of the debentures or

provisions of the trust deed.

Appointment by Court

(2) The Court may:

(a) appoint a person who may be a trustee under section 283AC

as trustee on the application of the borrower, a debenture

holder or ASIC if:

(i) a trustee has not been validly appointed; or

(ii) the trustee has ceased to exist; or

(b) terminate the existing trustee’s appointment and appoint a

person who may be a trustee under section 283AC as trustee

in the existing trustee’s place on the application of the

borrower, the existing trustee, a debenture holder or ASIC if:

(i) the existing trustee cannot be trustee under

section 283AC; or

(ii) the existing trustee fails, or refuses, to act.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Debentures Chapter 2L

Duties of borrower Part 2L.2

Section 283BA

Corporations Act 2001 5

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Part 2L.2—Duties of borrower

283BA Duties of borrower

A borrower that is required to enter into a trust deed under

section 283AA has the duties imposed by this Part.

283BB General duties

The borrower must:

(a) carry on and conduct its business in a proper and efficient

manner; and

(b) provide a copy of the trust deed to:

(i) a debenture holder; or

(ii) the trustee;

if they request a copy; and

(c) make all of its financial and other records available for

inspection by:

(i) the trustee; or

(ii) an officer or employee of the trustee authorised by the

trustee to carry out the inspection; or

(iii) a registered company auditor appointed by the trustee to

carry out the inspection;

and give them any information, explanations or other

assistance that they require about matters relating to those

records.

Note: The borrower also has a duty to call a meeting of debenture holders in

certain circumstances (see section 283EA).

283BC Duty to notify ASIC of information related to trustee

(1) Within 14 days after the trustee is appointed, the borrower must

lodge with ASIC a notice containing the following information:

(a) the name of the trustee;

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2L Debentures

Part 2L.2 Duties of borrower

Section 283BCA

6 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(b) any other information related to the trustee or the debentures

that is prescribed by the regulations.

(2) If there is any change to the information, the borrower must, within

14 days of the change, lodge with ASIC a notice containing the

changed information.

(3) A notice under subsection (1) or (2) must be in the prescribed

form.

283BCA Register relating to trustees for debenture holders

The register

(1) ASIC must establish and maintain a register relating to trustees for

debenture holders.

(2) The regulations may prescribe the way in which the register must

be established or maintained, including the details that ASIC must

enter in the register.

Inspection of register

(3) A person may inspect the register, and may make copies of, or take

extracts from, the register.

(4) The regulations may prescribe the fees that a person must pay

ASIC to do the things mentioned in subsection (3).

(5) Any disclosure necessary for the purposes of this section is

authorised by this section.

283BD Duty to replace trustee

The borrower must take all reasonable steps to replace the trustee

under section 283AE as soon as practicable after the borrower

becomes aware that the trustee:

(a) has ceased to exist; or

(b) has not been validly appointed; or

(c) cannot be a trustee under section 283AC; or

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Debentures Chapter 2L

Duties of borrower Part 2L.2

Section 283BE

Corporations Act 2001 7

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(d) has failed or refused to act as trustee.

283BE Duty to inform trustee about security interests

If the borrower creates a security interest, it must:

(a) give the trustee written details of the security interest within

21 days after it is created; and

(b) if the total amount to be advanced on the security of the

security interest is indeterminate and the advances are not

merged in a current account with bankers, trade creditors or

anyone else—give the trustee written details of the amount of

each advance within 7 days after it is made.

Note: If the advances are merged in a current account the borrower must

give the trustee the details in the quarterly report (see

subsection 283BF(4)).

283BF Duty to give trustee and ASIC quarterly reports

Quarterly reports

(1) Within 1 month after the end of each quarter, the borrower must:

(a) give the trustee a quarterly report that sets out the

information required by subsections (4), (5) and (6); and

(b) lodge a copy of the report with ASIC (see section 351).

First quarter

(2) The first quarter is the period of 3 months ending on a day fixed by

the borrower, by written notice to the trustee. The day must be less

than 6 months after the first issue of a debenture under the trust

deed.

Subsequent quarters

(3) Each of the subsequent quarters are periods of 3 months. The

trustee may allow a particular quarter to be a period of less than 3

months if the trustee is satisfied that special circumstances justify

doing so.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2L Debentures

Part 2L.2 Duties of borrower

Section 283BF

8 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Content of quarterly report

(4) The report for a quarter must include details of:

(a) any failure by the borrower and each guarantor to comply

with the terms of the debentures or the provisions of the trust

deed or this Chapter during the quarter; and

(b) any event that has happened during the quarter that has

caused, or could cause, 1 or more of the following:

(i) any amount deposited or lent under the debentures to

become immediately payable;

(ii) the debentures to become immediately enforceable;

(iii) any other right or remedy under the terms of the

debenture or provisions of the trust deed to become

immediately enforceable; and

(c) any circumstances that have occurred during the quarter that

materially prejudice:

(i) the borrower, any of its subsidiaries, or any of the

guarantors; or

(ii) any security interest included in or created by the

debentures or the trust deed; and

(d) any substantial change in the nature of the business of the

borrower, any of its subsidiaries, or any of the guarantors that

has occurred during the quarter; and

(e) any of the following events that happened in the quarter:

(i) the appointment of a guarantor;

(ii) the cessation of liability of a guarantor body for the

payment of the whole or part of the money for which it

was liable under the guarantee;

(iii) a change of name of a guarantor (if this happens, the

report must also disclose the guarantor’s new name);

and

(f) the net amount outstanding on any advances at the end of the

quarter if the borrower has created a security interest where:

(i) the total amount to be advanced on the security of the

security interest is indeterminate; and

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Debentures Chapter 2L

Duties of borrower Part 2L.2

Section 283BF

Corporations Act 2001 9

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(ii) the advances are merged in a current account with

bankers, trade creditors or anyone else; and

(g) any other matters that may materially prejudice any security

interests or other interests of the debenture holders.

Note: Paragraph (f)—the borrower has a duty to inform the trustee about

security interests as they are created (see section 283BE).

(5) If the borrower has deposited money with, or lent money to, a

related body corporate during the quarter, the report must also

include details of:

(a) the total of the money deposited with, or lent to, the related

body corporate during the quarter (see subsection (7)); and

(b) the total amount of money owing to the borrower at the end

of the quarter in respect of the deposits or loans to the related

body corporate.

Disregard any amount that the borrower deposits with an ADI in

the normal course of the borrower’s business.

(6) If the borrower has assumed a liability of a related body corporate

during the quarter, the report must also include details of the extent

of the liability assumed during the quarter and the extent of the

liability as at the end of the quarter.

(7) For the purposes of subsections (5) and (6), the report:

(a) must distinguish between deposits, loans and assumptions of

liability that are secured and those that are unsecured; and

(b) may exclude any deposit, loan or assumption of liability on

behalf of the related body corporate if it has:

(i) guaranteed the repayment of the debentures of the

borrower; and

(ii) secured the guarantee by a security interest over all of

its property in favour of the trustee.

Formalities

(8) The report must:

(a) be made in accordance with a resolution of the directors; and

(b) specify the date on which the report is made.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2L Debentures

Part 2L.2 Duties of borrower

Section 283BG

10 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

283BG Exceptions to borrower’s duty to report to trustee and ASIC

Section 283BF does not apply in respect of:

(a) a borrower, while:

(i) it is under external administration; or

(ii) a receiver, or a receiver and manager, of property of the

borrower has been appointed and has not ceased to act

under that appointment; or

(b) a security interest in PPSA retention of title property.

283BH How debentures may be described

(1) The borrower may describe or refer to the debentures in:

(a) any disclosure in relation to the offer of the debentures; or

(b) any other document constituting or relating to the offer of the

debentures; or

(c) the debentures themselves;

only in accordance with the following table:

How debentures may be described

Item Description When description may be used

1 mortgage debenture only if the circumstances set out in

subsection (2) are satisfied

2 debenture only if the circumstances set out in

subsection (2) or (3) are satisfied

3 unsecured note or

unsecured deposit note

in any other case

(1A) The borrower commits an offence if it intentionally or recklessly

contravenes subsection (1).

When debentures can be called mortgage debentures or debentures

(2) The borrower may describe or refer to the debentures as:

(a) mortgage debentures; or

(b) debentures;

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Debentures Chapter 2L

Duties of borrower Part 2L.2

Section 283BI

Corporations Act 2001 11

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

if:

(c) the repayment of all money that has been, or may be,

deposited or lent under the debentures is secured by a first

mortgage given to the trustee over land vested in the

borrower or in any of the guarantors; and

(d) the mortgage has been registered, or is a registrable mortgage

that has been lodged for registration, in accordance with the

law relating to the registration of mortgages of land in the

place where the land is situated; and

(e) the total amount of that money and of all other liabilities (if

any) secured by the mortgage of that land ranking equally

with the liability to repay that money does not exceed 60% of

the value of the borrower’s or guarantor’s interest in that land

as shown in the valuation included in the disclosure

document for the debentures.

When debentures can be called debentures

(3) The borrower may describe or refer to the debentures as debentures

if:

(a) the repayment of all money that has been, or may be,

deposited or lent under the debentures has been secured by a

security interest in favour of the trustee over the whole or any

part of the tangible property of the borrower or of any of the

guarantors; and

(b) the tangible property that constitutes the security for the

security interest is sufficient and is reasonably likely to be

sufficient to meet the liability for the repayment of all such

money and all other liabilities that:

(i) have been or may be incurred; and

(ii) rank in priority to, or equally with, that liability.

283BI Offences for failure to comply with statutory duties

The borrower commits an offence if it intentionally or recklessly

contravenes section 283BB, 283BC, 283BD, 283BE, 283BF or

283EA.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2L Debentures

Part 2L.3 Duties of guarantor

Section 283CA

12 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Part 2L.3—Duties of guarantor

283CA Duties of guarantor

If a borrower is required to enter into a trust deed under

section 283AA in relation to debentures, a guarantor in respect of

the debentures has the duties imposed by this Part.

283CB General duties

The guarantor must:

(a) carry on and conduct its business in a proper and efficient

manner; and

(b) make all of its financial and other records available for

inspection by:

(i) the trustee; or

(ii) an officer or employee of the trustee authorised by the

trustee to carry out the inspection; or

(iii) a registered company auditor appointed by the trustee to

carry out the inspection;

and give them any information, explanations or other

assistance that they require about matters relating to those

records.

283CC Duty to inform trustee about security interests

If the guarantor creates a security interest, it must:

(a) give the trustee written details of the security interest within

21 days after it is created; and

(b) if the total amount to be advanced on the security of the

security interest is indeterminate, give the trustee written

details of:

(i) the amount of each advance made within 7 days after it

is made; or

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Debentures Chapter 2L

Duties of guarantor Part 2L.3

Section 283CD

Corporations Act 2001 13

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(ii) where the advances are merged in a current account

with bankers, trade creditors or anyone else—the net

amount outstanding on the advances at the end of every

3 months.

283CD Exceptions to guarantor’s duty to inform trustee

Section 283CC does not apply in respect of:

(a) the guarantor, while:

(i) it is under external administration; or

(ii) a receiver, or a receiver and manager, of property of the

guarantor has been appointed and has not ceased to act

under that appointment; or

(b) a security interest in PPSA retention of title property.

283CE Offences for failure to comply with statutory duties

The guarantor commits an offence if it intentionally or recklessly

contravenes paragraph 283CB(b) or section 283CC.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2L Debentures

Part 2L.4 Trustee

Section 283DA

14 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Part 2L.4—Trustee

283DA Trustee’s duties

The trustee of a trust deed entered into under section 283AA must:

(a) exercise reasonable diligence to ascertain whether the

property of the borrower and of each guarantor that is or

should be available (whether by way of security or

otherwise) will be sufficient to repay the amount deposited or

lent when it becomes due; and

(b) exercise reasonable diligence to ascertain whether the

borrower or any guarantor has committed any breach of:

(i) the terms of the debentures; or

(ii) the provisions of the trust deed or this Chapter; and

(c) do everything in its power to ensure that the borrower or a

guarantor remedies any breach known to the trustee of:

(i) any term of the debentures; or

(ii) any provision of the trust deed or this Chapter;

unless the trustee is satisfied that the breach will not

materially prejudice the debenture holders’ interests or any

security for the debentures; and

(e) notify ASIC as soon as practicable if:

(i) the borrower has not complied with section 283BE,

283BF or subsection 318(1) or (4); or

(ii) a guarantor has not complied with section 283CC; and

(f) notify ASIC and the borrower as soon as practicable if the

trustee discovers that it cannot be a trustee under

section 283AC; and

(g) give the debenture holders a statement explaining the effect

of any proposal that the borrower submits to the debenture

holders before any meeting that:

(i) the Court calls in relation to a scheme under

subsection 411(1) or (1A); or

(ii) the trustee calls under subsection 283EB(1); and

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Debentures Chapter 2L

Trustee Part 2L.4

Section 283DB

Corporations Act 2001 15

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(h) comply with any directions given to it at a debenture holders’

meeting referred to in section 283EA, 283EB or 283EC

unless:

(i) the trustee is of the opinion that the direction is

inconsistent with the terms of the debentures or the

provisions of the trust deed or this Act or is otherwise

objectionable; and

(ii) has either obtained, or is in the process of obtaining, an

order from the Court under section 283HA setting aside

or varying the direction; and

(i) apply to the Court for an order under section 283HB if the

borrower requests it to do so.

Note 1: Paragraph (g)—Section 411 relates to compromises and arrangements.

Note 2: Section 283DC deals with indemnification in respect of a trustee’s

liability to the debenture holders.

283DB Exemptions and indemnifications of trustee from liability

(1) A term of a debenture, provision of a trust deed or a term of a

contract with holders of debentures secured by a trust deed, is void

in so far as the term or provision would have the effect of:

(a) exempting a trustee from liability for breach of

section 283DA for failure to show the degree of care and

diligence required of it as trustee; or

(b) indemnifying the trustee against that liability;

unless the term or provision:

(c) releases the trustee from liability for something done or

omitted to be done before the release is given; or

(d) enables a meeting of debenture holders to approve the release

of the trustee from liability for something done or omitted to

be done before the release is given.

(2) For the purposes of paragraph (1)(d):

(a) a release is approved if the debenture holders who vote for

the resolution hold 75% of the nominal value of the

debentures held by all the debenture holders who attend the

meeting and vote on the resolution; and

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2L Debentures

Part 2L.4 Trustee

Section 283DC

16 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(b) a debenture holder attends the meeting and votes on the

resolution if:

(i) they attend the meeting in person and vote on the

resolution; or

(ii) if proxies are permitted—they are represented at the

meeting by a proxy and the proxy votes on the

resolution.

283DC Indemnity

The trustee is not liable for anything done or omitted to be done in

accordance with a direction given to it by the debenture holders at

any meeting called under section 283EA, 283EB or 283EC.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Debentures Chapter 2L

Meetings of debenture holders Part 2L.5

Section 283EA

Corporations Act 2001 17

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Part 2L.5—Meetings of debenture holders

283EA Borrower’s duty to call meeting

Duty to call meeting

(1) The borrower must call a meeting of debenture holders if:

(a) debenture holders who together hold 10% or more of the

nominal value of the issued debentures to which the trust

relates direct the borrower to do so; and

(b) the direction is given to the borrower in writing at its

registered office; and

(c) the purpose of the meeting is to:

(i) consider the financial statements that were laid before

the last AGM of the borrower; or

(ii) give the trustee directions in relation to the exercise of

any of its powers.

Note: The trustee usually must comply with any directions given to it by the

debenture holders at the meeting (see paragraph 283DA(h)).

Duty to give notification of meeting

(2) If the borrower is required to call a meeting, it must give notice of

the time and place of the meeting to:

(a) the trustee; and

(b) the borrower’s auditor; and

(c) each of the debenture holders whose names are entered on

the register of debenture holders.

Notice to joint holders of a debenture must be given to the joint

holder named first in the register of debenture holders.

(3) The borrower may give the notice to a debenture holder:

(a) personally; or

(b) by sending it by post to the address for the debenture holder

in the register of debenture holders; or

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2L Debentures

Part 2L.5 Meetings of debenture holders

Section 283EB

18 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(c) by sending it to the fax number or electronic address (if any)

nominated by the debenture holder; or

(d) by any other means that the trust deed or the terms of the

debentures permit.

Note: A defect in the notice may not invalidate a meeting (see section 1322).

When notice by post or fax is given

(4) A notice of meeting sent to a debenture holder is taken to be given:

(a) 3 days after it is posted, if it is posted; or

(b) on the business day after it is sent, if it is sent by fax or other

electronic means;

unless the trust deed or the terms of the debentures provide

otherwise.

283EB Trustee’s power to call meeting

Trustee may call meeting in event of breach

(1) If the borrower or a guarantor fails to remedy any breach of the

terms of the debentures or provisions of the trust deed or this

Chapter when required by the trustee, the trustee may:

(a) call a meeting of debenture holders; and

(b) inform the debenture holders of the failure at the meeting;

and

(c) submit proposals for protection of the debenture holders’

interests to the meeting; and

(d) ask for directions from the debenture holders in relation to

the matter.

Trustee may appoint person to chair meeting

(2) The trustee may appoint a person to chair a meeting of debenture

holders called under subsection (1). If the trustee does not exercise

this power, the debenture holders present at the meeting may

appoint a person to chair the meeting.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Debentures Chapter 2L

Meetings of debenture holders Part 2L.5

Section 283EC

Corporations Act 2001 19

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

283EC Court may order meeting

(1) Without limiting section 283HA or 283HB, the Court may make an

order under either of those sections for a meeting of all or any of

the debenture holders to be held to give directions to the trustee.

The order may direct the trustee to:

(a) place before the debenture holders any information

concerning their interests; and

(b) place before the debenture holders any proposals to protect

their interests that the Court directs or the trustee considers

appropriate; and

(c) obtain the debenture holders’ directions concerning the

protection of their interests.

(2) The meeting is to be held and conducted in the manner the Court

directs. The trustee may appoint a person to chair the meeting. If

the trustee does not exercise this power, the debenture holders

present at the meeting may appoint a person to chair the meeting.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2L Debentures

Part 2L.6 Civil liability

Section 283F

20 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Part 2L.6—Civil liability

283F Civil liability for contravening this Chapter

(1) A person who suffers loss or damage because a person contravenes

a provision of this Chapter may recover the amount of the loss or

damage from:

(a) the person who contravened the provision; or

(b) a person involved in the contravention.

This is so even if the person did not commit, and was not involved

in, the contravention.

(2) An action under subsection (1) may begin at any time within 6

years after the day on which the cause of action arose.

(3) This Part does not affect any liability that a person has under any

other law.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Debentures Chapter 2L

ASIC powers Part 2L.7

Section 283GA

Corporations Act 2001 21

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Part 2L.7—ASIC powers

283GA ASIC’s power to exempt and modify

(1) ASIC may:

(a) exempt a person from a provision of this Chapter; or

(b) declare that this Chapter applies to a person as if specified

provisions were omitted, modified or varied as specified in

the declaration.

(2) The exemption or declaration may do all or any of the following:

(a) apply to all or specified provisions of this Chapter;

(b) apply to all persons, specified persons, or a specified class of

persons;

(c) relate to all debentures, specified debentures or a specified

class of debentures;

(d) relate to any other matter generally or as specified.

(3) An exemption may apply unconditionally or subject to specified

conditions. A person to whom a condition specified in an

exemption applies must comply with the condition. The Court may

order the person to comply with the condition in a specified way.

Only ASIC may apply to the Court for the order.

(4) The exemption or declaration must be in writing and ASIC must

publish notice of it in the Gazette.

(5) For the purposes of this section, the provisions of this Chapter

include:

(a) regulations made for the purposes of this Chapter; and

(b) definitions in this Act or the regulations as they apply to

references in:

(i) this Chapter; or

(ii) regulations made for the purposes of this Chapter; and

(c) the old Division 12 of Part 11.2 transitionals.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2L Debentures

Part 2L.7 ASIC powers

Section 283GB

22 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

283GB ASIC may approve body corporate to be trustee

(1) ASIC may approve a body corporate in writing to be a trustee for

the purposes of paragraph 283AC(1)(f). The approval may allow

the body corporate to act as trustee:

(a) in any circumstances; or

(b) in relation to a particular borrower or particular class of

borrower; or

(c) in relation to a particular trust deed;

and may be given subject to conditions.

(2) ASIC must publish notice of the approval in the Gazette.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Debentures Chapter 2L

Court Part 2L.8

Section 283HA

Corporations Act 2001 23

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Part 2L.8—Court

283HA General Court power to give directions and determine

questions

If the trustee applies to the Court for any direction in relation to the

performance of the trustee’s functions or to determine any question

in relation to the interests of the debenture holders, the Court may

give any direction and make any declaration or determination in

relation to the matter that the Court considers appropriate. The

Court may also make ancillary or consequential orders.

Note: Under this section, the Court may order a meeting of debenture

holders to be held, see section 283EC.

283HB Specific Court powers

(1) If the trustee or ASIC applies to the Court, the Court may make

any or all of the following orders:

(a) an order staying an action or other civil proceedings before a

court by or against the borrower or a guarantor body;

(b) an order restraining the borrower from paying any money to

the debenture holders or any holders of any other class of

debentures;

(c) an order that any security for the debentures be enforceable

immediately or at the time the Court directs (even if the

debentures are irredeemable or redeemable only on the

happening of a contingency);

(d) an order appointing a receiver of any property constituting

security for the debentures;

(e) an order restricting advertising by the borrower for deposits

or loans;

(f) an order restricting borrowing by the borrower;

(g) any other order that the Court considers appropriate to

protect the interests of existing or prospective debenture

holders.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2L Debentures

Part 2L.8 Court

Section 283HB

24 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(2) In deciding whether to make an order under subsection (1), the

Court must have regard to:

(a) the ability of the borrower and each guarantor to repay the

amount deposited or lent as and when it becomes due; and

(b) any contravention of section 283GA by the borrower; and

(c) the interests of the borrower’s members and creditors; and

(d) the interests of the members of each of the guarantors.

Note: The Court may order a meeting of debenture holders to be held (see

section 283EC).

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Debentures Chapter 2L

Location of other debenture provisions Part 2L.9

Section 283I

Corporations Act 2001 25

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Part 2L.9—Location of other debenture provisions

283I Signpost to other debenture provisions

There are other rules relating to debentures in paragraph 124(1)(b)

and section 563AAA.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2M Financial reports and audit

Part 2M.1 Overview

Section 285

26 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Chapter 2M—Financial reports and audit

Part 2M.1—Overview

285 Overview of obligations under this Chapter

Obligations under this Chapter

(1) Under this Chapter, all companies, registered schemes and

disclosing entities must keep financial records (see

sections 286-291)—and some must prepare financial reports (see

sections 292-323D). All those that have to prepare financial reports

have to prepare them annually; disclosing entities have to prepare

half-year financial reports as well. The following table sets out

what is involved in annual financial reporting:

Annual financial reporting

steps sections comments

1 prepare financial report s. 295 The financial report

includes:

• financial statements

• disclosures and notes

• directors’ declaration.

2 prepare directors’ report s. 298 Unless the report relates to a

company limited by

guarantee, it has a general

component (sections 299 and

299A), a specific component

(section 300) and a special

component for listed

companies (section 300A).

See section 285A for an

overview of the obligations

of companies limited by

guarantee.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Financial reports and audit Chapter 2M

Overview Part 2M.1

Section 285

Corporations Act 2001 27

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Annual financial reporting

steps sections comments

3 have the financial report

audited and obtain

auditor’s report

s. 301, 307, 308 A small proprietary company

preparing a financial report

in response to a shareholder

direction under s. 293 only

has to have an audit if the

direction asks for it.

There are similar rules for

companies limited by

guarantee (see section 285A

for an overview).

Under s. 312, officers must

assist the auditor in the

conduct of the audit.

ASIC may use its exemption

powers under s. 340 and 341

to relieve large proprietary

companies from the audit

requirements in appropriate

cases (s. 342(2) and (3)).

4 provide the financial

report, directors’ report

and auditor’s report to

members

s. 314 Unless the report relates to a

company limited by

guarantee, a concise

financial report may be

provided to members instead

of the full financial

statements

(subsections 314(1) and (2)).

For deadline, see

subsections 315(1) to (4).

See section 285A for an

overview of the obligations

of companies limited by

guarantee.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2M Financial reports and audit

Part 2M.1 Overview

Section 285A

28 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Annual financial reporting

steps sections comments

5 lodge the financial

report, directors’ report

and auditor’s report with

ASIC

s. 319 For deadline see s. 319(3).

Companies that have the

benefit of the grandfathering

in the relevant Part 10.1

transitionals do not have to

lodge.

6 [public companies only]

lay financial report,

directors’ report and

auditor’s report before

AGM

s. 317 For the AGM deadline see s.

250N.

Application to disclosing entities

(2) This Chapter covers all disclosing entities:

(a) incorporated or formed in Australia; and

(b) whether or not they are companies or registered schemes.

Application to registered schemes

(3) For the purposes of applying this Chapter to a registered scheme:

(a) the scheme’s responsible entity is responsible for the

performance of obligations in respect of the scheme; and

(b) the directors and officers of the responsible entity are taken

to be the directors and officers of the scheme; and

(c) the debts incurred in operating the scheme are taken to be the

debts of the scheme.

285A Overview of obligations of companies limited by guarantee

The following table sets out what is involved in annual financial

reporting for companies limited by guarantee:

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Financial reports and audit Chapter 2M

Overview Part 2M.1

Section 285A

Corporations Act 2001 29

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Annual financial reporting for companies limited by guarantee

Item Nature of company Obligations Sections

1 Small company limited by

guarantee.

No obligation to do any of the

following unless required to

do so under a member

direction or ASIC direction:

• prepare a financial report;

• prepare a directors’ report;

• have financial report audited;

• notify members of reports.

Sections 292,

301 and 316A

2 Company limited by

guarantee with annual

revenue or, if part of a

consolidated entity, annual

consolidated revenue of less

than $1 million.

Must prepare a financial

report.

Must prepare a directors’

report, although less detailed

than that required of other

companies.

Need not have financial report

audited unless a

Commonwealth company, or a

subsidiary of a

Commonwealth company or

Commonwealth authority. If

the company does not have

financial report audited, it

must have financial report

reviewed.

Must give reports to any

member who elects to receive

them.

Sections 292,

298, 300B,

301, 316A

3 Company limited by

guarantee with annual

revenue or, if part of a

consolidated entity, annual

consolidated revenue of $1

million or more.

Must prepare a financial

report.

Must prepare a directors’

report, although less detailed

than that required of other

companies.

Sections 292,

298, 300B,

301, 316A

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2M Financial reports and audit

Part 2M.1 Overview

Section 285A

30 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Annual financial reporting for companies limited by guarantee

Item Nature of company Obligations Sections

Must have financial report

audited.

Must give reports to any

member who elects to receive

them.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Financial reports and audit Chapter 2M

Financial records Part 2M.2

Section 286

Corporations Act 2001 31

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Part 2M.2—Financial records

286 Obligation to keep financial records

(1) A company, registered scheme or disclosing entity must keep

written financial records that:

(a) correctly record and explain its transactions and financial

position and performance; and

(b) would enable true and fair financial statements to be prepared

and audited.

The obligation to keep financial records of transactions extends to

transactions undertaken as trustee.

Note: Section 9 defines financial records.

Period for which records must be retained

(2) The financial records must be retained for 7 years after the

transactions covered by the records are completed.

Strict liability offences

(3) An offence based on subsection (1) or (2) is an offence of strict

liability.

Note: For strict liability, see section 6.1 of the Criminal Code.

287 Language requirements

(1) The financial records may be kept in any language.

(2) An English translation of financial records not kept in English must

be made available within a reasonable time to a person who:

(a) is entitled to inspect the records; and

(b) asks for the English translation.

(3) An offence based on subsection (2) is an offence of strict liability.

Note: For strict liability, see section 6.1 of the Criminal Code.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2M Financial reports and audit

Part 2M.2 Financial records

Section 288

32 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

288 Physical format

(1) If financial records are kept in electronic form, they must be

convertible into hard copy. Hard copy must be made available

within a reasonable time to a person who is entitled to inspect the

records.

(2) An offence based on subsection (1) is an offence of strict liability.

Note: For strict liability, see section 6.1 of the Criminal Code.

289 Place where records are kept

(1) A company, registered scheme or disclosing entity may decide

where to keep the financial records.

Records kept outside this jurisdiction

(2) If financial records about particular matters are kept outside this

jurisdiction, sufficient written information about those matters

must be kept in this jurisdiction to enable true and fair financial

statements to be prepared. The company, registered scheme or

disclosing entity must give ASIC written notice in the prescribed

form of the place where the information is kept.

(2A) An offence based on subsection (2) is an offence of strict liability.

Note: For strict liability, see section 6.1 of the Criminal Code.

(3) ASIC may direct a company, registered scheme or disclosing entity

to produce specified financial records that are kept outside this

jurisdiction.

(4) The direction must:

(a) be in writing; and

(b) specify a place in this jurisdiction where the records are to be

produced (the place must be reasonable in the

circumstances); and

(c) specify a day (at least 14 days after the direction is given) by

which the records are to be produced.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Financial reports and audit Chapter 2M

Financial records Part 2M.2

Section 290

Corporations Act 2001 33

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

290 Director access

Personal access

(1) A director of a company, registered scheme or disclosing entity has

a right of access to the financial records at all reasonable times.

Court order for inspection on director’s behalf

(2) On application by a director, the Court may authorise a person to

inspect the financial records on the director’s behalf.

(3) A person authorised to inspect records may make copies of the

records unless the Court orders otherwise.

(4) The Court may make any other orders it consider appropriate,

including either or both of the following:

(a) an order limiting the use that a person who inspects the

records may make of information obtained during the

inspection;

(b) an order limiting the right of a person who inspects the

records to make copies in accordance with subsection (3).

291 Signposts to other relevant provisions

The following table sets out other provisions that are relevant to

access to financial records.

Other provisions relevant to access to financial records

1 section 247A

members

A member may apply to the Court for an order to

inspect the records.

2 section 310

auditor

The auditor has a right of access to the records.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2M Financial reports and audit

Part 2M.2 Financial records

Section 291

34 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Other provisions relevant to access to financial records

3 section 431

controllers

A controller of a corporation’s property (for example, a receiver or receiver and manager) has a right of

access to the records.

4 sections 28 to 39 of

the ASIC Act

ASIC

ASIC has power to inspect the records. It also has

power under subsection 289(3) of this Act to call for

the production of financial records kept outside this

jurisdiction.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Financial reports and audit Chapter 2M

Financial reporting Part 2M.3

Annual financial reports and directors’ reports Division 1

Section 292

Corporations Act 2001 35

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Part 2M.3—Financial reporting

Division 1—Annual financial reports and directors’ reports

292 Who has to prepare annual financial reports and directors’

reports

(1) A financial report and a directors’ report must be prepared for each

financial year by:

(a) all disclosing entities; and

(b) all public companies; and

(c) all large proprietary companies; and

(d) all registered schemes.

Note: This Chapter only applies to disclosing entities incorporated or formed

in Australia (see subsection 285(2)).

Small proprietary companies

(2) A small proprietary company has to prepare the financial report

and directors’ report only if:

(a) it is directed to do so under section 293 or 294; or

(b) it was controlled by a foreign company for all or part of the

year and it is not consolidated for that period in financial

statements for that year lodged with ASIC by:

(i) a registered foreign company; or

(ii) a company, registered scheme or disclosing entity.

The rest of this Part does not apply to any other small proprietary

company.

Small companies limited by guarantee

(3) Despite subsection (1), a small company limited by guarantee has

to prepare the financial report and directors’ report only if it is

directed to do so under section 294A or 294B. The rest of this Part

does not apply to any other small company limited by guarantee.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2M Financial reports and audit

Part 2M.3 Financial reporting

Division 1 Annual financial reports and directors’ reports

Section 293

36 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

293 Small proprietary company—shareholder direction

(1) Shareholders with at least 5% of the votes in a small proprietary

company may give the company a direction to:

(a) prepare a financial report and directors’ report for a financial

year; and

(b) send them to all shareholders.

(2) The direction must be:

(a) signed by the shareholders giving the direction; and

(b) made no later than 12 months after the end of the financial

year concerned.

(3) The direction may specify all or any of the following:

(a) that the financial report does not have to comply with some

or all of the accounting standards;

(b) that a directors’ report or a part of that report need not be

prepared;

(c) that the financial report is to be audited.

294 Small proprietary company—ASIC direction

(1) ASIC may give a small proprietary company a direction to comply

with requirements of this Division and Divisions 3, 4, 5 and 6 for a

financial year.

(1A) An offence based on subsection (1) is an offence of strict liability.

Note: For strict liability, see section 6.1 of the Criminal Code.

(2) The direction may be general or may specify the particular

requirements that the company is to comply with.

(3) The direction must specify the date by which the documents have

to be prepared, sent or lodged. The date must be a reasonable one

in view of the nature of the direction.

(4) The direction must:

(a) be made in writing; and

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Financial reports and audit Chapter 2M

Financial reporting Part 2M.3

Annual financial reports and directors’ reports Division 1

Section 294A

Corporations Act 2001 37

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(b) specify the financial year concerned; and

(c) be made no later than 6 years after the end of that financial

year.

294A Small company limited by guarantee—member direction

(1) Members with at least 5% of the votes in a small company limited

by guarantee may give the company a direction to:

(a) prepare a financial report and directors’ report for a financial

year; and

(b) send them to members who have elected to receive them

under section 316A.

(2) The direction must be:

(a) signed by the members giving the direction; and

(b) made no later than 12 months after the end of the financial

year concerned.

(3) The direction may specify all or any of the following:

(a) that the financial report does not have to comply with some

or all of the accounting standards;

(b) that a directors’ report or a part of that report need not be

prepared;

(c) that the financial report is to be audited or reviewed.

294B Small company limited by guarantee—ASIC direction

(1) ASIC may give a small company limited by guarantee a direction

to comply with the requirements of this Division and Divisions 3,

4, 5 and 6 for a financial year.

(2) An offence based on subsection (1) is an offence of strict liability.

Note: For strict liability, see section 6.1 of the Criminal Code.

(3) The direction may be general or may specify the particular

requirements that the company is to comply with.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2M Financial reports and audit

Part 2M.3 Financial reporting

Division 1 Annual financial reports and directors’ reports

Section 295

38 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(4) The direction must specify the date by which the documents have

to be prepared, sent or lodged. The date must be a reasonable one

in view of the nature of the direction.

(5) The direction must:

(a) be made in writing; and

(b) specify the financial year concerned; and

(c) be made no later than 6 years after the end of that financial

year.

(6) A direction given under subsection (1) is not a legislative

instrument.

295 Contents of annual financial report

Basic contents

(1) The financial report for a financial year consists of:

(a) the financial statements for the year; and

(b) the notes to the financial statements; and

(c) the directors’ declaration about the statements and notes.

Financial statements

(2) The financial statements for the year are:

(a) unless paragraph (b) applies—the financial statements in

relation to the company, registered scheme or disclosing

entity required by the accounting standards; or

(b) if the accounting standards require the company, registered

scheme or disclosing entity to prepare financial statements in

relation to a consolidated entity—the financial statements in

relation to the consolidated entity required by the accounting

standards.

Notes to financial statements

(3) The notes to the financial statements are:

(a) disclosures required by the regulations; and

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Financial reports and audit Chapter 2M

Financial reporting Part 2M.3

Annual financial reports and directors’ reports Division 1

Section 295

Corporations Act 2001 39

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(b) notes required by the accounting standards; and

(c) any other information necessary to give a true and fair view

(see section 297).

Directors’ declaration

(4) The directors’ declaration is a declaration by the directors:

(c) whether, in the directors’ opinion, there are reasonable

grounds to believe that the company, registered scheme or

disclosing entity will be able to pay its debts as and when

they become due and payable; and

(ca) if the company, registered scheme or disclosing entity has

included in the notes to the financial statements, in

compliance with the accounting standards, an explicit and

unreserved statement of compliance with international

financial reporting standards—that this statement has been

included in the notes to the financial statements; and

(d) whether, in the directors’ opinion, the financial statement and

notes are in accordance with this Act, including:

(i) section 296 (compliance with accounting standards);

and

(ii) section 297 (true and fair view); and

(e) if the company, disclosing entity or registered scheme is

listed—that the directors have been given the declarations

required by section 295A.

Note: See paragraph 285(3)(c) for the reference to the debts of a registered

scheme.

(5) The declaration must:

(a) be made in accordance with a resolution of the directors; and

(b) specify the date on which the declaration is made; and

(c) be signed by a director.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2M Financial reports and audit

Part 2M.3 Financial reporting

Division 1 Annual financial reports and directors’ reports

Section 295A

40 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

295A Declaration in relation to listed entity’s financial statements by

chief executive officer and chief financial officer

(1) If the company, disclosing entity or registered scheme is listed, the

directors’ declaration under subsection 295(4) must be made only

after each person who performs:

(a) a chief executive function; or

(b) a chief financial officer function;

in relation to the company, disclosing entity or registered scheme

has given the directors a declaration under subsection (2) of this

section.

(2) The declaration is a declaration whether, in the person’s opinion:

(a) the financial records of the company, disclosing entity or

registered scheme for the financial year have been properly

maintained in accordance with section 286; and

(b) the financial statements, and the notes referred to in

paragraph 295(3)(b), for the financial year comply with the

accounting standards; and

(c) the financial statements and notes for the financial year give

a true and fair view (see section 297); and

(d) any other matters that are prescribed by the regulations for

the purposes of this paragraph in relation to the financial

statements and the notes for the financial year are satisfied.

(3) The declaration must:

(a) be made in writing; and

(b) specify the date on which the declaration is made; and

(c) specify the capacity in which the person is making the

declaration; and

(d) be signed by the person making the declaration.

A person who performs both a chief executive function and a chief

financial officer function may make a single declaration in both

capacities.

(4) A person performs a chief executive function in relation to the

company, disclosing entity or registered scheme if the person is the

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Financial reports and audit Chapter 2M

Financial reporting Part 2M.3

Annual financial reports and directors’ reports Division 1

Section 295A

Corporations Act 2001 41

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

person who is primarily and directly responsible to the directors for

the general and overall management of the company, disclosing

entity or registered scheme.

(5) If there is no one person who performs a chief executive function

in relation to the company, disclosing entity or registered scheme

under subsection (4), a person performs a chief executive function

in relation to the company, disclosing entity or registered scheme if

the person is one of a number of people who together are primarily

and directly responsible to the directors for the general and overall

management of the company, disclosing entity or registered

scheme.

(6) A person performs a chief financial officer function in relation to

the company, disclosing entity or registered scheme if that person

is the person who is:

(a) primarily responsible for financial matters in relation to the

company, disclosing entity or registered scheme; and

(b) directly responsible for those matters to either:

(i) the directors; or

(ii) the person or persons who perform the chief executive

function in relation to the company.

(7) If there is no one person who performs a chief financial officer

function in relation to the company, disclosing entity or registered

scheme under subsection (6), a person performs a chief financial

officer function in relation to the company, disclosing entity or

registered scheme if the person is one of a number of people who

together are:

(a) primarily responsible for financial matters in relation to the

company, disclosing entity or registered scheme; and

(b) directly responsible for those matters to either:

(i) the directors; or

(ii) the person or persons who perform the chief executive

function in relation to the company.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2M Financial reports and audit

Part 2M.3 Financial reporting

Division 1 Annual financial reports and directors’ reports

Section 296

42 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(8) Nothing in this section derogates from the responsibility that a

director has for ensuring that financial statements comply with this

Act.

296 Compliance with accounting standards and regulations

(1) The financial report for a financial year must comply with the

accounting standards.

Small proprietary companies

(1A) Despite subsection (1), the financial report of a small proprietary

company does not have to comply with particular accounting

standards if:

(a) the report is prepared in response to a shareholder direction

under section 293; and

(b) the direction specifies that the report does not have to comply

with those standards.

Small companies limited by guarantee

(1B) Despite subsection (1), the financial report of a small company

limited by guarantee does not have to comply with particular

accounting standards if:

(a) the report is prepared in response to a member direction

under section 294A; and

(b) the direction specifies that the report does not have to comply

with those standards.

Further requirements

(2) The financial report must comply with any further requirements in

the regulations.

297 True and fair view

The financial statements and notes for a financial year must give a

true and fair view of:

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Financial reports and audit Chapter 2M

Financial reporting Part 2M.3

Annual financial reports and directors’ reports Division 1

Section 298

Corporations Act 2001 43

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(a) the financial position and performance of the company,

registered scheme or disclosing entity; and

(b) if consolidated financial statements are required—the

financial position and performance of the consolidated entity.

This section does not affect the obligation under section 296 for a

financial report to comply with accounting standards.

Note: If the financial statements and notes prepared in compliance with the

accounting standards would not give a true and fair view, additional

information must be included in the notes to the financial statements

under paragraph 295(3)(c).

298 Annual directors’ report

(1) The company, registered scheme or disclosing entity must prepare

a directors’ report for each financial year.

(1AA) Except in the case of a company limited by guarantee, the report

must include:

(a) the general information required by sections 299 (all entities)

and 299A (additional requirements for listed entities); and

(b) the specific information required by sections 300 and 300A;

and

(c) a copy of the auditor’s declaration under section 307C in

relation to the audit for the financial year.

(1AB) In the case of a company limited by guarantee, the report must

include:

(a) the general information required by section 300B; and

(b) a copy of the auditor’s declaration under section 307C in

relation to the audit or review for the financial year.

(1A) If the financial report for a financial year includes additional

information under paragraph 295(3)(c) (information included to

give true and fair view of financial position and performance), the

directors’ report for the financial year must also:

(a) set out the directors’ reasons for forming the opinion that the

inclusion of that additional information was necessary to give

the true and fair view required by section 297; and

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2M Financial reports and audit

Part 2M.3 Financial reporting

Division 1 Annual financial reports and directors’ reports

Section 299

44 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(b) specify where that additional information can be found in the

financial report.

(2) The report must:

(a) be made in accordance with a resolution of the directors; and

(b) specify the date on which the report is made; and

(c) be signed by a director.

Small proprietary companies

(3) A small proprietary company does not have to comply with

subsection (1) for a financial year if:

(a) it is preparing financial statements for that year in response to

a shareholder direction under section 293; and

(b) the direction specified that a directors’ report need not be

prepared.

Small companies limited by guarantee

(4) A small company limited by guarantee does not have to comply

with subsection (1) for a financial year if:

(a) it is preparing the financial statements for that year in

response to a member direction under section 294A; and

(b) the direction specified that a directors’ report need not be

prepared.

299 Annual directors’ report—general information

General information about operations and activities

(1) The directors’ report for a financial year must:

(a) contain a review of operations during the year of the entity

reported on and the results of those operations; and

(b) give details of any significant changes in the entity’s state of

affairs during the year; and

(c) state the entity’s principal activities during the year and any

significant changes in the nature of those activities during the

year; and

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Financial reports and audit Chapter 2M

Financial reporting Part 2M.3

Annual financial reports and directors’ reports Division 1

Section 299

Corporations Act 2001 45

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(d) give details of any matter or circumstance that has arisen

since the end of the year that has significantly affected, or

may significantly affect:

(i) the entity’s operations in future financial years; or

(ii) the results of those operations in future financial years;

or

(iii) the entity’s state of affairs in future financial years; and

(e) refer to likely developments in the entity’s operations in

future financial years and the expected results of those

operations; and

(f) if the entity’s operations are subject to any particular and

significant environmental regulation under a law of the

Commonwealth or of a State or Territory—give details of the

entity’s performance in relation to environmental regulation.

(2) The entity reported on is:

(a) the company, registered scheme or disclosing entity (if

consolidated financial statements are not required); or

(b) the consolidated entity (if consolidated financial statements

are required).

Prejudicial information need not be disclosed

(3) The report may omit material that would otherwise be included

under paragraph (1)(e) if it is likely to result in unreasonable

prejudice to:

(a) the company, registered scheme or disclosing entity; or

(b) if consolidated financial statements are required—the

consolidated entity or any entity (including the company,

registered scheme or disclosing entity) that is part of the

consolidated entity.

If material is omitted, the report must say so.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2M Financial reports and audit

Part 2M.3 Financial reporting

Division 1 Annual financial reports and directors’ reports

Section 299A

46 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

299A Annual directors’ report—additional general requirements for

listed entities

(1) The directors’ report for a financial year for a company, registered

scheme or disclosing entity that is listed must also contain

information that members of the listed entity would reasonably

require to make an informed assessment of:

(a) the operations of the entity reported on; and

(b) the financial position of the entity reported on; and

(c) the business strategies, and prospects for future financial

years, of the entity reported on.

(2) The entity reported on is:

(a) the company, registered scheme or disclosing entity that is

listed (if consolidated financial statements are not required);

or

(b) the consolidated entity (if consolidated financial statements

are required).

(3) The report may omit material that would otherwise be included

under paragraph (1)(c) if it is likely to result in unreasonable

prejudice to:

(a) the company, registered scheme or disclosing entity; or

(b) if consolidated financial statements are required—the

consolidated entity or any entity (including the company,

registered scheme or disclosing entity) that is part of the

consolidated entity.

If material is omitted, the report must say so.

300 Annual directors’ report—specific information

(1) The directors’ report for a financial year must include details of:

(a) dividends or distributions paid to members during the year;

and

(b) dividends or distributions recommended or declared for

payment to members, but not paid, during the year; and

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Financial reports and audit Chapter 2M

Financial reporting Part 2M.3

Annual financial reports and directors’ reports Division 1

Section 300

Corporations Act 2001 47

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(c) the name of each person who has been a director of the

company, registered scheme or disclosing entity at any time

during or since the end of the year and the period for which

they were a director; and

(ca) the name of each person who:

(i) is an officer of the company, registered scheme or

disclosing entity at any time during the year; and

(ii) was a partner in an audit firm, or a director of an audit

company, that is an auditor of the company, disclosing

entity or registered scheme for the year; and

(iii) was such a partner or director at a time when the audit

firm or the audit company undertook an audit of the

company, disclosing entity or registered scheme; and

(d) options that are:

(i) granted over unissued shares or unissued interests

during or since the end of the year; and

(ii) granted to any of the directors or any of the 5 most

highly remunerated officers of the company (other than

the directors); and

(iii) granted to them as part of their remuneration;

(see subsections (3), (4) and (5)); and

(e) unissued shares or interests under option as at the day the

report is made (see subsections (3) and (6)); and

(f) shares or interests issued during or since the end of the year

as a result of the exercise of an option over unissued shares

or interests (see subsections (3) and (7)); and

(g) indemnities given and insurance premiums paid during or

since the end of the year for a person who is or has been an

officer or auditor (see subsections (8) and (9)).

Public companies, listed companies and registered schemes must

include additional information under subsections (10), (11),

(11AA), (11A), (11B), (12) and (13) of this section and

section 300A.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2M Financial reports and audit

Part 2M.3 Financial reporting

Division 1 Annual financial reports and directors’ reports

Section 300

48 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(2) Details do not have to be included in the directors’ report under

this section if they are included in the company’s financial report

for the financial year.

(2A) If subsection (2) is relied on to not include in the directors’ report

for a financial year details that would otherwise be required to be

included in that report under paragraph (11B)(a) or (11C)(b), that

report must specify, in the section headed “Non-audit services”,

where those details may be found in the company’s financial report

for that financial year.

(3) Paragraphs (1)(d), (e) and (f) cover:

(a) options over unissued shares and interests of the company,

registered scheme or disclosing entity; and

(b) if consolidated financial statements are required—options

over unissued shares and interests of any controlled entity

that is a company, registered scheme or disclosing entity.

Options details

(5) The details of an option granted are:

(a) the company, registered scheme or disclosing entity granting

the option; and

(b) the name of the person to whom the option is granted; and

(c) the number and class of shares or interests over which the

option is granted.

(6) The details of unissued shares or interests under option are:

(a) the company, registered scheme or disclosing entity that will

issue shares or interests when the options are exercised; and

(b) the number and classes of those shares or interests; and

(c) the issue price, or the method of determining the issue price,

of those shares or interests; and

(d) the expiry date of the options; and

(e) any rights that option holders have under the options to

participate in any share issue or interest issue of the

company, registered scheme or disclosing entity or of any

other body corporate or registered scheme.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Financial reports and audit Chapter 2M

Financial reporting Part 2M.3

Annual financial reports and directors’ reports Division 1

Section 300

Corporations Act 2001 49

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Shares or interests issued as a result of exercise of option

(7) The details of shares or interests issued as a result of the exercise

of an option are:

(a) the company, registered scheme or disclosing entity issuing

the shares or interests; and

(b) the number of shares or interests issued; and

(c) if the company, registered scheme or disclosing entity has

different classes of shares or interests—the class to which

each of those shares or interests belongs; and

(d) the amount unpaid on each of those shares or interests; and

(e) the amount paid, or agreed to be considered as paid, on each

of those shares or interests.

Indemnities and insurance premiums for officers or auditors

(8) The report for a company must include details of:

(a) any indemnity that is given to a current or former officer or

auditor against a liability and that is covered by

subsection 199A(2) or (3), or any relevant agreement under

which an officer or auditor may be given an indemnity of that

kind; and

(b) any premium that is paid, or agreed to be paid, for insurance

against a current or former officer’s or auditor’s liability for

legal costs.

Note: Sections 199A and 199B contain general prohibitions against giving

certain indemnities and paying certain insurance premiums. This

subsection requires transactions that are exceptions to these

prohibitions to be reported.

(9) The details required under subsection (8) are:

(a) for an officer—their name or the class of officer to which

they belong or belonged; and

(b) for an auditor—their name; and

(c) the nature of the liability; and

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2M Financial reports and audit

Part 2M.3 Financial reporting

Division 1 Annual financial reports and directors’ reports

Section 300

50 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(d) for an indemnity given—the amount the company paid and

any other action the company took to indemnify the officer or

auditor; and

(e) for an agreement to indemnify—the amount that the relevant

agreement requires the company to pay and any other action

the relevant agreement requires the company to take to

indemnify the officer or auditor; and

(f) for an insurance premium—the amount of the premium.

The report need not give details of the nature of the liability

covered by, or the amount of the premium payable under, a

contract of insurance to the extent that disclosure of those details is

prohibited by the insurance contract.

Special rules for public companies

(10) The report for a public company that is not a wholly-owned

subsidiary of another company must also include details of:

(a) each director’s qualifications, experience and special

responsibilities; and

(b) the number of meetings of the board of directors held during

the year and each director’s attendance at those meetings; and

(c) the number of meetings of each board committee held during

the year and each director’s attendance at those meetings; and

(d) the qualifications and experience of each person who is a

company secretary of the company as at the end of the year.

Special rules for listed companies and schemes

(11) The report for a listed company must also include the following

details for each director:

(a) their relevant interests in shares of the company or a related

body corporate;

(b) their relevant interests in debentures of, or interests in a

registered scheme made available by, the company or a

related body corporate;

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Financial reports and audit Chapter 2M

Financial reporting Part 2M.3

Annual financial reports and directors’ reports Division 1

Section 300

Corporations Act 2001 51

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(c) their rights or options over shares in, debentures of or

interests in a registered scheme made available by, the

company or a related body corporate;

(d) contracts:

(i) to which the director is a party or under which the

director is entitled to a benefit; and

(ii) that confer a right to call for or deliver shares in, or

debentures of or interests in a registered scheme made

available by the company or a related body corporate;

(e) all directorships of other listed companies held by the

director at any time in the 3 years immediately before the end

of the financial year and the period for which each

directorship has been held.

Note: Directors must also disclose interests of these kinds to a relevant

market operator under section 205G as they are acquired.

(11AA) If an individual plays a significant role in the audit of a listed

company or listed registered scheme for the financial year in

reliance on an approval granted under section 324DAA, the report

for the company or scheme must also include details of, and

reasons for, the approval.

(11A) If a registered company auditor plays a significant role in the audit

of a listed company for the financial year in reliance on a

declaration made under section 342A, the report for the company

must also include details of the declaration.

Listed companies—non-audit services and auditor independence

(11B) The report for a listed company must also include the following in

relation to each auditor:

(a) details of the amounts paid or payable to the auditor for

non-audit services provided, during the year, by the auditor

(or by another person or firm on the auditor’s behalf);

(b) a statement whether the directors are satisfied that the

provision of non-audit services, during the year, by the

auditor (or by another person or firm on the auditor’s behalf)

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2M Financial reports and audit

Part 2M.3 Financial reporting

Division 1 Annual financial reports and directors’ reports

Section 300

52 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

is compatible with the general standard of independence for

auditors imposed by this Act;

(c) a statement of the directors’ reasons for being satisfied that

the provision of those non-audit services, during the year, by

the auditor (or by another person or firm on the auditor’s

behalf) did not compromise the auditor independence

requirements of this Act.

These details and statements must be included in the directors’

report under the heading “Non-audit services”. If consolidated

financial statements are required, the details and statements must

relate to amounts paid or payable to the auditor by, and non-audit

services provided to, any entity (including the company, registered

scheme or disclosing entity) that is part of the consolidated entity.

(11C) For the purposes of paragraph (11B)(a), the details of amounts paid

or payable to an auditor for non-audit services provided, during the

year, by the auditor (or by another person or firm on the auditor’s

behalf) are:

(a) the name of the auditor; and

(b) the dollar amount that:

(i) the listed company; or

(ii) if consolidated financial statements are required—any

entity that is part of the consolidated entity;

paid, or is liable to pay, for each of those non-audit services.

(11D) The statements under paragraphs (11B)(b) and (c) must be made in

accordance with:

(a) advice provided by the listed company’s audit committee if

the company has an audit committee; or

(b) a resolution of the directors of the listed company if

paragraph (a) does not apply.

(11E) For the purposes of subsection (11D), a statement is taken to be

made in accordance with advice provided by the company’s audit

committee only if:

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Financial reports and audit Chapter 2M

Financial reporting Part 2M.3

Annual financial reports and directors’ reports Division 1

Section 300

Corporations Act 2001 53

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(a) the statement is consistent with that advice and does not

contain any material omission of material included in that

advice; and

(b) the advice is endorsed by a resolution passed by the members

of the audit committee; and

(c) the advice is written advice signed by a member of the audit

committee on behalf of the audit committee and given to the

directors.

Special rules for listed registered schemes

(12) The report for a registered scheme whose interests are quoted on a

prescribed financial market must also include the following details

for each director of the company that is the responsible entity for

the scheme:

(a) their relevant interests in interests in the scheme;

(b) their rights or options over interests in the scheme;

(c) contracts to which the director is a party or under which the

director is entitled to a benefit and that confer a right to call

for or deliver interests in the scheme.

Special rules for registered schemes

(13) The report for a registered scheme must also include details of:

(a) the fees paid to the responsible entity and its associates out of

scheme property during the financial year; and

(b) the number of interests in the scheme held by the responsible

entity or its associates as at the end of the financial year; and

(c) interests in the scheme issued during the financial year; and

(d) withdrawals from the scheme during the financial year; and

(e) the value of the scheme’s assets as at the end of the financial

year, and the basis for the valuation; and

(f) the number of interests in the scheme as at the end of the

financial year.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2M Financial reports and audit

Part 2M.3 Financial reporting

Division 1 Annual financial reports and directors’ reports

Section 300A

54 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Proceedings on behalf of a company

(14) The report for a company must also include the following details of

any application for leave under section 237 made in respect of the

company:

(a) the applicant’s name; and

(b) a statement whether leave was granted.

(15) The report for a company must also include the following details of

any proceedings that a person has brought or intervened in on

behalf of the company with leave under section 237:

(a) the person’s name;

(b) the names of the parties to the proceedings;

(c) sufficient information to enable members to understand the

nature and status of the proceedings (including the cause of

action and any orders made by the court).

300A Annual directors’ report—specific information to be provided

by listed companies

(1) The directors’ report for a financial year for a company must also

include (in a separate and clearly identified section of the report):

(a) discussion of board policy for determining, or in relation to,

the nature and amount (or value, as appropriate) of

remuneration of the key management personnel for:

(i) the company, if consolidated financial statements are

not required; or

(ii) the consolidated entity, if consolidated financial

statements are required; and

(b) discussion of the relationship between such policy and the

company’s performance; and

(ba) if an element of the remuneration of a member of the key

management personnel for the company, or if consolidated

financial statements are required, for the consolidated entity

is dependent on the satisfaction of a performance condition:

(i) a detailed summary of the performance condition; and

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Financial reports and audit Chapter 2M

Financial reporting Part 2M.3

Annual financial reports and directors’ reports Division 1

Section 300A

Corporations Act 2001 55

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(ii) an explanation of why the performance condition was

chosen; and

(iii) a summary of the methods used in assessing whether the

performance condition is satisfied and an explanation of

why those methods were chosen; and

(iv) if the performance condition involves a comparison

with factors external to the company:

(A) a summary of the factors to be used in making

the comparison; and

(B) if any of the factors relates to the performance

of another company, of 2 or more other

companies or of an index in which the

securities of a company or companies are

included—the identity of that company, of each

of those companies or of the index; and

(c) the prescribed details in relation to the remuneration of:

(i) if consolidated financial statements are required—each

member of the key management personnel for the

consolidated entity; or

(ii) if consolidated financial statements are not required—

each member of the key management personnel for the

company; and

(d) if an element of the remuneration of a person referred to in

paragraph (c) consists of securities of a body and that

element is not dependent on the satisfaction of a performance

condition—an explanation of why that element of the

remuneration is not dependent on the satisfaction of a

performance condition; and

(e) for each person referred to in paragraph (c):

(i) an explanation of the relative proportions of those

elements of the person’s remuneration that are related to

performance and those elements of the person’s

remuneration that are not; and

(ii) the value (worked out as at the time they are granted

and in accordance with any applicable accounting

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2M Financial reports and audit

Part 2M.3 Financial reporting

Division 1 Annual financial reports and directors’ reports

Section 300A

56 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

standards) of options that are granted to the person

during the year as part of their remuneration; and

(iii) the value (worked out as at the time they are exercised)

of options that were granted to the person as part of

their remuneration and that are exercised by the person

during the year; and

(iv) if options granted to the person as part of their

remuneration lapse during the financial year—the

number of those options, and the financial year in which

those options were granted; and

(vii) if the person is employed by the company under a

contract—the duration of the contract, the periods of

notice required to terminate the contract and the

termination payments provided for under the contract;

and

(f) such other matters related to the policy or policies referred to

in paragraph (a) as are prescribed by the regulations; and

(g) if:

(i) at the company’s most recent AGM, comments were

made on the remuneration report that was considered at

that AGM; and

(ii) when a resolution that the remuneration report for the

last financial year be adopted was put to the vote at the

company’s most recent AGM, at least 25% of the votes

cast were against adoption of that report;

an explanation of the board’s proposed action in response or,

if the board does not propose any action, the board’s reasons

for inaction; and

(h) if a remuneration consultant made a remuneration

recommendation in relation to any of the key management

personnel for the company or, if consolidated financial

statements are required, for the consolidated entity, for the

financial year:

(i) the name of the consultant; and

(ii) a statement that the consultant made such a

recommendation; and

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Financial reports and audit Chapter 2M

Financial reporting Part 2M.3

Annual financial reports and directors’ reports Division 1

Section 300A

Corporations Act 2001 57

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(iii) if the consultant provided any other kind of advice to

the company or entity for the financial year—a

statement that the consultant provided that other kind or

those other kinds of advice; and

(iv) the amount and nature of the consideration payable for

the remuneration recommendation; and

(v) the amount and nature of the consideration payable for

any other kind of advice referred to in

subparagraph (iii); and

(vi) information about the arrangements the company made

to ensure that the making of the remuneration

recommendation would be free from undue influence by

the member or members of the key management

personnel to whom the recommendation relates; and

(vii) a statement about whether the board is satisfied that the

remuneration recommendation was made free from

undue influence by the member or members of the key

management personnel to whom the recommendation

relates; and

(viii) if the board is satisfied that the remuneration

recommendation was made free from undue influence

by the member or members of the key management

personnel to whom the recommendation relates—the

board’s reasons for being satisfied of this.

(1AA) Without limiting paragraph (1)(b), the discussion under that

paragraph of the company’s performance must specifically deal

with:

(a) the company’s earnings; and

(b) the consequences of the company’s performance on

shareholder wealth;

in the financial year to which the report relates and in the previous

4 financial years.

(1AB) In determining, for the purposes of subsection (1AA), the

consequences of the company’s performance on shareholder

wealth in a financial year, have regard to:

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2M Financial reports and audit

Part 2M.3 Financial reporting

Division 1 Annual financial reports and directors’ reports

Section 300A

58 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(a) dividends paid by the company to its shareholders during that

year; and

(b) changes in the price at which shares in the company are

traded between the beginning and the end of that year; and

(c) any return of capital by the company to its shareholders

during that year that involves:

(i) the cancellation of shares in the company; and

(ii) a payment to the holders of those shares that exceeds the

price at which shares in that class are being traded at the

time when the shares are cancelled; and

(d) any other relevant matter.

(1A) The material referred to in subsection (1) must be included in the

directors’ report under the heading “Remuneration report”.

(1C) Without limiting paragraph (1)(c), the regulations may:

(a) provide that the value of an element of remuneration is to be

determined, for the purposes of this section, in a particular

way or by reference to a particular standard; and

(b) provide that details to be given of an element of remuneration

must relate to the remuneration provided in:

(i) the financial year to which the directors’ report relates;

and

(ii) the earlier financial years specified in the regulations.

(2) This section applies to any listed disclosing entity that is a

company.

(3) This section applies despite anything in the company’s

constitution.

(4) For the purposes of this section, if:

(a) consolidated financial statements are required; and

(b) a person is a group executive who is a group executive of 2

or more entities within the consolidated entity;

the person’s remuneration is taken to include all of the person’s

remuneration from those entities (regardless of the capacity in

which the person received the remuneration).

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Financial reports and audit Chapter 2M

Financial reporting Part 2M.3

Annual financial reports and directors’ reports Division 1

Section 300B

Corporations Act 2001 59

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

300B Annual directors’ report—companies limited by guarantee

(1) The directors’ report for a financial year for a company limited by

guarantee must:

(a) contain a description of the short and long term objectives of

the entity reported on; and

(b) set out the entity’s strategy for achieving those objectives;

and

(c) state the entity’s principal activities during the year; and

(d) state how those activities assisted in achieving the entity’s

objectives; and

(e) state how the entity measures its performance, including any

key performance indicators used by the entity.

(2) The entity reported on is:

(a) the company (if consolidated financial statements are not

required); or

(b) the consolidated entity (if consolidated financial statements

are required).

(3) The directors’ report for a financial year for a company limited by

guarantee must also include details of:

(a) the name of each person who has been a director of the

company at any time during or since the end of the year and

the period for which the person was a director; and

(b) each director’s qualifications, experience and special

responsibilities; and

(c) the number of meetings of the board of directors held during

the year and each director’s attendance at those meetings; and

(d) for each class of membership in the company—the amount

which a member of that class is liable to contribute if the

company is wound up; and

(e) the total amount that members of the company are liable to

contribute if the company is wound up.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2M Financial reports and audit

Part 2M.3 Financial reporting

Division 1 Annual financial reports and directors’ reports

Section 301

60 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

301 Audit of annual financial report

(1) A company, registered scheme or disclosing entity must have the

financial report for a financial year audited in accordance with

Division 3 and obtain an auditor’s report.

Small proprietary companies

(2) A small proprietary company’s financial report for a financial year

does not have to be audited if:

(a) the report is prepared in response to a direction under

section 293; and

(b) the direction did not ask for the financial report to be audited.

Companies limited by guarantee

(3) A company limited by guarantee may have its financial report for a

financial year reviewed, rather than audited, if:

(a) the company is not one of the following:

(i) a Commonwealth company for the purposes of the

Public Governance, Performance and Accountability

Act 2013;

(ii) a subsidiary of a Commonwealth company for the

purposes of that Act;

(iii) a subsidiary of a corporate Commonwealth entity for the

purposes of that Act; and

(b) one of the following is true:

(i) the company is not required by the accounting standards

to be included in consolidated financial statements and

the revenue of the company for the financial year is less

than $1 million;

(ii) the company is required by the accounting standards to

be included in consolidated financial statements and the

consolidated revenue of the consolidated entity for the

financial year is less than $1 million.

(4) A small company limited by guarantee’s financial report for a

financial year does not have to be audited or reviewed if:

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Financial reports and audit Chapter 2M

Financial reporting Part 2M.3

Annual financial reports and directors’ reports Division 1

Section 301

Corporations Act 2001 61

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(a) the report is prepared in response to a member direction

under section 294A; and

(b) the direction does not ask for the audit or review.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2M Financial reports and audit

Part 2M.3 Financial reporting

Division 2 Half-year financial report and directors’ report

Section 302

62 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Division 2—Half-year financial report and directors’

report

302 Disclosing entity must prepare half-year financial report and

directors’ report

A disclosing entity must:

(a) prepare a financial report and directors’ report for each

half-year; and

(b) have the financial report audited or reviewed in accordance

with Division 3 and obtain an auditor’s report; and

(c) lodge the financial report, the directors’ report and the

auditor’s report on the financial report with ASIC;

unless the entity is not a disclosing entity when lodgment is due.

Note 1: This Chapter only applies to disclosing entities incorporated or formed

in Australia (see subsection 285(2)).

Note 2: See section 320 for the time for lodgment with ASIC.

Note 3: Subsection 318(4) requires disclosing entities that are borrowers in

relation to debentures to also report to the trustee for debenture

holders.

303 Contents of half-year financial report

Basic contents

(1) The financial report for a half-year consists of:

(a) the financial statements for the half-year; and

(b) the notes to the financial statements; and

(c) the directors’ declaration about the statements and notes.

Financial statements

(2) The financial statements for the half-year are:

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Financial reports and audit Chapter 2M

Financial reporting Part 2M.3

Half-year financial report and directors’ report Division 2

Section 303

Corporations Act 2001 63

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(a) unless paragraph (b) applies—the financial statements in

relation to the disclosing entity required by the accounting

standards; or

(b) if the accounting standards require the disclosing entity to

prepare financial statements in relation to a consolidated

entity—the financial statements in relation to the

consolidated entity required by the accounting standards.

Notes to financial statements

(3) The notes to the financial statements are:

(a) disclosures required by the regulations; and

(b) notes required by the accounting standards; and

(c) any other information necessary to give a true and fair view

(see section 305).

Directors’ declaration

(4) The directors’ declaration is a declaration by the directors:

(c) whether, in the directors’ opinion, there are reasonable

grounds to believe that the disclosing entity will be able to

pay its debts as and when they become due and payable; and

(d) whether, in the directors’ opinion, the financial statement and

notes are in accordance with this Act, including:

(i) section 304 (compliance with accounting standards);

and

(ii) section 305 (true and fair view).

Note: See paragraph 285(3)(c) for the reference to the debts of a disclosing

entity that is a registered scheme.

(5) The declaration must:

(a) be made in accordance with a resolution of the directors; and

(b) specify the day on which the declaration is made; and

(c) be signed by a director.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2M Financial reports and audit

Part 2M.3 Financial reporting

Division 2 Half-year financial report and directors’ report

Section 304

64 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

304 Compliance with accounting standards and regulations

The financial report for a half-year must comply with the

accounting standards and any further requirements in the

regulations.

305 True and fair view

The financial statements and notes for a half-year must give a true

and fair view of:

(a) the financial position and performance of the disclosing

entity; or

(b) if consolidated financial statements are required—the

financial position and performance of the consolidated entity.

This section does not affect the obligation under section 304 for

financial reports to comply with accounting standards.

Note: If the financial statements prepared in compliance with the accounting

standards would not give a true and fair view, additional information

must be included in the notes to the financial statements under

paragraph 303(3)(c).

306 Half-year directors’ report

(1) The directors of the disclosing entity must prepare a directors’

report for each half-year that consists of:

(a) a review of the entity’s operations during the half-year and

the results of those operations; and

(b) the name of each person who has been a director of the

disclosing entity at any time during or since the end of the

half-year and the period for which they were a director.

If consolidated financial statements are required, the review under

paragraph (a) must cover the consolidated entity.

(1A) The directors’ report must include a copy of the auditor’s

declaration under section 307C in relation to the audit or review for

the half-year.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Financial reports and audit Chapter 2M

Financial reporting Part 2M.3

Half-year financial report and directors’ report Division 2

Section 306

Corporations Act 2001 65

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(2) If the financial report for a half-year includes additional

information under paragraph 303(3)(c) (information included to

give true and fair view of financial position and performance), the

directors’ report for the half-year must also:

(a) set out the directors’ reasons for forming the opinion that the

inclusion of that additional information was necessary to give

the true and fair view required by section 305; and

(b) specify where that information can be found in the financial

report.

(3) The report must:

(a) be made in accordance with a resolution of the directors; and

(b) specify the date on which the report is made; and

(c) be signed by a director.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2M Financial reports and audit

Part 2M.3 Financial reporting

Division 3 Audit and auditor’s report

Section 307

66 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Division 3—Audit and auditor’s report

307 Audit

An auditor who conducts an audit of the financial report for a

financial year or half-year must form an opinion about:

(a) whether the financial report is in accordance with this Act,

including:

(i) section 296 or 304 (compliance with accounting

standards); and

(ii) section 297 or 305 (true and fair view); and

(aa) if the financial report includes additional information under

paragraph 295(3)(c) or 303(3)(c) (information included to

give true and fair view of financial position and

performance)—whether the inclusion of that additional

information was necessary to give the true and fair view

required by section 297 or 305; and

(b) whether the auditor has been given all information,

explanation and assistance necessary for the conduct of the

audit; and

(c) whether the company, registered scheme or disclosing entity

has kept financial records sufficient to enable a financial

report to be prepared and audited; and

(d) whether the company, registered scheme or disclosing entity

has kept other records and registers as required by this Act.

307A Audit to be conducted in accordance with auditing standards

(1) If an individual auditor, or an audit company, conducts:

(a) an audit or review of the financial report for a financial year;

or

(b) an audit or review of the financial report for a half-year;

the individual auditor or audit company must conduct the audit or

review in accordance with the auditing standards.

(2) If an audit firm, or an audit company, conducts:

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Financial reports and audit Chapter 2M

Financial reporting Part 2M.3

Audit and auditor’s report Division 3

Section 307B

Corporations Act 2001 67

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(a) an audit or review of the financial report for a financial year;

or

(b) an audit or review of the financial report for a half-year;

the lead auditor for the audit or review must ensure that the audit or

review is conducted in accordance with the auditing standards.

(3) An offence based on subsection (1) or (2) is an offence of strict

liability.

Note: For strict liability see section 6.1 of the Criminal Code.

307B Audit working papers to be retained for 7 years

Contravention by individual auditor or audit company

(1) An auditor contravenes this subsection if:

(a) the auditor is an individual auditor or an audit company; and

(b) the auditor conducts:

(i) an audit or review of the financial report for a financial

year; or

(ii) an audit or review of the financial report for a half-year;

and

(c) the auditor does not retain all audit working papers prepared

by or for, or considered or used by, the auditor in accordance

with the requirements of the auditing standards until:

(i) the end of 7 years after the date of the audit report

prepared in relation to the audit or review to which the

audit working papers relate; or

(ii) an earlier date determined for the audit working papers

by ASIC under subsection (6).

(2) An offence based on subsection (1) is an offence of strict liability.

Note: For strict liability see section 6.1 of the Criminal Code.

Contravention by member of audit firm

(3) A person (the defendant) contravenes this subsection if:

(a) an audit firm conducts:

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2M Financial reports and audit

Part 2M.3 Financial reporting

Division 3 Audit and auditor’s report

Section 307B

68 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(i) an audit or review of the financial report for a financial

year; or

(ii) an audit or review of the financial report for a half-year;

and

(b) the audit firm fails, at a particular time, to retain all audit

working papers prepared by or for, or considered or used by,

the audit firm in accordance with the requirements of the

auditing standards until:

(i) the end of 7 years after the date of the audit report

prepared in relation to the audit or review to which the

documents relate; or

(ii) the earlier date determined by ASIC for the audit

working papers under subsection (6); and

(c) the defendant is a member of the firm at that time.

(4) An offence based on subsection (3) is an offence of strict liability.

Note 1: For strict liability see section 6.1 of the Criminal Code.

Note 2: Subsection (5) provides a defence.

(5) A member of an audit firm does not commit an offence at a

particular time because of a contravention of subsection (3) if the

member either:

(a) does not know at that time of the circumstances that

constitute the contravention of subsection (3); or

(b) knows of those circumstances at that time but takes all

reasonable steps to correct the contravention as soon as

possible after the member becomes aware of those

circumstances.

Note: A defendant bears an evidential burden in relation to the matters in

this subsection, see subsection 13.3(3) of the Criminal Code.

Earlier retention date for audit working papers

(6) ASIC may, on application by a person, determine, in writing, an

earlier date for the audit working papers for the purposes of

paragraphs (1)(c) and (3)(b) if:

(a) the auditor is an individual auditor and the auditor:

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Financial reports and audit Chapter 2M

Financial reporting Part 2M.3

Audit and auditor’s report Division 3

Section 307B

Corporations Act 2001 69

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(i) dies; or

(ii) ceases to be a registered company auditor; or

(b) the auditor is an audit firm and the firm is dissolved

(otherwise than simply as part of a reconstitution of the firm

because of the death, retirement or withdrawal of a member

or members or because of the admission of a new member or

members); or

(c) the auditor is an audit company and the company:

(i) is wound up; or

(ii) ceases to be an authorised audit company.

(7) In deciding whether to make a determination under subsection (6),

ASIC must have regard to:

(a) whether ASIC is inquiring into or investigating any matters

in respect of:

(i) the auditor; or

(ii) the audited body for the audit to which the documents

relate; and

(b) whether the professional accounting bodies have any

investigations or disciplinary action pending in relation to the

auditor; and

(c) whether civil or criminal proceedings in relation to:

(i) the conduct of the audit; or

(ii) the contents of the financial report to which the audit

working papers relate;

have been, or are about to be, commenced; and

(d) any other relevant matter.

Audit working papers kept in electronic form

(8) For the purposes of this section, if audit working papers are in

electronic form they are taken to be retained only if they are

convertible into hard copy.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2M Financial reports and audit

Part 2M.3 Financial reporting

Division 3 Audit and auditor’s report

Section 307C

70 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

307C Auditor’s independence declaration

Contravention by individual auditor

(1) If an individual auditor conducts:

(a) an audit or review of the financial report for a financial year;

or

(b) an audit or review of the financial report for a half-year;

the individual auditor must give the directors of the company,

registered scheme or disclosing entity:

(c) a written declaration that, to the best of the individual

auditor’s knowledge and belief, there have been:

(i) no contraventions of the auditor independence

requirements of this Act in relation to the audit or

review; and

(ii) no contraventions of any applicable code of professional

conduct in relation to the audit or review; or

(d) a written declaration that, to the best of the individual

auditor’s knowledge and belief, the only contraventions of:

(i) the auditor independence requirements of this Act in

relation to the audit or review; or

(ii) any applicable code of professional conduct in relation

to the audit or review;

are those contraventions details of which are set out in the

declaration.

(2) An offence based on subsection (1) is an offence of strict liability.

Note: For strict liability see section 6.1 of the Criminal Code.

Contravention by lead auditor

(3) If an audit firm or audit company conducts:

(a) an audit or review of the financial report for a financial year;

or

(b) an audit or review of the financial report for a half-year;

the lead auditor for the audit must give the directors of the

company, registered scheme or disclosing entity:

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Financial reports and audit Chapter 2M

Financial reporting Part 2M.3

Audit and auditor’s report Division 3

Section 307C

Corporations Act 2001 71

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(c) a written declaration that, to the best of the lead auditor’s

knowledge and belief, there have been:

(i) no contraventions of the auditor independence

requirements of this Act in relation to the audit or

review; and

(ii) no contraventions of any applicable code of professional

conduct in relation to the audit or review; or

(d) a written declaration that, to the best of the lead auditor’s

knowledge and belief, the only contraventions of:

(i) the auditor independence requirements of this Act in

relation to the audit or review; or

(ii) any applicable code of professional conduct in relation

to the audit or review;

are those contraventions details of which are set out in the

declaration.

(4) An offence based on subsection (3) is an offence of strict liability.

Note: For strict liability see section 6.1 of the Criminal Code.

(5) The declaration under subsection (1) or (3):

(a) either:

(i) must be given when the audit report is given to the

directors of the company, registered scheme or

disclosing entity; or

(ii) must satisfy the conditions in subsection (5A); and

(b) must be signed by the person making the declaration.

(5A) A declaration under subsection (1) or (3) in relation to a financial

report for a financial year or half-year satisfies the conditions in

this subsection if:

(a) the declaration is given to the directors of the company,

registered scheme or disclosing entity before the directors

pass a resolution under subsection 298(2) or 306(3) (as the

case requires) in relation to the directors’ report for the

financial year or half-year; and

(b) a director signs the directors’ report within 7 days after the

declaration is given to the directors; and

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2M Financial reports and audit

Part 2M.3 Financial reporting

Division 3 Audit and auditor’s report

Section 307C

72 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(c) the auditor’s report on the financial report is made within 7

days after the directors’ report is signed; and

(d) the auditor’s report includes either of the following

statements:

(i) a statement to the effect that the declaration would be in

the same terms if it had been given to the directors at the

time the auditor’s report was made;

(ii) a statement to the effect that circumstances have

changed since the declaration was given to the directors,

and setting out how the declaration would differ if it had

been given to the directors at the time the auditor’s

report was made.

(5B) An individual auditor or a lead auditor is not required to give a

declaration under subsection (1) or (3) in respect of a contravention

if:

(a) the contravention was a contravention by a person of

subsection 324CE(2), 324CF(2) or 324CG(2); and

(b) the person does not commit an offence because of

subsection 324CE(4), 324CF(4) or 324CG(4).

Self-incrimination

(6) An individual is not excused from giving a declaration under

subsection (1) or (3) on the ground that giving the declaration

might tend to incriminate the individual or expose the individual to

a penalty.

Use/derivative use indemnity

(7) However, neither:

(a) the information included in the declaration; nor

(b) any information, document or thing obtained as a direct or

indirect consequence of including the information in the

declaration;

is admissible in evidence against the individual in any criminal

proceedings, or in any proceedings that would expose the person to

a penalty, other than:

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Financial reports and audit Chapter 2M

Financial reporting Part 2M.3

Audit and auditor’s report Division 3

Section 308

Corporations Act 2001 73

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(c) proceedings for an offence against section 1308 or 1309 in

relation to the declaration; or

(d) proceedings for an offence against section 137.1 or 137.2 of

the Criminal Code (false or misleading information or

documents) in relation to the declaration.

308 Auditor’s report on annual financial report

(1) An auditor who audits the financial report for a financial year must

report to members on whether the auditor is of the opinion that the

financial report is in accordance with this Act, including:

(a) section 296 (compliance with accounting standards); and

(b) section 297 (true and fair view).

If not of that opinion, the auditor’s report must say why.

(2) If the auditor is of the opinion that the financial report does not

comply with an accounting standard, the auditor’s report must, to

the extent it is practicable to do so, quantify the effect that

non-compliance has on the financial report. If it is not practicable

to quantify the effect fully, the report must say why.

(3) The auditor’s report must describe:

(a) any defect or irregularity in the financial report; and

(b) any deficiency, failure or shortcoming in respect of the

matters referred to in paragraph 307(b), (c) or (d).

(3AA) An auditor who reviews the financial report for a company limited

by guarantee must report to members on whether the auditor

became aware of any matter in the course of the review that makes

the auditor believe that the financial report does not comply with

Division 1.

(3AB) A report under subsection (3AA) must:

(a) describe any matter referred to in subsection (3AA); and

(b) say why that matter makes the auditor believe that the

financial report does not comply with Division 1.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2M Financial reports and audit

Part 2M.3 Financial reporting

Division 3 Audit and auditor’s report

Section 309

74 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(3A) The auditor’s report must include any statements or disclosures

required by the auditing standards.

(3B) If the financial report includes additional information under

paragraph 295(3)(c) (information included to give true and fair

view of financial position and performance), the auditor’s report

must also include a statement of the auditor’s opinion on whether

the inclusion of that additional information was necessary to give

the true and fair view required by section 297.

(3C) If the directors’ report for the financial year includes a

remuneration report, the auditor must also report to members on

whether the auditor is of the opinion that the remuneration report

complies with section 300A. If not of that opinion, the auditor’s

report must say why.

(4) A report under subsection (1) or (3AA) must specify the date on

which it is made.

(5) An offence based on subsection (1), (3), (3AA), (3AB), (3A), (3C)

or (4) is an offence of strict liability.

Note: For strict liability see section 6.1 of the Criminal Code.

309 Auditor’s report on half-year financial report

Audit of financial report

(1) An auditor who audits the financial report for a half-year must

report to members on whether the auditor is of the opinion that the

financial report is in accordance with this Act, including:

(a) section 304 (compliance with accounting standards); and

(b) section 305 (true and fair view).

If not of that opinion, the auditor’s report must say why.

(2) If the auditor is of the opinion that the financial report does not

comply with an accounting standard, the auditor’s report must, to

the extent that it is practicable to do so, quantify the effect that

non-compliance has on the financial report. If it is not practicable

to quantify the effect fully, the report must say why.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Financial reports and audit Chapter 2M

Financial reporting Part 2M.3

Audit and auditor’s report Division 3

Section 309

Corporations Act 2001 75

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(3) The auditor’s report must describe:

(a) any defect or irregularity in the financial report; and

(b) any deficiency, failure or shortcoming in respect of the

matters referred to in paragraph 307(b), (c) or (d).

Review of financial report

(4) An auditor who reviews the financial report for a half-year must

report to members on whether the auditor became aware of any

matter in the course of the review that makes the auditor believe

that the financial report does not comply with Division 2.

(5) A report under subsection (4) must:

(a) describe any matter referred to in subsection (4); and

(b) say why that matter makes the auditor believe that the

financial report does not comply with Division 2.

(5A) The auditor’s report must include any statements or disclosures

required by the auditing standards.

(5B) If the financial report includes additional information under

paragraph 303(3)(c) (information included to give true and fair

view of financial position and performance), the auditor’s report

must also include a statement of the auditor’s opinion on whether

the inclusion of that additional information was necessary to give

the true and fair view required by section 305.

Report to specify day made

(6) A report under subsection (1) or (4) must specify the date on which

it is made.

(7) An offence based on subsection (1), (3), (4), (5), (5A) or (6) is an

offence of strict liability.

Note: For strict liability see section 6.1 of the Criminal Code.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2M Financial reports and audit

Part 2M.3 Financial reporting

Division 3 Audit and auditor’s report

Section 310

76 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

310 Auditor’s power to obtain information

The auditor:

(a) has a right of access at all reasonable times to the books of

the company, registered scheme or disclosing entity; and

(b) may require any officer to give the auditor information,

explanations or other assistance for the purposes of the audit

or review.

A request under paragraph (b) must be a reasonable one.

311 Reporting to ASIC

Contravention by individual auditor

(1) An individual auditor conducting an audit contravenes this

subsection if:

(a) the auditor is aware of circumstances that:

(i) the auditor has reasonable grounds to suspect amount to

a contravention of this Act; or

(ii) amount to an attempt, in relation to the audit, by any

person to unduly influence, coerce, manipulate or

mislead a person involved in the conduct of the audit

(see subsection (6)); or

(iii) amount to an attempt, by any person, to otherwise

interfere with the proper conduct of the audit; and

(b) if subparagraph (a)(i) applies:

(i) the contravention is a significant one; or

(ii) the contravention is not a significant one and the auditor

believes that the contravention has not been or will not

be adequately dealt with by commenting on it in the

auditor’s report or bringing it to the attention of the

directors; and

(c) the auditor does not notify ASIC in writing of those

circumstances as soon as practicable, and in any case within

28 days, after the auditor becomes aware of those

circumstances.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Financial reports and audit Chapter 2M

Financial reporting Part 2M.3

Audit and auditor’s report Division 3

Section 311

Corporations Act 2001 77

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Contravention by audit company

(2) An audit company conducting an audit contravenes this subsection

if:

(a) the lead auditor for the audit is aware of circumstances that:

(i) the lead auditor has reasonable grounds to suspect

amount to a contravention of this Act; or

(ii) amount to an attempt, in relation to the audit, by any

person to unduly influence, coerce, manipulate or

mislead a person involved in the conduct of the audit

(see subsection (6)); or

(iii) amount to an attempt, by any person, to otherwise

interfere with the proper conduct of the audit; and

(b) if subparagraph (a)(i) applies:

(i) the contravention is a significant one; or

(ii) the contravention is not a significant one and the lead

auditor believes that the contravention has not been or

will not be adequately dealt with by commenting on it in

the auditor’s report or bringing it to the attention of the

directors; and

(c) the lead auditor does not notify ASIC in writing of those

circumstances as soon as practicable, and in any case within

28 days, after the lead auditor becomes aware of those

circumstances.

Contravention by lead auditor

(3) A person contravenes this subsection if:

(a) the person is the lead auditor for an audit; and

(b) the person is aware of circumstances that:

(i) the person has reasonable grounds to suspect amount to

a contravention of this Act; or

(ii) amount to an attempt, in relation to the audit, by any

person to unduly influence, coerce, manipulate or

mislead a person involved in the conduct of the audit

(see subsection (6)); or

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2M Financial reports and audit

Part 2M.3 Financial reporting

Division 3 Audit and auditor’s report

Section 311

78 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(iii) amount to an attempt, by any person, to otherwise

interfere with the proper conduct of the audit; and

(c) if subparagraph (b)(i) applies:

(i) the contravention is a significant one; or

(ii) the contravention is not a significant one and the person

believes that the contravention has not been or will not

be adequately dealt with by commenting on it in the

auditor’s report or bringing it to the attention of the

directors; and

(d) the person does not notify ASIC in writing of those

circumstances as soon as practicable, and in any case within

28 days, after the person becomes aware of those

circumstances.

Significant contraventions

(4) In determining for the purposes of this section whether a

contravention of this Act is a significant one, have regard to:

(a) the level of penalty provided for in relation to the

contravention; and

(b) the effect that the contravention has, or may have, on:

(i) the overall financial position of the company, registered

scheme or disclosing entity; or

(ii) the adequacy of the information available about the

overall financial position of the company, registered

scheme or disclosing entity; and

(c) any other relevant matter.

(5) Without limiting paragraph (4)(a), a penalty provided for in

relation to a contravention of a provision of Part 2M.2 or 2M.3, or

section 324DAA, 324DAB or 324DAC, includes a penalty

imposed on a director, because of the operation of section 344, for

failing to take reasonable steps to comply with, or to secure

compliance with, that provision.

Person involved in an audit

(6) In this section:

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Financial reports and audit Chapter 2M

Financial reporting Part 2M.3

Audit and auditor’s report Division 3

Section 312

Corporations Act 2001 79

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

person involved in the conduct of an audit means:

(a) the auditor; or

(b) the lead auditor for the audit; or

(c) the review auditor for the audit; or

(d) a professional member of the audit team for the audit; or

(e) any other person involved in the conduct of the audit.

312 Assisting auditor

(1) An officer of a company, registered scheme or disclosing entity

must:

(a) allow the auditor access to the books of the company, scheme

or entity; and

(b) give the auditor any information, explanation or assistance

required under section 310.

Note: Books include registers and documents generally (not only the

accounting “books”): see the definition of books in section 9.

(2) An offence based on subsection (1) is an offence of strict liability.

Note: For strict liability, see section 6.1 of the Criminal Code.

313 Special provisions on audit of debenture issuers and guarantors

Auditor to give trustee for debenture holders copies of reports,

certificates etc.

(1) The auditor of a borrower in relation to debentures must give the

trustee for debenture holders:

(a) a copy of any report, certificate or other document that the

auditor must give the borrower or its members under this

Act, the debentures or the trust deed; and

(b) a copy of any document that accompanies it.

The copies must be given within 7 days after the auditor gives the

originals to the borrower or its members.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2M Financial reports and audit

Part 2M.3 Financial reporting

Division 3 Audit and auditor’s report

Section 313

80 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Auditor to report on matters prejudicial to debenture holders’

interests

(2) The auditor of a borrower, or guarantor, in relation to debentures

must give the borrower or guarantor a written report about any

matter that:

(a) the auditor became aware of in conducting the audit or

review; and

(b) in the auditor’s opinion, is or is likely to be prejudicial to the

interests of debenture holders; and

(c) in the auditor’s opinion, is relevant to the exercise of the

powers of the trustee for debenture holders, or the

performance of the trustee’s duties, under this Act or the trust

deed.

The auditor must give a copy of the report to the trustee for

debenture holders. The report and the copy must be given within 7

days after the auditor becomes aware of the matter.

(3) An offence based on subsection (1) or (2) is an offence of strict

liability.

Note: For strict liability, see section 6.1 of the Criminal Code.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Financial reports and audit Chapter 2M

Financial reporting Part 2M.3

Annual financial reporting to members Division 4

Section 314

Corporations Act 2001 81

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Division 4—Annual financial reporting to members

314 Annual financial reporting to members

(1) A company, registered scheme or disclosing entity must report to

members for a financial year by providing either of the following

in accordance with subsection (1AA) or (1AE):

(a) all of the following reports:

(i) the financial report for the year;

(ii) the directors’ report for the year (see sections 298 to

300A);

(iii) the auditor’s report on the financial report;

(b) a concise report for the year that complies with

subsection (2).

(1AAA) This section does not apply to a company limited by guarantee.

Note: The requirement for annual financial reporting to members for those

companies is in section 316A.

(1AA) A company, registered scheme or disclosing entity may provide the

reports, or the concise report, for a financial year by doing all of

the following:

(a) sending, to each member who has made the election referred

to in paragraph (1AB)(a):

(i) a hard copy of the reports, or the concise report; or

(ii) if the member has elected to receive the reports, or the

concise report, as an electronic copy in accordance

paragraph (1AB)(c)—an electronic copy of the reports,

or the concise reports;

(b) making a copy of the reports, or the concise report, readily

accessible on a website;

(c) directly notifying, in writing, all members who did not make

the election referred to in paragraph (1AB)(a) that the copy is

accessible on the website, and specifying the direct address

on the website where the reports, or the concise report, may

be accessed.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2M Financial reports and audit

Part 2M.3 Financial reporting

Division 4 Annual financial reporting to members

Section 314

82 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Note: A direct address may be specified, for example, by specifying the

URL of the reports or the concise report.

(1AB) For the purposes of paragraph (1AA)(a), a company, registered

scheme or disclosing entity must, on at least one occasion, directly

notify in writing each member that:

(a) the member may elect to receive, free of charge, a copy of

the reports for each financial year, or a copy of the concise

report for each financial year; and

(b) if the member does not so elect—the member may access the

reports, or the concise report, on a specified website; and

(c) if the member does so elect and the company, scheme or

entity offers to send the report either as a hard copy or an

electronic copy—the member may elect to receive the copy

as either a hard copy or an electronic copy.

(1AC) An election made under subsection (1AB) is a standing election for

each later financial year until the member changes his, her or its

election.

Note: The member may request, under section 316, the company, registered

scheme or disclosing entity not to send them material under this

section.

(1AD) A member may, for the purposes of paragraph (1AA)(c) or

subsection (1AB), be notified by electronic means only if the

member has previously nominated that means as one by which the

member may be notified.

(1AE) A company, registered scheme or disclosing entity may provide the

reports, or the concise report, by sending each member:

(a) a hard copy of the reports, or the concise report; or

(b) an electronic copy of the reports, or the concise report, if the

member has nominated that means as one by which the

member may be sent the reports or the concise report.

(1A) An offence based on subsection (1) or (1AB) is an offence of strict

liability.

Note: For strict liability, see section 6.1 of the Criminal Code.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Financial reports and audit Chapter 2M

Financial reporting Part 2M.3

Annual financial reporting to members Division 4

Section 315

Corporations Act 2001 83

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Concise report

(2) A concise report for a financial year consists of:

(a) a concise financial report for the year drawn up in accordance

with accounting standards made for the purposes of this

paragraph; and

(b) the directors’ report for the year (see sections 298-300A); and

(c) a statement by the auditor:

(i) that the financial report has been audited; and

(ii) whether, in the auditor’s opinion, the concise financial

report complies with the accounting standards made for

the purposes of paragraph (a); and

(d) a copy of any qualification in, and of any statements included

in the emphasis of matter section of, the auditor’s report on

the financial report; and

(e) a statement that the report is a concise report and that the full

financial report and auditor’s report will be sent to the

member free of charge if the member asks for them.

(3) If the accounting standards made for the purposes of

paragraph (2)(a) require a discussion and analysis to be included in

a concise financial report:

(a) the auditor must report on whether the discussion and

analysis complies with the requirements that the accounting

standards lay down for the discussion and analysis; and

(b) the auditor does not otherwise need to audit the statements

made in the discussion and analysis.

315 Deadline for reporting to members

Public companies and disclosing entities that are not registered

schemes

(1) A public company, or a disclosing entity that is not a registered

scheme, must report to members under section 314 by the earlier

of:

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2M Financial reports and audit

Part 2M.3 Financial reporting

Division 4 Annual financial reporting to members

Section 316

84 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(a) 21 days before the next AGM after the end of the financial

year; or

(b) 4 months after the end of the financial year.

Note: For the deadline for holding an AGM, see section 250N.

Small proprietary companies (shareholder direction under

section 293)

(2) If a shareholder direction is given to a small proprietary company

under section 293 after the end of the financial year, the company

must report to members under section 314 by the later of:

(a) 2 months after the date on which the direction is given; and

(b) 4 months after the end of the financial year.

Registered schemes

(3) A registered scheme must report to members under section 314

within 3 months after the end of the financial year.

Other proprietary companies

(4) A proprietary company that is not covered by subsection (1) or (2)

must report to members under section 314 within 4 months after

the end of the financial year.

(5) For the purposes of this section, a company, registered scheme or

disclosing entity that reports in accordance with

subsection 314(1AA) is taken to report at the time that the

company, scheme or entity has fully complied with the

requirements of that subsection.

316 Member’s choices for annual financial information

(1) A member may request the company, registered scheme or

disclosing entity:

(a) not to send them the material required by section 314; or

(b) to send them a full financial report and the directors’ report

and auditor’s report.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Financial reports and audit Chapter 2M

Financial reporting Part 2M.3

Annual financial reporting to members Division 4

Section 316A

Corporations Act 2001 85

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

A request may be a standing request or for a particular financial

year. The member is not entitled to a report for a financial year

earlier than the one before the financial year in which the request is

made.

(2) The time for complying with a request under paragraph (1)(b) is:

(a) 7 days after the request is received; or

(b) the deadline for reporting under section 315;

whichever is later.

(3) A full financial report, directors’ report and auditor’s report are to

be sent free of charge unless the member has already received a

copy of them free of charge.

(4) An offence based on subsection (2) or (3) is an offence of strict

liability.

Note: For strict liability, see section 6.1 of the Criminal Code.

(5) This section does not apply in relation to a company limited by

guarantee.

316A Annual financial reporting to members of companies limited

by guarantee

(1) A member of a company limited by guarantee may, by notice in

writing to the company, elect to receive a hard copy or an

electronic copy of the following reports:

(a) the financial reports;

(b) the directors’ reports;

(c) the auditor’s reports.

(2) If a member makes an election in a financial year, the election:

(a) is made by the member for that financial year; and

(b) is a standing election made by the member for each later

financial year until the member changes the election.

(3) If the company prepares a financial report or a directors’ report for

a financial year, or obtains an auditor’s report on the financial

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2M Financial reports and audit

Part 2M.3 Financial reporting

Division 4 Annual financial reporting to members

Section 317

86 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

report, the company must send a copy of the report, free of charge,

to each member who has made an election for that financial year,

in accordance with the election, by the earlier of:

(a) 21 days before the next AGM after the end of the financial

year; and

(b) 4 months after the end of the financial year.

Note: For the deadline for holding an AGM, see section 250N.

(4) If a member direction is given to a small company limited by

guarantee under section 294A after the end of a financial year,

subsection (3) does not apply and the company must send a copy of

the reports that the company prepares or obtains as a result of the

direction to each member who has made an election for that

financial year, in accordance with the election, by the later of:

(a) 2 months after the date on which the direction was given; and

(b) 4 months after the end of the financial year.

(5) An offence based on subsection (3) or (4) is an offence of strict

liability.

Note: For strict liability, see section 6.1 of the Criminal Code.

317 Consideration of reports at AGM

(1) The directors of a public company that is required to hold an AGM

must lay before the AGM:

(a) the financial report; and

(b) the directors’ report; and

(c) the auditor’s report;

for the last financial year that ended before the AGM.

Note 1: If the company’s first AGM is held before the end of its first financial

year, there will be no reports to lay before the meeting.

Note 2: A public company that has only 1 member is not required to hold an

AGM (see section 250N).

Note 3: Section 250RA imposes on the auditor of a listed public company an

obligation to attend or be represented at the AGM.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Financial reports and audit Chapter 2M

Financial reporting Part 2M.3

Annual financial reporting to members Division 4

Section 318

Corporations Act 2001 87

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(1A) Subsection (1) does not apply to a small company limited by

guarantee in relation to a report if the company is not required

under a member direction made under section 294A or an ASIC

direction made under section 294B to prepare or obtain the report.

(2) An offence based on subsection (1) is an offence of strict liability.

Note: For strict liability, see section 6.1 of the Criminal Code.

318 Additional reporting by debenture issuers

(1) A company or disclosing entity that was a borrower in relation to

debentures at the end of a financial year must give a copy of the

annual financial report, directors’ report and auditor’s report to the

trustee for debenture holders by the deadline for the financial year

set by section 315.

(2) A debenture holder may ask the company or disclosing entity that

issued the debenture for copies of:

(a) the last reports provided to members under section 314; or

(b) the full financial report and the directors’ report and auditor’s

report for the last financial year.

(3) The company or entity must give the debenture holder the copies

as soon as practicable after the request and free of charge.

(4) A disclosing entity that was a borrower in relation to debentures at

the end of a half-year must give a copy of the half-year financial

report, directors’ report and auditor’s report to the trustee for

debenture holders within 75 days after the end of the half-year.

(5) An offence based on subsection (1), (3) or (4) is an offence of strict

liability.

Note: For strict liability, see section 6.1 of the Criminal Code.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2M Financial reports and audit

Part 2M.3 Financial reporting

Division 5 Lodging reports with ASIC

Section 319

88 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Division 5—Lodging reports with ASIC

319 Lodgment of annual reports with ASIC

(1) A company, registered scheme or disclosing entity that has to

prepare or obtain a report for a financial year under Division 1

must lodge the report with ASIC. This obligation extends to a

concise report provided to members under section 314.

(1A) An offence based on subsection (1) is an offence of strict liability.

Note: For strict liability, see section 6.1 of the Criminal Code.

(2) Subsection (1) does not apply to:

(a) a small proprietary company that prepares a report in

response to a shareholder direction under section 293 or an

ASIC direction under section 294; and

(b) a small company limited by guarantee that prepares a report

in response to a member direction under section 294A or an

ASIC direction under section 294B.

(3) The time for lodgment is:

(a) within 3 months after the end of the financial year for a

disclosing entity or registered scheme; and

(b) within 4 months after the end of the financial year for anyone

else.

320 Lodgment of half-year reports with ASIC

(1) A disclosing entity that has to prepare or obtain a report for a

half-year under Division 2 must lodge the report with ASIC within

75 days after the end of the half-year.

(2) An offence based on subsection (1) is an offence of strict liability.

Note: For strict liability, see section 6.1 of the Criminal Code.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Financial reports and audit Chapter 2M

Financial reporting Part 2M.3

Lodging reports with ASIC Division 5

Section 321

Corporations Act 2001 89

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

321 ASIC power to require lodgment

(1) ASIC may give a company, registered scheme or disclosing entity

a direction to lodge with ASIC a copy of reports prepared or

obtained by it under Division 1 or 2.

(1A) An offence based on subsection (1) is an offence of strict liability.

Note: For strict liability, see section 6.1 of the Criminal Code.

(2) The direction must:

(a) be made in writing; and

(b) specify the period or periods concerned; and

(c) be made no later than 6 years after the end of the period or

periods; and

(d) specify the date by which the documents have to be lodged.

The date specified under paragraph (d) must be at least 14 days

after the date on which the direction is given.

322 Relodgment if financial statements or directors’ reports

amended after lodgment

(1) If a financial report or directors’ report is amended after it is

lodged with ASIC, the company, registered scheme or disclosing

entity must:

(a) lodge the amended report with ASIC within 14 days after the

amendment; and

(b) give a copy of the amended report free of charge to any

member who asks for it.

(2) If the amendment is a material one, the company, registered

scheme or disclosing entity must also notify members as soon as

practicable of:

(a) the nature of the amendment; and

(b) their right to obtain a copy of the amended report under

subsection (1).

(3) An offence based on subsection (1) or (2) is an offence of strict

liability.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2M Financial reports and audit

Part 2M.3 Financial reporting

Division 5 Lodging reports with ASIC

Section 322

90 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Note: For strict liability, see section 6.1 of the Criminal Code.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Financial reports and audit Chapter 2M

Financial reporting Part 2M.3

Special provisions about consolidated financial statements Division 6

Section 323

Corporations Act 2001 91

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Division 6—Special provisions about consolidated financial

statements

323 Directors and officers of controlled entity to give information

(1) If a company, registered scheme or disclosing entity has to prepare

consolidated financial statements, a director or officer of a

controlled entity must give the company, registered scheme or

disclosing entity all information requested that is necessary to

prepare the consolidated financial statements and the notes to those

statements.

(2) An offence based on subsection (1) is an offence of strict liability.

Note: For strict liability, see section 6.1 of the Criminal Code.

323A Auditor’s power to obtain information from controlled entity

(1) An auditor who audits or reviews a financial report that includes

consolidated financial statements:

(a) has a right of access at all reasonable times to the books of

any controlled entity; and

(b) may require any officer of the entity to give the auditor

information, explanations or other assistance for the purposes

of the audit or review.

A request under paragraph (b) must be a reasonable one.

(2) The information, explanations or other assistance required under

paragraph (1)(b) is to be given at the expense of the company,

registered scheme or disclosing entity whose financial report is

being audited or reviewed.

323B Controlled entity to assist auditor

(1) If a company, registered scheme or disclosing entity has to prepare

a financial report that includes consolidated financial statements,

an officer or auditor of a controlled entity must:

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2M Financial reports and audit

Part 2M.3 Financial reporting

Division 6 Special provisions about consolidated financial statements

Section 323C

92 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(a) allow the auditor for the company, scheme or entity access to

the controlled entity’s books; and

(b) give the auditor any information, explanation or assistance

required under section 323A.

(2) An offence based on subsection (1) is an offence of strict liability.

Note: For strict liability, see section 6.1 of the Criminal Code.

323C Application of Division to entity that has ceased to be

controlled

Sections 323, 323A and 323B apply to the preparation or audit of a

financial report that covers a controlled entity even if the entity is

no longer controlled by the company, registered scheme or

disclosing entity whose financial report is being prepared or

audited.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Financial reports and audit Chapter 2M

Financial reporting Part 2M.3

Financial years and half-years Division 7

Section 323D

Corporations Act 2001 93

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Division 7—Financial years and half-years

323D Financial years and half-years

First financial year

(1) The first financial year for a company, registered scheme or

disclosing entity starts on the day on which it is registered or

incorporated. It lasts for 12 months or the period (not longer than

18 months) determined by the directors.

Financial years after first year

(2) Subject to subsections (2A) and (4), subsequent financial years

must:

(a) start at the end of the previous financial year; and

(b) be 12 months long.

The directors may determine that the financial year is to be shorter

or longer (but not by more than 7 days).

(2A) A subsequent financial year may last for a period of less than 12

months determined by the directors if:

(a) the subsequent financial year starts at the end of the previous

financial year; and

(b) there has not been a period during the previous 5 financial

years in which there was a financial year of less than 12

months in reliance on this subsection; and

(c) the change to the subsequent financial year is made in good

faith in the best interests of the company, registered scheme

or disclosing entity.

Note: For the purposes of paragraph (b), financial years that, in reliance on

subsection (2) or (4), were less than 12 months are disregarded.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2M Financial reports and audit

Part 2M.3 Financial reporting

Division 7 Financial years and half-years

Section 323D

94 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Synchronisation of financial years where consolidated financial

statements are required

(3) A company, registered scheme or disclosing entity that has to

prepare consolidated financial statements must do whatever is

necessary to ensure that the financial years of the consolidated

entities are synchronised with its own financial years. It must

achieve this synchronisation by the end of 12 months after the

situation that calls for consolidation arises.

(3A) An offence based on subsection (3) is an offence of strict liability.

Note: For strict liability, see section 6.1 of the Criminal Code.

(4) To facilitate this synchronisation, the financial year for a controlled

entity may be extended or shortened. The extended financial year

cannot be longer than 18 months.

Half-years

(5) A half-year for a company, registered scheme or disclosing entity

is the first 6 months of a financial year. The directors may

determine that the half-year is to be shorter or longer (but not by

more than 7 days).

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Financial reports and audit Chapter 2M

Financial reporting Part 2M.3

Disclosure by listed companies of information filed overseas Division 8

Section 323DA

Corporations Act 2001 95

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Division 8—Disclosure by listed companies of information

filed overseas

323DA Listed companies to disclose information filed overseas

(1) A company that discloses information to, or as required by:

(a) the Securities and Exchange Commission of the United

States of America; or

(b) the New York Stock Exchange; or

(c) a financial market in a foreign country if that financial

market is prescribed by regulations made for the purposes of

this paragraph;

must disclose that information in English to each relevant market

operator, if the company is listed on the next business day after

doing so.

(3) This section applies despite anything in the company’s

constitution.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2M Financial reports and audit

Part 2M.4 Appointment and removal of auditors

Division 1 Entities that may be appointed as an auditor for a company or registered

scheme

Section 324AA

96 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Part 2M.4—Appointment and removal of auditors

Division 1—Entities that may be appointed as an auditor

for a company or registered scheme

324AA Individual auditors, audit firms and authorised audit

companies

Subject to this Part, the following may be appointed as auditor for

a company or a registered scheme for the purposes of this Act:

(a) an individual;

(b) a firm;

(c) a company.

The company or registered scheme may have more than one

auditor.

324AB Effect of appointing firm as auditor—general

(1) The appointment of a firm as auditor of a company or registered

scheme is taken to be an appointment of all persons who, at the

date of the appointment, are:

(a) members of the firm; and

(b) registered company auditors.

This is so whether or not those persons are resident in Australia.

(2) The appointment of the members of a firm as auditors of a

company or registered scheme that is taken by subsection (1) to

have been made because of the appointment of the firm as auditor

of the company or scheme is not affected by the dissolution of the

firm. This subsection has effect subject to section 324AC.

(3) A report or notice that purports to be made or given by a firm

appointed as auditor of a company or registered scheme is not

taken to be duly made or given unless it is signed by a member of

the firm who is a registered company auditor both:

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Financial reports and audit Chapter 2M

Appointment and removal of auditors Part 2M.4

Entities that may be appointed as an auditor for a company or registered scheme

Division 1

Section 324AC

Corporations Act 2001 97

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(a) in the firm name; and

(b) in his or her own name.

(4) A notice required or permitted to be given to an audit firm under

the Corporations legislation may be given to the firm by giving the

notice to a member of the firm.

(5) For the purposes of criminal proceedings under this Act against a

member of an audit firm, an act or omission by:

(a) a member of the firm; or

(b) an employee or agent of the audit firm;

acting within the actual or apparent scope of his or her

employment, or within his or her actual or apparent authority, is

also to be attributed to the audit firm.

324AC Effect of appointing firm as auditor—reconstitution of firm

Reconstitution of firm

(1) This section deals with the situation in which:

(a) a firm is appointed as auditor of a company or registered

scheme; and

(b) the firm is reconstituted because of either or both of the

following:

(i) the death, retirement or withdrawal of a member or

members; or

(ii) the admission of a new member or new members.

Retiring or withdrawing member

(2) A person who:

(a) is taken under subsection 324AB(1) to be an auditor of the

company; and

(b) retires or withdraws from the firm as previously constituted

as mentioned in subparagraph (1)(b)(i) of this section;

is taken to resign as auditor of the company as from the day of his

or her retirement or withdrawal.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2M Financial reports and audit

Part 2M.4 Appointment and removal of auditors

Division 1 Entities that may be appointed as an auditor for a company or registered

scheme

Section 324AD

98 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(3) Section 329 does not apply to the resignation that is taken to occur

under subsection (2) unless:

(a) the person who is taken to have resigned was the only

member of the firm who was a registered company auditor;

and

(b) there is no member of the firm who is a registered company

auditor after that person retires or withdraws from the firm.

New member

(4) A person who:

(a) is a registered company auditor; and

(b) is admitted to the firm as mentioned in

subparagraph (1)(b)(ii);

is taken to have been appointed as an auditor of the company or

registered scheme as from the day of his or her admission to the

firm.

Appointments of continuing members not affected

(5) The reconstitution of the firm does not affect the appointment of

the continuing members of the firm who are registered company

auditors as auditors of the company or registered scheme.

(6) Nothing in this section affects the operation of section 324BB.

324AD Effect of appointing company as auditor

(1) A report or notice that purports to be made or given by an audit

company appointed as auditor of a company or registered scheme

is not taken to be duly made or given unless it is signed by a

director of the audit company (or the lead auditor or review auditor

for the audit) both:

(a) in the audit company’s name; and

(b) in his or her own name.

(2) For the purposes of criminal proceedings under this Act against a

director of an audit company, an act or omission by:

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Financial reports and audit Chapter 2M

Appointment and removal of auditors Part 2M.4

Entities that may be appointed as an auditor for a company or registered scheme

Division 1

Section 324AE

Corporations Act 2001 99

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(a) an officer of the audit company; or

(b) an employee or agent of the audit company;

acting within the actual or apparent scope of his or her

employment, or within his or her actual or apparent authority, is

also to be attributed to the audit company.

324AE Professional members of the audit team

If an individual auditor, audit firm or audit company conducts an

audit of a company or registered scheme, the professional

members of the audit team are:

(a) any registered company auditor who participates in the

conduct of the audit; and

(b) any other person who participates in the conduct of the audit

and, in the course of doing so, exercises professional

judgment in relation to the application of or compliance with:

(i) accounting standards; or

(ii) auditing standards; or

(iii) the provisions of this Act dealing with financial

reporting and the conduct of audits; and

(c) any other person who is in a position to directly influence the

outcome of the audit because of the role they play in the

design, planning, management, supervision or oversight of

the audit; and

(d) any person who recommends or decides what the lead auditor

is to be paid in connection with the performance of the audit;

and

(e) any person who provides, or takes part in providing, quality

control for the audit.

324AF Lead and review auditors

Lead auditor

(1) If an audit firm or audit company conducts an audit of a company

or registered scheme, the lead auditor for the audit is the registered

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2M Financial reports and audit

Part 2M.4 Appointment and removal of auditors

Division 1 Entities that may be appointed as an auditor for a company or registered

scheme

Section 324AF

100 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

company auditor who is primarily responsible to the audit firm or

the audit company for the conduct of the audit.

Review auditor

(2) If an individual auditor, audit firm or audit company conducts an

audit of a company or registered scheme, the review auditor for the

audit is the registered company auditor (if any) who is primarily

responsible to the individual auditor, the audit firm or the audit

company for reviewing the conduct of the audit.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Financial reports and audit Chapter 2M

Appointment and removal of auditors Part 2M.4

Registration requirements Division 2

Section 324BA

Corporations Act 2001 101

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Division 2—Registration requirements

324BA Registration requirements for appointment of individual as

auditor

Subject to section 324BD, an individual contravenes this section if:

(a) the individual:

(i) consents to be appointed as auditor of a company or

registered scheme; or

(ii) acts as auditor of a company or registered scheme; or

(iii) prepares a report required by this Act to be prepared by

a registered company auditor or by an auditor of a

company or registered scheme; and

(b) the person is not a registered company auditor.

324BB Registration requirements for appointment of firm as

auditor

Contraventions by members of firm

(1) A person (the defendant) contravenes this subsection if:

(a) at a particular time, a firm:

(i) consents to be appointed as auditor of a company or

registered scheme; or

(ii) acts as auditor of a company or registered scheme; or

(iii) prepares a report required by this Act to be prepared by

a registered company auditor or by an auditor of a

company or registered scheme; and

(b) at that time, the firm:

(i) does not satisfy subsection (5); or

(ii) does not satisfy subsection (6); and

(c) the defendant is a member of the firm at that time; and

(d) the defendant is aware of the circumstances referred to in

paragraphs (a) and (b) at that time.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2M Financial reports and audit

Part 2M.4 Appointment and removal of auditors

Division 2 Registration requirements

Section 324BB

102 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(2) A person (the defendant) contravenes this subsection if:

(a) at a particular time, a firm:

(i) consents to be appointed as auditor of a company or

registered scheme; or

(ii) acts as auditor of a company or registered scheme; or

(iii) prepares a report required by this Act to be prepared by

a registered company auditor or by an auditor of a

company or registered scheme; and

(b) at that time, the firm:

(i) does not satisfy subsection (5); or

(ii) does not satisfy subsection (6); and

(c) the defendant is a member of the firm at that time.

(3) For the purposes of an offence based on subsection (2), strict

liability applies to the physical elements of the offence specified in

paragraphs (2)(a) and (b).

Note 1: For strict liability, see section 6.1 of the Criminal Code.

Note 2: Subsection (4) provides a defence.

(4) A member of an audit firm does not commit an offence at a

particular time because of a contravention of subsection (2) if the

member either:

(a) does not know at that time of the circumstances that

constitute the contravention of subsection (2); or

(b) does know of those circumstances at that time but takes all

reasonable steps to correct the contravention as soon as

possible after the member becomes aware of those

circumstances.

Note: A defendant bears an evidential burden in relation to the matters in

this subsection, see subsection 13.3(3) of the Criminal Code.

Registered company auditor requirement

(5) The firm satisfies this subsection if at least 1 member of the firm is

a registered company auditor who is ordinarily resident in

Australia.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Financial reports and audit Chapter 2M

Appointment and removal of auditors Part 2M.4

Registration requirements Division 2

Section 324BC

Corporations Act 2001 103

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Business name or members names requirement

(6) The firm satisfies this subsection if:

(a) the business name under which the firm is carrying on

business is registered on the Business Names Register; or

(b) a return in the prescribed form has been lodged showing, in

relation to each member of the firm, the member’s full name

and address as at the time when the firm so consents, acts or

prepares a report.

324BC Registration requirements for appointment of company as

auditor

Contravention by company

(1) A company contravenes this subsection if:

(a) the company:

(i) consents to be appointed as auditor of a company or

registered scheme; or

(ii) acts as auditor of a company or registered scheme; or

(iii) prepares a report required by this Act to be prepared by

a registered company auditor or by an auditor of a

company or registered scheme; and

(b) the company is not an authorised audit company.

Contraventions by directors of company

(2) A person (the defendant) contravenes this subsection if:

(a) at a particular time, a company:

(i) consents to be appointed as auditor of a company or

registered scheme; or

(ii) acts as auditor of a company or registered scheme; or

(iii) prepares a report required by this Act to be prepared by

a registered company auditor or by an auditor of a

company or registered scheme; and

(b) at that time, the company is not an authorised audit company;

and

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2M Financial reports and audit

Part 2M.4 Appointment and removal of auditors

Division 2 Registration requirements

Section 324BC

104 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(c) the defendant is a director of the company at that time; and

(d) the defendant is aware of the circumstances referred to in

paragraphs (a) and (b) at that time.

(3) A person (the defendant) contravenes this subsection if:

(a) at a particular time, a company:

(i) consents to be appointed as auditor of a company or

registered scheme; or

(ii) acts as auditor of a company or registered scheme; or

(iii) prepares a report required by this Act to be prepared by

a registered company auditor or by an auditor of a

company or registered scheme; and

(b) at that time, the company is not an authorised audit company;

and

(c) the defendant is a director of the company at that time.

(4) For the purposes of an offence based on subsection (3), strict

liability applies to the physical elements of the offence specified in

paragraphs (3)(a) and (b).

Note 1: For strict liability, see section 6.1 of the Criminal Code.

Note 2: Subsection (5) provides a defence.

(5) A director of a company does not commit an offence at a particular

time because of a contravention of subsection (3) if the director

either:

(a) does not know at that time of the circumstances that

constitute the contravention of subsection (3); or

(b) knows of those circumstances at that time but takes all

reasonable steps to correct the contravention of

subsection (3) as soon as possible after the director becomes

aware of those circumstances.

Note: A defendant bears an evidential burden in relation to the matters in

this subsection, see subsection 13.3(3) of the Criminal Code.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Financial reports and audit Chapter 2M

Appointment and removal of auditors Part 2M.4

Registration requirements Division 2

Section 324BD

Corporations Act 2001 105

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

324BD Exception from registration requirement for proprietary

company

(1) An individual who is not a registered company auditor may be

appointed as auditor of a proprietary company if:

(a) ASIC is satisfied that it is impracticable for a proprietary

company to obtain the services of:

(i) an individual who could be appointed as auditor

consistently with section 324BA; or

(ii) a firm that could be appointed as auditor consistently

with section 324BB; or

(iii) a company that could be appointed consistently with

section 324BC;

because of the place where the company carries on business;

and

(b) ASIC is satisfied that the individual is suitably qualified or

experienced; and

(c) ASIC approves the individual for the purposes of this Act in

relation to the audit of the company’s financial reports.

The appointment is subject to such terms and conditions as are

specified in the approval under paragraph (c).

(2) If an individual is appointed in accordance with subsection (1):

(a) the individual is taken to be a registered company auditor in

relation to the auditing of any of the company’s financial

reports; and

(b) the provisions of this Act apply, with the necessary

modifications, in relation to the individual accordingly.

Paragraph (a) has effect subject to the terms and conditions of the

approval under subsection (1).

(3) If an individual approved by ASIC under subsection (1) is acting as

auditor of a company, ASIC may at any time, by notice in writing

given to the company:

(a) amend, revoke or vary the terms and conditions of its

approval; or

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2M Financial reports and audit

Part 2M.4 Appointment and removal of auditors

Division 2 Registration requirements

Section 324BE

106 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(b) terminate the appointment of that individual as auditor of the

company.

(4) A notice under subsection (3) terminating the appointment of an

individual as auditor of a company takes effect as if, on the date on

which the notice is received by the company, the company had

received from the individual notice of the individual’s resignation

as auditor taking effect from that date.

324BE Exception from registration requirement—reviewing

financial reports of companies limited by guarantee

(1) An individual is taken to be a registered company auditor for the

purposes of a review of a financial report of a company limited by

guarantee if the individual:

(a) is a member of a professional accounting body; and

(b) has a designation, in respect of that membership, prescribed

by the regulations for the purposes of this paragraph.

(2) The provisions of this Act apply, with the necessary modifications,

in relation to the individual accordingly.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Financial reports and audit Chapter 2M

Appointment and removal of auditors Part 2M.4

Auditor independence Division 3

Section 324CA

Corporations Act 2001 107

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Division 3—Auditor independence

Subdivision A—General requirement

324CA General requirement for auditor independence—auditors

Contravention by individual auditor or audit company

(1) An individual auditor or audit company contravenes this subsection

if:

(a) the individual auditor or audit company engages in audit

activity in relation to an audited body at a particular time;

and

(b) a conflict of interest situation exists in relation to the audited

body at that time; and

(c) at that time:

(i) in the case of an individual auditor—the individual

auditor is aware that the conflict of interest situation

exists; or

(ii) in the case of an audit company—the audit company is

aware that the conflict of interest situation exists; and

(d) the individual auditor or audit company does not, as soon as

possible after the individual auditor or the audit company

becomes aware that the conflict of interest situation exists,

take all reasonable steps to ensure that the conflict of interest

situation ceases to exist.

Note: For conflict of interest situation, see section 324CD.

Individual auditor or audit company to notify ASIC

(1A) An individual auditor or audit company contravenes this subsection

if:

(a) the individual auditor or audit company is the auditor of an

audited body; and

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2M Financial reports and audit

Part 2M.4 Appointment and removal of auditors

Division 3 Auditor independence

Section 324CA

108 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(b) a conflict of interest situation exists in relation to the audited

body while the individual auditor or audit company is the

auditor of the audited body; and

(c) on a particular day (the start day):

(i) in the case of an individual auditor—the individual

auditor becomes aware that the conflict of interest

situation exists; or

(ii) in the case of an audit company—the audit company

becomes aware that the conflict of interest situation

exists; and

(d) at the end of the period of 7 days from the start day:

(i) the conflict of interest situation remains in existence;

and

(ii) the individual auditor or audit company has not

informed ASIC in writing that the conflict of interest

situation exists.

Note 1: For conflict of interest situation, see section 324CD.

Note 2: If the audited body is a public company or a registered scheme and the

notice under this subsection is not followed up by a notice under

subsection 327B(2A) or (2C) (public company) or 331AAA(2A) or

(2C) (registered scheme) within the period of 21 days (or a longer

period that has been approved by ASIC) from the day the notice under

this subsection is given, the audit appointment will be terminated at

the end of that period.

(1B) A person is not excused from informing ASIC under

subsection (1A) that a conflict of interest situation exists on the

ground that the information might tend to incriminate the person or

expose the person to a penalty.

(1C) However, if the person is a natural person:

(a) the information; and

(b) the giving of the information;

are not admissible in evidence against the person in a criminal

proceeding, or any other proceeding for the recovery of a penalty,

other than proceedings for an offence based on the information

given being false or misleading.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Financial reports and audit Chapter 2M

Appointment and removal of auditors Part 2M.4

Auditor independence Division 3

Section 324CA

Corporations Act 2001 109

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(1D) If the individual auditor or audit company gives ASIC a notice

under paragraph (1A)(d), ASIC must, as soon as practicable after

the notice has been received, give a copy of the notice to the

audited body.

Conflict of interest situation of which individual auditor or audit

company is not aware

(2) An individual auditor or audit company contravenes this subsection

if:

(a) the individual auditor or audit company engages in audit

activity in relation to an audited body at a particular time;

and

(b) a conflict of interest situation exists in relation to the audited

body at the time; and

(c) at that time:

(i) in the case of an individual auditor—the individual

auditor is not aware that the conflict of interest situation

exists; or

(ii) in the case of an audit company—the audit company is

not aware that the conflict of interest situation exists;

and

(d) the individual auditor or the audit company would have been

aware of the existence of the conflict of interest situation at

that time if the individual auditor or audit company had had

in place a quality control system reasonably capable of

making the individual auditor or audit company aware of the

existence of such a conflict of interest situation.

Note: For conflict of interest situation, see section 324CD.

(3) For the purposes of an offence based on subsection (2), strict

liability applies to the physical element of the offence specified in

paragraph (2)(b).

Note 1: For strict liability, see section 6.1 of the Criminal Code.

Note 2: Subsections (4) and (5) provide defences.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2M Financial reports and audit

Part 2M.4 Appointment and removal of auditors

Division 3 Auditor independence

Section 324CA

110 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(4) An individual auditor does not commit an offence because of a

contravention of subsection (2) in relation to audit activity engaged

in by the auditor at a particular time if the individual auditor has

reasonable grounds to believe that the individual auditor had in

place at that time a quality control system that provided reasonable

assurance (taking into account the size and nature of the audit

practice of the individual auditor) that the individual auditor and

the individual auditor’s employees complied with the requirements

of this Subdivision.

Note: A defendant bears an evidential burden in relation to the matters in

this subsection, see subsection 13.3(3) of the Criminal Code.

(5) An audit company does not commit an offence because of a

contravention of subsection (2) in relation to audit activity engaged

in by the audit company at a particular time if the audit company

has reasonable grounds to believe that the audit company had in

place at that time a quality control system that provided reasonable

assurance (taking into account the size and nature of the audit

practice of the audit company) that the audit company and the audit

company’s employees complied with the requirements of this

Subdivision.

Note: A defendant bears an evidential burden in relation to the matters in

this subsection, see subsection 13.3(3) of the Criminal Code.

Relationship between obligations under this section and other

obligations

(6) The obligations imposed by this section are in addition to, and do

not derogate from, any obligation imposed by:

(a) another provision of this Act; or

(b) a code of professional conduct.

Note: Paragraph (a)—see, for example, the specific obligations imposed by

Subdivision B.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Financial reports and audit Chapter 2M

Appointment and removal of auditors Part 2M.4

Auditor independence Division 3

Section 324CB

Corporations Act 2001 111

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

324CB General requirement for auditor independence—member of

audit firm

Contravention by member of audit firm

(1) A person (the defendant) contravenes this subsection if:

(a) an audit firm engages in audit activity in relation to an

audited body at a particular time; and

(b) a conflict of interest situation exists in relation to the audited

body at that time; and

(c) the defendant is a member of the audit firm at that time; and

(d) the defendant is or becomes aware of the circumstances

referred to in paragraphs (a) and (b); and

(e) the defendant does not, as soon as possible after the

defendant becomes aware of those circumstances, take

reasonable steps to ensure that the conflict of interest

situation ceases to exist.

Note: For conflict of interest situation, see section 324CD.

Member of audit firm to notify ASIC

(1A) A person (the defendant) contravenes this subsection if:

(a) an audit firm is the auditor of an audited body; and

(b) a conflict of interest situation exists in relation to the audited

body while the audit firm is the auditor of the audited body;

and

(c) the defendant is a member of the audit firm at a time when

the conflict of interest situation exists; and

(d) on a particular day (the start day), the defendant becomes

aware of the circumstances referred to in paragraphs (a) and

(b); and

(e) at the end of the period of 7 days from the start day:

(i) the conflict of interest situation remains in existence;

and

(ii) ASIC has not been informed in writing by the

defendant, by another member of the audit firm or by

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2M Financial reports and audit

Part 2M.4 Appointment and removal of auditors

Division 3 Auditor independence

Section 324CB

112 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

someone else on behalf of the audit firm that the conflict

of interest situation exists.

Note 1: For conflict of interest situation, see section 324CD.

Note 2: If the audited body is a public company or a registered scheme and the

notice under this subsection is not followed up by a notice under

subsection 327B(2B) (public company) or 331AAA(2B) (registered

scheme) within the period of 21 days (or a longer period that has been

approved by ASIC) from the day the notice under this subsection is

given, the audit appointment will be terminated at the end of that

period.

(1B) A person is not excused from informing ASIC under

subsection (1A) that a conflict of interest situation exists on the

ground that the information might tend to incriminate the person or

expose the person to a penalty.

(1C) However:

(a) the information; and

(b) the giving of the information;

are not admissible in evidence against the person in a criminal

proceeding, or any other proceeding for the recovery of a penalty,

other than proceedings for an offence based on the information

given being false or misleading.

(1D) If ASIC is given a notice under paragraph (1A)(e), ASIC must, as

soon as practicable after the notice is received, give a copy of the

notice to the audited body.

Conflict of interest situation of which another member of audit firm

is aware

(2) A person contravenes this subsection if:

(a) an audit firm engages in audit activity in relation to an

audited body at a particular time; and

(b) a conflict of interest situation exists in relation to the audited

body at the time; and

(c) the person is a member of the audit firm at that time; and

(d) at that time, another member of the audit firm is aware that

the conflict of interest situation exists; and

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Financial reports and audit Chapter 2M

Appointment and removal of auditors Part 2M.4

Auditor independence Division 3

Section 324CB

Corporations Act 2001 113

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(e) the audit firm does not, as soon as possible after the member

referred to in paragraph (d) becomes aware that the conflict

of interest situation exists, take all reasonable steps to ensure

that the conflict of interest situation ceases to exist.

Note: For conflict of interest situation, see section 324CD.

(3) For the purposes of an offence based on subsection (2), strict

liability applies to the physical elements of the offence specified in

paragraphs (2)(a), (b), (d) and (e).

Note 1: For strict liability, see section 6.1 of the Criminal Code.

Note 2: Subsection (6) provides a defence.

Conflict of interest situation of which members are not aware

(4) A person contravenes this subsection if:

(a) an audit firm engages in audit activity in relation to an

audited body at a particular time; and

(b) a conflict of interest situation exists in relation to the audited

body at the time; and

(c) the person is a member of the audit firm at that time; and

(d) at that time none of the members of the audit firm is aware

that the conflict of interest situation exists; and

(e) a member of the audit firm would have been aware of the

existence of the conflict of interest situation if the audit firm

had in place a quality control system reasonably capable of

making the audit firm aware of the existence of such a

conflict of interest situation.

Note: For conflict of interest situation, see section 324CD.

(5) For the purposes of an offence based on subsection (4), strict

liability applies to the physical elements of the offence specified in

paragraphs (4)(a), (b), (d) and (e).

Note 1: For strict liability, see section 6.1 of the Criminal Code.

Note 2: Subsection (6) provides a defence.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2M Financial reports and audit

Part 2M.4 Appointment and removal of auditors

Division 3 Auditor independence

Section 324CC

114 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Defence

(6) A person does not commit an offence because of a contravention of

subsection (2) or (4) in relation to audit activity engaged in by an

audit firm at a particular time if the person has reasonable grounds

to believe that the audit firm had in place at that time a quality

control system that provided reasonable assurance (taking into

account the size and nature of the audit practice of the audit firm)

that the audit firm and its employees complied with the

requirements of this Subdivision.

Note: A defendant bears an evidential burden in relation to the matters in

this subsection, see subsection 13.3(3) of the Criminal Code.

Relationship between obligations under this section and other

obligations

(7) The obligations imposed by this section are in addition to, and do

not derogate from, any obligation imposed by:

(a) another provision of this Act; or

(b) a code of professional conduct.

Note: Paragraph (a)—see, for example, the specific obligations imposed by

Subdivision B.

324CC General requirement for auditor independence—director of

audit company

Contravention by director of audit company

(1) A person (the defendant) contravenes this subsection if:

(a) an audit company engages in audit activity in relation to an

audited body at a particular time; and

(b) a conflict of interest situation exists in relation to the audited

body at that time; and

(c) the defendant is a director of the audit company at that time;

and

(d) the defendant is or becomes aware of the circumstances

referred to in paragraphs (a) and (b); and

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Financial reports and audit Chapter 2M

Appointment and removal of auditors Part 2M.4

Auditor independence Division 3

Section 324CC

Corporations Act 2001 115

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(e) the defendant does not, as soon as possible after the

defendant becomes aware of those circumstances, take

reasonable steps to ensure that the conflict of interest

situation ceases to exist.

Note 1: For conflict of interest situation, see section 324CD.

Note 2: The audit company itself will commit an offence based on the

contravention of subsection 324AA(1).

Director of audit company to notify ASIC

(1A) A person (the defendant) contravenes this subsection if:

(a) an audit company is the auditor of an audited body; and

(b) a conflict of interest situation exists in relation to the audited

body while the audit company is the auditor of the audited

body; and

(c) the defendant is a director of the audit company at a time

when the conflict of interest situation exists; and

(d) on a particular day (the start day), the defendant becomes

aware of the circumstances referred to in paragraphs (a) and

(b); and

(e) at the end of the period of 7 days from the start day:

(i) the conflict of interest situation remains in existence;

and

(ii) ASIC has not been informed in writing by the

defendant, by another director of the audit company or

by the audit company that the conflict of interest

situation exists.

Note 1: For conflict of interest situation, see section 324CD.

Note 2: If the audited body is a public company or a registered scheme and the

notice under this subsection is not followed up by a notice under

subsection 327B(2C) (public company) or 331AAA(2C) (registered

scheme) within the period of 21 days (or a longer period that has been

approved by ASIC) from the day the notice under this subsection is

given, the audit appointment will be terminated at the end of that

period.

(1B) A person is not excused from informing ASIC under

subsection (1A) that a conflict of interest situation exists on the

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2M Financial reports and audit

Part 2M.4 Appointment and removal of auditors

Division 3 Auditor independence

Section 324CC

116 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

ground that the information might tend to incriminate the person or

expose the person to a penalty.

(1C) However, if the person is a natural person:

(a) the information; and

(b) the giving of the information;

are not admissible in evidence against the person in a criminal

proceeding, or any other proceeding for the recovery of a penalty,

other than proceedings for an offence based on the information

given being false or misleading.

(1D) If ASIC is given a notice under paragraph (1A)(e), ASIC must, as

soon as practicable after the notice is received, give a copy of the

notice to the audited body.

Conflict of interest situation of which another director of audit

company aware

(2) A person contravenes this subsection if:

(a) an audit company engages in audit activity in relation to an

audited body at a particular time; and

(b) a conflict of interest situation exists in relation to the audited

body at the time; and

(c) the person is a director of the audit company at that time; and

(d) at that time, another director of the audit company is aware

that the conflict of interest situation exists; and

(e) the audit company does not, as soon as possible after the

director referred to in paragraph (d) becomes aware that the

conflict of interest situation exists, take all reasonable steps

to ensure that the conflict of interest situation ceases to exist.

Note 1: For conflict of interest situation, see section 324CD.

Note 2: The company itself will commit an offence based on the contravention

of subsection 324AA(1).

(3) For the purposes of an offence based on subsection (2), strict

liability applies to the physical elements of the offence specified in

paragraphs (2)(a), (b), (d) and (e).

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Financial reports and audit Chapter 2M

Appointment and removal of auditors Part 2M.4

Auditor independence Division 3

Section 324CC

Corporations Act 2001 117

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Note 1: For strict liability, see section 6.1 of the Criminal Code.

Note 2: Subsection (6) provides a defence.

Conflict of interest situation of which directors of audit company

not aware

(4) A person contravenes this subsection if:

(a) an audit company engages in audit activity in relation to an

audited body at a particular time; and

(b) a conflict of interest situation exists in relation to the audited

body at the time; and

(c) the person is a director of the audit company at that time; and

(d) at that time none of the directors of the audit company is

aware that the conflict of interest situation exists; and

(e) a director of the audit company would have been aware of the

existence of the conflict of interest situation if the audit

company had in place a quality control system reasonably

capable of making the audit company aware of the existence

of such a conflict of interest situation.

Note 1: For conflict of interest situation, see section 324CD.

Note 2: The company itself will commit an offence based on the contravention

of subsection 324AA(2).

(5) For the purposes of an offence based on subsection (4), strict

liability applies to the physical elements of the offence specified in

paragraphs (4)(a), (b), (d) and (e).

Note 1: For strict liability, see section 6.1 of the Criminal Code.

Note 2: Subsection (6) provides a defence.

Defence

(6) A person does not commit an offence because of a contravention of

subsection (2) or (4) in relation to audit activity engaged in by an

audit company at a particular time if the person has reasonable

grounds to believe that the audit company had in place at that time

a quality control system that provided reasonable assurance (taking

into account the size and nature of the audit practice of the audit

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2M Financial reports and audit

Part 2M.4 Appointment and removal of auditors

Division 3 Auditor independence

Section 324CD

118 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

company) that the audit company and its employees complied with

the requirements of this Subdivision.

Note: A defendant bears an evidential burden in relation to the matters in

this subsection, see subsection 13.3(3) of the Criminal Code.

Relationship between obligations under this section and other

obligations

(7) The obligations imposed by this section are in addition to, and do

not derogate from, any obligation imposed by:

(a) another provision of this Act; or

(b) a code of professional conduct.

Note: Paragraph (a)—see, for example, the specific obligations imposed by

Subdivision B.

324CD Conflict of interest situation

(1) For the purposes of sections 324CA, 324CB and 324CC, a conflict

of interest situation exists in relation to an audited body at a

particular time if, because of circumstances that exist at that time:

(a) the auditor, or a professional member of the audit team, is not

capable of exercising objective and impartial judgment in

relation to the conduct of the audit of the audited body; or

(b) a reasonable person, with full knowledge of all relevant facts

and circumstances, would conclude that the auditor, or a

professional member of the audit team, is not capable of

exercising objective and impartial judgment in relation to the

conduct of the audit of the audited body.

(2) Without limiting subsection (1), have regard to circumstances

arising from any relationship that exists, has existed, or is likely to

exist, between:

(a) the individual auditor; or

(b) the audit firm or any current or former member of the firm;

or

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Financial reports and audit Chapter 2M

Appointment and removal of auditors Part 2M.4

Auditor independence Division 3

Section 324CD

Corporations Act 2001 119

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(c) the audit company, any current or former director of the audit

company or any person currently or formerly involved in the

management of the audit company;

and any of the persons and bodies set out in the following table:

Relevant relationships

Item If the audited body

is…

have regard to any relationship

with…

1 a company the company; or

a current or former director of the

company; or

a person currently or formerly

involved in the management of the

company.

2 a disclosing entity the entity; or

a current or former director of the

entity; or

a person currently or formerly

involved in the management of the

entity.

3 a registered scheme the responsible entity for the

registered scheme; or

a current or former director of the

responsible entity; or

a person currently or formerly

involved in the management of the

scheme; or

a person currently or formerly

involved in the management of the

responsible entity.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2M Financial reports and audit

Part 2M.4 Appointment and removal of auditors

Division 3 Auditor independence

Section 324CE

120 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Subdivision B—Specific requirements

324CE Auditor independence—specific requirements for individual

auditor

Specific independence requirements for individual auditor

(1) An individual auditor contravenes this subsection if:

(a) the individual auditor engages in audit activity at a particular

time; and

(b) a relevant item of the table in subsection 324CH(1) applies at

that time to a person or entity covered by subsection (5) of

this section; and

(c) the individual auditor is or becomes aware of the

circumstances referred to in paragraph (b); and

(d) the individual auditor does not, as soon as possible after the

individual auditor becomes aware of those circumstances,

take all reasonable steps to ensure that the individual auditor

does not continue to engage in audit activity in those

circumstances.

Individual auditor to notify ASIC

(1A) An individual auditor contravenes this subsection if:

(a) the individual auditor is the auditor of an audited body; and

(b) a relevant item of the table in subsection 324CH(1) applies to

a person or entity covered by subsection (5) of this section

while the individual auditor is the auditor of the audited

body; and

(c) on a particular day (the start day), the individual auditor

becomes aware of the circumstances referred to in

paragraph (b); and

(d) at the end of the period of 7 days from the start day:

(i) those circumstances remain in existence; and

(ii) the individual auditor has not informed ASIC in writing

of those circumstances.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Financial reports and audit Chapter 2M

Appointment and removal of auditors Part 2M.4

Auditor independence Division 3

Section 324CE

Corporations Act 2001 121

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Note: If the audited body is a public company or a registered scheme and the

notice under this subsection is not followed up by a notice under

subsection 327B(2A) (public company) or 331AAA(2A) (registered

scheme) within the period of 21 days (or a longer period that has been

approved by ASIC) from the day the notice under this subsection is

given, the audit appointment will be terminated at the end of that

period.

(1B) A person is not excused from informing ASIC under

subsection (1A) that the circumstances referred to in

paragraph (1A)(b) exist on the ground that the information might

tend to incriminate the person or expose the person to a penalty.

(1C) However:

(a) the information; and

(b) the giving of the information;

are not admissible in evidence against the person in a criminal

proceeding, or any other proceeding for the recovery of a penalty,

other than proceedings for an offence based on the information

given being false or misleading.

(1D) If the individual auditor gives ASIC a notice under

paragraph (1A)(d), ASIC must, as soon as practicable after the

notice has been received, give a copy of the notice to the audited

body.

Strict liability contravention of specific independence requirements

by individual auditor

(2) An individual auditor contravenes this subsection if:

(a) the individual auditor engages in audit activity at a particular

time; and

(b) a relevant item of the table in subsection 324CH(1) applies at

that time to a person or entity covered by subsection (5) of

this section.

(3) For the purposes of an offence based on subsection (2), strict

liability applies to the physical elements of the offence specified in

paragraph (2)(b).

Note 1: For strict liability, see section 6.1 of the Criminal Code.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2M Financial reports and audit

Part 2M.4 Appointment and removal of auditors

Division 3 Auditor independence

Section 324CE

122 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Note 2: Subsection (4) provides a defence.

(4) An individual auditor does not commit an offence because of a

contravention of subsection (2) in relation to audit activity engaged

in by the individual auditor at a particular time if the individual

auditor has reasonable grounds to believe that the individual

auditor had in place at that time a quality control system that

provided reasonable assurance (taking into account the size and

nature of the audit practice of the individual auditor) that the

individual auditor and the individual auditor’s employees complied

with the requirements of this Subdivision.

Note: A defendant bears an evidential burden in relation to the matters in

this subsection, see subsection 13.3(3) of the Criminal Code.

People and entities covered

(5) The following table sets out:

(a) the persons and entities covered by this subsection in relation

to audit activity engaged in by an individual auditor; and

(b) the items of the table in subsection 324CH(1) that are the

relevant items for each of those persons and entities:

Individual auditor

Item For this person or entity... the relevant items

of the table in

subsection 324CH

(1) are...

1 the individual auditor 1 to 19

2 a service company or trust acting for, or on

behalf of, the individual auditor, or another

entity performing a similar function

1 to 19

3 a professional member of the audit team

conducting the audit of the audited body

1 to 6

8 to 19

4 an immediate family member of a

professional member of the audit team

conducting the audit of the audited body

1 and 2

10 to 19

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Financial reports and audit Chapter 2M

Appointment and removal of auditors Part 2M.4

Auditor independence Division 3

Section 324CE

Corporations Act 2001 123

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Individual auditor

Item For this person or entity... the relevant items

of the table in

subsection 324CH

(1) are...

5 a person who is a non-audit services

provider and who does not satisfy the

maximum hours test in subsection (6)

10 to 12

6 an immediate family member of a person

who is a non-audit services provider and

who does not satisfy the maximum hours

test in subsection (6)

10 to 12

7 an entity that the auditor (or a service

company or trust acting for, or on behalf

of, the individual auditor, or another entity

performing a similar function) controls

15

8 a body corporate in which the auditor (or a

service company or trust acting for, or on

behalf of, the individual auditor, or another

entity performing a similar function) has a

substantial holding

15

9 a person who:

(a) is a former professional employee of

the auditor; and

(b) does not satisfy the independence test

in subsection (7)

1 and 2

10 an individual who:

(a) is the former owner of the individual

auditor’s business; and

(b) does not satisfy the independence test

in subsection (7)

1 and 2

Maximum hours test

(6) A non-audit services provider satisfies the maximum hours test in

this subsection if:

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2M Financial reports and audit

Part 2M.4 Appointment and removal of auditors

Division 3 Auditor independence

Section 324CE

124 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(a) the number of hours for which the person provides services

(other than services related to the conduct of an audit) to the

audited body on behalf of the auditor during the period to

which the audit relates does not exceed 10 hours; and

(b) the number of hours for which the person provides services

(other than services related to the conduct of an audit) to the

audited body on behalf of the auditor during the 12 months

immediately before the beginning of the period to which the

audit relates does not exceed 10 hours.

In a prosecution for an offence based on subsection (1) or (2), the

prosecution must prove that the non-audit services provider did not

satisfy the maximum hours test in this subsection.

Independence test

(7) A person satisfies the independence test in this subsection in

relation to an individual auditor if the person:

(a) does not influence the operations or financial policies of the

accounting and audit practice conducted by the auditor; and

(b) does not participate, or appear to participate, in the business

or professional activities of the accounting and audit practice

conducted by the auditor; and

(c) does not have any rights against the auditor in relation to the

accounting and audit practice conducted by the auditor in

relation to the termination of the person’s former

employment by the auditor; and

(d) has no financial arrangements with the auditor in relation to

the accounting and audit practice conducted by the auditor,

other than:

(i) an arrangement providing for regular payments of a

fixed pre-determined dollar amount which is not

dependent, directly or indirectly, on the revenues,

profits or earnings of the auditor; or

(ii) an arrangement providing for regular payments of a

dollar amount where the method of calculating the

dollar amount is fixed and is not dependent, directly or

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Financial reports and audit Chapter 2M

Appointment and removal of auditors Part 2M.4

Auditor independence Division 3

Section 324CF

Corporations Act 2001 125

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

indirectly, on the revenues, profits or earnings of the

auditor; and

(e) without limiting paragraph (d), has no financial arrangement

with the auditor to receive a commission or similar payment

in relation to business generated by the person for the

accounting and audit practice conducted by the auditor.

In a prosecution for an offence based on subsection (1) or (2), the

prosecution must prove that the person did not satisfy the

independence test in this subsection in relation to the individual

auditor.

(8) In applying subsection (7), disregard any rights that the person has

against the auditor by way of an indemnity for, or contribution in

relation to, liabilities incurred by the person when the person was

an employee of the auditor or the owner of the auditor’s business.

324CF Auditor independence—specific requirements for audit firm

Contraventions by members of audit firm

(1) A person (the defendant) contravenes this subsection if:

(a) an audit firm engages in audit activity at a particular time;

and

(b) a relevant item of the table in subsection 324CH(1) applies at

that time to a person or entity covered by subsection (5) of

this section; and

(c) the defendant is a member of the audit firm at that time; and

(d) the defendant is or becomes aware of the circumstances

referred to in paragraphs (a) and (b); and

(e) the defendant does not, as soon as possible after the

defendant becomes aware of those circumstances, take all

reasonable steps to ensure that the audit firm does not

continue to engage in audit activity in those circumstances.

Member of audit firm to notify ASIC

(1A) A person (the defendant) contravenes this subsection if:

(a) an audit firm is the auditor of an audited body; and

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2M Financial reports and audit

Part 2M.4 Appointment and removal of auditors

Division 3 Auditor independence

Section 324CF

126 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(b) a relevant item of the table in subsection 324CH(1) applies to

a person or entity covered by subsection (5) of this section

while the audit firm is the auditor of the audited body; and

(c) the defendant is a member of the audit firm at a time when

the circumstances referred to in paragraph (b) exist; and

(d) on a particular day (the start day), the defendant becomes

aware of the circumstances referred to in paragraphs (a) and

(b); and

(e) at the end of the period of 7 days from the start day:

(i) the circumstances referred to in paragraph (b) remain in

existence; and

(ii) ASIC has not been informed in writing of those

circumstances by the defendant, by another member of

the audit firm or by someone else on behalf of the audit

firm.

Note: If the audited body is a public company or a registered scheme and the

notice under this subsection is not followed up by a notice under

subsection 327B(2B) (public company) or 331AAA(2B) (registered

scheme) within the period of 21 days (or a longer period that has been

approved by ASIC) from the day the notice under this subsection is

given, the audit appointment will be terminated at the end of that

period.

(1B) A person is not excused from informing ASIC under

subsection (1A) that the circumstances referred to in

paragraph (1A)(b) exist on the ground that the information might

tend to incriminate the person or expose the person to a penalty.

(1C) However:

(a) the information; and

(b) the giving of the information;

are not admissible in evidence against the person in a criminal

proceeding, or any other proceeding for the recovery of a penalty,

other than proceedings for an offence based on the information

given being false or misleading.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Financial reports and audit Chapter 2M

Appointment and removal of auditors Part 2M.4

Auditor independence Division 3

Section 324CF

Corporations Act 2001 127

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(1D) If ASIC is given a notice under paragraph (1A)(e), ASIC must, as

soon as practicable after the notice is received, give a copy of the

notice to the audited body.

Contravention of independence requirements by members of audit

firm

(2) A person (the defendant) contravenes this subsection if:

(a) an audit firm engages in audit activity at a particular time;

and

(b) a relevant item of the table in subsection 324CH(1) applies at

that time to a person or entity covered by subsection (5) of

this section; and

(c) the defendant is a member of the audit firm at that time.

(3) For the purposes of an offence based on subsection (2), strict

liability applies to the physical elements of the offence specified in

paragraphs (2)(a) and (b).

Note 1: For strict liability, see section 6.1 of the Criminal Code.

Note 2: Subsection (4) provides a defence.

(4) A person does not commit an offence because of a contravention of

subsection (2) in relation to audit activity engaged in by an audit

firm at a particular time if the person has reasonable grounds to

believe that the audit firm had in place at that time a quality control

system that provided reasonable assurance (taking into account the

size and nature of the audit practice of the audit firm) that the audit

firm and its employees complied with the requirements of this

Subdivision.

Note: A defendant bears an evidential burden in relation to the matters in

this subsection, see subsection 13.3(3) of the Criminal Code.

People and entities covered

(5) The following table sets out:

(a) the persons and entities covered by this subsection in relation

to audit activity engaged in by an audit firm; and

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2M Financial reports and audit

Part 2M.4 Appointment and removal of auditors

Division 3 Auditor independence

Section 324CF

128 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(b) the items of the table in subsection 324CH(1) that are the

relevant items for each of those persons and entities:

Audit firm

Item For this person or entity... the relevant items

of the table in

subsection 324CH

(1) are...

1 the firm 4

7

10 to 19

2 a service company or trust acting for, or on

behalf of, the firm, or another entity

performing a similar function

4

7

10 to 19

3 a member of the firm 1 to 7

9

15

4 a professional member of the audit team

conducting the audit of the audited body

1 to 6

8 to 19

5 an immediate family member of a

professional member of the audit team

conducting the audit of the audited body

1 and 2

10 to 19

6 a person who:

(a) is a non-audit services provider; and

(b) does not satisfy the maximum hours

test in subsection (6)

10 to 12

7 an immediate family member of a person

who:

(a) is a non-audit services provider; and

(b) does not satisfy the maximum hours

test in subsection (6)

10 to 12

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Financial reports and audit Chapter 2M

Appointment and removal of auditors Part 2M.4

Auditor independence Division 3

Section 324CF

Corporations Act 2001 129

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Audit firm

Item For this person or entity... the relevant items

of the table in

subsection 324CH

(1) are...

8 an entity that the firm (or a service

company or trust acting for, or on behalf

of, the firm, or another entity performing a

similar function) controls

15

9 a body corporate in which the firm (or a

service company or trust acting for, or on

behalf of, the firm, or another entity

performing a similar function) has a

substantial holding

15

10 an entity that a member of the firm

controls or a body corporate in which a

member of the firm has a substantial

holding

15

11 a person who:

(a) is a former member of the firm; and

(b) does not satisfy the independence test

in subsection (7)

1 and 2

12 a person who:

(a) is a former professional employee of

the firm; and

(b) does not satisfy the independence test

in subsection (7)

1 and 2

Maximum hours test

(6) A non-audit services provider satisfies the maximum hours test in

this subsection if:

(a) the number of hours for which the person provides services

(other than services related to the conduct of an audit) to the

audited body on behalf of the auditor during the period to

which the audit relates does not exceed 10 hours; and

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2M Financial reports and audit

Part 2M.4 Appointment and removal of auditors

Division 3 Auditor independence

Section 324CF

130 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(b) the number of hours for which the person provided services

(other than services related to the conduct of an audit) to the

audited body on behalf of the auditor during the 12 months

immediately before the beginning of the period to which the

audit relates does not exceed 10 hours.

In a prosecution for an offence based on subsection (1) or (2), the

prosecution must prove that the non-audit services provider did not

satisfy the maximum hours test in this subsection.

Independence test

(7) A person satisfies the independence test in this subsection in

relation to a firm if the person:

(a) does not influence the operations or financial policies of the

accounting and audit practice conducted by the firm; and

(b) does not participate, or appear to participate, in the business

or professional activities of the accounting and audit practice

conducted by the firm; and

(c) does not have any rights against the firm, or the members of

the firm, in relation to the accounting and audit practice

conducted by the firm in relation to the termination of, or the

value of, the person’s former partnership interest in the firm;

and

(d) has no financial arrangements with the firm in relation to the

accounting and audit practice conducted by the firm, other

than:

(i) an arrangement providing for regular payments of a

fixed pre-determined dollar amount which is not

dependent, directly or indirectly, on the revenues,

profits or earnings of the firm; or

(ii) an arrangement providing for regular payments of a

dollar amount where the method of calculating the

dollar amount is fixed and is not dependent, directly or

indirectly, on the revenues, profits or earnings of the

firm; and

(e) without limiting paragraph (d), has no financial arrangement

with the firm to receive a commission or similar payment in

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Financial reports and audit Chapter 2M

Appointment and removal of auditors Part 2M.4

Auditor independence Division 3

Section 324CG

Corporations Act 2001 131

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

relation to business generated by the person for the

accounting and audit practice conducted by the firm.

In a prosecution for an offence based on subsection (1) or (2), the

prosecution must prove that the person did not satisfy the

independence test in this subsection in relation to the firm.

(8) In applying subsection (7), disregard any rights that the person has

against the firm, or the members of the firm, by way of an

indemnity for, or contribution in relation to, liabilities incurred by

the person when the person was a member or employee of the firm.

Meaning of holding by firm in body corporate

(9) For the purposes of item 9 in the table in subsection (5), a firm is

taken to have a holding in a body corporate if the holding is one of

the firm’s partnership assets.

324CG Auditor independence—specific requirements for audit

company

Specific independence requirements for audit company

(1) An audit company contravenes this subsection if:

(a) the audit company engages in audit activity at a particular

time; and

(b) a relevant item of the table in subsection 324CH(1) applies at

that time to a person or entity covered by subsection (9) of

this section; and

(c) the audit company is or becomes aware of the circumstances

referred to in paragraph (b); and

(d) the audit company does not, as soon as possible after the

audit company becomes aware of those circumstances, take

all reasonable steps to ensure that the audit company does not

continue to engage in audit activity in those circumstances.

Audit company to notify ASIC

(1A) An audit company contravenes this subsection if:

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2M Financial reports and audit

Part 2M.4 Appointment and removal of auditors

Division 3 Auditor independence

Section 324CG

132 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(a) the audit company is the auditor of an audited body; and

(b) a relevant item of the table in subsection 324CH(1) applies to

a person or entity covered by subsection (9) of this section

while the audit company is the auditor of the audited body;

and

(c) on a particular day (the start day), the audit company

becomes aware of the circumstances referred to in

paragraph (b); and

(d) at the end of the period of 7 days from the start day:

(i) those circumstances remain in existence; and

(ii) the audit company has not informed ASIC in writing of

those circumstances.

Note: If the audited body is a public company or a registered scheme and the

notice under this subsection is not followed up by a notice under

subsection 327B(2C) (public company) or 331AAA(2C) (registered

scheme) within the period of 21 days (or a longer period that has been

approved by ASIC) from the day the notice under this subsection is

given, the audit appointment will be terminated at the end of that

period.

(1B) If the audit company gives ASIC a notice under paragraph (1A)(d),

ASIC must, as soon as practicable after the notice has been

received, give a copy of the notice to the audited body.

Strict liability contravention of specific independence requirements

by audit company

(2) An audit company contravenes this subsection if:

(a) the audit company engages in audit activity at a particular

time; and

(b) a relevant item of the table in subsection 324CH(1) applies at

that time to a person or entity covered by subsection (9) of

this section.

(3) For the purposes of an offence based on subsection (2), strict

liability applies to the physical elements of the offence specified in

paragraph (2)(b).

Note 1: For strict liability, see section 6.1 of the Criminal Code.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Financial reports and audit Chapter 2M

Appointment and removal of auditors Part 2M.4

Auditor independence Division 3

Section 324CG

Corporations Act 2001 133

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Note 2: Subsection (4) provides a defence.

(4) An audit company does not commit an offence because of a

contravention of subsection (2) in relation to audit activity engaged

in by the audit company at a particular time if the audit company

has reasonable grounds to believe that the audit company had in

place at that time a quality control system that provided reasonable

assurance (taking into account the size and nature of the audit

practice of the audit company) that the audit company and the audit

company’s employees complied with the requirements of this

Subdivision.

Note: A defendant bears an evidential burden in relation to the matters in

this subsection, see subsection 13.3(3) of the Criminal Code.

Contraventions by directors of audit company

(5) A person (the defendant) contravenes this subsection if:

(a) an audit company engages in audit activity at a particular

time; and

(b) a relevant item of the table in subsection 324CH(1) applies at

that time to a person or entity covered by subsection (9) of

this section; and

(c) the defendant is a director of the audit company at that time;

and

(d) the defendant is or becomes aware of the circumstances

referred to in paragraphs (a) and (b); and

(e) the defendant does not, as soon as possible after the

defendant becomes aware of those circumstances, take all

reasonable steps to ensure that the audit company does not

continue to engage in audit activity in those circumstances.

Director of audit company to notify ASIC

(5A) A person (the defendant) contravenes this subsection if:

(a) an audit company is the auditor of an audited body; and

(b) a relevant item of the table in subsection 324CH(1) applies to

a person or entity covered by subsection (9) of this section

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2M Financial reports and audit

Part 2M.4 Appointment and removal of auditors

Division 3 Auditor independence

Section 324CG

134 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

while the audit company is the auditor of the audited body;

and

(c) the defendant is a director of the audit company at a time

when the circumstances referred to in paragraph (b) exist;

and

(d) on a particular day (the start day), the defendant becomes

aware of the circumstances referred to in paragraphs (a) and

(b); and

(e) at the end of the period of 7 days from the start day:

(i) the circumstances referred to in paragraph (b) remain in

existence; and

(ii) ASIC has not been informed in writing of those

circumstances by the defendant, by another director of

the company or by the audit company.

Note: If the audited body is a public company or a registered scheme and the

notice under this subsection is not followed up by a notice under

subsection 327B(2C) (public company) or 331AAA(2C) (registered

scheme) within the period of 21 days (or a longer period that has been

approved by ASIC) from the day the notice under this subsection is

given, the audit appointment will be terminated at the end of that

period.

(5B) A person is not excused from informing ASIC under

subsection (5A) that the circumstances referred to in

paragraph (5A)(b) exist on the ground that the information might

tend to incriminate the person or expose the person to a penalty.

(5C) However, if the person is a natural person:

(a) the information; and

(b) the giving of the information;

are not admissible in evidence against the person in a criminal

proceeding, or any other proceeding for the recovery of a penalty,

other than proceedings for an offence based on the information

given being false or misleading.

(5D) If ASIC is given a notice under paragraph (5A)(e), ASIC must, as

soon as practicable after the notice is received, give a copy of the

notice to the audited body.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Financial reports and audit Chapter 2M

Appointment and removal of auditors Part 2M.4

Auditor independence Division 3

Section 324CG

Corporations Act 2001 135

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Strict liability contravention of specific independence requirements

by director of audit company

(6) A person (the defendant) contravenes this subsection if:

(a) an audit company engages in audit activity at a particular

time; and

(b) a relevant item of the table in subsection 324CH(1) applies at

that time to a person or entity covered by subsection (9) of

this section; and

(c) the defendant is a director of the audit company at that time.

(7) For the purposes of an offence based on subsection (6), strict

liability applies to the physical elements of the offence specified in

paragraphs (6)(a) and (b).

Note 1: For strict liability, see section 6.1 of the Criminal Code.

Note 2: Subsection (8) provides a defence.

(8) A person does not commit an offence because of a contravention of

subsection (6) in relation to audit activity engaged in by an audit

company at a particular time if the person has reasonable grounds

to believe that the audit company had in place at that time a quality

control system that provided reasonable assurance (taking into

account the size and nature of the audit practice of the audit

company) that the audit company and its employees complied with

the requirements of this Subdivision.

Note: A defendant bears an evidential burden in relation to the matters in

this subsection, see subsection 13.3(3) of the Criminal Code.

People and entities covered

(9) The following table sets out:

(a) the persons and entities covered by this subsection in relation

to audit activity engaged in by an audit company; and

(b) the items of the table in subsection 324CH(1) that are the

relevant items for each of those persons and entities:

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2M Financial reports and audit

Part 2M.4 Appointment and removal of auditors

Division 3 Auditor independence

Section 324CG

136 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Audit company

Item For this person or entity... the relevant items

of the table in

subsection 324CH(

1) are...

1 the audit company 4

7

10 to 19

2 a service company or trust

acting for, or on behalf of, the

audit company, or another

entity performing a similar

function

4

7

10 to 19

3 a director or senior manager of

the audit company

1 to 7

9

15

4 a professional member of the

audit team conducting the audit

of the audited body

1 to 6

8 to 19

5 an immediate family member of

a professional member of the

audit team conducting the audit

of the audited body

1 and 2

10 to 19

6 a person who:

(a) is a non-audit services

provider; and

(b) does not satisfy the

maximum hours test in

subsection (10)

10 to 12

7 an immediate family member of

a person who:

(a) is a non-audit services

provider; and

(b) does not satisfy the

maximum hours test in

10 to 12

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Financial reports and audit Chapter 2M

Appointment and removal of auditors Part 2M.4

Auditor independence Division 3

Section 324CG

Corporations Act 2001 137

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Audit company

Item For this person or entity... the relevant items

of the table in

subsection 324CH(

1) are...

subsection (10)

8 an entity that the audit company

(or a service company or trust

acting for, or on behalf of, the

audit company, or another

entity performing a similar

function) controls

15

9 a body corporate in which the

audit company (or a service

company or trust acting for, or

on behalf of, the audit

company, or another entity

performing a similar function)

has a substantial holding

15

10 an entity that an officer of the

audit company controls or a

body corporate in which an

officer of the audit company

has a substantial holding

16

11 a person who:

(a) is a former officer of the

audit company; and

(b) does not satisfy the

independence test in

subsection (11)

1 and 2

12 a person who:

(a) is a former professional

employee of the audit

company; and

(b) does not satisfy the

independence test in

subsection (11)

1 and 2

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2M Financial reports and audit

Part 2M.4 Appointment and removal of auditors

Division 3 Auditor independence

Section 324CG

138 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Maximum hours test

(10) A non-audit services provider satisfies the maximum hours test in

this subsection if:

(a) the number of hours for which the person provides services

(other than services related to the conduct of an audit) to the

audited body on behalf of the auditor during the period to

which the audit relates does not exceed 10 hours; and

(b) the number of hours for which the person provided services

(other than services related to the conduct of an audit) to the

audited body on behalf of the auditor during the 12 months

immediately before the beginning of the period to which the

audit relates does not exceed 10 hours.

In a prosecution for an offence based on subsection (1), (2), (5) or

(6), the prosecution must prove that the non-audit services provider

did not satisfy the maximum hours test in this subsection.

Independence test

(11) A person satisfies the independence test in this subsection in

relation to an audit company if the person:

(a) does not influence the operations or financial policies of the

accounting and audit practice conducted by the audit

company; and

(b) does not participate, or appear to participate, in the business

or professional activities of the accounting and audit practice

conducted by the audit company; and

(c) does not have any rights against the audit company in

relation to the accounting and audit practice conducted by the

audit company in relation to the termination of the person’s

former position as an officer of the audit company; and

(d) has no financial arrangements with the audit company in

relation to the accounting and audit practice conducted by the

audit company, other than:

(i) an arrangement providing for regular payments of a

fixed pre-determined dollar amount which is not

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Financial reports and audit Chapter 2M

Appointment and removal of auditors Part 2M.4

Auditor independence Division 3

Section 324CH

Corporations Act 2001 139

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

dependent, directly or indirectly, on the revenues,

profits or earnings of the audit company; or

(ii) an arrangement providing for regular payments of a

dollar amount where the method of calculating the

dollar amount is fixed and is not dependent, directly or

indirectly, on the revenues, profits or earnings of the

audit company; and

(e) without limiting paragraph (d), has no financial arrangement

with the audit company to receive a commission or similar

payment in relation to business generated by the person for

the accounting and audit practice conducted by the audit

company.

In a prosecution for an offence based on subsection (1), (2), (5) or

(6), the prosecution must prove that the person did not satisfy the

independence test in this subsection in relation to the audit

company.

(12) In applying subsection (11), disregard any rights that the person

has against the audit company by way of an indemnity for, or

contribution in relation to, liabilities incurred by the person when

the person was an officer or employee of the audit company.

324CH Relevant relationships

Table of relevant relationships

(1) The following table lists the relationships between:

(a) a person or a firm; and

(b) the audited body for an audit;

that are relevant for the purposes of sections 324CE, 324CF and

324CG:

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2M Financial reports and audit

Part 2M.4 Appointment and removal of auditors

Division 3 Auditor independence

Section 324CH

140 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Relevant relationships

Item This item applies to a person (or, if applicable, to a firm) at a

particular time if at that time the person (or firm)...

1 is an officer of the audited body

This item does not apply if the audited body is a small

proprietary company for the relevant financial year.

2 is an audit-critical employee of the audited body

This item does not apply if the audited body is a small

proprietary company for the relevant financial year.

3 is a partner of:

(a) an officer of the audited body; or

(b) an audit-critical employee of the audited body

This item does not apply if the audited body is a small

proprietary company for the relevant financial year.

4 is an employer of:

(a) an officer of the audited body; or

(b) an audit-critical employee of the audited body

This item does not apply if the audited body is a small

proprietary company for the relevant financial year.

5 is an employee of:

(a) an officer of the audited body; or

(b) an audit-critical employee of the audited body

This item does not apply if the audited body is a small

proprietary company for the relevant financial year.

6 is a partner or employee of an employee of:

(a) an officer of the company; or

(b) an audit-critical employee of the company

This item does not apply if the audited body is a small

proprietary company for the relevant financial year.

7 provides remuneration to:

(a) an officer of the audited body; or

(b) an audit-critical employee of the audited body;

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Financial reports and audit Chapter 2M

Appointment and removal of auditors Part 2M.4

Auditor independence Division 3

Section 324CH

Corporations Act 2001 141

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Relevant relationships

Item This item applies to a person (or, if applicable, to a firm) at a

particular time if at that time the person (or firm)...

for acting as a consultant to the person

This item does not apply if the audited body is a small

proprietary company for the relevant financial year.

8 was an officer of the audited body at any time during:

(a) the period to which the audit relates; or

(b) the 12 months immediately preceding the beginning of the

period to which the audit relates; or

(c) the period during which the audit is being conducted or the

audit report is being prepared

This item does not apply if the audited body is a small

proprietary company for the relevant financial year.

9 was an audit-critical employee of the audited body at any time

during:

(a) the period to which the audit relates; or

(b) the 12 months immediately preceding the beginning of the

period to which the audit relates; or

(c) the period during which the audit is being conducted or the

audit report is being prepared

This item does not apply if the audited body is a small

proprietary company for the relevant financial year.

10 has an asset that is an investment in the audited body

11 has an asset that is a beneficial interest in an investment in the

audited body and has control over that asset

12 has an asset that is a beneficial interest in an investment in the

audited body that is a material interest

13 has an asset that is a material investment in an entity that has a

controlling interest in the audited body

14 has an asset that is a material beneficial interest in an investment

in an entity that has a controlling interest in the audited body

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2M Financial reports and audit

Part 2M.4 Appointment and removal of auditors

Division 3 Auditor independence

Section 324CH

142 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Relevant relationships

Item This item applies to a person (or, if applicable, to a firm) at a

particular time if at that time the person (or firm)...

15 owes an amount to:

(a) the audited body; or

(b) a related body corporate; or

(c) an entity that the audited body controls;

unless the debt is disregarded under subsection (5), (5A) or (5B)

16 is owed an amount by:

(a) the audited body; or

(b) a related body corporate; or

(c) an entity that the audited body controls;

under a loan that is not disregarded under subsection (6) or (6A)

17 is liable under a guarantee of a loan made to:

(a) the audited body; or

(b) a related body corporate; or

(c) an entity that the audited body controls

19 is entitled to the benefit of a guarantee given by:

(a) the audited body; or

(b) a related body corporate; or

(c) an entity that the audited body controls

in relation to a loan unless the guarantee is disregarded under

subsection (8)

Applying table if audited body is registered scheme

(2) If the audited body is a registered scheme, apply the table in

subsection (1) as if:

(a) references to the audited body in items 1 to 9, and items 15 to

19, in the table were references to the responsible entity for

the registered scheme; and

(b) references to an interest in the audited body in items 10 to 12

in the table were references to an interest in either:

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Financial reports and audit Chapter 2M

Appointment and removal of auditors Part 2M.4

Auditor independence Division 3

Section 324CH

Corporations Act 2001 143

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(i) the registered scheme; or

(ii) the responsible entity for the registered scheme; and

(c) references to an investment in an entity that has a controlling

interest in the audited body in items 13 and 14 of the table

were references to an investment in an entity that has a

controlling interest in the responsible entity for the registered

scheme.

Applying table if audited body is listed entity (other than registered

scheme)

(3) If the audited body is a listed entity (other than a registered

scheme), apply the table in subsection (1) as if references in the

table to the audited body included references to an associated entity

of the audited body.

Note: See section 50AAA for the definition of associated entity.

Firm assets

(4) For the purpose of applying items 10 to 14 in the table in

subsection (1) to an audit firm, the firm is taken to have a particular

asset if the asset is one of the firm’s partnership assets.

Housing loan exception

(5) For the purposes of item 15 of the table in subsection (1), disregard

a debt owed by an individual to a body corporate or entity if:

(a) the body corporate or entity is:

(i) an Australian ADI; or

(ii) a body corporate registered under section 21 of the Life

Insurance Act 1995; and

(b) the debt arose because of a loan that the body corporate or

entity made to the person in the ordinary course of its

ordinary business; and

(c) the person used the amount of the loan to pay the whole or

part of the purchase price of premises that the person uses as

their principal place of residence.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2M Financial reports and audit

Part 2M.4 Appointment and removal of auditors

Division 3 Auditor independence

Section 324CH

144 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Goods and services exception

(5A) For the purposes of item 15 of the table in subsection (1), disregard

a debt owed by a person or firm to a body corporate or entity if:

(a) the debt arises from the acquisition of goods or services

from:

(i) the audited body; or

(ii) an entity that the audited body controls; or

(iii) a related body corporate; and

(b) the acquisition of goods and services was on the terms and

conditions that would normally apply to goods or services

acquired from the body, entity or related body corporate; and

(c) the debt is owed on the terms and conditions that would

normally apply to a debt owing to the body, entity or related

body corporate; and

(d) the goods or services will be used by the person or firm:

(i) for the personal use of the person or firm; or

(ii) in the ordinary course of business of the person or firm.

Ordinary commercial loan exception

(5B) For the purposes of item 15 of the table in subsection (1), disregard

a debt owed under a loan that:

(a) is made or given in the ordinary course of business of:

(i) the audited body; or

(ii) the related body corporate; or

(iii) the controlled entity; and

(b) is made or given on the terms and conditions that would

normally apply to a loan made or given by the audited body,

the related body corporate or the controlled entity.

Loans by immediate family members in ordinary business dealing

with client

(6) For the purposes of item 16 of the table in subsection (1), disregard

a debt owed to a person by a body corporate or entity if:

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Financial reports and audit Chapter 2M

Appointment and removal of auditors Part 2M.4

Auditor independence Division 3

Section 324CH

Corporations Act 2001 145

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(a) the item applies to the person because the person is an

immediate family member of:

(i) a professional member of the audit team conducting the

audit of the audited body; or

(ii) a non-audit services provider; and

(b) the debt is incurred in the ordinary course of business of the

body corporate or entity.

(6A) For the purposes of item 16 in the table in subsection (1), disregard

an amount owed under a loan to a person or firm by the audited

body, a related body corporate or an entity that the audited body

controls if:

(a) the body, body corporate or entity is an Australian ADI; and

(b) the amount is deposited in a basic deposit product (within the

meaning of section 761A) provided by the body, body

corporate or entity; and

(c) the amount was deposited, in the ordinary course of business

of the audited body, body corporate or entity, on the terms

and conditions that would normally apply to a basic deposit

product provided by the body, body corporate or entity.

Ordinary commercial guarantee exception

(8) For the purposes of item 19 of the table in subsection (1), disregard

any guarantee that:

(a) is made or given in the ordinary course of the business of:

(i) the audited body; or

(ii) the related body corporate; or

(iii) the controlled entity; and

(b) is made or given on the terms and conditions that would

normally apply to a guarantee made or given by the audited

body, the related body corporate or the controlled entity.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2M Financial reports and audit

Part 2M.4 Appointment and removal of auditors

Division 3 Auditor independence

Section 324CI

146 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Future debts and liabilities

(8A) In this section:

(a) a reference to a debt or amount that is owed by one entity to

another entity includes a reference to a debt or amount that

will (or may) be owed by the first entity to the other entity

under an existing agreement between the entities; and

(b) a reference to a liability under a guarantee of a loan includes

a reference to a liability that will arise under the guarantee if

the loan is not repaid.

Relevant financial year

(9) In this section:

relevant financial year, in relation to audit activities undertaken in

relation to an audit or review of a financial report for a financial

year or an audit or review of a financial report for a half-year in a

financial year, means the financial year immediately before that

financial year.

324CI Special rule for retiring partners of audit firms and retiring

directors of authorised audit companies

A person contravenes this section if:

(a) the person ceases to be:

(i) a member of an audit firm; or

(ii) a director of an audit company;

at a particular time (the departure time); and

(b) at any time before the departure time, the audit firm or audit

company has engaged in an audit of an audited body; and

(c) the person was a professional member of the audit team for

the audit; and

(d) within the period of 2 years starting on the date the report

under section 308 or 309 was made on the latest audit to

which paragraphs (b) and (c) apply, the person becomes, or

continues to be, an officer of the audited body; and

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Financial reports and audit Chapter 2M

Appointment and removal of auditors Part 2M.4

Auditor independence Division 3

Section 324CJ

Corporations Act 2001 147

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(e) the audited body is not a small proprietary company for the

most recently ended financial year.

If the audited body is a listed entity (other than a registered

scheme), apply paragraph (d) as if references in that paragraph to

the audited body included references to a related body corporate of

the audited body.

324CJ Special rule for retiring professional member of audit

company

A person contravenes this section if:

(a) the person who is not a director of an audit company ceases

to be a professional employee of the audit company at a

particular time (the departure time); and

(b) at any time before the departure time, the audit company has

engaged in an audit of an audited body; and

(c) the person was a lead auditor or review auditor for the audit;

and

(d) within the period of 2 years starting on the date the report

under section 308 or 309 was made on the latest audit to

which paragraphs (b) and (c) apply, the person becomes, or

continues to be, an officer of the audited body; and

(e) the audited body is not a small proprietary company for the

most recently ended financial year.

If the audited body is a listed entity (other than a registered

scheme), apply paragraph (d) as if references in that paragraph to

the audited body included references to a related body corporate of

the audited body.

324CK Multiple former audit firm partners or audit company

directors

A person contravenes this section if:

(a) an audit firm, or audit company, is an auditor of an audited

body for a financial year; and

(b) the person has at any time been a member of the audit firm or

a director of the audit company; and

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2M Financial reports and audit

Part 2M.4 Appointment and removal of auditors

Division 3 Auditor independence

Section 324CL

148 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(c) the person becomes an officer of the audited body within a

period of 5 years after the person ceased (or last ceased) to be

a member of the audit firm or a director of the audit company

(as the case may be); and

(d) at the time when paragraph (c) is satisfied another person

who is or who also has at any time been a member of the

audit firm, or a director of the audit company, at a time when

the audit firm, or audit company, undertook an audit of the

audited body is also an officer of the audited body; and

(e) the audited body is not a small proprietary company for the

most recently ended financial year.

If the audited body is a listed entity (other than a registered

scheme), apply paragraphs (c) and (d) as if references in those

paragraphs to the audited body included references to a related

body corporate of the audited body.

Subdivision C—Common provisions

324CL People who are regarded as officers of a company for the

purposes of this Division

(1) For the purposes of this Division, a person is taken to be an officer

of a company if:

(a) the person is an officer of:

(i) a related body corporate; or

(ii) an entity that the company controls; or

(b) the person has, at any time within the immediately preceding

period of 12 months, been an officer or promoter of:

(i) the company; or

(ii) a related body corporate; or

(iii) an entity that the company controlled at that time.

(2) Paragraph (b) does not apply if ASIC directs that it does not apply

in relation to the person in relation to the company. ASIC may give

the direction only if ASIC thinks that it is appropriate to do so in

the circumstances of the case.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Financial reports and audit Chapter 2M

Appointment and removal of auditors Part 2M.4

Auditor independence Division 3

Section 324CL

Corporations Act 2001 149

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(3) For the purposes of this Division, a person is not taken to be an

officer of a company by reason only of being, or having been, the

liquidator of:

(a) the company; or

(b) a related body corporate; or

(c) an entity that the company controls or has controlled.

(4) For the purposes of this Division, a person is not taken to be an

officer of a company merely because of one or more of the

following:

(a) having been appointed as auditor of:

(i) the company; or

(ii) a related body corporate; or

(iii) an entity that the company controls or has controlled;

(b) having been appointed, for any purpose relating to taxation,

as public officer of:

(i) a body corporate; or

(ii) an unincorporated body; or

(iii) a trust estate;

(c) being or having been authorised to accept service of process

or notices on behalf of:

(i) the company; or

(ii) a related body corporate; or

(iii) an entity that the company controls or has controlled.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2M Financial reports and audit

Part 2M.4 Appointment and removal of auditors

Division 4 Deliberately disqualifying auditor

Section 324CM

150 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Division 4—Deliberately disqualifying auditor

324CM Deliberately disqualifying auditor

Individual auditor

(1) An individual contravenes this subsection if:

(a) the individual is appointed auditor of a company or registered

scheme; and

(b) while the appointment continues, the individual brings about

a state of affairs; and

(c) the individual cannot, while that state of affairs continues, act

as auditor of the company or scheme without contravening

Division 2 or 3.

Audit firm

(2) A member of a firm contravenes this subsection if:

(a) the firm is appointed auditor of a company or a registered

scheme; and

(b) while the appointment continues, the member brings about a

state of affairs; and

(c) the firm cannot, while that state of affairs continues, act as

auditor of the company or scheme without a person

contravening Division 2 or 3.

Audit company

(3) A person who is:

(a) a member of a company; or

(b) a director of a company; or

(c) a lead auditor in relation to an audit conducted by a

company;

contravenes this subsection if:

(d) the company is appointed auditor of a company or a

registered scheme; and

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Financial reports and audit Chapter 2M

Appointment and removal of auditors Part 2M.4

Deliberately disqualifying auditor Division 4

Section 324CM

Corporations Act 2001 151

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(e) while the appointment continues, the person brings about a

state of affairs; and

(f) the company cannot, while that state of affairs continues, act

as auditor of the company or scheme without contravening

Division 2 or 3.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2M Financial reports and audit

Part 2M.4 Appointment and removal of auditors

Division 5 Auditor rotation for listed companies

Section 324DA

152 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Division 5—Auditor rotation for listed companies

324DA Limited term for eligibility to play significant role in audit of

a listed company or listed registered scheme

(1) If an individual plays a significant role in the audit of a listed

company or listed registered scheme for 5 successive financial

years (the extended audit involvement period), the individual is

not eligible to play a significant role in the audit of the company or

the scheme for a later financial year (the subsequent financial

year) unless:

(a) the individual has not played a significant role in the audit of

the company or the scheme for at least 2 successive financial

years (the intervening financial years); and

(b) the intervening financial years:

(i) commence after the end of the extended audit

involvement period; and

(ii) end before the beginning of the subsequent financial

year.

Note: Play a significant role in an audit is defined in section 9.

(2) An individual is not eligible to play a significant role in the audit of

a listed company or listed registered scheme for a financial year if,

were the individual to do so, the individual would play a significant

role in the audit of the company or scheme for more than 5 out of 7

successive financial years.

(3) For the purposes of subsection (2), disregard an individual’s

playing of a significant role in the audit of a company or scheme

for a financial year if:

(a) either:

(i) the directors of the company or scheme grant an

approval under section 324DAA in relation to the

individual; or

(ii) ASIC makes a declaration under paragraph 342A(1)(a)

in relation to the individual; and

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Financial reports and audit Chapter 2M

Appointment and removal of auditors Part 2M.4

Auditor rotation for listed companies Division 5

Section 324DAA

Corporations Act 2001 153

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(b) because of the approval or the declaration, subsection (1) of

this section does not operate to make the individual not

eligible to play a significant role in the audit of the company

or scheme for that financial year.

324DAA Directors may extend eligibility term

(1) Subject to section 324DAB, the directors of a listed company, or of

a listed registered scheme, may, by resolution, grant an approval

for an individual to play a significant role in the audit of the

company or scheme for not more than 2 successive financial years

in addition to the 5 successive financial years mentioned in

subsection 324DA(1).

(2) The approval must be granted before the end of those 5 successive

financial years.

(3) If the directors grant the approval, subsection 324DA(1) applies to

the individual, in relation to the audit of the company or scheme, as

if the references in that subsection to 5 successive financial years

were references to:

(a) if the approval is for one additional successive financial

year—6 successive financial years; or

(b) if the approval is for an additional 2 successive financial

years—7 successive financial years.

(4) If the directors grant the approval for one successive financial year,

the directors may, by resolution before the end of that year, grant

an approval for an additional successive year.

(5) If the directors grant the approval for the additional successive

year, subsection 324DA(1) applies to the individual, in relation to

the audit of the company or scheme, as if the references in that

subsection to 5 successive financial years were references to 7

successive financial years.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2M Financial reports and audit

Part 2M.4 Appointment and removal of auditors

Division 5 Auditor rotation for listed companies

Section 324DAB

154 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

324DAB Requirements for directors to approve extension of

eligibility term

Requirements if company or scheme has audit committee

(1) If a listed company, or the responsible entity of a listed registered

scheme, has an audit committee:

(a) an approval under section 324DAA must not be granted

unless it is in accordance with a recommendation provided

by the audit committee; and

(b) the resolution granting the approval must set out the reasons

why the audit committee is satisfied as mentioned in

paragraph (2)(d) of this section.

Note: Directors are not required to grant an approval merely because the

audit committee has recommended that an approval be granted.

(2) An approval is taken to be made in accordance with a

recommendation provided by the audit committee only if:

(a) the approval is consistent with the audit committee’s

recommendation; and

(b) the recommendation is endorsed by a resolution passed by

the members of the audit committee; and

(c) the recommendation is in writing signed by a member of the

audit committee on behalf of the audit committee and given

to the directors of the company or scheme; and

(d) the recommendation states that the audit committee is

satisfied that the approval:

(i) is consistent with maintaining the quality of the audit

provided to the company or scheme; and

(ii) would not give rise to a conflict of interest situation (as

defined in section 324CD);

and sets out the reasons why the committee is so satisfied.

Requirements if company or scheme does not have audit committee

(3) If a listed company, or the responsible entity of a listed registered

scheme, does not have an audit committee:

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Financial reports and audit Chapter 2M

Appointment and removal of auditors Part 2M.4

Auditor rotation for listed companies Division 5

Section 324DAC

Corporations Act 2001 155

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(a) an approval under section 324DAA must not be granted

unless the directors of the company or scheme are satisfied

that the approval:

(i) is consistent with maintaining the quality of the audit

provided to the company or scheme; and

(ii) would not give rise to a conflict of interest situation (as

defined in section 324CD); and

(b) the resolution granting the approval must set out the reasons

why the directors are so satisfied.

Auditor must have agreed to extension

(4) The directors of a listed company, or of a listed registered scheme,

must not grant an approval under section 324DAA unless:

(a) if the individual to whom the approval relates does not act on

behalf of an audit firm or company—the individual agrees, in

writing, to the approval being granted; or

(b) if the individual to whom the approval relates acts on behalf

of an audit firm or company—the audit firm or company on

whose behalf the individual acts agrees, in writing, to the

approval being granted.

324DAC Notifications about approval to extend eligibility term

If the directors of a listed company, or of a listed registered

scheme, grant an approval under section 324DAA, the directors

must, within 14 days of granting the approval:

(a) lodge a copy of the resolution granting the approval with

ASIC; and

(b) give a copy of the resolution to:

(i) if the individual to whom the approval relates does not

act on behalf of an audit firm or company—the

individual; and

(ii) if the individual to whom the approval relates acts on

behalf of an audit firm or company—the audit firm or

company on whose behalf the individual acts.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2M Financial reports and audit

Part 2M.4 Appointment and removal of auditors

Division 5 Auditor rotation for listed companies

Section 324DAD

156 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Note: Details of the approval, and the reasons for the approval, must be

included in the directors’ report under section 300.

324DAD Approval ineffective unless it complies with requirements

A purported grant of approval under section 324DAA is ineffective

unless the requirements of sections 324DAA, 324DAB and

324DAC are complied with in relation to the approval.

324DB Individual’s rotation obligation

An individual contravenes this section if the individual:

(a) plays a significant role in the audit of a listed company or

listed registered scheme for a financial year; and

(b) is not eligible to play that role.

324DC Audit firm’s rotation obligation

Contraventions by members of audit firm

(1) A person (the defendant) contravenes this subsection if:

(a) an audit firm consents to act as a listed company’s or listed

registered scheme’s auditor for a financial year; and

(b) an individual acts, on behalf of the firm, as a lead or review

auditor in relation to the audit of the company’s or scheme’s

financial report for that financial year; and

(c) the individual is not eligible to play a significant role in the

audit of the company or scheme for that financial year; and

(d) the defendant is a member of the firm; and

(e) the defendant is not the individual and is or becomes aware

that the individual is not eligible to play that role; and

(f) the defendant fails to take the necessary steps, as soon as

possible after the defendant becomes aware that the

individual is not eligible to play that role, either:

(i) to ensure that the audit firm resigns as auditor of the

company or scheme; or

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Financial reports and audit Chapter 2M

Appointment and removal of auditors Part 2M.4

Auditor rotation for listed companies Division 5

Section 324DC

Corporations Act 2001 157

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(ii) to ensure that the individual ceases to act, on behalf of

the audit firm, as a lead or review auditor in relation to

the audit of the company or scheme for that financial

year.

(2) A person (the defendant) contravenes this subsection if:

(a) an audit firm consents to act as a listed company’s or listed

registered scheme’s auditor for a financial year; and

(b) an individual acts, on behalf of the firm, as a lead or review

auditor in relation to the audit of the company’s or scheme’s

financial report for that financial year; and

(c) the individual is not eligible to play a significant role in the

audit of the company or scheme for that financial year:

(i) because of section 324DAD; or

(ii) for any other reason; and

(d) the defendant is a member of the firm.

(3) For the purposes of an offence based on subsection (2), strict

liability applies to the physical elements of the offence specified in

paragraphs (2)(a) and (b) and subparagraph (2)(c)(ii).

Note 1: For strict liability, see section 6.1 of the Criminal Code.

Note 2: Subsection (4) provides a defence.

(4) A person does not commit an offence because of a contravention of

subsection (2) in relation to an individual acting as lead or review

auditor on behalf of an audit firm at a particular time if the person

has reasonable grounds to believe that the audit firm had in place at

that time a quality control system that provided reasonable

assurance (taking into account the size and nature of the audit

practice of the audit firm) that the audit firm and its employees

complied with the requirements of this Division.

Note: A defendant bears an evidential burden in relation to the matters in

this subsection, see subsection 13.3(3) of the Criminal Code.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2M Financial reports and audit

Part 2M.4 Appointment and removal of auditors

Division 5 Auditor rotation for listed companies

Section 324DD

158 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

324DD Audit company’s rotation obligation

Contravention by audit company

(1) An audit company contravenes this subsection if:

(a) the audit company consents to act as a listed company’s or

listed registered scheme’s auditor for a financial year; and

(b) an individual acts, on behalf of the audit company, as a lead

or review auditor in relation to the audit of the company’s or

scheme’s financial report for that financial year; and

(c) the individual is not eligible to play a significant role in the

audit of the company or scheme for that financial year; and

(d) a director of the audit company (other than the individual) is

aware that the individual is not eligible to play that role; and

(e) the audit company fails to take the necessary steps, as soon as

possible after the director becomes aware that the individual

is not eligible to play that role, either:

(i) to resign as auditor of the company or scheme; or

(ii) to ensure that the individual ceases to act, on behalf of

the audit company, as a lead or review auditor in

relation to the audit of the company or scheme for that

financial year.

Contraventions by directors of audit company

(2) A person (the defendant) contravenes this subsection if:

(a) an audit company consents to act as a listed company’s or

listed registered scheme’s auditor for a financial year; and

(b) an individual acts, on behalf of the audit company, as a lead

or review auditor in relation to the audit of the company’s or

scheme’s financial report for that financial year; and

(c) the individual is not eligible to play a significant role in the

audit of the company or scheme for that financial year; and

(d) the defendant is a director of the audit company; and

(e) the defendant is not the individual and is or becomes aware

that the individual is not eligible to play that role; and

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Financial reports and audit Chapter 2M

Appointment and removal of auditors Part 2M.4

Auditor rotation for listed companies Division 5

Section 324DD

Corporations Act 2001 159

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(f) the defendant fails to take the necessary steps, as soon as

possible after the defendant becomes aware that the

individual is not eligible to play that role, either:

(i) to ensure that the audit company resigns as auditor of

the company or scheme; or

(ii) to ensure that the individual ceases to act, on behalf of

the audit company, as a lead or review auditor in

relation to the audit of the company or scheme for that

financial year.

(3) A person (the defendant) contravenes this subsection if:

(a) an audit company consents to act as a listed company’s or

listed registered scheme’s auditor for a financial year; and

(b) an individual acts, on behalf of the audit company, as a lead

or review auditor in relation to the audit of the company’s or

scheme’s financial report for that financial year; and

(c) the individual is not eligible to play a significant role in the

audit of the company or scheme for that financial year:

(i) because of section 324DAD; or

(ii) for any other reason; and

(d) the defendant is a director of the audit company.

(4) For the purposes of an offence based on subsection (3), strict

liability applies to the physical elements of the offence specified in

paragraphs (3)(a) and (b) and subparagraph (3)(c)(ii).

Note 1: For strict liability, see section 6.1 of the Criminal Code.

Note 2: Subsection (5) provides a defence.

(5) A person does not commit an offence because of a contravention of

subsection (3) in relation to an individual acting as lead or review

auditor on behalf of an audit company at a particular time if the

person has reasonable grounds to believe that the audit company

had in place at that time a quality control system that provided

reasonable assurance (taking into account the size and nature of the

audit practice of the audit company) that the audit company and its

employees complied with the requirements of this Division.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2M Financial reports and audit

Part 2M.4 Appointment and removal of auditors

Division 5 Auditor rotation for listed companies

Section 324DD

160 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Note: A defendant bears an evidential burden in relation to the matters in

this subsection, see subsection 13.3(3) of the Criminal Code.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Financial reports and audit Chapter 2M

Appointment and removal of auditors Part 2M.4

Appointment, removal and fees of auditors for companies Division 6

Section 325

Corporations Act 2001 161

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Division 6—Appointment, removal and fees of auditors for

companies

Subdivision A—Appointment of company auditors

325 Appointment of auditor by proprietary company

The directors of a proprietary company may appoint an auditor for

the company if an auditor has not been appointed by the company

in general meeting.

327A Public company auditor (initial appointment of auditor)

(1) The directors of a public company must appoint an auditor of the

company within 1 month after the day on which a company is

registered as a company unless the company at a general meeting

has appointed an auditor.

(1A) Subsection (1) does not apply in relation to a company if:

(a) the directors reasonably believe that subsection 301(3) will

apply to the company’s financial reports; or

(b) the company is a small company limited by guarantee.

(2) Subject to this Part, an auditor appointed under subsection (1)

holds office until the company’s first AGM.

(3) A director of a company must take all reasonable steps to comply

with, or to secure compliance with, subsection (1).

327B Public company auditor (annual appointments at AGMs to fill

vacancies)

(1) A public company must:

(a) appoint an auditor of the company at its first AGM; and

(b) appoint an auditor of the company to fill any vacancy in the

office of auditor at each subsequent AGM.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2M Financial reports and audit

Part 2M.4 Appointment and removal of auditors

Division 6 Appointment, removal and fees of auditors for companies

Section 327B

162 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(1A) Subsection (1) does not apply in relation to a company if:

(a) subsection 301(3) applies to the company’s financial reports;

or

(b) the company is a small company limited by guarantee.

(2) An auditor appointed under subsection (1) holds office until the

auditor:

(a) dies; or

(b) is removed, or resigns, from office in accordance with

section 329; or

(c) ceases to be capable of acting as auditor because of

Division 2 of this Part; or

(d) ceases to be auditor under subsection (2A), (2B) or (2C).

(2A) An individual auditor ceases to be auditor of a company under this

subsection if:

(a) on a particular day (the start day), the individual auditor:

(i) informs ASIC of a conflict of interest situation in

relation to the company under subsection 324CA(1A);

or

(ii) informs ASIC of particular circumstances in relation to

the company under subsection 324CE(1A); and

(b) the individual auditor does not give ASIC a notice, before the

notification day (see subsection (2D)), that that conflict of

interest situation has, or those circumstances have, ceased to

exist before the end of the period (the remedial period) of 21

days, or such longer period as ASIC approves in writing,

from the start day.

(2B) An audit firm ceases to be auditor of a company under this

subsection if:

(a) on a particular day (the start day), ASIC is:

(i) informed of a conflict of interest situation in relation to

the company under subsection 324CB(1A); or

(ii) informed of particular circumstances in relation to the

company under subsection 324CF(1A); and

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Financial reports and audit Chapter 2M

Appointment and removal of auditors Part 2M.4

Appointment, removal and fees of auditors for companies Division 6

Section 327B

Corporations Act 2001 163

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(b) ASIC has not been given a notice on behalf of the audit firm,

before the notification day (see subsection (2D)), that that

conflict of interest situation has, or those circumstances have,

ceased to exist before the end of the period (the remedial

period) of 21 days, or such longer period as ASIC approves

in writing, from the start day.

(2C) An audit company ceases to be auditor of a company under this

subsection if:

(a) on a particular day (the start day), ASIC is:

(i) informed of a conflict of interest situation in relation to

the company under subsection 324CB(1A) or

324CC(1A); or

(ii) informed of particular circumstances in relation to the

company under subsection 324CF(1A) or 324CG(1A)

or (5A); and

(b) ASIC has not been given a notice on behalf of the audit

company, before the notification day (see subsection (2D)),

that that conflict of interest situation has, or those

circumstances have, ceased to exist before the end of the

period (the remedial period) of 21 days, or such longer

period as ASIC approves in writing, from the start day.

(2D) The notification day is:

(a) the last day of the remedial period; or

(b) such later day as ASIC approves in writing (whether before

or after the remedial period ends).

(3) A director of a company must take all reasonable steps to comply

with, or to secure compliance with, subsection (1).

(4) If an audit firm ceases to be the auditor of a company under

subsection (2) at a particular time, each member of the firm who:

(a) is taken to have been appointed as an auditor of the company

under subsection 324AB(1) or 324AC(4); and

(b) is an auditor of the company immediately before that time;

ceases to be an auditor of the company at that time.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2M Financial reports and audit

Part 2M.4 Appointment and removal of auditors

Division 6 Appointment, removal and fees of auditors for companies

Section 327C

164 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

327C Public company auditor (appointment to fill casual vacancy)

(1) If:

(a) a vacancy occurs in the office of auditor of a public

company; and

(b) the vacancy is not caused by the removal of an auditor from

office; and

(c) there is no surviving or continuing auditor of the company;

the directors must, within 1 month after the vacancy occurs,

appoint an auditor to fill the vacancy unless the company at a

general meeting has appointed an auditor to fill the vacancy.

Note: Certain public companies are not required to appoint an auditor: see

subsections 327A(1A) and 327B(1A).

(2) An auditor appointed under subsection (1) holds office, subject to

this Part, until the company’s next AGM.

(3) A director of a public company must take all reasonable steps to

comply with, or to secure compliance with, subsection (1).

327D Appointment to replace auditor removed from office

(1) This section deals with the situation in which an auditor of a

company is removed from office at a general meeting in

accordance with section 329.

(2) The company may at that general meeting (without adjournment),

by special resolution immediately appoint an individual, firm or

company as auditor of the company if a copy of the notice of

nomination has been sent to the individual, firm or company under

subsection 328B(3).

(3) If a special resolution under subsection (2):

(a) is not passed; or

(b) could not be passed merely because a copy of the notice of

nomination has not been sent to an individual, firm or

company under subsection 328B(3);

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Financial reports and audit Chapter 2M

Appointment and removal of auditors Part 2M.4

Appointment, removal and fees of auditors for companies Division 6

Section 327E

Corporations Act 2001 165

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

the general meeting may be adjourned and the company may, at the

adjourned meeting, by ordinary resolution appoint an individual,

firm or company as auditor of the company if:

(c) a member of the company gives the company notice of the

nomination of the individual, firm or company for

appointment as auditor; and

(d) the company receives the notice at least 14 clear days before

the day to which the meeting is adjourned.

(4) The day to which the meeting is adjourned must be:

(a) not earlier than 20 days after the day of the meeting; and

(b) not later than 30 days after the day of the meeting.

(5) Subject to this Part, an auditor appointed under subsection (2) or

(3) holds office until the company’s next AGM.

327E ASIC may appoint public company auditor if auditor removed

but not replaced

(1) This section deals with the situation in which a public company

fails to appoint an auditor under subsection 327D(2) or (3). The

failure is referred to as the auditor replacement failure.

(2) The company must give ASIC written notice of the auditor

replacement failure within the period of 7 days commencing on the

day of the auditor replacement failure (the notification period).

(3) If the company gives ASIC the notice required by subsection (2),

ASIC must appoint an auditor of the company as soon as

practicable after receiving the notice. This subsection has effect

subject to section 327G.

(4) If the company does not give ASIC the notice required by

subsection (2), ASIC may appoint an auditor of the company at any

time:

(a) after the end of the notification period; and

(b) before ASIC receives notice of the auditor replacement

failure from the company.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2M Financial reports and audit

Part 2M.4 Appointment and removal of auditors

Division 6 Appointment, removal and fees of auditors for companies

Section 327F

166 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

This subsection has effect subject to section 327G.

(5) If the company:

(a) does not give ASIC the notice required by subsection (2); and

(b) gives ASIC notice of the auditor replacement failure after the

end of the notification period;

ASIC must appoint an auditor of the company as soon as

practicable after receiving the notice. This subsection has effect

subject to section 327G.

(6) Subject to this Part, an auditor appointed under this section holds

office until the company’s next AGM.

327F ASIC’s general power to appoint public company auditor

(1) ASIC may appoint an auditor of a public company if:

(a) the company does not appoint an auditor when required by

this Act to do so; and

(b) a member of the company applies to ASIC in writing for the

appointment of an auditor under this section.

This subsection has effect subject to section 327G.

(2) An individual, firm or company appointed as auditor of a company

under subsection (1) holds office, subject to this Part, until the next

AGM of the company.

327G Restrictions on ASIC’s powers to appoint public company

auditor

(1) ASIC may appoint an individual, firm or company as auditor of a

company under section 327E or 327F only if the individual, firm or

company consents to being appointed.

(2) ASIC must not appoint an auditor of a company under

section 327E or 327F if:

(a) there is another auditor of the company (the continuing

auditor); and

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Financial reports and audit Chapter 2M

Appointment and removal of auditors Part 2M.4

Appointment, removal and fees of auditors for companies Division 6

Section 327H

Corporations Act 2001 167

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(b) ASIC is satisfied that the continuing auditor is able to carry

out the responsibilities of auditor alone; and

(c) the continuing auditor agrees to continue as auditor.

(3) ASIC must not appoint an auditor of a company under

section 327E or 327F if:

(a) the company does not give ASIC the notice required by

subsection 327E(2) before the end of the notification period;

and

(b) ASIC has already appointed an auditor of the company under

section 327E after the end of the notification period.

327H Effect on appointment of public company auditor of company

beginning to be controlled by a corporation

An auditor of a public company that begins to be controlled by a

corporation:

(a) must retire at the AGM of the company next held after the

company begins to be controlled by the corporation unless

the auditor vacates that office before then; and

(b) is, subject to this Part, eligible for re-appointment.

This section has effect notwithstanding subsection 327B(2).

327I Remaining auditors may act during vacancy

While a vacancy in the office of auditor of a company continues,

the surviving or continuing auditor or auditors (if any) may act as

auditors of the company.

328A Auditor’s consent to appointment

(1) A company, the directors of a company or the responsible entity of

a registered scheme must not appoint an individual, firm or

company as auditor of the company unless that individual, firm or

company:

(a) has consented, before the appointment, to act as auditor; and

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2M Financial reports and audit

Part 2M.4 Appointment and removal of auditors

Division 6 Appointment, removal and fees of auditors for companies

Section 328B

168 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(b) has not withdrawn that consent before the appointment is

made.

For the purposes of this section, a consent, or the withdrawal of a

consent, must be given by written notice to the company, the

directors or the responsible entity of the scheme.

(2) A notice under subsection (1) given by a firm must be signed by a

member of the firm who is a registered company auditor both:

(a) in the firm name; and

(b) in his or her own name.

(3) A notice under subsection (1) given by a company must be signed

by a director or senior manager of the company both:

(a) in the company’s name; and

(b) in his or her own name.

(4) If a company, the directors of a company or the responsible entity

of a registered scheme appoints an individual, firm or company as

auditor of a company in contravention of subsection (1):

(a) the purported appointment does not have any effect; and

(b) the company or responsible entity, and any officer of the

company or responsible entity who is in default, are each

guilty of an offence.

Note: An officer of a company, or of a responsible entity, is in default if the

officer is involved in the contravention of subsection (1) by the

company, the company’s directors or the entity (see section 83).

Section 79 defines involved.

328B Nomination of auditor

(1) Subject to this section, a company may appoint an individual, firm

or company as auditor of the company at its AGM only if a

member of the company gives the company written notice of the

nomination of the individual, firm or company for appointment as

auditor:

(a) before the meeting was convened; or

(b) not less than 21 days before the meeting.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Financial reports and audit Chapter 2M

Appointment and removal of auditors Part 2M.4

Appointment, removal and fees of auditors for companies Division 6

Section 329

Corporations Act 2001 169

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

This subsection does not apply if an auditor is removed from office

at the AGM.

(2) If a company purports to appoint an individual, firm or company as

auditor of the company in contravention of subsection (1):

(a) the purported appointment is of no effect; and

(b) the company and any officer of the company who is in

default are each guilty of an offence.

Note: An officer of a company is in default if the officer is involved in the

company’s contravention of subsection (1) (see section 83).

Section 79 defines involved.

(3) If a member gives a company notice of the nomination of an

individual, firm or company for appointment as auditor of the

company, the company must send a copy of the notice to:

(a) each individual, firm or company nominated; and

(b) each auditor of the company; and

(c) each person entitled to receive notice of general meetings of

the company.

This is so whether the appointment is to be made at a meeting or an

adjourned meeting referred to in section 327D or at an AGM.

(4) The copy of the notice of nomination must be sent:

(a) not less than 7 days before the meeting; or

(b) at the time notice of the meeting is given.

Subdivision B—Removal and resignation of company auditors

329 Removal and resignation of auditors

(1) An auditor of a company may be removed from office by

resolution of the company at a general meeting of which notice

under subsection (1A) has been given, but not otherwise.

(1A) Notice of intention to move the resolution must be given to the

company at least 2 months before the meeting is to be held.

However, if the company calls a meeting after the notice of

intention is given under this subsection, the meeting may pass the

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2M Financial reports and audit

Part 2M.4 Appointment and removal of auditors

Division 6 Appointment, removal and fees of auditors for companies

Section 329

170 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

resolution even though the meeting is held less than 2 months after

the notice of intention is given.

Note: Short notice of the meeting cannot be given for this resolution (see

subsection 249H(4)).

(2) Where notice under subsection (1A) of a resolution to remove an

auditor is received by a company, it must as soon as possible send

a copy of the notice to the auditor and lodge a copy of the notice.

(3) Within 7 days after receiving a copy of the notice, the auditor may

make representations in writing, not exceeding a reasonable length,

to the company and request that, before the meeting at which the

resolution is to be considered, a copy of the representations be sent

by the company at its expense to every member of the company to

whom notice of the meeting is sent.

(4) Unless ASIC on the application of the company otherwise orders,

the company must send a copy of the representations in accordance

with the auditor’s request, and the auditor may, without prejudice

to his or her right to be heard orally or, where a firm is the auditor,

to have a member of the firm heard orally on its behalf, require that

the representations be read out at the meeting.

(5) An auditor of a company may, by notice in writing given to the

company, resign as auditor of the company if:

(a) the auditor has, by notice in writing given to ASIC, applied

for consent to the resignation and stated the reasons for the

application and, at or about the same time as the notice was

given to ASIC, notified the company in writing of the

application to ASIC; and

(b) the consent of ASIC has been given.

(6) ASIC must, as soon as practicable after receiving a notice from an

auditor under subsection (5), notify the auditor and the company

whether it consents to the resignation of the auditor.

(7) A statement made by an auditor in an application to ASIC under

subsection (5) or in answer to an inquiry by ASIC relating to the

reasons for the application:

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Financial reports and audit Chapter 2M

Appointment and removal of auditors Part 2M.4

Appointment, removal and fees of auditors for companies Division 6

Section 329

Corporations Act 2001 171

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(a) is not admissible in evidence in any civil or criminal

proceedings against the auditor; and

(b) may not be made the ground of a prosecution, action or suit

against the auditor;

and a certificate by ASIC that the statement was made in the

application or in the answer to the inquiry by ASIC is conclusive

evidence that the statement was so made.

(8) Subject to subsection (9), the resignation of an auditor takes effect:

(a) on the day (if any) specified for the purpose in the notice of

resignation; or

(b) on the day on which ASIC gives its consent to the

resignation; or

(c) on the day (if any) fixed by ASIC for the purpose;

whichever last occurs.

(9) The resignation of an auditor of a proprietary company or a small

company limited by guarantee does not require the consent of

ASIC under subsection (5), and takes effect:

(a) on the day (if any) specified for the purpose in the notice of

resignation; or

(b) on the day on which the notice is received by the company;

whichever is the later.

(10) Where on the retirement or withdrawal from a firm of a member

the firm will no longer be capable, by reason of the provisions of

subparagraph 324BB(1)(b)(i) or (2)(b)(i) of acting as auditor of a

company, the member so retiring or withdrawing is (if not

disqualified from acting as auditor of the company) taken to be the

auditor of the company until he or she obtains the consent of ASIC

to his or her retirement or withdrawal.

(11) Within 14 days after:

(a) the removal from office of an auditor of a company; or

(b) the receipt of a notice of resignation from an auditor of a

company;

the company must:

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2M Financial reports and audit

Part 2M.4 Appointment and removal of auditors

Division 6 Appointment, removal and fees of auditors for companies

Section 330

172 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(c) lodge with ASIC a notice of the removal or resignation in the

prescribed form; and

(d) where there is a trustee for the holders of debentures of the

company—give to the trustee a copy of the notice lodged

with ASIC.

330 Effect of winding up on office of auditor

An auditor of a company ceases to hold office if:

(a) a special resolution is passed for the voluntary winding up of

the company; or

(b) in a case to which paragraph (a) does not apply—an order is

made by the Court for the winding up of the company.

Subdivision C—Company auditors’ fees and expenses

331 Fees and expenses of auditors

The reasonable fees and expenses of an auditor of a company are

payable by the company.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Financial reports and audit Chapter 2M

Appointment and removal of auditors Part 2M.4

Appointment, removal and fees of auditors for registered schemes Division 7

Section 331AAA

Corporations Act 2001 173

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Division 7—Appointment, removal and fees of auditors for

registered schemes

Subdivision A—Appointment of registered scheme auditors

331AAA Registered scheme auditor (initial appointment of auditor)

(1) The responsible entity of a registered scheme must appoint an

auditor of the registered scheme within 1 month after the day on

which the scheme is registered.

(2) An auditor appointed under subsection (1) holds office until the

auditor:

(a) dies; or

(b) is removed, or resigns, from office in accordance with

section 331AC; or

(c) ceases to be capable of acting as an auditor because of

Division 2 of this Part; or

(d) ceases to be auditor under subsection (2A), (2B) or (2C).

(2A) An individual auditor ceases to be auditor of a registered scheme

under this subsection if:

(a) on a particular day (the start day), the individual auditor:

(i) informs ASIC of a conflict of interest situation in

relation to the scheme under subsection 324CA(1A); or

(ii) informs ASIC of particular circumstances in relation to

the scheme under subsection 324CE(1A); and

(b) the individual auditor does not give ASIC a notice, before the

notification day (see subsection (2D)), that that conflict of

interest situation has, or those circumstances have, ceased to

exist before the end of the period (the remedial period) of 21

days, or such longer period as ASIC approves in writing,

from the start day.

(2B) An audit firm ceases to be auditor of a registered scheme under this

subsection if:

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2M Financial reports and audit

Part 2M.4 Appointment and removal of auditors

Division 7 Appointment, removal and fees of auditors for registered schemes

Section 331AAA

174 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(a) on a particular day (the start day), ASIC is:

(i) informed of a conflict of interest situation in relation to

the scheme under subsection 324CB(1A); or

(ii) informed of particular circumstances in relation to the

scheme under subsection 324CF(1A); and

(b) ASIC has not been given a notice on behalf of the audit firm,

before the notification day (see subsection (2D)), that that

conflict of interest situation has, or those circumstances have,

ceased to exist before the end of the period (the remedial

period) of 21 days, or such longer period as ASIC approves

in writing, from the start day.

(2C) An audit company ceases to be auditor of a registered scheme

under this subsection if:

(a) on a particular day (the start day), ASIC is:

(i) informed of a conflict of interest situation in relation to

the scheme under subsection 324CB(1A) or

324CC(1A); or

(ii) informed of particular circumstances in relation to the

scheme under subsection 324CF(1A) or 324CG(1A) or

(5A); and

(b) ASIC has not been given a notice on behalf of the audit

company, before the notification day (see subsection (2D)),

that that conflict of interest situation has, or those

circumstances have, ceased to exist before the end of the

period (the remedial period) of 21 days, or such longer

period as ASIC approves in writing, from the start day.

(2D) The notification day is:

(a) the last day of the remedial period; or

(b) such later day as ASIC approves in writing (whether before

or after the remedial period ends).

(3) A director of the responsible entity of a registered scheme must

take all reasonable steps to secure compliance with subsection (1).

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Financial reports and audit Chapter 2M

Appointment and removal of auditors Part 2M.4

Appointment, removal and fees of auditors for registered schemes Division 7

Section 331AAB

Corporations Act 2001 175

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(4) If an audit firm ceases to be the auditor of a registered scheme

under subsection (2) at a particular time, each member of the firm

who:

(a) is taken to have been appointed as an auditor of the scheme

under subsection 324AB(1) or 324AC(4); and

(b) is an auditor of the scheme immediately before that time;

ceases to be an auditor of the scheme at that time.

331AAB Registered scheme auditor (appointment to fill vacancy)

(1) If:

(a) a vacancy occurs in the office of auditor of a registered

scheme; and

(b) there is no surviving or continuing auditor of the scheme;

the responsible entity must, within 1 month after the vacancy

occurs, appoint an auditor to fill the vacancy.

(2) A director of the responsible entity of a registered scheme must

take all reasonable steps to secure compliance with subsection (1).

331AAC ASIC’s power to appoint registered scheme auditor

(1) ASIC may appoint an auditor of a registered scheme if:

(a) the responsible entity of the scheme does not appoint an

auditor when required by this Act to do so; and

(b) a member of the scheme applies to ASIC in writing for the

appointment of an auditor under this section.

(2) ASIC may only appoint an individual, firm or company as auditor

under subsection (1) if the individual, firm or company consents to

being appointed.

331AAD Remaining auditors may act during vacancy

While a vacancy in the office of auditor of a registered scheme

continues, the surviving or continuing auditor or auditors (if any)

may act as auditors of the company.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2M Financial reports and audit

Part 2M.4 Appointment and removal of auditors

Division 7 Appointment, removal and fees of auditors for registered schemes

Section 331AC

176 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Subdivision B—Removal and resignation of registered scheme

auditors

331AC Removal and resignation of auditors

(1) The responsible entity of a registered scheme may, with ASIC’s

consent, remove the auditor of the scheme from office.

(2) An auditor of a registered scheme may, by notice in writing given

to the responsible entity, resign as auditor of the scheme if:

(a) the auditor:

(i) has, by notice in writing given to ASIC, applied for

consent to the resignation and stated the reasons for the

application; and

(ii) has, at or about the same time as giving the notice to

ASIC, given the responsible entity notice in writing of

the application to ASIC; and

(b) ASIC has given its consent.

(3) As soon as practicable after ASIC receives a notice from an auditor

under subsection (2), ASIC must notify the auditor, and the

responsible entity of the registered scheme, whether it consents to

the resignation.

(4) A statement made by an auditor in an application to ASIC under

subsection (2) or in answer to an inquiry by ASIC relating to the

reasons for the application:

(a) is not admissible in evidence in any civil or criminal

proceedings against the auditor; and

(b) must not be made the ground of a prosecution, action or suit

against the auditor.

A certificate by the ASIC that the statement was made in the

application or in answer to the inquiry by ASIC is conclusive

evidence that the statement was so made.

(5) The resignation of an auditor takes effect:

(a) on the day (if any) specified for the purpose in the notice of

resignation; or

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Financial reports and audit Chapter 2M

Appointment and removal of auditors Part 2M.4

Appointment, removal and fees of auditors for registered schemes Division 7

Section 331AD

Corporations Act 2001 177

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(b) on the day on which ASIC gives its consent to the

resignation; or

(c) on the day (if any) fixed by ASIC for the purpose;

whichever occurs last.

(6) If, on the retirement or withdrawal of a member of a firm, the firm

will no longer be capable of acting as auditor of a registered

scheme because of subparagraph 324BB(1)(b)(i) or (2)(b)(i), the

member is (if not disqualified from acting as auditor of the

scheme) taken to be the auditor of the scheme until he or she

obtains the consent of ASIC to his or her retirement or withdrawal.

(7) Within 14 days after:

(a) the removal from office of an auditor of a registered scheme;

or

(b) the receipt of a notice of resignation from an auditor of a

registered scheme;

the responsible entity must lodge with ASIC a notice of the

removal or resignation in the prescribed form.

331AD Effect of winding up on office of auditor

An auditor of a registered scheme ceases to hold office if:

(a) the scheme’s constitution provides that the scheme is to be

wound up at a specified time, in specified circumstances or

on the happening of a specified event, and that time is

reached, those circumstances occur or that event occurs; or

(b) the members pass a resolution directing the responsible entity

to wind up the scheme; or

(c) the Court makes an order directing the responsible entity to

wind up the scheme; or

(d) the members pass a resolution to remove the responsible

entity but do not, at the same meeting, pass a resolution

choosing a company to be the new responsible entity that

consents to becoming the scheme’s responsible entity.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2M Financial reports and audit

Part 2M.4 Appointment and removal of auditors

Division 7 Appointment, removal and fees of auditors for registered schemes

Section 331AE

178 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Subdivision C—Fees and expenses of auditors

331AE Fees and expenses of auditors

The reasonable fees and expenses of an auditor of a registered

scheme are payable by the responsible entity.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Financial reports and audit Chapter 2M

Annual transparency reports for auditors Part 2M.4A

Section 332

Corporations Act 2001 179

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Part 2M.4A—Annual transparency reports for

auditors

332 Meaning of transparency reporting auditor and transparency

reporting year

(1) A transparency reporting auditor is:

(a) an individual auditor; or

(b) an audit firm; or

(c) an authorised audit company.

(2) A transparency reporting year is a period of 12 months starting on

1 July.

332A Transparency reporting auditors must publish annual

transparency reports

(1) This section applies if, during a transparency reporting year, a

transparency reporting auditor conducts audits, under Division 3 of

Part 2M.3, of 10 or more bodies of any of the following kinds:

(a) listed companies;

(b) listed registered schemes;

(c) ADIs (authorised deposit-taking institutions) within the

meaning of the Banking Act 1959;

(d) bodies mentioned in paragraph (c) or (e) of the definition of

body regulated by APRA in subsection 3(2) of the Australian

Prudential Regulation Authority Act 1998;

(e) bodies prescribed by the regulations for the purposes of this

paragraph.

Note: The 10 or more bodies do not all have to be of the same kind. This

section applies (for example) if, during the year, the transparency

reporting auditor conducts audits of 6 listed companies and 4 listed

registered schemes.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2M Financial reports and audit

Part 2M.4A Annual transparency reports for auditors

Section 332B

180 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(2) The auditor must publish an annual transparency report for the

transparency reporting year, containing the information required by

section 332B, on the auditor’s website within the period of 4

months after the end of the year (or that period as extended under

section 332C).

Note: Failure to comply with this subsection is an offence (see

subsection 1311(1)).

(3) The auditor must lodge a copy of the report with ASIC on or

before the day it is first published on the auditor’s website.

Note: Failure to comply with this subsection is an offence (see

subsection 1311(1)).

(4) An offence based on subsection (2) or (3) is an offence of strict

liability.

Note: For strict liability, see section 6.1 of the Criminal Code.

332B Content of annual transparency report

(1) Subject to subsection (2), an annual transparency report must

contain the information prescribed by the regulations.

(2) The report may omit information that would otherwise be included

under subsection (1) if the inclusion of the information is likely to

result in unreasonable prejudice to the transparency reporting

auditor. If material is omitted, the report must say so.

332C Extension of period for publication of annual transparency

report

(1) On an application made by a transparency reporting auditor in

accordance with subsection (3), ASIC may make an order

extending the period within which the auditor must publish an

annual transparency report.

(2) The order may be expressed to be subject to conditions.

(3) The application must be:

(a) in writing; and

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Financial reports and audit Chapter 2M

Annual transparency reports for auditors Part 2M.4A

Section 332D

Corporations Act 2001 181

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(b) lodged with ASIC before the end of the period within which

the auditor would otherwise be required to publish the report;

and

(c) if the auditor is an individual auditor—signed by the auditor;

and

(d) if the auditor is an audit firm—signed by a member of the

firm who is a registered company auditor both:

(i) in the firm name; and

(ii) in the member’s own name; and

(e) if the auditor is an audit company:

(i) authorised by a resolution of the directors; and

(ii) signed by a director.

(4) ASIC must give the auditor written notice of the making of the

order.

332D Exemption orders—applications by transparency reporting

auditors

(1) On an application made by a transparency reporting auditor in

accordance with subsection (3), ASIC may make an order in

writing relieving the auditor from compliance with all or specified

requirements of sections 332A and 332B.

Note: For the criteria for making orders under this section, see section 332F.

(2) The order may:

(a) be expressed to be subject to conditions; and

(b) be indefinite or limited to a specified period.

(3) The application must be:

(a) in writing; and

(b) lodged with ASIC; and

(c) if the auditor is an individual auditor—signed by the auditor;

and

(d) if the auditor is an audit firm—signed by a member of the

firm who is a registered company auditor both:

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2M Financial reports and audit

Part 2M.4A Annual transparency reports for auditors

Section 332E

182 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(i) in the firm name; and

(ii) in the member’s own name; and

(e) if the auditor is an audit company:

(i) authorised by a resolution of the directors; and

(ii) signed by a director.

(4) ASIC must give the auditor written notice of the making or

revocation of the order.

332E Exemption orders—class orders for transparency reporting

auditors

(1) ASIC may, by legislative instrument, make an order in respect of a

specified class of transparency reporting auditors relieving the

auditors from all or specified requirements of sections 332A and

332B.

Note: For the criteria for making orders under this section, see section 332F.

(2) The order may:

(a) be expressed to be subject to conditions; and

(b) be indefinite or limited to a specified period.

332F Exemption orders—criteria for orders

(1) To make an order under section 332D or 332E exempting a

transparency reporting auditor, or class of transparency reporting

auditors, from one or more requirements of sections 332A and

332B, ASIC must be satisfied that complying with the

requirements would:

(a) be inappropriate in the circumstances; or

(b) impose unreasonable burdens.

(2) In deciding for the purposes of subsection (1) whether complying

with the requirements would impose an unreasonable burden on

the auditor or class of auditors, ASIC is to have regard to:

(a) the expected costs of complying with the requirements; and

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Financial reports and audit Chapter 2M

Annual transparency reports for auditors Part 2M.4A

Section 332G

Corporations Act 2001 183

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(b) the expected benefits of having the auditor or class of

auditors comply with the requirements; and

(c) any practical difficulties that the auditor or class of auditors

faces in complying effectively with the requirements; and

(d) any unusual aspects of the operations of the auditor or class

of auditors; and

(e) any other matters that ASIC considers relevant.

332G Offences by members of audit firm

(1) This Part applies to an audit firm as if it were a person, but with the

changes set out in this section.

(2) An obligation that would otherwise be imposed on the firm by a

provision of this Part is imposed on each member of the firm

instead, but may be discharged by any of the members.

(3) An offence based on a provision of this Part that would otherwise

be committed by the audit firm is taken to have been committed by

each member of the firm.

(4) A member of the firm does not commit an offence because of

subsection (3) if the member:

(a) does not know of the circumstances that constitute the

contravention of the provision concerned; or

(b) knows of those circumstances but takes all reasonable steps

to correct the contravention as soon as possible after the

member becomes aware of those circumstances.

Note: A defendant bears an evidential burden in relation to the matters in

subsection (4)—see subsection 13.3(3) of the Criminal Code.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2M Financial reports and audit

Part 2M.5 Accounting and auditing standards

Section 334

184 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Part 2M.5—Accounting and auditing standards

334 Accounting standards

AASB’s power to make accounting standards

(1) The AASB may, by legislative instrument, make accounting

standards for the purposes of this Act. The standards must not be

inconsistent with this Act or the regulations.

(4) An accounting standard applies to:

(a) periods ending after the commencement of the standard; or

(b) periods ending, or starting, on or after a later date specified in

the standard.

(5) A company, registered scheme or disclosing entity may elect to

apply the accounting standard to an earlier period unless the

standard says otherwise. The election must be made in writing by

the directors.

335 Equity accounting

This Chapter (and, in particular, the provisions on consolidation of

financial statements) does not prevent accounting standards from

incorporating equity accounting principles.

336 Auditing standards

AUASB’s power to make auditing standards

(1) The AUASB may, by legislative instrument, make auditing

standards for the purposes of this Act. The standards must not be

inconsistent with this Act or the regulations.

(3) An auditing standard applies to financial reports in relation to:

(a) periods ending after the commencement of the standard; or

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Financial reports and audit Chapter 2M

Accounting and auditing standards Part 2M.5

Section 337

Corporations Act 2001 185

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(b) periods ending, or starting, on or after a later date specified in

the standard.

(4) If:

(a) the AUASB makes an auditing standard; and

(b) the standard applies to financial reports in relation to

particular periods under subsection (3); and

(c) an auditor is conducting an audit of a financial report in

relation to a period that occurs before the start of the earliest

of those periods;

the auditor may elect to apply the auditing standard to that audit

unless the standard says otherwise. The election must be recorded

in the audit report.

337 Interpretation of accounting and auditing standards

In interpreting an accounting or auditing standard, unless the

contrary intention appears:

(a) expressions used in the standard have the same meanings as

they have in this Chapter; and

(b) the provisions of Part 1.2 apply as if the standard’s

provisions were provisions of this Chapter.

338 Evidence of text of accounting standard or auditing standard

(1) This section applies to a document that purports to be published by,

or on behalf of, the AASB or the AUASB and to set out the text of:

(a) a specified standard as in force at a specified time under

section 334 or 336; or

(b) a specified provision of a standard of that kind.

It also applies to a copy of a document of that kind.

(2) In the absence of evidence to the contrary, a document to which

this section applies is proof in proceedings under this Act that:

(a) the specified standard was in force at that time under that

section; and

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2M Financial reports and audit

Part 2M.5 Accounting and auditing standards

Section 338

186 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(b) the text set out in the document is the text of the standard

referred to in paragraph (1)(a) or the provision referred to in

paragraph (1)(b).

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Financial reports and audit Chapter 2M

Exemptions and modifications Part 2M.6

Section 340

Corporations Act 2001 187

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Part 2M.6—Exemptions and modifications

340 Exemption orders—companies, registered schemes and

disclosing entities

(1) On an application made in accordance with subsection (3) in

relation to a company, registered scheme or disclosing entity,

ASIC may make an order in writing relieving any of the following

from all or specified requirements of Parts 2M.2, 2M.3 and 2M.4

(other than Division 4):

(a) the directors;

(b) the company, scheme or entity;

(c) the auditor.

Note: For the criteria for making orders under this section, see section 342.

(2) The order may:

(a) be expressed to be subject to conditions; and

(b) be indefinite or limited to a specified period.

(3) The application must be:

(a) authorised by a resolution of the directors; and

(b) in writing and signed by a director; and

(c) lodged with ASIC.

(4) ASIC must give the applicant written notice of the making,

revocation or suspension of the order.

341 Exemption orders—class orders for companies, registered

schemes and disclosing entities

(1) ASIC may make an order in writing in respect of a specified class

of companies, registered schemes or disclosing entities, relieving

any of the following from all or specified requirements of

Parts 2M.2, 2M.3 and 2M.4 (other than Division 4):

(a) directors;

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2M Financial reports and audit

Part 2M.6 Exemptions and modifications

Section 342

188 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(b) the companies, registered schemes or disclosing entities

themselves;

(c) auditors of the companies, registered schemes or disclosing

entities.

Note: For the criteria for making orders under this section, see section 342.

(2) The order may:

(a) be expressed to be subject to conditions; and

(b) be indefinite or limited to a specified period.

(3) Notice of the making, revocation or suspension of the order must

be published in the Gazette.

342 Exemption orders—criteria for orders for companies, registered

schemes and disclosing entities

(1) To make an order under section 340 or 341, ASIC must be satisfied

that complying with the relevant requirements of Parts 2M.2, 2M.3

and 2M.4 would:

(a) make the financial report or other reports misleading; or

(b) be inappropriate in the circumstances; or

(c) impose unreasonable burdens.

(2) In deciding for the purposes of subsection (1) whether the audit

requirements for a proprietary company, or a class of proprietary

companies, would impose an unreasonable burden on the company

or companies, ASIC is to have regard to:

(a) the expected costs of complying with the audit requirements;

and

(b) the expected benefits of having the company or companies

comply with the audit requirements; and

(c) any practical difficulties that the company or companies face

in complying effectively with the audit requirements (in

particular, any difficulties that arise because a financial year

is the first one for which the audit requirements apply or

because the company or companies are likely to move

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Financial reports and audit Chapter 2M

Exemptions and modifications Part 2M.6

Section 342AA

Corporations Act 2001 189

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

frequently between the small and large proprietary company

categories from one financial year to another); and

(d) any unusual aspects of the operation of the company or

companies during the financial year concerned; and

(e) any other matters that ASIC considers relevant.

(3) In assessing expected benefits under subsection (2), ASIC is to

take account of:

(a) the number of creditors and potential creditors; and

(b) the position of creditors and potential creditors (in particular,

their ability to independently obtain financial information

about the company or companies); and

(c) the nature and extent of the liabilities of the company or

companies.

342AA Exemption orders—non-auditor members and former

members of audit firms; former employees of audit

companies

(1) On an application made in accordance with subsection (3) by any

of the following, ASIC may make an order in writing relieving the

applicant from all or specified requirements of Division 3 of

Part 2M.4 (auditor independence):

(a) a member of the firm who is not a registered company

auditor;

(b) a person who has ceased to be:

(i) a member of an audit firm; or

(ii) a director of an audit company; or

(iii) a professional employee of an audit company.

Note: For the criteria for making orders under this section, see

section 342AC.

(2) The order may:

(a) be expressed to be subject to conditions; and

(b) be indefinite or limited to a specified period.

(3) The application must be:

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2M Financial reports and audit

Part 2M.6 Exemptions and modifications

Section 342AB

190 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(a) in writing and signed by the applicant; and

(b) lodged with ASIC.

(4) ASIC must give the applicant written notice of the making,

revocation or suspension of the order.

(5) An order under subsection (1) is not a legislative instrument.

342AB Exemption orders—class orders for non-auditor members

etc.

(1) ASIC may make an order in writing in respect of a specified class

of audit firms or audit companies, relieving any of the following

from all or specified requirements of Division 3 of Part 2M.4

(auditor independence):

(a) members of firms who are not registered company auditors;

(b) persons who have ceased to be:

(i) members of audit firms; or

(ii) directors of audit companies; or

(iii) professional employees of audit companies.

Note: For the criteria for making orders under this section, see

section 342AC.

(2) The order may:

(a) be expressed to be subject to conditions; and

(b) be indefinite or limited to a specified period.

(3) An order under subsection (1) is a legislative instrument.

342AC Exemption orders—criteria for orders for non-auditor

members etc.

To make an order under section 342AA or 342AB, ASIC must be

satisfied that complying with the relevant requirements of

Division 3 of Part 2M.4 would:

(a) make the financial report or other reports misleading; or

(b) be inappropriate in the circumstances; or

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Financial reports and audit Chapter 2M

Exemptions and modifications Part 2M.6

Section 342A

Corporations Act 2001 191

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(c) impose unreasonable burdens.

342A ASIC’s power to modify the operation of section 324DA

(1) On an application made in accordance with this section, ASIC

may:

(a) declare that subsection 324DA(1) applies to a registered

company auditor, in relation to the audit of an audited body

or a class of audited bodies, as if the references in that

subsection to 5 successive financial years were references to:

(i) 6 successive financial years; or

(ii) 7 successive financial years; or

(b) declare that subsection 324DA(2) applies to a registered

company auditor, in relation to the audit of an audited body

or a class of audited bodies during a particular period of 7

successive financial years, as if the reference in that

subsection to 5 out of 7 successive financial years were a

reference to 6 out of 7 successive financial years.

(2) The following persons may apply for the declaration:

(a) the registered company auditor;

(b) a firm or company on whose behalf the registered company

auditor acts or would act in relation to the audit or audits.

If the application is made by a firm or company, the declaration

has effect only in relation to activities undertaken by the registered

company auditor on behalf of that firm or company.

(3) The application must be:

(a) in writing; and

(b) signed by the applicant; and

(c) lodged with ASIC.

(4) If the application is made by a registered company auditor who

engages, or is to engage, in audit activities on behalf of a firm or

company, the application must include the firm’s or company’s

written consent to the application.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2M Financial reports and audit

Part 2M.6 Exemptions and modifications

Section 342B

192 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(5) If the application is made by a firm or company in relation to a

registered company auditor, the application must include the

registered company auditor’s written consent to the application.

(6) To make a declaration under subsection (1), ASIC must be

satisfied that, without the modification, Division 4 of Part 2M.4

would impose an unreasonable burden on:

(a) a registered company auditor; or

(b) a firm or company that is applying for the declaration; or

(c) the audited body or bodies in relation to which the

application was made.

(7) In deciding for the purposes of subsection (6) whether, without the

modification, Division 4 of Part 2M.4 would impose an

unreasonable burden on a person referred to in that subsection,

ASIC is to have regard to:

(a) the nature of the audited body or bodies, including whether

the activity in which the audited body or bodies engage is

such that specialist knowledge about that activity is necessary

to carry out the audit properly; and

(b) the availability of other registered company auditors capable

of providing satisfactory audit services for the audited body

or bodies; and

(c) any other matters which ASIC considers relevant.

(8) ASIC must give the applicant written notice of the making,

revocation or suspension of the declaration.

342B Auditor to notify company or registered scheme of

section 342A declaration

(1) If a registered company auditor plays a significant role in the audit

of a company or registered scheme in reliance on a declaration by

ASIC under section 342A, the auditor must give the company or

the responsible entity for the registered scheme written notice of

the declaration.

(2) The notice must specify:

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Financial reports and audit Chapter 2M

Exemptions and modifications Part 2M.6

Section 343

Corporations Act 2001 193

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(a) the name of the registered company auditor; and

(b) the additional financial years for which the registered

company auditor is, because of the declaration under

section 342A, eligible to play a significant role in the audit of

the company or registered scheme.

(3) The notice must be given:

(a) as soon as practicable after the declaration is made if the

auditor has been appointed before the declaration is made; or

(b) before the auditor is appointed if the declaration is made

before the auditor is appointed.

343 Modification by regulations

The regulations may modify the operation of this Chapter in

relation to:

(a) a specified company, registered scheme or disclosing entity;

or

(b) all companies, registered schemes or disclosing entities of a

specified kind.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2M Financial reports and audit

Part 2M.7 Sanctions for contraventions of Chapter

Section 344

194 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Part 2M.7—Sanctions for contraventions of

Chapter

344 Contravention of Part 2M.2 or 2M.3, or of certain provisions of

Part 2M.4

(1) A director of a company, registered scheme or disclosing entity

contravenes this section if they fail to take all reasonable steps to

comply with, or to secure compliance with, Part 2M.2 or 2M.3, or

section 324DAA, 324DAB or 324DAC.

Note: This section is a civil penalty provision (see section 1317E).

(2) A person commits an offence if they contravene subsection (1) and

the contravention is dishonest.

(3) Subsection (1) does not apply to section 310, 312, 323A or 323B.

(4) This section does not affect the application of the provisions of

Part 2M.2 or 2M.3 to a director as an officer.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Updating ASIC information about companies and registered schemes Chapter 2N

Review date Part 2N.1

Section 345A

Corporations Act 2001 195

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Chapter 2N—Updating ASIC information

about companies and registered

schemes

Part 2N.1—Review date

345A Review date

(1) The review date for a company is:

(a) either:

(i) if the company became registered as a company after

the commencement of this Act—the anniversary of the

company’s registration as a company under this Act; or

(ii) otherwise—the date of the company’s incorporation or

registration as a company, as recorded in a register

maintained by ASIC under section 1274; or

(b) if a choice of a different date has effect under section 345C—

that different date.

(1A) If:

(a) a company was incorporated as a company or became

registered as a company before the commencement of this

Act; and

(b) there is no date of incorporation of the company as a

company or registration of the company as a company

recorded in a register maintained by ASIC under

section 1274; and

(c) paragraph (1)(b) does not apply to the company;

the review date for the company is the date determined by ASIC

and notified to the company.

(1B) If, apart from this subsection, the review date for a company would

be February 29, the review date for the company is February 28.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2N Updating ASIC information about companies and registered schemes

Part 2N.1 Review date

Section 345B

196 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(2) The review date for a registered scheme is:

(a) the anniversary of the scheme’s registration as a registered

scheme; or

(b) if a choice of a different date has effect under section 345C—

that different date.

345B Company or responsible entity may change review date

(1) With ASIC’s approval, a company may choose as its review date a

date that is different from the anniversary of its registration.

(2) With ASIC’s approval, the responsible entity of a registered

scheme may choose as the review date for the scheme a date that is

different from the anniversary of its registration.

(3) If ASIC approves the choice, ASIC must notify the company or

responsible entity in writing.

345C When choice has effect

If ASIC notifies the company or responsible entity of its approval

under section 345B, the choice has effect:

(a) if the different date occurs before the next review date for the

company or scheme—at the time that ASIC notifies its

approval; or

(b) otherwise—immediately after the next review date for the

company or scheme.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Updating ASIC information about companies and registered schemes Chapter 2N

Extract of particulars Part 2N.2

Section 346A

Corporations Act 2001 197

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Part 2N.2—Extract of particulars

346A ASIC must give an extract of particulars each year

(1) ASIC must, within 2 weeks after each review date for a company

or a registered scheme, give to the company or responsible entity

of the scheme an extract of particulars for the company or scheme.

(2) If an agreement or approval under subsection 352(1) covers the

lodgment of a response to an extract of particulars for a company,

ASIC may satisfy subsection (1) by making the extract available to

the company or its agent by electronic means.

(3) An extract of particulars must specify the date of issue.

346B ASIC may ask questions

ASIC may include, in an extract of particulars for a company or a

registered scheme, a requirement that the company or responsible

entity of the scheme provide a particular prescribed by the

regulations for the purposes of this section.

346C Requirements in relation to an extract of particulars

Respond if a particular is incorrect

(1) A company, or responsible entity of a registered scheme, must

respond to an extract of particulars that it receives if any particular

set out in the extract is not correct as at the date of receipt. The

response must comply with subsection (3).

Respond if required to provide a particular

(2) A company, or responsible entity of a registered scheme, must

respond to an extract of particulars that it receives if the extract

includes a requirement to provide a particular under section 346B.

The response must comply with subsection (3).

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2N Updating ASIC information about companies and registered schemes

Part 2N.2 Extract of particulars

Section 346C

198 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Contents of response

(3) The response to an extract of particulars by a company, or by the

responsible entity of a registered scheme:

(a) must be lodged within 28 days after the date of issue of the

extract; and

(b) must be in the prescribed form; and

(c) must be signed or authenticated; and

(d) if subsection (1) applies—must be such that the particulars

set out in the extract, taken together with the response, are

correct as at the date the response is signed or authenticated;

and

(e) if subsection (2) applies—must provide the required

particular, correct as at the date the response is signed or

authenticated.

Response satisfies other requirements to notify

(4) If a company responds to an extract of particulars:

(a) correcting a particular; or

(b) providing a particular;

in accordance with subsection (3), any requirement elsewhere in

this Act to lodge a prescribed form in relation to the particular is

satisfied by the response.

(5) Subsection (4) does not affect the company’s liability for late

lodgment fees incurred before the response to the extract of

particulars is lodged or continuing offences committed before that

time.

Strict liability offences

(6) An offence based on subsection (1) or (2) is an offence of strict

liability.

Note: For strict liability, see section 6.1 of the Criminal Code.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Updating ASIC information about companies and registered schemes Chapter 2N

Solvency resolution Part 2N.3

Section 347A

Corporations Act 2001 199

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Part 2N.3—Solvency resolution

347A Directors must pass a solvency resolution after each review

date

(1) The directors of a company must pass a solvency resolution within

2 months after each review date for the company.

(2) Subsection (1) does not apply to the directors of a company that

has lodged a financial report with ASIC under Chapter 2M within

the period of 12 months before the review date.

Note: The defendant bears an evidential burden in relation to the matter in

subsection (2). See subsection 13.3(3) of the Criminal Code.

(3) An offence based on this section is an offence of strict liability.

Note: For strict liability, see section 6.1 of the Criminal Code.

347B Notice to ASIC

(1) If the directors of a company pass a negative solvency resolution

under section 347A, the company must notify ASIC of that fact, in

the prescribed form, within 7 days after the resolution is passed.

(2) If:

(a) subsection 347A(1) applies to the directors of a company;

and

(b) the directors have not passed a solvency resolution under

section 347A within 2 months after a review date;

the company must notify ASIC of that fact, in the prescribed form,

within 7 days after the end of the 2 month period following the

review date.

(3) An offence based on this section is an offence of strict liability.

Note: For strict liability, see section 6.1 of the Criminal Code.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2N Updating ASIC information about companies and registered schemes

Part 2N.3 Solvency resolution

Section 347C

200 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

347C Payment of review fee is taken to be a representation by the

directors that the company is solvent

(1) If:

(a) a company has paid its review fee in respect of a review date;

and

(b) the company has not lodged a notice under section 347B

within 7 days after the end of the 2 month period following

the review date; and

(c) the company has not lodged a financial report with ASIC

under Chapter 2M within the period of 12 months before the

review date;

the directors of the company are taken to have represented to

ASIC, as at the end of the 2 month period following the company’s

review date, that, in their opinion, there are reasonable grounds to

believe that the company will be able to pay its debts as and when

they become due and payable.

Note: Directors are not taken to have passed a solvency resolution for the

purposes of section 347A merely because they are taken, under this

subsection, to have made a representation to ASIC.

(2) Subsection (1) does not apply if the directors prove that they made

a positive solvency resolution under section 347A within 2 months

after the end of the review date.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Updating ASIC information about companies and registered schemes Chapter 2N

Return of particulars Part 2N.4

Section 348A

Corporations Act 2001 201

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Part 2N.4—Return of particulars

348A ASIC may give a return of particulars

(1) ASIC may give to a company or responsible entity of a registered

scheme a return of particulars for the company or scheme if ASIC

suspects or believes that particulars recorded in relation to the

company or scheme in a register maintained by ASIC under

subsection 1274(1) are not correct.

(2) If an agreement or approval under subsection 352(1) covers the

lodgment of a response to a return of particulars for a company,

ASIC may satisfy subsection (1) by making the return available to

the company or its agent by electronic means.

(3) A return of particulars must specify the date of issue.

348B ASIC may ask questions

ASIC may include, in a return of particulars for a company or a

registered scheme, a requirement that the company or responsible

entity of the scheme provide a particular prescribed by the

regulations for the purposes of this section.

348C ASIC may require a solvency resolution and statement

(1) ASIC may include, in a return of particulars for a company, a

requirement that the company comply with subsection (2) or

subsection (3). The company may choose which subsection to

comply with.

(2) The company complies with this subsection if:

(a) before the company lodges a response to the return of

particulars, the directors of the company pass a solvency

resolution; and

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2N Updating ASIC information about companies and registered schemes

Part 2N.4 Return of particulars

Section 348D

202 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(b) the response to the return of particulars states whether the

resolution passed was a positive solvency resolution or a

negative solvency resolution.

(3) The company complies with this subsection if the response to the

return of particulars states the date on which the directors passed a

positive solvency resolution under section 347A in respect of the

company’s most recent review date.

348D General requirements in relation to a return of particulars

Response is required

(1) A company, or responsible entity of a registered scheme, must

respond to a return of particulars that it receives. The response

must comply with subsection (2).

Contents of response

(2) The response to a return of particulars by a company, or by the

responsible entity of a registered scheme:

(a) must be lodged with ASIC within 2 months after the date of

issue of the return; and

(b) must be in the prescribed form; and

(c) must be signed or authenticated; and

(d) if, as at the date that the response is signed or authenticated,

any particular set out in the return is not correct—must be

such that the particulars set out in the return, taken together

with the response, are correct as at the date the response is

signed or authenticated; and

(e) if the return includes a requirement that the company or

responsible entity of the scheme provide a particular under

section 348B—must provide the required particular, correct

as at the date the response is signed or authenticated; and

(f) if the return includes a requirement to comply with a

subsection of section 348C—must include the statement

required by the subsection that the company chooses to

comply with.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Updating ASIC information about companies and registered schemes Chapter 2N

Return of particulars Part 2N.4

Section 348D

Corporations Act 2001 203

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Response satisfies other requirements to notify

(3) If a company responds to a return of particulars:

(a) correcting a particular; or

(b) providing a particular;

in accordance with subsection (2), any requirement elsewhere in

this Act to lodge a prescribed form in relation to the particular is

satisfied by the response.

(4) Subsection (3) does not affect the company’s liability for late

lodgment fees incurred before the response to the return of

particulars is lodged or continuing offences committed before that

time.

Strict liability offences

(5) An offence based on subsection (1) is an offence of strict liability.

Note: For strict liability, see section 6.1 of the Criminal Code.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2N Updating ASIC information about companies and registered schemes

Part 2N.5 Notice by proprietary companies of changes to ultimate holding company

Section 349A

204 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Part 2N.5—Notice by proprietary companies of

changes to ultimate holding company

349A Proprietary companies must notify ASIC of changes to

ultimate holding company

(1) If an event mentioned in section 349B, 349C or 349D happens in

relation to a proprietary company, the proprietary company must

notify ASIC, in the prescribed form and within 28 days after the

event, of the details required by that section.

(2) An offence based on subsection (1) is an offence of strict liability.

Note: For strict liability, see section 6.1 of the Criminal Code.

349B Another company becomes an ultimate holding company

If another company becomes an ultimate holding company in

relation to a proprietary company, the proprietary company must

notify ASIC of:

(a) the other company’s name; and

(b) either:

(i) if the other company is registered in Australia—its

ABN, ACN or ARBN; or

(ii) if the other company is not registered in Australia—the

place at which it was incorporated or formed; and

(c) the date on which the other company became an ultimate

holding company in relation to the proprietary company.

349C A company ceases to be an ultimate holding company

If a company ceases to be an ultimate holding company in relation

to a proprietary company, the proprietary company must notify

ASIC of:

(a) the name of the company that ceased to be an ultimate

holding company in relation to the proprietary company; and

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Updating ASIC information about companies and registered schemes Chapter 2N

Notice by proprietary companies of changes to ultimate holding company Part 2N.5

Section 349D

Corporations Act 2001 205

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(b) the date the cessation occurred.

349D Ultimate holding company changes its name

If an ultimate holding company in relation to a proprietary

company changes its name, the proprietary company must notify

ASIC of the new name of the ultimate holding company.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2P Lodgments with ASIC

Section 350

206 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Chapter 2P—Lodgments with ASIC

350 Forms for documents to be lodged with ASIC

(1) A document that this Act requires to be lodged with ASIC in a

prescribed form must:

(a) if a form for the document is prescribed in the regulations:

(i) be in the prescribed form; and

(ii) include the information, statements, explanations or

other matters required by the form; and

(iii) be accompanied by any other material required by the

form; or

(b) if a form for the document is not prescribed in the regulations

but ASIC has approved a form for the document:

(i) be in the approved form; and

(ii) include the information, statements, explanations or

other matters required by the form; and

(iii) be accompanied by any other material required by the

form.

(2) A reference in this Act to a document that has been lodged (being a

document to which subsection (1) applies), includes, unless a

contrary intention appears, a reference to any other material lodged

with the document as required by the relevant form.

(3) If:

(a) this Act requires a document to be lodged with ASIC in a

prescribed form; and

(b) a provision of this Act either specifies, or provides for

regulations to specify, information, statements, explanations

or other matters that must be included in the document, or

other material that must accompany the document;

that other provision is not taken to exclude or limit the operation of

subsection (1) in relation to the prescribed form (and so the

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Lodgments with ASIC Chapter 2P

Section 351

Corporations Act 2001 207

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

prescribed form may also require information etc. to be included in

the form or material to accompany the form).

351 Signing documents lodged with ASIC

(1) A document lodged with ASIC in writing by, or on behalf of, a

body or a registered scheme must be signed by a director or

secretary of the body or of the responsible entity of the registered

scheme. If the body is a foreign company, it may be signed by:

(a) its local agent; or

(b) if the local agent is a company—a director or secretary of the

company.

(2) An individual who lodges a document with ASIC in writing must

sign it.

(3) The person’s name must be printed next to the signature.

352 Documents lodged with ASIC electronically

(1) A document may be lodged with ASIC electronically only if:

(a) ASIC and the person seeking to lodge it (either on their own

behalf or as agent) have agreed, in writing, that it may be

lodged electronically; or

(b) ASIC has approved, in writing, the electronic lodgment of

documents of that kind.

The document is taken to be lodged with ASIC if it is lodged in

accordance with the agreement or approval (including any

requirements of the agreement or approval as to authentication).

(1A) For the purposes of paragraph (1)(b), ASIC may approve:

(a) a particular kind of document; or

(b) documents in a particular class of documents.

(2) Subsection (1) does not apply to a document covered by

section 353 or a notice lodged under subsection 1015D(2).

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 2P Lodgments with ASIC

Section 353

208 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

353 Electronic lodgment of certain documents

(1) ASIC may determine conditions in relation to the electronic

lodgment of documents:

(a) that must be given to a relevant market operator under

section 205G; or

(b) that must be given to ASIC under section 792C.

(2) The electronic lodgment of a document covered by a determination

under subsection (1) is only effective if the lodgment complies

with the conditions determined.

(3) ASIC must publish in the Gazette a copy of any determination

under subsection (1).

354 Telephone notice of certain changes

(1) ASIC may, in its discretion, accept telephone notice of a change to

a particular in relation to a company or a registered scheme if:

(a) either:

(i) the change relates to a misspelling or other minor

typographical error; or

(ii) the change is to a particular included on a list published

by ASIC on the internet for the purposes of this section;

and

(b) the notice satisfies the authentication requirements published

by ASIC on the internet for the purposes of this section.

(2) If ASIC accepts telephone notice of a change to a particular under

subsection (1), any obligation elsewhere in this Act to lodge a

prescribed form in relation to the change is satisfied by the

telephone notice. However, this does not affect the company’s

liability for late lodgment fees incurred before the notice is given

or continuing offences committed before that time.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Arrangements and reconstructions Part 5.1

Section 410

Corporations Act 2001 209

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Chapter 5—External administration

Part 5.1—Arrangements and reconstructions

410 Interpretation

A reference in this Part, in relation to a Part 5.1 body, to the

directors is a reference to the directors of the body or any one or

more of them.

411 Administration of compromises etc.

(1) Where a compromise or arrangement is proposed between a

Part 5.1 body and its creditors or any class of them or between a

Part 5.1 body and its members or any class of them, the Court may,

on the application in a summary way of the body or of any creditor

or member of the body, or, in the case of a body being wound up,

of the liquidator, order a meeting or meetings of the creditors or

class of creditors or of the members of the body or class of

members to be convened in such manner, and to be held in such

place or places (in this jurisdiction or elsewhere), as the Court

directs and, where the Court makes such an order, the Court may

approve the explanatory statement required by paragraph 412(1)(a)

to accompany notices of the meeting or meetings.

(1A) Where:

(a) a compromise or arrangement is proposed:

(i) between 30 or more Part 5.1 bodies that are

wholly-owned subsidiaries of a holding company and

the creditors or a class of the creditors of each of those

subsidiaries; and

(ii) between the holding company and the creditors or a

class of the creditors of the holding company; and

(b) the proposed compromise or arrangement in relation to each

subsidiary includes a term that orders will be sought under

section 413 transferring the whole of the undertaking and of

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.1 Arrangements and reconstructions

Section 411

210 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

the property and liabilities of the subsidiary to the holding

company; and

(c) the Court is satisfied, on the application in a summary way:

(i) of the holding company or of a creditor of the holding

company; or

(ii) if the holding company is being wound up—of the

liquidator;

that the number of meetings that would be required between

creditors in order to consider the proposed compromises or

arrangements would be so great as to result in a significant

impediment to the timely and effective consideration by

those creditors of the terms of the compromises or

arrangements;

the Court may order a meeting or meetings, on a consolidated

basis, of the creditors of the holding company and of each of the

subsidiaries or of such class or classes of those creditors as the

Court determines and, where the Court makes such an order, the

Court may approve the explanatory statement required by

paragraph 412(1)(a) to accompany notices of the meeting or

meetings.

(1B) Where:

(a) there are fewer than 30 wholly-owned subsidiaries of the

holding company but the matters referred to in

paragraphs (1A)(b) and (c) are satisfied; and

(b) the Court considers that circumstances exist that would

justify its doing so;

the Court may make an order under subsection (1A) in relation to

the proposed compromise or arrangement.

(1C) Where an order is made under subsection (1A) in relation to a

proposed compromise or arrangement, the succeeding provisions

of this Part apply to the compromise or arrangement as if:

(a) references in this Part to a company included references to all

of the Part 5.1 bodies to which the order relates; and

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Arrangements and reconstructions Part 5.1

Section 411

Corporations Act 2001 211

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(b) references in this Part to creditors of a company included

references to the creditors of all the Part 5.1 bodies to which

the order relates; and

(c) references in this Part to a class of the creditors of a company

were references to the relevant class of creditors of all of the

Part 5.1 bodies to which the order relates.

(2) The Court must not make an order pursuant to an application under

subsection (1) or (1A) unless:

(a) 14 days notice of the hearing of the application, or such

lesser period of notice as the Court or ASIC permits, has

been given to ASIC; and

(b) the Court is satisfied that ASIC has had a reasonable

opportunity:

(i) to examine the terms of the proposed compromise or

arrangement to which the application relates and a draft

explanatory statement relating to the proposed

compromise or arrangement; and

(ii) to make submissions to the Court in relation to the

proposed compromise or arrangement and the draft

explanatory statement.

(3) In subsection (2), draft explanatory statement, in relation to a

proposed compromise or arrangement between a body and its

creditors or any class of them or between a body and its members

or any class of them, means a statement:

(a) explaining the effect of the proposed compromise or

arrangement and, in particular, stating any material interests

of the directors of the body, whether as directors, as members

or creditors of the body or otherwise, and the effect on those

interests of the proposed compromise or arrangement in so

far as that effect is different from the effect on the like

interests of other persons; and

(b) setting out such information as is prescribed and any other

information that is material to the making of a decision by a

creditor or member of the body whether or not to agree to the

proposed compromise or arrangement, being information that

is within the knowledge of the directors of the body and has

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.1 Arrangements and reconstructions

Section 411

212 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

not previously been disclosed to the creditors or members of

the body.

(3A) In considering whether to make an order under subsection (1) or

(1A) for a meeting to be held outside this jurisdiction, the Court

must have regard to where the creditors or members, or the

creditors or members included in the class concerned, as the case

requires, reside.

(4) A compromise or arrangement is binding on the creditors, or on a

class of creditors, or on the members, or on a class of members, as

the case may be, of the body and on the body or, if the body is in

the course of being wound up, on the liquidator and contributories

of the body, if, and only if:

(a) at a meeting convened in accordance with an order of the

Court under subsection (1) or (1A):

(i) in the case of a compromise or arrangement between a

body and its creditors or a class of creditors—the

compromise or arrangement is agreed to by a majority

in number of the creditors, or of the creditors included

in that class of creditors, present and voting, either in

person or by proxy, being a majority whose debts or

claims against the company amount in the aggregate to

at least 75% of the total amount of the debts and claims

of the creditors present and voting in person or by

proxy, or of the creditors included in that class present

and voting in person or by proxy, as the case may be;

and

(ii) in the case of a compromise or arrangement between a

body and its members or a class of members—a

resolution in favour of the compromise or arrangement

is:

(A) unless the Court orders otherwise—passed by a

majority in number of the members, or

members in that class, present and voting

(either in person or by proxy); and

(B) if the body has a share capital—passed by 75%

of the votes cast on the resolution; and

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Arrangements and reconstructions Part 5.1

Section 411

Corporations Act 2001 213

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(b) it is approved by order of the Court.

(5) Where the Court orders 2 or more meetings of creditors or of a

class of creditors, or 2 or more meetings of members or of a class

of members, to be held in relation to the proposed compromise or

arrangement:

(a) in the case of meetings of creditors—the meetings are, for the

purposes of subsection (4), taken together to constitute a

single meeting and the votes in favour of the proposed

compromise or arrangement cast at each of the meetings are

to be aggregated, and the votes against the proposed

compromise or arrangement cast at each of the meetings are

to be aggregated, accordingly; or

(b) in the case of meetings of members—the meetings are, for

the purposes of subsection (4), taken together to constitute a

single meeting and the votes in favour of the proposed

compromise or arrangement cast at each of the meetings is to

be aggregated, and the votes against the proposed

compromise or arrangement cast at each of the meetings is to

be aggregated, accordingly.

(5A) If the compromise or arrangement:

(a) involves creditors of the Part 5.1 body with subordinate

claims (within the meaning of subsection 563A(2)); and

(b) is approved by the Court;

those creditors are also bound by the compromise or arrangement

despite the fact that a meeting of those creditors has not been

ordered by the Court under subsection (1) or (1A).

(6) The Court may grant its approval to a compromise or arrangement

subject to such alterations or conditions as it thinks just.

(6A) If:

(a) the Court has granted its approval to a compromise or

arrangement subject to an alteration or condition; and

(b) the body concerned contravenes:

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.1 Arrangements and reconstructions

Section 411

214 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(i) in the case of an alteration—the provision or provisions

of the compromise or arrangement to which the

alteration relates; or

(ii) in the case of a condition—the condition; and

(c) the Court is satisfied that a person suffered loss or damage as

a result of the contravention;

the Court may make such order as it thinks just.

(6B) The Court may make either or both of the following orders under

subsection (6A):

(a) an order that the body concerned pay compensation to the

person of such amount as the order specifies;

(b) an order directing the body concerned to comply with:

(i) in the case of an alteration—the provision or provisions

of the compromise or arrangement to which the

alteration relates; or

(ii) in the case of a condition—the condition.

(6C) Subsection (6B) does not limit subsection (6A).

(7) Except with the leave of the Court, a person must not be appointed

to administer, and must not administer, a compromise or

arrangement approved under this Act between a body and its

creditors or any class of them or between a body and its members

or any class of them, whether by the terms of that compromise or

arrangement or pursuant to a power given by the terms of a

compromise or arrangement, if the person:

(a) is a secured party in relation to any property (including PPSA

retention of title property) of the body; or

(b) is an auditor of the body; or

(ba) is a director, secretary, senior manager or employee of the

body; or

(c) is a director, secretary, senior manager or employee of a body

corporate that is a secured party in relation to any property

(including PPSA retention of title property) of the body; or

(d) is not a registered liquidator; or

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Arrangements and reconstructions Part 5.1

Section 411

Corporations Act 2001 215

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(e) is a director, secretary, senior manager or employee of a body

corporate related to the body; or

(f) unless ASIC directs in writing that this paragraph does not

apply in relation to the person in relation to the body—has at

any time within the last 12 months been an officer or

promoter of the body or of a related body corporate.

(8) Paragraph (7)(d) does not apply in relation to a body corporate

authorised by or under a law of a State or Territory in this

jurisdiction to administer the compromise or arrangement

concerned.

(8A) Subsection (7) does not disqualify a person from administering a

compromise or arrangement under an appointment validly made

before 1 January 1991.

(9) Where a person is or persons are appointed by, or under a power

given by, the terms of a compromise or arrangement, to administer

the compromise or arrangement:

(a) sections 422A, 422B and 425, subsections 427(2) and (4) and

sections 428, 432 and 434 apply in relation to that person or

those persons as if:

(i) the appointment of the person or persons to administer

the compromise or arrangement were an appointment of

the person or persons as a receiver and manager, or as

receivers and managers, of property of the body; and

(ii) a reference in any of those sections or subsections to a

receiver, or to a receiver of property, of a corporation

were a reference to that person or to those persons; and

(b) Subdivision B (court powers to inquire and make orders) of

Division 90 of Schedule 2 applies in relation to that person or

those persons as if:

(i) the appointment of the person or persons to administer

the compromise or arrangement were an appointment of

the person or persons as an external administrator of the

body; and

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.1 Arrangements and reconstructions

Section 411

216 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(ii) a reference in that Subdivision to an external

administration were a reference to the administration of

the compromise or arrangement; and

(iii) a reference in that Subdivision to an external

administrator were a reference to that person or to those

persons.

(10) An order of the Court made for the purposes of paragraph (4)(b)

does not have any effect until an office copy of the order is lodged

with ASIC, and upon being so lodged, the order takes effect, or is

taken to have taken effect, on and from the date of lodgment or

such earlier date as the Court determines and specifies in the order.

(11) Subject to subsection (12), a copy of every order of the Court made

for the purposes of paragraph (4)(b) must be annexed to every copy

of the constitution of the body issued after the order has been

made.

(12) The Court may, by order, exempt a body from compliance with

subsection (11) or determine the period during which the body

must comply with that subsection.

(13) Where a compromise or arrangement referred to in subsection (1)

or (1A) (whether or not for the purposes of or in connection with a

scheme for the reconstruction of a body or bodies or the

amalgamation of any 2 or more bodies) has been proposed, the

directors of the body must:

(a) if a meeting of the members of the body by resolution so

directs—instruct such accountants or solicitors or both as are

named in the resolution to report on the proposals and send

their report or reports to the directors as soon as practicable;

and

(b) if a report or reports is or are obtained pursuant to

paragraph (a)—make the report or reports available at the

registered office of the body for inspection by the

shareholders and creditors of the body at least 7 days before

the day of the meeting ordered by the Court to be convened

as provided in subsection (1) or (1A), as the case may be.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Arrangements and reconstructions Part 5.1

Section 412

Corporations Act 2001 217

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(14) If default is made in complying with subsection (11), the body

contravenes this subsection.

(15) If default is made in complying with subsection (13), each director

of the body contravenes this subsection.

(16) Where no order has been made or resolution passed for the

winding up of a Part 5.1 body and a compromise or arrangement

has been proposed between the body and its creditors or any class

of them, the Court may, in addition to exercising any of its other

powers, on the application in a summary way of the body or of any

member or creditor of the body, restrain further proceedings in any

action or other civil proceeding against the body except by leave of

the Court and subject to such terms as the Court imposes.

(17) The Court must not approve a compromise or arrangement under

this section unless:

(a) it is satisfied that the compromise or arrangement has not

been proposed for the purpose of enabling any person to

avoid the operation of any of the provisions of Chapter 6; or

(b) there is produced to the Court a statement in writing by ASIC

stating that ASIC has no objection to the compromise or

arrangement;

but the Court need not approve a compromise or arrangement

merely because a statement by ASIC stating that ASIC has no

objection to the compromise or arrangement has been produced to

the Court as mentioned in paragraph (b).

412 Information as to compromise with creditors

(1) Where a meeting is convened under section 411, the body must:

(a) with every notice convening the meeting that is sent to a

creditor or member, send a statement (in this section called

the explanatory statement):

(i) explaining the effect of the compromise or arrangement

and, in particular, stating any material interests of the

directors, whether as directors, as members or creditors

of the body or otherwise, and the effect on those

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.1 Arrangements and reconstructions

Section 412

218 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

interests of the compromise or arrangement in so far as

that effect is different from the effect on the like

interests of other persons; and

(ii) setting out such information as is prescribed and any

other information that is material to the making of a

decision by a creditor or member whether or not to

agree to the compromise or arrangement, being

information that is within the knowledge of the directors

and has not previously been disclosed to the creditors or

members; and

(b) in every notice convening the meeting that is given by

advertisement or that is published in the prescribed manner,

include either a copy of the explanatory statement or a

notification of the place at which and the manner in which

creditors or members entitled to attend the meeting may

obtain copies of the explanatory statement.

(2) In the case of a creditor whose debt does not exceed $200,

paragraph (1)(a) does not apply unless the Court otherwise orders

but the notice convening the meeting that is sent to such a creditor

must specify a place at which a copy of the explanatory statement

can be obtained on request and, where the creditor makes such a

request, the body must as soon as practicable comply with the

request.

(3) Where the compromise or arrangement affects the rights of

debenture holders, the explanatory statement must specify any

material interests of the trustees for the debenture holders, whether

as such trustees, as members or creditors of the body or otherwise,

and the effect on those interests of the compromise or arrangement

in so far as that effect is different from the effect on the like

interests of other persons.

(4) Where a notice given by advertisement, or published in the

prescribed manner, includes a notification that copies of the

explanatory statement can be obtained in a particular manner,

every creditor or member entitled to attend the meeting must, on

making application in that matter, be furnished by the body free of

charge with a copy of the explanatory statement.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Arrangements and reconstructions Part 5.1

Section 413

Corporations Act 2001 219

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(5) Each person who is a director or trustee for debenture holders must

give notice to the body of such matters relating to the person as are

required to be included in the explanatory statement.

(6) In the case of a compromise or arrangement that is not, or does not

include, a compromise or arrangement between a Part 5.1 body and

its creditors or any class of them, the body must not send out an

explanatory statement pursuant to subsection (1) unless a copy of

that statement has been registered by ASIC.

(7) Where an explanatory statement sent out under subsection (1) is

not required by subsection (6) to be registered by ASIC, the Court

must not make an order approving the compromise or arrangement

unless it is satisfied that ASIC has had a reasonable opportunity to

examine the explanatory statement and to make submissions to the

Court in relation to that statement.

(8) Where a copy of an explanatory statement is lodged with ASIC for

registration under subsection (6), ASIC must not register the copy

of the statement unless the statement appears to comply with this

Act and ASIC is of the opinion that the statement does not contain

any matter that is false in a material particular or materially

misleading in the form or context in which it appears.

(9) Where a body contravenes this section, a person involved in the

contravention contravenes this subsection.

(10) It is a defence to a prosecution for a contravention of this section if

it is proved that the contravention was due to the failure of a person

(other than the defendant), being a director of the body or a trustee

for debenture holders of the body, to supply for the purposes of the

explanatory statement particulars of the person’s interests.

413 Provisions for facilitating reconstruction and amalgamation of

Part 5.1 bodies

(1) Where an application is made to the Court under this Part for the

approval of a compromise or arrangement and it is shown to the

Court that the compromise or arrangement has been proposed for

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.1 Arrangements and reconstructions

Section 413

220 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

the purposes of, or in connection with, a scheme for the

reconstruction of a Part 5.1 body or Part 5.1 bodies or the

amalgamation of 2 or more Part 5.1 bodies and that, under the

scheme, the whole or any part of the undertaking or of the property

of a body concerned in the scheme (in this section called the

transferor body) is to be transferred to a company (in this section

called the transferee company), the Court may, either by the order

approving the compromise or arrangement or by a later order,

provide for all or any of the following matters:

(a) the transfer to the transferee company of the whole or a part

of the undertaking and of the property or liabilities of the

transferor body;

(b) the allotting or appropriation by the transferee company of

shares, debentures, policies or other interests in that company

that, under the compromise or arrangement, are to be allotted

or appropriated by that company to or for any person;

(c) the continuation by or against the transferee company of any

legal proceedings pending by or against the transferor body;

(d) if the transferor body is a company—the deregistration by

ASIC, without winding up, of the transferor body;

(e) the provision to be made for any persons who, within such

time and in such manner as the Court directs, dissent from

the compromise or arrangement;

(f) the transfer or allotment of any interest in property to any

person concerned in the compromise or arrangement;

(g) such incidental, consequential and supplemental matters as

are necessary to ensure that the reconstruction or

amalgamation is fully and effectively carried out.

(2) Where an order made under this section provides for the transfer of

property or liabilities, then, by virtue of the order, that property is

transferred to and vests in, and those liabilities are transferred to

and become the liabilities of, the transferee company, free, in the

case of any particular property if the order so directs, from any

security interest that is, by virtue of the compromise or

arrangement, to cease to have effect.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Arrangements and reconstructions Part 5.1

Section 414

Corporations Act 2001 221

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(3) Where an order is made under this section, each body to which the

order relates must, within 14 days after the making of the order,

lodge with ASIC an office copy of the order.

(4) In this section:

liabilities includes duties of any description, including duties that

are of a personal character or are incapable under the general law

of being assigned or performed vicariously.

property includes rights and powers of any description, including

rights and powers that are of a personal character and are incapable

under the general law of being assigned or performed vicariously.

414 Acquisition of shares of shareholders dissenting from scheme or

contract approved by majority

(1) In this section:

dissenting shareholder, in relation to a scheme or contract, means

a shareholder who has not assented to the scheme or contract or

who has failed to transfer his, her or its shares in accordance with

the scheme or contract.

excluded shares, in relation to a scheme or contract involving a

transfer to a person of shares in a class of shares in a company,

means shares in that class that, when the offer relating to the

scheme or contract is made, are held by:

(a) in any case—the person or a nominee of the person; or

(b) if the person is a body corporate—a subsidiary of the body.

(2) Where a scheme or contract (not being a scheme or contract arising

out of the making of offers under a takeover bid) involving a

transfer of shares in a class of shares in a company (in this section

called the transferor company) to a person (in this section called

the transferee) has, within 4 months after the making of the offer

relating to the scheme or contract by the transferee, been approved

by members holding shares in that class carrying at least 90% of

the votes attached to shares in that class (other than excluded

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.1 Arrangements and reconstructions

Section 414

222 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

shares), the transferee may, within 2 months after the offer has

been so approved, give notice as prescribed to a dissenting

shareholder that the transferee wishes to acquire the shares held by

that shareholder.

(3) Where such a notice is given, then, unless the Court orders

otherwise on an application by a dissenting shareholder made

within one month after the day on which the notice was given or

within 14 days after a statement is supplied under subsection (7) to

a dissenting shareholder, whichever is the later, the transferee is

entitled and bound, subject to this section, to acquire those shares

on the terms on which, under the scheme or contract, the shares of

the approving shareholders are to be transferred to the transferee.

(4) Where alternative terms were offered to the approving

shareholders, the dissenting shareholder is entitled to elect not later

than the end of one month after the date on which the notice is

given under subsection (2) or 14 days after a statement is supplied

under subsection (7), whichever is the later, which of those terms

he, she or it prefers and, if he, she or it fails to make the election

within the time allowed by this subsection, the transferee may,

unless the Court otherwise orders, determine which of those terms

is to apply to the acquisition of the shares of the dissenting

shareholder.

(5) Despite subsections (3) and (4), if the number of votes attached to

the excluded shares is more than 10% of the votes attached to the

excluded shares and the shares (other than excluded shares) to be

transferred under the scheme or contract, those subsections do not

apply unless:

(a) the transferee offers the same terms to all holders of the

shares (other than excluded shares) to be transferred under

the scheme or contract; and

(b) the holders who approve the scheme or contract hold shares

to which are attached at least 90% of the votes attached to the

shares (other than excluded shares) to be transferred under

the scheme or contract and are also at least 75% in number of

the holders of those shares.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Arrangements and reconstructions Part 5.1

Section 414

Corporations Act 2001 223

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(6) For the purposes of paragraph (5)(b), 2 or more persons registered

as holding shares jointly are to be counted as one person.

(7) When a notice is given under subsection (2), the dissenting

shareholder may, by written notice given to the transferee within

one month after the day on which the notice was given under

subsection (2), ask for a statement in writing of the names and

addresses of all other dissenting shareholders as shown in the

register of members.

(8) Where a notice is given under subsection (7), the transferee must

comply with it.

(9) Where, under a scheme or contract referred to in subsection (2), the

transferee becomes beneficially entitled to shares in the transferor

company which, together with any other shares in the transferor

company to which the transferee or, where the transferee is a body

corporate, a body corporate related to the transferee is beneficially

entitled, have attached to them at least 90% of the votes attached to

the shares included in the class of shares concerned, then:

(a) the transferee must, within one month after the date on which

he, she or it becomes beneficially entitled to those shares

(unless in relation to the scheme or contract he, she or it has

already complied with this requirement), give notice of the

fact as prescribed to the holders of the remaining shares

included in that class who, when the notice was given, had

not assented to the scheme or contract or been given notice

by the transferee under subsection (2); and

(b) such a holder may, within 3 months after the giving of the

notice to him, her or it by notice to the transferee, require the

transferee to acquire his, her or its share and, where

alternative terms were offered to the approving shareholders,

elect which of those terms he, she or it will accept.

(10) Where a shareholder gives notice under paragraph (9)(b) with

respect to his, her or its shares, the transferee is entitled and bound

to acquire those shares:

(a) on the terms on which under the scheme or contract the

shares of the approving shareholders were transferred to him,

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.1 Arrangements and reconstructions

Section 414

224 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

her or it and, where alternative terms were offered to those

shareholders, on the terms for which the shareholder has

elected, or where he, she or it has not so elected, for

whichever of the terms the transferee determines; or

(b) on such other terms as are agreed or as the Court, on the

application of the transferee or of the shareholder, thinks fit

to order.

(11) Subsections (12) and (13) apply where a notice has been given

under subsection (1) unless the Court, on an application made by

the dissenting shareholder, orders to the contrary.

(12) The transferee must, within 14 days after:

(a) the end of one month after the day on which the notice was

given; or

(b) the end of 14 days after a statement under subsection (7) is

supplied; or

(c) if an application has been made to the Court by a dissenting

shareholder—the application is disposed of;

whichever last happens:

(d) send a copy of the notice to the transferor company together

with an instrument of transfer that relates to the shares that

the transferee is entitled to acquire under this section and is

executed, on the shareholder’s behalf, by a person appointed

by the transferee and, on the transferee’s own behalf, by the

transferee; and

(e) pay, allot or transfer to the transferor company the

consideration for the shares.

(13) When the transferee has complied with subsection (12), the

transferor company must register the transferee as the holder of the

shares.

(14) All sums received by the transferor company under this section

must be paid into a separate bank account and those sums, and any

other consideration so received, must be held by that company in

trust for the several persons entitled to the shares in respect of

which they were respectively received.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Arrangements and reconstructions Part 5.1

Section 415

Corporations Act 2001 225

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(15) Where a sum or other property received by a company under this

section has been held in trust by the company for a person for at

least 2 years (whether or not that period began before the

commencement of this Act), the company must, before the end of

10 years after the day on which the sum was paid, or the

consideration was allotted or transferred, to the company, pay the

sum or transfer the consideration, and any accretions to it and any

property that may become substituted for it or for part of it, to

ASIC to be dealt with under Part 9.7.

415 Notification of appointment of scheme manager and power of

Court to require report

(1) Within 14 days after being appointed to administer a compromise

or arrangement approved under this Part, a person must lodge a

notice in writing of the appointment.

(2) Where an application is made to the Court under this Part in

relation to a proposed compromise or arrangement, the Court may:

(a) before making any order on the application, require ASIC or

another person specified by the Court to give to the Court a

report as to the terms of the compromise or arrangement or of

the scheme for the purposes of or in connection with which

the compromise or arrangement has been proposed, the

conduct of the officers of the body or bodies concerned and

any other matters that, in the opinion of ASIC or that person,

ought to be brought to the attention of the Court;

(b) in deciding the application, have regard to anything

contained in the report; and

(c) make such order or orders as to the payment of the costs of

preparing and giving the report as the Court thinks fit.

415A Outcome of voting at creditors’ meeting determined by related

entity—Court powers

(1) Subsection (3) applies if, on the application of a creditor of a

Part 5.1 body, the Court is satisfied of the following matters:

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.1 Arrangements and reconstructions

Section 415A

226 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(a) a proposed resolution has been voted on at a meeting of

creditors, or of a class of creditors, of the body held under

this Part;

(b) that, if the vote or votes that a particular related creditor, or

particular related creditors, of the body cast on the proposed

resolution had been disregarded for the purposes of

determining whether or not the proposed resolution was

passed, the proposed resolution:

(i) if it was in fact passed—would not have been passed; or

(ii) if in fact it was not passed—would have been passed;

or the question would have had to be decided on a casting

vote;

(c) that the passing of the proposed resolution, or the failure to

pass it, as the case requires:

(i) is contrary to the interests of the creditors as a whole or

of that class of creditors as a whole, as the case may be;

or

(ii) has prejudiced, or is reasonably likely to prejudice, the

interests of the creditors who voted against the proposed

resolution, or for it, as the case may be, to an extent that

is unreasonable having regard to the matters in

subsection (2).

(2) The matters are:

(a) the benefits resulting to the related creditor, or to some or all

of the related creditors, from the resolution, or from the

failure to pass the proposed resolution, as the case may be;

and

(b) the nature of the relationship between the related creditor and

the body, or of the respective relationships between the

related creditors and the body; and

(c) any other relevant matter.

(3) The Court may make one or more of the following:

(a) if the proposed resolution was passed—an order setting aside

the resolution;

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Arrangements and reconstructions Part 5.1

Section 415B

Corporations Act 2001 227

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(b) an order that the proposed resolution be considered and voted

on at a meeting of the creditors of the body, or of that class of

creditors, as the case may be, convened and held as specified

in the order;

(c) an order directing that the related creditor is not, or such of

the related creditors as the order specifies are not, entitled to

vote on:

(i) the proposed resolution; or

(ii) a resolution to amend or vary the proposed resolution;

(d) such other orders as the Court thinks necessary.

(4) In this section:

related creditor, in relation to a Part 5.1 body, in relation to a vote,

means a person who, when the vote was cast, was a related entity,

and a creditor, of the body.

415B Interim order on application under section 415A

(1) If:

(a) an application under subsection 415A(1) has not yet been

determined; and

(b) the Court is of the opinion that it is desirable to do so;

the Court may make such interim orders as it thinks appropriate.

(2) An interim order must be expressed to apply until the application is

determined, but may be varied or discharged.

415C Order under section 415A does not affect act already done

pursuant to resolution

An act done pursuant to a resolution as in force before the making,

under section 415A, of an order setting aside or varying the

resolution, is as valid and binding on and after the making of the

order as if the order had not been made.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.2 Receivers, and other controllers, of property of corporations

Section 416

228 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Part 5.2—Receivers, and other controllers, of

property of corporations

416 Definitions

In this Part, unless the contrary intention appears:

officer, in relation to a registered foreign company, includes a local

agent of the foreign company.

property, in relation to a corporation, means property:

(a) in the case of a company—in Australia or outside Australia;

or

(b) in the case of a registered foreign company—in this

jurisdiction or an external Territory; or

(c) in the case of a registrable Australian body—in this

jurisdiction but outside the body’s place of origin.

receiver, in relation to property of a corporation, includes a

receiver and manager.

417 Application of Part

(1) Except so far as the contrary intention appears in this Part or

Part 11.2, this Part applies in relation to a receiver of property of a

corporation who is appointed after 1 January 1991, even if the

appointment arose out of a transaction entered into, or an act or

thing done, before 1 January 1991.

(2) To avoid doubt, this Part does not apply, of its own force, to the

property of a corporation that is an Aboriginal and Torres Strait

Islander corporation.

Note 1: The definition of property in section 416 does not define that term in

relation to a corporation that is an Aboriginal and Torres Strait

Islander corporation.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Receivers, and other controllers, of property of corporations Part 5.2

Section 418

Corporations Act 2001 229

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Note 2: Section 516-1 of the Corporations (Aboriginal and Torres Strait

Islander) Act 2006 applies this Part to a corporation that is an

Aboriginal and Torres Strait Islander corporation with the

modifications provided for in that section.

418 Persons not to act as receivers

(1) A person is not qualified to be appointed, and must not act, as

receiver of property of a corporation if the person:

(a) is a secured party in relation to any property (including PPSA

retention of title property) of the corporation; or

(b) is an auditor or a director, secretary, senior manager or

employee of the corporation; or

(c) is a director, secretary, senior manager or employee of a body

corporate that is a secured party in relation to any property

(including PPSA retention of title property) of the

corporation; or

(d) is not a registered liquidator; or

(e) is a director, secretary, senior manager or employee of a body

corporate related to the corporation; or

(f) unless ASIC directs in writing that this paragraph does not

apply in relation to the person in relation to the corporation—

has at any time within the last 12 months been a director,

secretary, senior manager, employee or promoter of the

corporation or of a related body corporate.

(3) Paragraph (1)(d) does not apply in relation to a body corporate

authorised by or under a law of the Commonwealth, of a State or of

a Territory to act as receiver of property of the corporation

concerned.

(4) In this section:

senior manager does not include a receiver and manager.

418A Court may declare whether controller is validly acting

(1) Where there is doubt, on a specific ground, about:

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.2 Receivers, and other controllers, of property of corporations

Section 419

230 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(a) whether a purported appointment of a person, after 23 June

1993, as receiver of property of a corporation is valid; or

(b) whether a person who has entered into possession, or

assumed control, of property of a corporation after 23 June

1993 did so validly under the terms of a security interest in

that property;

the person, the corporation or any of the corporation’s creditors

may apply to the Court for an order under subsection (2).

(2) On an application, the Court may make an order declaring whether

or not:

(a) the purported appointment was valid; or

(b) the person entered into possession, or assumed control,

validly under the terms of the security interest;

as the case may be, on the ground specified in the application or on

some other ground.

419 Liability of controller

(1) A receiver, or any other authorised person, who, whether as agent

for the corporation concerned or not, enters into possession or

assumes control of any property of a corporation for the purpose of

enforcing any security interest is, notwithstanding any agreement

to the contrary, but without prejudice to the person’s rights against

the corporation or any other person, liable for debts incurred by the

person in the course of the receivership, possession or control for

services rendered, goods purchased or property hired, leased

(including a lease of goods that gives rise to a PPSA security

interest in the goods), used or occupied.

(2) Subsection (1) does not constitute the person entitled to the

security interest a mortgagee in possession.

(3) Where:

(a) a person (in this subsection called the controller) enters into

possession or assumes control of property of a corporation;

and

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Receivers, and other controllers, of property of corporations Part 5.2

Section 419A

Corporations Act 2001 231

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(b) the controller purports to have been properly appointed as a

receiver in respect of that property under a power contained

in an instrument, but has not been properly so appointed; and

(c) civil proceedings in an Australian court arise out of an act

alleged to have been done by the controller;

the court may, if it is satisfied that the controller believed on

reasonable grounds that the controller had been properly so

appointed, order that:

(d) the controller be relieved in whole or in part of a liability that

the controller has incurred but would not have incurred if the

controller had been properly so appointed; and

(e) a person who purported to appoint the controller as receiver

be liable in respect of an act, matter or thing in so far as the

controller has been relieved under paragraph (d) of liability in

respect of that act, matter or thing.

419A Liability of controller under pre-existing agreement about

property used by corporation

(1) This section applies if:

(a) under an agreement made before the control day in relation to

a controller of property of a corporation, the corporation

continues after that day to use or occupy, or to be in

possession of, property (the third party property) of which

someone else is the owner or lessor; and

(b) the controller is controller of the third party property.

(2) Subject to subsections (4) and (7), the controller is liable for so

much of the rent or other amounts payable by the corporation

under the agreement as is attributable to a period:

(a) that begins more than 7 days after the control day; and

(b) throughout which:

(i) the corporation continues to use or occupy, or to be in

possession of, the third party property; and

(ii) the controller is controller of the third party property.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.2 Receivers, and other controllers, of property of corporations

Section 419A

232 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(3) Within 7 days after the control day, the controller may give to the

owner or lessor a notice that specifies the third party property and

states that the controller does not propose to exercise rights in

relation to that property as controller of the property, whether on

behalf of the corporation or anyone else.

(4) Despite subsection (2), the controller is not liable for so much of

the rent or other amounts payable by the corporation under the

agreement as is attributable to a period during which a notice under

subsection (3) is in force, but such a notice does not affect a

liability of the corporation.

(5) A notice under subsection (3) ceases to have effect if:

(a) the controller revokes it by writing given to the owner or

lessor; or

(b) the controller exercises, or purports to exercise, a right in

relation to the third party property as controller of the

property, whether on behalf of the corporation or anyone

else.

(6) For the purposes of subsection (5), the controller does not exercise,

or purport to exercise, a right as mentioned in paragraph (5)(b)

merely because the controller continues to be in possession, or to

have control, of the third party property, unless the controller:

(a) also uses the property; or

(b) asserts a right, as against the owner or lessor, so to continue.

(7) Subsection (2) does not apply in so far as a court, by order, excuses

the controller from liability, but an order does not affect a liability

of the corporation.

(8) The controller is not taken because of subsection (2):

(a) to have adopted the agreement; or

(b) to be liable under the agreement otherwise than as mentioned

in subsection (2).

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Receivers, and other controllers, of property of corporations Part 5.2

Section 420

Corporations Act 2001 233

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

420 Powers of receiver

(1) Subject to this section, a receiver of property of a corporation has

power to do, in Australia and elsewhere, all things necessary or

convenient to be done for or in connection with, or as incidental to,

the attainment of the objectives for which the receiver was

appointed.

(2) Without limiting the generality of subsection (1), but subject to any

provision of the court order by which, or the instrument under

which, the receiver was appointed, being a provision that limits the

receiver’s powers in any way, a receiver of property of a

corporation has, in addition to any powers conferred by that order

or instrument, as the case may be, or by any other law, power, for

the purpose of attaining the objectives for which the receiver was

appointed:

(a) to enter into possession and take control of property of the

corporation in accordance with the terms of that order or

instrument; and

(b) to lease, let on hire or dispose of property of the corporation;

and

(c) to grant options over property of the corporation on such

conditions as the receiver thinks fit; and

(d) to borrow money on the security of property of the

corporation; and

(e) to insure property of the corporation; and

(f) to repair, renew or enlarge property of the corporation; and

(g) to convert property of the corporation into money; and

(h) to carry on any business of the corporation; and

(j) to take on lease or on hire, or to acquire, any property

necessary or convenient in connection with the carrying on of

a business of the corporation; and

(k) to execute any document, bring or defend any proceedings or

do any other act or thing in the name of and on behalf of the

corporation; and

(m) to draw, accept, make and indorse a bill of exchange or

promissory note; and

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.2 Receivers, and other controllers, of property of corporations

Section 420

234 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(n) to use a seal of the corporation; and

(o) to engage or discharge employees on behalf of the

corporation; and

(p) to appoint a solicitor, accountant or other professionally

qualified person to assist the receiver; and

(q) to appoint an agent to do any business that the receiver is

unable to do, or that it is unreasonable to expect the receiver

to do, in person; and

(r) where a debt or liability is owed to the corporation—to prove

the debt or liability in a bankruptcy, insolvency or winding

up and, in connection therewith, to receive dividends and to

assent to a proposal for a composition or a scheme of

arrangement; and

(s) if the receiver was appointed under an instrument that created

a security interest in uncalled share capital of the corporation:

(i) to make a call in the name of the corporation for the

payment of money unpaid on the corporation’s shares;

or

(ii) on giving a proper indemnity to a liquidator of the

corporation—to make a call in the liquidator’s name for

the payment of money unpaid on the corporation’s

shares; and

(t) to enforce payment of any call that is due and unpaid,

whether the calls were made by the receiver or otherwise;

and

(u) to make or defend an application for the winding up of the

corporation; and

(w) to refer to arbitration any question affecting the corporation.

(3) The conferring by this section on a receiver of powers in relation to

property of a corporation does not affect any rights in relation to

that property of any other person other than the corporation.

(4) In this section, a reference, in relation to a receiver, to property of a

corporation is, unless the contrary intention appears, a reference to

the property of the corporation in relation to which the receiver

was appointed.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Receivers, and other controllers, of property of corporations Part 5.2

Section 420A

Corporations Act 2001 235

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(5) In this section:

lease includes a lease of goods that gives rise to a PPSA security

interest in the goods.

420A Controller’s duty of care in exercising power of sale

(1) In exercising a power of sale in respect of property of a

corporation, a controller must take all reasonable care to sell the

property for:

(a) if, when it is sold, it has a market value—not less than that

market value; or

(b) otherwise—the best price that is reasonably obtainable,

having regard to the circumstances existing when the

property is sold.

(2) Nothing in subsection (1) limits the generality of anything in

section 180, 181, 182, 183 or 184.

420B Court may authorise managing controller to dispose of

property despite prior security interest

(1) On the application of a managing controller of property of a

corporation, the Court may by order authorise the controller to sell,

or to dispose of in some other specified way, specified property of

the corporation, even though it is subject to a security interest (the

prior security interest) that has priority over a security interest (the

controller’s security interest) in that property that the controller is

enforcing.

(2) However, the Court may only make an order if satisfied that:

(a) apart from the existence of the prior security interest, the

controller would have power to sell, or to so dispose of, the

property; and

(b) the controller has taken all reasonable steps to obtain the

consent of the secured party in relation to the prior security

interest to the sale or disposal, but has not obtained that

consent; and

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.2 Receivers, and other controllers, of property of corporations

Section 420B

236 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(c) sale or disposal of the property under the order is in the best

interests of the corporation’s creditors and of the corporation;

and

(d) sale or disposal of the property under the order will not

unreasonably prejudice the rights or interests of the secured

party in relation to the prior security interest.

(3) The Court is to have regard to the need to protect adequately the

rights and interests of the secured party in relation to the prior

security interest.

(4) If the property would be sold or disposed of together with other

property that is subject to the controller’s security interest, the

Court may have regard to:

(a) the amount (if any) by which it is reasonable to expect that

the net proceeds of selling or disposing of that other property

otherwise than together with the first-mentioned property

would be less than so much of the net proceeds of selling or

disposing of all the property together as would be attributable

to that other property; and

(b) the amount (if any) by which it is reasonable to expect that

the net proceeds of selling or disposing of the first-mentioned

property otherwise than together with the other property

would be greater than so much of the net proceeds of selling

or disposing of all the property together as would be

attributable to the first-mentioned property.

(5) Nothing in subsection (3) or (4) limits the matters to which the

Court may have regard for the purposes of subsection (2).

(6) An order may be made subject to conditions, for example (but

without limitation):

(a) a condition that:

(i) the net proceeds of the sale or disposal; and

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Receivers, and other controllers, of property of corporations Part 5.2

Section 420C

Corporations Act 2001 237

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(ii) the net proceeds of the sale or disposal of such other

property (if any) as is specified in the condition and is

subject to the controller’s security interest;

or a specified part of those net proceeds, be applied in

payment of specified amounts secured by the prior security

interest; or

(b) a condition that the controller apply a specified amount in

payment of specified amounts secured by the prior security

interest.

420C Receiver’s power to carry on corporation’s business during

winding up

(1) A receiver of property of a corporation that is being wound up

may:

(a) with the written approval of the corporation’s liquidator or

with the approval of the Court, carry on the corporation’s

business either generally or as otherwise specified in the

approval; and

(b) do whatever is necessarily incidental to carrying on that

business under paragraph (a).

(2) Subsection (1) does not:

(a) affect a power that the receiver has otherwise than under that

subsection; or

(b) empower the receiver to do an act that he or she would not

have power to do if the corporation were not being wound

up.

(3) A receiver of property of a corporation who carries on the

corporation’s business under subsection (1) does so:

(a) as agent for the corporation; and

(b) in his or her capacity as receiver of property of the

corporation.

(4) The consequences of subsection (3) include, but are not limited to,

the following:

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.2 Receivers, and other controllers, of property of corporations

Section 421

238 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(a) for the purposes of subsection 419(1), a debt that the receiver

incurs in carrying on the business as mentioned in

subsection (3) of this section is incurred in the course of the

receivership;

(b) a debt or liability that the receiver incurs in so carrying on the

business is not a cost, charge or expense of the winding up.

421 Managing controller’s duties in relation to bank accounts and

financial records

(1) A managing controller of property of a corporation must:

(a) open and maintain an account, with an Australian ADI,

bearing:

(i) the managing controller’s own name; and

(ii) in the case of a receiver of the property—the title

“receiver”; and

(iii) otherwise—the title “managing controller”; and

(iv) the corporation’s name;

or 2 or more such accounts; and

(b) within 3 business days after money of the corporation comes

under the control of the managing controller, pay that money

into such an account that the managing controller maintains;

and

(c) ensure that no such account that the managing controller

maintains contains money other than money of the

corporation that comes under the control of the managing

controller; and

(d) keep such financial records as correctly record and explain all

transactions that the managing controller enters into as the

managing controller.

(2) Any director, creditor or member of a corporation may, unless the

Court otherwise orders, personally or by an agent, inspect records

kept by a managing controller of property of the corporation for the

purposes of paragraph (1)(d).

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Receivers, and other controllers, of property of corporations Part 5.2

Section 421A

Corporations Act 2001 239

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

421A Managing controller to report within 2 months about

corporation’s affairs

(1) A managing controller of property of a corporation must prepare a

report about the corporation’s affairs that is in the prescribed form

and is made up to a day not later than 30 days before the day when

it is prepared.

(2) The managing controller must prepare and lodge the report within

2 months after the control day.

(4) If, in the managing controller’s opinion, it would seriously

prejudice:

(a) the corporation’s interests; or

(b) the achievement of the objectives for which the controller

was appointed, or entered into possession or assumed control

of property of the corporation, as the case requires;

if particular information that the controller would otherwise

include in the report were made available to the public, the

controller need not include the information in the report.

(5) If the managing controller omits information from the report as

permitted by subsection (4), the controller must include instead a

notice:

(a) stating that certain information has been omitted from the

report; and

(b) summarising what the information is about, but without

disclosing the information itself.

422 Reports by receiver or managing controller

(1) If it appears to the receiver or managing controller of property of a

corporation that:

(a) a past or present officer or employee, or a member, of the

corporation may have been guilty of an offence in relation to

the corporation; or

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.2 Receivers, and other controllers, of property of corporations

Section 422

240 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(b) a person who has taken part in the formation, promotion,

administration, management or winding up of the

corporation:

(i) may have misapplied or retained, or may have become

liable or accountable for, any money or property

(whether the property is in Australia or elsewhere) of

the corporation; or

(ii) may have been guilty of any negligence, default, breach

of duty or breach of trust in relation to the corporation;

the receiver or managing controller must:

(c) lodge as soon as practicable a report about the matter; and

(d) give to ASIC such information, and such access to and

facilities for inspecting and taking copies of any documents,

as ASIC requires.

(2) The receiver or managing controller may also lodge further reports

specifying any other matter that, in the opinion of the receiver or

managing controller, it is desirable to bring to the notice of ASIC.

(3) If it appears to the Court:

(a) that a past or present officer or employee, or a member, of a

corporation in respect of property of which a receiver has

been appointed has been guilty of an offence in relation to

the corporation; or

(b) that a person who has taken part in the formation, promotion,

administration, management or winding up of a corporation

in respect of property of which a receiver has been appointed

has engaged in conduct referred to in paragraph (1)(b) in

relation to the corporation;

and that the receiver has not lodged a report about the matter, the

Court may, on the application of a person interested in the

appointment of the receiver, direct the receiver to lodge such a

report.

(4) If:

(a) there is a managing controller in relation to property of a

corporation; and

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Receivers, and other controllers, of property of corporations Part 5.2

Section 422A

Corporations Act 2001 241

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(b) it appears to the Court that:

(i) a past or present officer or employee, or a member, of

the corporation has been guilty of an offence in relation

to the corporation; or

(ii) a person who has taken part in the formation,

promotion, administration, management or winding up

of the corporation has engaged in conduct referred to in

paragraph (1)(b) in relation to the corporation; and

(c) it appears to the Court that the managing controller has not

lodged a report about the matter;

the Court may, on the application of a person interested in the

appointment of the managing controller, direct the managing

controller to lodge such a report.

422A Annual return by controller

(1) This section applies if a person is the controller of property of a

corporation during all or part of a control return year for the

controller for the corporation.

(2) However, this section does not apply if:

(a) the control of the property ends during the control return

year; and

(b) the person is the controller of the property when the control

of the property ends.

Note: If a person is the controller of property of the corporation when the

control of the property ends, the person must instead lodge a return

under section 422B.

(3) The person must lodge a return in relation to the control of the

property of the corporation.

(4) The return must:

(a) be in the approved form; and

(b) be lodged with ASIC within 3 months after the end of the

control return year.

Note: Fees for lodging documents and late lodgement fees may be imposed

under the Corporations (Fees) Act 2001.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.2 Receivers, and other controllers, of property of corporations

Section 422B

242 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(5) Each of the following is a control return year for a controller for a

corporation:

(a) the period of 12 months beginning on the day on which the

person first began to be a controller of the property of the

corporation;

(b) each subsequent period of 12 months.

422B End of control return

Application of this section

(1) This section applies if the control of the property of a corporation

ends.

End of receivership return to be lodged

(2) The person who is the controller of the property of the corporation

when the control of the property of the corporation ends (the last

controller) must lodge a return in relation to the control of the

property of the corporation.

(3) The return must:

(a) be in the approved form; and

(b) be lodged with ASIC within 1 month after the control of the

property of the corporation ends.

Note: Fees for lodging documents and late lodgement fees may be imposed

under the Corporations (Fees) Act 2001.

Notice of lodgement to be given

(4) The last controller must give notice that the return has been lodged

to a person mentioned in subsection (5), if that person requests in

writing that the last controller give the person such a notice.

Note: For notification, see section 600G.

(5) The persons who may request such a notice are:

(a) the members of the corporation; and

(b) the creditors; and

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Receivers, and other controllers, of property of corporations Part 5.2

Section 422C

Corporations Act 2001 243

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(c) the corporation; and

(d) if the corporation is a company under external

administration—the external administrator of the company.

422C Transfer of books to new controller

Application of this section

(1) This section applies if:

(a) a person (the former controller) ceases to act as a controller

of property of a corporation; and

(b) ASIC has not issued a notice to the former controller under

section 422D; and

(c) a registered liquidator (the new controller) is appointed

instead as:

(i) the controller of that property of the corporation; or

(ii) if the corporation is a company under external

administration—the external administrator of the

company.

Transfer of books to new controller

(2) The former controller must transfer to the new controller, within 5

business days after the new controller is appointed, possession or

control of any books relating to the control of the property that are

in the former controller’s possession or control.

(3) The former controller may take a copy of any part of the books

before transferring possession or control of them to the new

controller.

New controller must allow inspection etc.

(4) After possession or control of the books is transferred, the new

controller must allow the former controller to inspect them at any

reasonable time and take a copy of any part of the books.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.2 Receivers, and other controllers, of property of corporations

Section 422D

244 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Offence

(5) A person commits an offence if:

(a) the person is subject to a requirement under subsection (2) or

(4); and

(b) the person intentionally or recklessly fails to comply with the

requirement.

Penalty: 50 penalty units.

Lien against books not prejudiced

(6) If the new controller is entitled to take possession or control of the

books under this section:

(a) a person is not entitled, as against the new controller, to

claim a lien on the books; and

(b) such a lien is not otherwise prejudiced.

422D Transfer of books to ASIC etc.

Transfer of books to ASIC

(1) If a person ceases to act as a controller of property of a corporation,

ASIC may, by written notice given to the person, require the

person to:

(a) if the person has possession or control of books relating to

the control of that property of the corporation in his or her

possession or control—transfer possession or control of those

books to ASIC within the period specified in the notice; or

(b) otherwise—notify ASIC, within the period and in the manner

specified in the notice, that the person does not have books

relating to the control of that property of the corporation in

the person’s possession or control.

Offence

(2) A person commits an offence if:

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Receivers, and other controllers, of property of corporations Part 5.2

Section 422D

Corporations Act 2001 245

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(a) the person is subject to a requirement under subsection (1);

and

(b) the person intentionally or recklessly fails to comply with the

requirement.

Penalty: 50 penalty units.

ASIC must transfer books to new controller

(3) If:

(a) possession or control of books relating to the control of

property of a corporation is transferred to ASIC under this

section; and

(b) the books are in ASIC’s possession or control; and

(c) a person (the new controller) is or becomes:

(i) the controller of that property of the corporation; or

(ii) if the corporation is a company under external

administration—the external administrator of the

company;

ASIC must, as soon as practicable, transfer possession or control of

those books to the new controller.

ASIC must transfer books to company

(4) If:

(a) possession or control of books relating to the control of

property of a corporation is transferred to ASIC under this

section; and

(b) the books are in ASIC’s possession or control; and

(c) it is unlikely that another person will be appointed as:

(i) the controller of that property of the corporation; or

(ii) if the corporation is a company under external

administration—the external administrator of the

company;

ASIC must, as soon as practicable, transfer possession or control of

those books to the relevant corporation.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.2 Receivers, and other controllers, of property of corporations

Section 422D

246 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Lien against books not prejudiced

(5) If ASIC is entitled to take possession or control of the books under

this section:

(a) a person is not entitled, as against ASIC, to claim a lien on

the books; and

(b) such a lien is not otherwise prejudiced.

(6) If ASIC is required to give possession or control of the books to

the new controller under this section:

(a) a person is not entitled, as against the new controller, to

claim a lien on the books; and

(b) such a lien is not otherwise prejudiced.

Notice is not a legislative instrument

(7) A notice under subsection (1) is not a legislative instrument.

Retention period for books

(8) ASIC must retain all books:

(a) that are relevant to the control of property of the corporation;

and

(b) possession or control of which is transferred to ASIC under

this section; and

(c) possession or control of which is not transferred to another

entity under this section, or under any other law;

for a period (the retention period) of 2 years after the day on which

ASIC takes possession or control of the books.

Destruction of books at end of retention period

(9) ASIC may destroy the books at the end of the retention period.

Relationship with other laws

(10) Subsections (8) and (9) do not apply to the extent that ASIC is

under an obligation to retain the books, or a part of the books,

under another provision of this Act or under any other law.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Receivers, and other controllers, of property of corporations Part 5.2

Section 423

Corporations Act 2001 247

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

423 Supervision of controller

(1) If:

(a) it appears to the Court or to ASIC that a controller of

property of a corporation has not faithfully performed, or is

not faithfully performing, the controller’s functions or has

not observed, or is not observing, a requirement of:

(i) in the case of a receiver—the order by which, or the

instrument under which, the receiver was appointed; or

(ii) otherwise—an instrument under which the controller

entered into possession, or took control, of that

property; or

(iii) in any case—the Court; or

(iv) in any case—this Act, the regulations or the rules; or

(b) a person complains to the Court or to ASIC about an act or

omission of a controller of property of a corporation in

connection with performing or exercising any of the

controller’s functions and powers;

the Court or ASIC, as the case may be, may inquire into the matter

and, where the Court or ASIC so inquires, the Court may take such

action as it thinks fit.

(2) ASIC may report to the Court any matter that in its opinion is a

misfeasance, neglect or omission on the part of a controller of

property of a corporation and the Court may order the controller to

make good any loss that the estate of the corporation has sustained

thereby and may make such other order or orders as it thinks fit.

(3) The Court may at any time:

(a) require a controller of property of a corporation to answer

questions about the performance or exercise of any of the

controller’s functions and powers as controller; or

(b) examine a person about the performance or exercise by such

a controller of any of the controller’s functions and powers as

controller; or

(c) direct an investigation to be made of such a controller’s

books.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.2 Receivers, and other controllers, of property of corporations

Section 424

248 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

424 Controller may apply to Court

(1) A controller of property of a corporation may apply to the Court

for directions in relation to any matter arising in connection with

the performance or exercise of any of the controller’s functions and

powers as controller.

(2) In the case of a receiver of property of a corporation, subsection (1)

applies only if the receiver was appointed under a power contained

in an instrument.

425 Court’s power to fix receiver’s remuneration

(1) The Court may by order fix the amount to be paid by way of

remuneration to any person who, under a power contained in an

instrument, has been appointed as receiver of property of a

corporation.

(2) The power of the Court to make an order under this section:

(a) extends to fixing the remuneration for any period before the

making of the order or the application for the order; and

(b) is exercisable even if the receiver has died, or ceased to act,

before the making of the order or the application for the

order; and

(c) if the receiver has been paid or has retained for the receiver’s

remuneration for any period before the making of the order

any amount in excess of that fixed for that period—extends

to requiring the receiver or the receiver’s personal

representatives to account for the excess or such part of the

excess as is specified in the order.

(3) The power conferred by paragraph (2)(c) must not be exercised in

respect of any period before the making of the application for the

order unless, in the opinion of the Court, there are special

circumstances making it proper for the power to be so exercised.

(4) The Court may from time to time vary or amend an order under

this section.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Receivers, and other controllers, of property of corporations Part 5.2

Section 425

Corporations Act 2001 249

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(5) An order under this section may be made, varied or amended on

the application of:

(a) a liquidator of the corporation; or

(b) an administrator of the corporation; or

(c) an administrator of a deed of company arrangement executed

by the corporation; or

(d) ASIC.

(6) An order under this section may be varied or amended on the

application of the receiver concerned.

(7) An order under this section may be made, varied or amended only

as provided in subsections (5) and (6).

(8) In exercising its powers under this section, the Court must have

regard to whether the remuneration is reasonable, taking into

account any or all of the following matters:

(a) the extent to which the work performed by the receiver was

reasonably necessary;

(b) the extent to which the work likely to be performed by the

receiver is likely to be reasonably necessary;

(c) the period during which the work was, or is likely to be,

performed by the receiver;

(d) the quality of the work performed, or likely to be performed,

by the receiver;

(e) the complexity (or otherwise) of the work performed, or

likely to be performed, by the receiver;

(f) the extent (if any) to which the receiver was, or is likely to

be, required to deal with extraordinary issues;

(g) the extent (if any) to which the receiver was, or is likely to

be, required to accept a higher level of risk or responsibility

than is usually the case;

(h) the value and nature of any property dealt with, or likely to

be dealt with, by the receiver;

(i) whether the receiver was, or is likely to be, required to deal

with:

(i) one or more other receivers; or

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.2 Receivers, and other controllers, of property of corporations

Section 426

250 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(ii) one or more receivers and managers; or

(iii) one or more liquidators; or

(iv) one or more administrators; or

(v) one or more administrators of deeds of company

arrangement;

(j) the number, attributes and behaviour, or the likely number,

attributes and behaviour, of the company’s creditors;

(k) if the remuneration is ascertained, in whole or in part, on a

time basis:

(i) the time properly taken, or likely to be properly taken,

by the receiver in performing the work; and

(ii) whether the total remuneration payable to the receiver is

capped;

(l) any other relevant matters.

426 Controller has qualified privilege in certain cases

A controller of property of a corporation has qualified privilege in

respect of:

(a) a matter contained in a report or return that the controller

lodges under section 421A, 422, 422A or 422B; or

(b) a comment that the controller makes under

paragraph 429(2)(c).

427 Notification of matters relating to controller

(1) A person who:

(a) obtains an order for the appointment of a receiver of property

of a corporation; or

(b) appoints such a receiver under a power contained in an

instrument;

must, within 7 days after obtaining the order or making the

appointment, lodge notice that the order has been obtained, or that

the appointment has been made, as the case may be.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Receivers, and other controllers, of property of corporations Part 5.2

Section 428

Corporations Act 2001 251

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(1A) A person who appoints another person to enter into possession, or

take control, of property of a corporation (whether or not as agent

for the corporation) for the purpose of enforcing a security interest

otherwise than as receiver of that property must, within 7 days after

making the appointment, lodge notice of the appointment.

(1B) A person who enters into possession, or takes control, as

mentioned in subsection (1A) must, within 7 days after entering

into possession or taking control, lodge notice that the person has

done so, unless another person:

(a) appointed the first-mentioned person so to enter into

possession or take control; and

(b) complies with subsection (1A) in relation to the appointment.

(2) Within 14 days after becoming a controller of property of a

corporation, a person must lodge notice in the prescribed form of

the address of the person’s office.

(3) A controller of property of a corporation must, within 14 days after

a change in the situation of the controller’s office, lodge notice in

the prescribed form of the change.

(4) A person who ceases to be a controller of property of a corporation

must, within 7 days after so ceasing, lodge notice that the person

has so ceased.

428 Statement that receiver appointed or other controller acting

(1) Where a receiver of property (whether in or outside this

jurisdiction or in or outside Australia) of a corporation has been

appointed, the corporation must set out, in every public document,

and in every negotiable instrument, of the corporation, after the

name of the corporation where it first appears, a statement that a

receiver, or a receiver and manager, as the case requires, has been

appointed.

(2) Where there is a controller (other than a receiver) of property

(whether in Australia or elsewhere) of a corporation, the

corporation must set out, in every public document, and in every

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.2 Receivers, and other controllers, of property of corporations

Section 429

252 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

negotiable instrument, of the corporation, after the corporation’s

name where it first appears, a statement that a controller is acting.

(3) An offence based on subsection (1) or (2) is an offence of strict

liability.

Note: For strict liability, see section 6.1 of the Criminal Code.

429 Officers to report to controller about corporation’s affairs

(1) In this section:

reporting officer, in relation to a corporation in respect of property

of which a person is controller, means a person who was:

(a) in the case of a company or registrable Australian body—a

director or secretary of the company or registrable Australian

body; or

(b) in the case of a foreign company—a local agent of the

foreign company;

on the control day.

(2) Where a person becomes a controller of property of a corporation:

(a) the person must serve on the corporation as soon as

practicable notice that the person is a controller of property

of the corporation; and

(b) within 10 business days after the corporation receives the

notice, the reporting officers must make out and submit to the

person a report in the prescribed form about the affairs of the

corporation as at the control day; and

(c) the person must, within one month after receipt of the report:

(i) lodge a copy of the report and a notice setting out any

comments the person sees fit to make relating to the

report or, if the person does not see fit to make any

comment, a notice stating that the person does not see

fit to make any comment; and

(ii) send to the corporation a copy of the notice lodged in

accordance with subparagraph (i); and

(iii) if the person became a controller of the property:

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Receivers, and other controllers, of property of corporations Part 5.2

Section 429

Corporations Act 2001 253

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(A) because of an appointment as receiver of the

property that was made by or on behalf of the

holder of debentures of the corporation; or

(B) by entering into possession, or taking control,

of the property for the purpose of enforcing a

security interest securing such debentures;

and there are trustees for the holders of those

debentures—send to those trustees a copy of the report

and a copy of the notice lodged under subparagraph (i).

(3) Where notice has been served on a corporation under

paragraph (2)(a), the reporting officers may apply to the controller

or to the Court to extend the period within which the report is to be

submitted and:

(a) if application is made to the controller—if the controller

believes that there are special reasons for so doing, the

controller may, by notice in writing given to the reporting

officers, extend that period until a specified day; and

(b) if application is made to the Court—if the Court believes that

there are special reasons for so doing, the Court may, by

order, extend that period until a specified day.

(4) As soon as practicable after granting an extension under

paragraph (3)(a), the controller must lodge a copy of the notice.

(5) As soon as practicable after the Court grants an extension under

paragraph (3)(b), the reporting officers must lodge a copy of the

order.

(6) Subsections (2), (3) and (4) do not apply in a case where a person

becomes a controller of property of a corporation:

(a) to act with an existing controller of property of the

corporation; or

(b) in place of a controller of such property who has died or

ceased to be a controller of such property.

(6A) However, if subsection (2) applies in a case where a controller of

property of a corporation dies, or ceases to be a controller of

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.2 Receivers, and other controllers, of property of corporations

Section 430

254 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

property of the corporation, before subsection (2) is fully complied

with, then:

(a) the references in paragraphs (2)(b) and (c) to the person; and

(b) the references in subsections (3) and (4) to the controller;

include references to the controller’s successor and to any

continuing controller.

(7) Where a corporation is being wound up, this section (including

subsection (6A)) and section 430 apply even if the controller and

the liquidator are the same person, but with any necessary

modifications arising from that fact.

430 Controller may require reports

(1) A controller of property of a corporation may, by notice given to

the person or persons, require one or more persons included in one

or more of the following classes of persons to make out as required

by the notice, verify by a statement in writing in the prescribed

form, and submit to the controller, a report, containing such

information as is specified in the notice as to the affairs of the

corporation or as to such of those affairs as are specified in the

notice, as at a date specified in the notice:

(a) persons who are or have been officers of the corporation;

(b) where the corporation was incorporated within one year

before the control day—persons who have taken part in the

formation of the corporation;

(c) persons who are employed by the corporation or have been

so employed within one year before the control day and are,

in the opinion of the controller, capable of giving the

information required;

(d) persons who are, or have been within one year before the

control day, officers of, or employed by, a corporation that is,

or within that year was, an officer of the corporation.

(2) Without limiting the generality of subsection (1), a notice under

that subsection may specify the information that the controller

requires as to affairs of the corporation by reference to information

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Receivers, and other controllers, of property of corporations Part 5.2

Section 431

Corporations Act 2001 255

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

that this Act requires to be included in any other report, statement

or notice under this Act.

(3) A person making a report and verifying it as required by

subsection (1) must, subject to the regulations, be allowed, and

must be paid by the controller (or the controller’s successor) out of

the controller’s receipts, such costs and expenses incurred in and

about the preparation and making of the report and the verification

of the report as the controller (or the controller’s successor)

considers reasonable.

(4) A person must comply with a requirement made under

subsection (1).

(5) A reference in this section to the controller’s successor includes a

reference to a continuing controller.

431 Controller may inspect books

A controller of property of a corporation is entitled to inspect at

any reasonable time any books of the corporation that relate to that

property and a person must not fail to allow the controller to

inspect such books at such a time.

432 Auditing returns by controllers

(2) ASIC may, of its own motion or on the application of the

corporation or a creditor of the corporation, cause the returns

lodged in accordance with sections 422A and 422B to be audited

by a registered company auditor appointed by ASIC and, for the

purpose of the audit, the controller must furnish the auditor with

such books and information as the auditor requires.

(3) Where ASIC causes the returns to be audited on the request of the

corporation or a creditor, ASIC may require the corporation or

creditor, as the case may be, to give security for the payment of the

cost of the audit.

(4) The costs of an audit under subsection (2) must be fixed by ASIC

and ASIC may if it thinks fit make an order declaring that, for the

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.2 Receivers, and other controllers, of property of corporations

Section 433

256 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

purposes of subsection 419(1), those costs are taken to be a debt

incurred by the controller as mentioned in subsection 419(1) and,

where such an order is made, the controller is liable accordingly.

(5) A person must comply with a requirement made under this section.

433 Property subject to circulating security interest—payment of

certain debts to have priority

(2) This section applies where:

(a) a receiver is appointed on behalf of the holders of any

debentures of a company or registered body that are secured

by a circulating security interest, or possession is taken or

control is assumed, by or on behalf of the holders of any

debentures of a company or registered body, of any property

comprised in or subject to a circulating security interest; and

(b) at the date of the appointment or of the taking of possession

or assumption of control (in this section called the relevant

date):

(i) the company or registered body has not commenced to

be wound up voluntarily; and

(ii) the company or registered body has not been ordered to

be wound up by the Court.

(3) In the case of a company, the receiver or other person taking

possession or assuming control of property of the company must

pay, out of the property coming into his, her or its hands, the

following debts or amounts in priority to any claim for principal or

interest in respect of the debentures:

(a) first, any amount that in a winding up is payable in priority to

unsecured debts pursuant to section 562;

(b) next, if an auditor of the company had applied to ASIC under

subsection 329(6) for consent to his, her or its resignation as

auditor and ASIC had refused that consent before the

relevant date—the reasonable fees and expenses of the

auditor incurred during the period beginning on the day of

the refusal and ending on the relevant date;

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Receivers, and other controllers, of property of corporations Part 5.2

Section 433

Corporations Act 2001 257

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(c) subject to subsections (6) and (7), next, any debt or amount

that in a winding up is payable in priority to other unsecured

debts pursuant to paragraph 556(1)(e), (g) or (h) or

section 560.

(4) In the case of a registered body, the receiver or other person taking

possession or assuming control of property of the registered body

must pay, out of the property of the registered body coming into

his, her or its hands, the following debts or amounts in priority to

any claim for principal or interest in respect of the debentures:

(a) first, any amount that in a winding up is payable in priority to

unsecured debts pursuant to section 562;

(b) next, any debt or amount that in a winding up is payable in

priority to other unsecured debts pursuant to

paragraph 556(1)(e), (g) or (h) or section 560.

(5) The receiver or other person taking possession or assuming control

of property must pay debts and amounts payable pursuant to

paragraph (3)(c) or (4)(b) in the same order of priority as is

prescribed by Division 6 of Part 5.6 in respect of those debts and

amounts.

(6) In the case of a company, if an auditor of the company had applied

to ASIC under subsection 329(6) for consent to his, her or its

resignation as auditor and ASIC had, before the relevant date,

refused that consent, a receiver must, when property comes to the

receiver’s hands, before paying any debt or amount referred to in

paragraph (3)(c), make provision out of that property for the

reasonable fees and expenses of the auditor incurred after the

relevant date but before the date on which the property comes into

the receiver’s hands, being fees and expenses in respect of which

provision has not already been made under this subsection.

(7) If an auditor of the company applies to ASIC under

subsection 329(6) for consent to his, her or its resignation as

auditor and, after the relevant date, ASIC refuses that consent, the

receiver must, in relation to property that comes into the receiver’s

hands after the refusal, before paying any debt or amount referred

to in paragraph (3)(c), make provision out of that property for the

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.2 Receivers, and other controllers, of property of corporations

Section 434

258 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

reasonable fees and expenses of the auditor incurred after the

refusal and before the date on which the property comes into the

receiver’s hands, being fees and expenses in respect of which

provision has not already been made under this subsection.

(8) A receiver must make provision in respect of reasonable fees and

expenses of an auditor in respect of a particular period as required

by subsection (6) or (7) whether or not the auditor has made a

claim for fees and expenses for that period, but where the auditor

has not made a claim, the receiver may estimate the reasonable fees

and expenses of the auditor for that period and make provision in

accordance with the estimate.

(9) For the purposes of this section, the references in Division 6 of

Part 5.6 to the relevant date are to be read as references to the date

of the appointment of the receiver, or of possession being taken or

control being assumed, as the case may be.

434 Enforcing controller’s duty to make returns

(1) If a controller of property of a corporation:

(a) who has made default in making or lodging any return,

account or other document or in giving any notice required

by law fails to make good the default within 14 days after the

service on the controller, by any member or creditor of the

corporation or trustee for debenture holders, of a notice

requiring the controller to do so; or

(b) who has become a controller of property of the corporation

otherwise than by being appointed a receiver of such

property by a court and who has, after being required at any

time by the liquidator of the corporation so to do, failed to

render proper accounts of, and to vouch, the controller’s

receipts and payments and to pay over to the liquidator the

amount properly payable to the liquidator;

the Court may make an order directing the controller to make good

the default within such time as is specified in the order.

(2) An application under subsection (1) may be made:

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Receivers, and other controllers, of property of corporations Part 5.2

Section 434A

Corporations Act 2001 259

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(a) if paragraph (1)(a) applies—by a member or creditor of the

corporation or by a trustee for debenture holders; and

(b) if paragraph (1)(b) applies—by the liquidator of the

corporation.

434A Court may remove controller for misconduct

Where, on the application of a corporation, the Court is satisfied

that a controller of property of the corporation has been guilty of

misconduct in connection with performing or exercising any of the

controller’s functions and powers, the Court may order that, on and

after a specified day, the controller cease to act as receiver or give

up possession or control, as the case requires, of property of the

corporation.

434B Court may remove redundant controller

(1) The Court may order that, on and after a specified day, a controller

of property of a corporation:

(a) cease to act as receiver, or give up possession or control, as

the case requires, of property of the corporation; or

(b) act as receiver, or continue in possession or control, as the

case requires, only of specified property of the corporation.

(2) However, the Court may only make an order under subsection (1)

if satisfied that the objectives for which the controller was

appointed, or entered into possession or took control of property of

the corporation, as the case requires, have been achieved, so far as

is reasonably practicable, except in relation to any property

specified in the order under paragraph (1)(b).

(3) For the purposes of subsection (2), the Court must have regard to:

(a) the corporation’s interests; and

(b) the interests of the secured party in relation to the security

interest that the controller is enforcing; and

(c) the interests of the corporation’s other creditors; and

(d) any other relevant matter.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.2 Receivers, and other controllers, of property of corporations

Section 434C

260 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(4) The Court may only make an order under subsection (1) on the

application of a liquidator appointed for the purposes of winding

up the corporation in insolvency.

(5) An order under subsection (1) may also prohibit the secured party

from doing any or all of the following, except with the leave of the

Court:

(a) appointing a person as receiver of property of the corporation

under a power contained in an instrument relating to the

security interest;

(b) entering into possession, or taking control, of such property

for the purpose of enforcing the security interest;

(c) appointing a person so to enter into possession or take control

(whether as agent for the secured party or for the

corporation).

434C Effect of sections 434A and 434B

(1) Except as expressly provided in section 434A or 434B, an order

under that section does not affect a security interest in property of a

corporation.

(2) Nothing in section 434A or 434B limits any other power of the

Court to remove, or otherwise deal with, a controller of property of

a corporation (for example, the Court’s powers under section 423).

434D Appointment of 2 or more receivers of property of a

corporation

If 2 or more persons have been appointed as receivers of property

of a corporation:

(a) a function or power of a receiver of property of the

corporation may be performed or exercised by any one of

them, or by any 2 or more of them together, except so far as

the order or instrument appointing them otherwise provides;

and

(b) a reference in this Act to a receiver, or to the receiver, of

property of a corporation is, in the case of the first-mentioned

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Receivers, and other controllers, of property of corporations Part 5.2

Section 434E

Corporations Act 2001 261

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

corporation, a reference to whichever one or more of those

receivers the case requires.

434E Appointment of 2 or more receivers and managers of property

of a corporation

If 2 or more persons have been appointed as receivers and

managers of property of a corporation:

(a) a function or power of a receiver and manager of property of

the corporation may be performed or exercised by any one of

them, or by any 2 or more of them together, except so far as

the order or instrument appointing them otherwise provides;

and

(b) a reference in this Act to a receiver and manager, or to the

receiver and manager, of property of a corporation is, in the

case of the first-mentioned corporation, a reference to

whichever one or more of those receivers and managers the

case requires.

434F Appointment of 2 or more controllers of property of a

corporation

If 2 or more persons have been appointed as controllers of property

of a corporation:

(a) a function or power of a controller of property of the

corporation may be performed or exercised by any one of

them, or by any 2 or more of them together, except so far as

the order or instrument appointing them otherwise provides;

and

(b) a reference in this Act to a controller, or to the controller, of

property of a corporation is, in the case of the first-mentioned

corporation, a reference to whichever one or more of those

controllers the case requires.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.2 Receivers, and other controllers, of property of corporations

Section 434G

262 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

434G Appointment of 2 or more managing controllers of property of

a corporation

If 2 or more persons have been appointed as managing controllers

of property of a corporation:

(a) a function or power of a managing controller of property of

the corporation may be performed or exercised by any one of

them, or by any 2 or more of them together, except so far as

the order or instrument appointing them otherwise provides;

and

(b) a reference in this Act to a managing controller, or to the

managing controller, of property of a corporation is, in the

case of the first-mentioned corporation, a reference to

whichever one or more of those managing controllers the

case requires.

434H Regulations may provide for reporting to ASIC

(1) The regulations may provide for and in relation to the obligations

of a controller, or a managing controller, of the property of a

corporation:

(a) to give information; and

(b) to provide reports; and

(c) to produce documents;

to ASIC.

(2) Without limiting subsection (1), the regulations may provide for

and in relation to:

(a) the manner and form in which information is to be given, a

report provided or a document produced; and

(b) the timeframes in which information is to be given, a report

provided or a document produced; and

(c) who is to bear the cost of giving information, providing a

report or producing a document.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Administration of a company’s affairs with a view to executing a deed of company

arrangement Part 5.3A

Preliminary Division 1

Section 435A

Corporations Act 2001 263

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Part 5.3A—Administration of a company’s affairs

with a view to executing a deed of company

arrangement

Division 1—Preliminary

435A Object of Part

The object of this Part, and Schedule 2 to the extent that it relates

to this Part, is to provide for the business, property and affairs of an

insolvent company to be administered in a way that:

(a) maximises the chances of the company, or as much as

possible of its business, continuing in existence; or

(b) if it is not possible for the company or its business to

continue in existence—results in a better return for the

company’s creditors and members than would result from an

immediate winding up of the company.

Note: Schedule 2 contains additional rules about companies under external

administration.

435B Definitions

In this Part, unless the contrary intention appears:

property of a company includes any PPSA retention of title

property of the company.

Note: See sections 9 (definition of property) and 51F (PPSA retention of

title property). An extended definition of property applies in

subsection 444E(3) (see subsection 444E(4)).

receiver includes a receiver and manager.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.3A Administration of a company’s affairs with a view to executing a deed of

company arrangement

Division 1 Preliminary

Section 435C

264 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

435C When administration begins and ends

(1) The administration of a company:

(a) begins when an administrator of the company is appointed

under section 436A, 436B or 436C; and

(b) ends on the happening of whichever event of a kind referred

to in subsection (2) or (3) happens first after the

administration begins.

(2) The normal outcome of the administration of a company is that:

(a) a deed of company arrangement is executed by both the

company and the deed’s administrator; or

(b) the company’s creditors resolve under paragraph 439C(b)

that the administration should end; or

(c) the company’s creditors resolve under paragraph 439C(c)

that the company be wound up.

(3) However, the administration of a company may also end because:

(a) the Court orders, under section 447A or otherwise, that the

administration is to end, for example, because the Court is

satisfied that the company is solvent; or

(b) the convening period, as fixed by subsection 439A(5), for a

meeting of the company’s creditors ends:

(i) without the meeting being convened in accordance with

section 439A; and

(ii) without an application being made for the Court to

extend under subsection 439A(6) the convening period

for the meeting; or

(c) an application for the Court to extend under

subsection 439A(6) the convening period for such a meeting

is finally determined or otherwise disposed of otherwise than

by the Court extending the convening period; or

(d) the convening period, as extended under subsection 439A(6),

for such a meeting ends without the meeting being convened

in accordance with section 439A; or

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Administration of a company’s affairs with a view to executing a deed of company

arrangement Part 5.3A

Preliminary Division 1

Section 435C

Corporations Act 2001 265

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(e) such a meeting convened under section 439A ends (whether

or not it was earlier adjourned) without a resolution under

section 439C being passed at the meeting; or

(f) the company contravenes subsection 444B(2) by failing to

execute a proposed deed of company arrangement; or

(g) the Court appoints a provisional liquidator of the company,

or orders that the company be wound up; or

(h) if the company is a general insurer (within the meaning of the

Insurance Act 1973)management of the general insurer

vests in a judicial manager of the company appointed by the

Federal Court under Part VB of the Insurance Act 1973; or

(i) if the company is a life company (within the meaning of the

Life Insurance Act 1995)—management of the life company

vests in a judicial manager of the life company appointed by

the Federal Court under Part 8 of the Life Insurance Act

1995.

(4) During the administration of a company, the company is taken to

be under administration.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.3A Administration of a company’s affairs with a view to executing a deed of

company arrangement

Division 2 Appointment of administrator and first meeting of creditors

Section 436A

266 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Division 2—Appointment of administrator and first

meeting of creditors

436A Company may appoint administrator if board thinks it is or

will become insolvent

(1) A company may, by writing, appoint an administrator of the

company if the board has resolved to the effect that:

(a) in the opinion of the directors voting for the resolution, the

company is insolvent, or is likely to become insolvent at

some future time; and

(b) an administrator of the company should be appointed.

(2) Subsection (1) does not apply to a company if a person holds an

appointment as liquidator, or provisional liquidator, of the

company.

436B Liquidator may appoint administrator

(1) A liquidator or provisional liquidator of a company may by writing

appoint an administrator of the company if he or she thinks that the

company is insolvent, or is likely to become insolvent at some

future time.

(2) A liquidator or provisional liquidator of a company must not

appoint any of the following persons under subsection (1):

(a) himself or herself;

(b) if he or she is a partner of a partnership—a partner or

employee of the partnership;

(c) if he or she is an employee—his or her employer;

(d) if he or she is an employer—his or her employee;

(e) if he or she is a director, secretary, employee or senior

manager of a corporation—a director, secretary, employee or

senior manager of the corporation;

unless:

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Administration of a company’s affairs with a view to executing a deed of company

arrangement Part 5.3A

Appointment of administrator and first meeting of creditors Division 2

Section 436C

Corporations Act 2001 267

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(f) at a meeting of the company’s creditors, the company’s

creditors pass a resolution approving the appointment; or

(g) the appointment is made with the leave of the Court.

436C Secured party may appoint administrator

(1) A person who is entitled to enforce a security interest in the whole,

or substantially the whole, of a company’s property may by writing

appoint an administrator of the company if the security interest has

become, and is still, enforceable.

(1A) Subsection (1) applies in relation to a PPSA security interest only

if the security interest is perfected within the meaning of the

Personal Property Securities Act 2009.

(2) Subsection (1) does not apply to a company if a person holds an

appointment as liquidator, or provisional liquidator, of the

company.

436D Company already under administration

An administrator cannot be appointed under section 436A, 436B or

436C if the company is already under administration.

436DA Declarations by administrator—indemnities and relevant

relationships

Scope

(1) This section applies to an administrator appointed under

section 436A, 436B or 436C.

Declaration of relationships and indemnities

(2) As soon as practicable after being appointed, the administrator

must make:

(a) a declaration of relevant relationships; and

(b) a declaration of indemnities.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.3A Administration of a company’s affairs with a view to executing a deed of

company arrangement

Division 2 Appointment of administrator and first meeting of creditors

Section 436DA

268 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Note: Failure to comply with this subsection is an offence (see

subsection 1311(1)).

Notification of creditors

(3) The administrator must:

(a) give a copy of each declaration under subsection (2) to as

many of the company’s creditors as reasonably practicable;

and

(b) do so at the same time as the administrator gives those

creditors notice of the meeting referred to in section 436E.

Note: Failure to comply with this subsection is an offence (see

subsection 1311(1)).

(4) The administrator must table a copy of each declaration under

subsection (2) at the meeting referred to in section 436E.

Note: Failure to comply with this subsection is an offence (see

subsection 1311(1)).

(4A) As soon as practicable after making a declaration under

subsection (2), the administrator must lodge a copy of the

declaration with ASIC.

Note: Failure to comply with this subsection is an offence (see

subsection 1311(1)).

Updating of declaration

(5) If:

(a) at a particular time, the administrator makes:

(i) a declaration of relevant relationships; or

(ii) a declaration of indemnities;

under subsection (2) or this subsection; and

(b) at a later time:

(i) the declaration has become out-of-date; or

(ii) the administrator becomes aware of an error in the

declaration;

the administrator must, as soon as practicable, make:

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Administration of a company’s affairs with a view to executing a deed of company

arrangement Part 5.3A

Appointment of administrator and first meeting of creditors Division 2

Section 436DA

Corporations Act 2001 269

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(c) if subparagraph (a)(i) applies—a replacement declaration of

relevant relationships; or

(d) if subparagraph (a)(ii) applies—a replacement declaration of

indemnities.

Note: Failure to comply with this subsection is an offence (see

subsection 1311(1)).

(6) The administrator must table a copy of a replacement declaration

under subsection (5):

(a) if:

(i) there is a committee of inspection; and

(ii) the next meeting of the committee of inspection occurs

before the next meeting of the company’s creditors;

at the next meeting of the committee of inspection; or

(b) in any other case—at the next meeting of the company’s

creditors.

Note: Failure to comply with this subsection is an offence (see

subsection 1311(1)).

(6A) As soon as practicable after making a replacement declaration

under subsection (5), the administrator must lodge a copy of the

replacement declaration with ASIC.

Note: Failure to comply with this subsection is an offence (see

subsection 1311(1)).

Defence

(7) In a prosecution for an offence constituted by a failure to include a

particular matter in a declaration under this section, it is a defence

if the defendant proves that:

(a) the defendant made reasonable enquiries; and

(b) after making these enquiries, the defendant had no reasonable

grounds for believing that the matter should have been

included in the declaration.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.3A Administration of a company’s affairs with a view to executing a deed of

company arrangement

Division 2 Appointment of administrator and first meeting of creditors

Section 436E

270 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

436E Purpose and timing of first meeting of creditors

(1) The administrator of a company under administration must

convene a meeting of the company’s creditors in order to

determine:

(a) whether to appoint a committee of inspection; and

(b) if so, who are to be the committee’s members.

(2) The meeting must be held within 8 business days after the

administration begins.

(3) The administrator must convene the meeting by:

(a) giving written notice of the meeting to as many of the

company’s creditors as reasonably practicable; and

(b) causing a notice setting out the prescribed information about

the meeting to be published in the prescribed manner;

at least 5 business days before the meeting.

Note: For electronic notification under paragraph (a), see section 600G.

(3A) A notice under paragraph (3)(b) that relates to a company may be

combined with a notice under paragraph 450A(1)(b) that relates to

the company.

(4) At the meeting, the company’s creditors may also pass a

resolution:

(a) removing the administrator from office; and

(b) appointing someone else as administrator of the company.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Administration of a company’s affairs with a view to executing a deed of company

arrangement Part 5.3A

Administrator assumes control of company’s affairs Division 3

Section 437A

Corporations Act 2001 271

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Division 3—Administrator assumes control of company’s

affairs

437A Role of administrator

(1) While a company is under administration, the administrator:

(a) has control of the company’s business, property and affairs;

and

(b) may carry on that business and manage that property and

those affairs; and

(c) may terminate or dispose of all or part of that business, and

may dispose of any of that property; and

(d) may perform any function, and exercise any power, that the

company or any of its officers could perform or exercise if

the company were not under administration.

(2) Nothing in subsection (1) limits the generality of anything else in

it.

Note: A PPSA security interest in property of a company that is unperfected

(within the meaning of the Personal Property Securities Act 2009)

immediately before an administrator of the company is appointed

vests in the company at the time of appointment, subject to certain

exceptions (see section 267 of that Act).

437B Administrator acts as company’s agent

When performing a function, or exercising a power, as

administrator of a company under administration, the administrator

is taken to be acting as the company’s agent.

437D Only administrator can deal with company’s property

(1) This section applies where:

(a) a company under administration purports to enter into; or

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.3A Administration of a company’s affairs with a view to executing a deed of

company arrangement

Division 3 Administrator assumes control of company’s affairs

Section 437D

272 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(b) a person purports to enter into, on behalf of a company under

administration;

a transaction or dealing affecting property of the company.

(2) The transaction or dealing is void unless:

(a) the administrator entered into it on the company’s behalf; or

(b) the administrator consented to it in writing before it was

entered into; or

(c) it was entered into under an order of the Court.

(3) Subsection (2) does not apply to a payment made:

(a) by an Australian ADI out of an account kept by the company

with the ADI; and

(b) in good faith and in the ordinary course of the ADI’s banking

business; and

(c) after the administration began and on or before the day on

which:

(i) the administrator gives to the ADI (under

subsection 450A(3) or otherwise) written notice of the

appointment that began the administration; or

(ii) the administrator complies with paragraph 450A(1)(b)

in relation to that appointment;

whichever happens first.

(4) Subsection (2) has effect subject to an order that the Court makes

after the purported transaction or dealing.

(5) If, because of subsection (2), the transaction or dealing is void, or

would be void apart from subsection (4), an officer or employee of

the company who:

(a) purported to enter into the transaction or dealing on the

company’s behalf; or

(b) was in any other way, by act or omission, directly or

indirectly, knowingly concerned in, or party to, the

transaction or dealing;

contravenes this subsection.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Administration of a company’s affairs with a view to executing a deed of company

arrangement Part 5.3A

Administrator assumes control of company’s affairs Division 3

Section 437E

Corporations Act 2001 273

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

437E Order for compensation where officer involved in void

transaction

(1) Where:

(a) a court finds a person guilty of an offence constituted by a

contravention of subsection 437D(5) (including such an

offence that is taken to have been committed because of

section 5 of the Crimes Act 1914); and

(b) the court is satisfied that the company or another person has

suffered loss or damage because of the act or omission

constituting the offence;

the court may (whether or not it imposes a penalty) order the

first-mentioned person to pay compensation to the company or

other person, as the case may be, of such amount as the order

specifies.

Note: Section 73A defines when a court is taken to find a person guilty of an

offence.

(2) An order under subsection (1) may be enforced as if it were a

judgment of the court.

(3) The power of a court under section 1318 to relieve a person from

liability as mentioned in that section extends to relieving a person

from liability to be ordered under this section to pay compensation.

437F Effect of administration on company’s members

Transfer of shares

(1) A transfer of shares in a company that is made during the

administration of the company is void except if:

(a) both:

(i) the administrator gives written consent to the transfer;

and

(ii) that consent is unconditional; or

(b) all of the following subparagraphs apply:

(i) the administrator gives written consent to the transfer;

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.3A Administration of a company’s affairs with a view to executing a deed of

company arrangement

Division 3 Administrator assumes control of company’s affairs

Section 437F

274 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(ii) that consent is subject to one or more specified

conditions;

(iii) those conditions have been satisfied; or

(c) the Court makes an order under subsection (4) authorising

the transfer.

(2) The administrator may only give consent under paragraph (1)(a) or

(b) if he or she is satisfied that the transfer is in the best interests of

the company’s creditors as a whole.

(3) If the administrator refuses to give consent under paragraph (1)(a)

or (b) to a transfer of shares in the company:

(a) the prospective transferor; or

(b) the prospective transferee; or

(c) a creditor of the company;

may apply to the Court for an order authorising the transfer.

(4) If the Court is satisfied, on an application under subsection (3), that

the transfer is in the best interests of the company’s creditors as a

whole, the Court may, by order, authorise the transfer.

(5) If the administrator gives consent under paragraph (1)(b) to a

transfer of shares in the company:

(a) the prospective transferor; or

(b) the prospective transferee; or

(c) a creditor of the company;

may apply to the Court for an order setting aside any or all of the

conditions to which the consent is subject.

(6) If the Court is satisfied, on an application under subsection (5), that

any or all of the conditions covered by the application are not in

the best interests of the company’s creditors as a whole, the Court

may, by order, set aside any or all of the conditions.

(7) The administrator is entitled to be heard in a proceeding before the

Court in relation to an application under subsection (3) or (5).

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Administration of a company’s affairs with a view to executing a deed of company

arrangement Part 5.3A

Administrator assumes control of company’s affairs Division 3

Section 437F

Corporations Act 2001 275

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Alteration in the status of members

(8) An alteration in the status of members of a company that is made

during the administration of the company is void except if:

(a) both:

(i) the administrator gives written consent to the alteration;

and

(ii) that consent is unconditional; or

(b) all of the following subparagraphs apply:

(i) the administrator gives written consent to the alteration;

(ii) that consent is subject to one or more specified

conditions;

(iii) those conditions have been satisfied; or

(c) the Court makes an order under subsection (12) authorising

the alteration.

(9) The administrator may only give consent under paragraph (8)(a) or

(b) if he or she is satisfied that the alteration is in the best interests

of the company’s creditors as a whole.

(10) The administrator must refuse to give consent under

paragraph (8)(a) or (b) if the alteration would contravene Part 2F.2.

(11) If the administrator refuses to give consent under paragraph (8)(a)

or (b) to an alteration in the status of members of a company:

(a) a member of the company; or

(b) a creditor of the company;

may apply to the Court for an order authorising the alteration.

(12) If the Court is satisfied, on an application under subsection (11),

that:

(a) the alteration is in the best interests of the company’s

creditors as a whole; and

(b) the alteration does not contravene Part 2F.2;

the Court may, by order, authorise the alteration.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.3A Administration of a company’s affairs with a view to executing a deed of

company arrangement

Division 3 Administrator assumes control of company’s affairs

Section 437F

276 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(13) If the administrator gives consent under paragraph (8)(b) to an

alteration in the status of members of a company:

(a) a member of the company; or

(b) a creditor of the company;

may apply to the Court for an order setting aside any or all of the

conditions to which the consent is subject.

(14) If the Court is satisfied, on an application under subsection (13),

that any or all of the conditions covered by the application are not

in the best interests of the company’s creditors as a whole, the

Court may, by order, set aside any or all of the conditions.

(15) The administrator is entitled to be heard in a proceeding before the

Court in relation to an application under subsection (11) or (13).

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Administration of a company’s affairs with a view to executing a deed of company

arrangement Part 5.3A

Administrator investigates company’s affairs Division 4

Section 438A

Corporations Act 2001 277

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Division 4—Administrator investigates company’s affairs

438A Administrator to investigate affairs and consider possible

courses of action

As soon as practicable after the administration of a company

begins, the administrator must:

(a) investigate the company’s business, property, affairs and

financial circumstances; and

(b) form an opinion about each of the following matters:

(i) whether it would be in the interests of the company’s

creditors for the company to execute a deed of company

arrangement;

(ii) whether it would be in the creditors’ interests for the

administration to end;

(iii) whether it would be in the creditors’ interests for the

company to be wound up.

438B Directors to help administrator

(1) As soon as practicable after the administration of a company

begins, each director must:

(a) deliver to the administrator all books in the director’s

possession that relate to the company, other than books that

the director is entitled, as against the company and the

administrator, to retain; and

(b) if the director knows where other books relating to the

company are—tell the administrator where those books are.

(2) Within 5 business days after the administration of a company

begins or such longer period as the administrator allows, the

directors must give to the administrator a report in the prescribed

form about the company’s business, property, affairs and financial

circumstances.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.3A Administration of a company’s affairs with a view to executing a deed of

company arrangement

Division 4 Administrator investigates company’s affairs

Section 438C

278 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(2A) The administrator must, within 5 business days after receiving a

report under subsection (2), lodge a copy of the report.

(3) A director of a company under administration must:

(a) attend on the administrator at such times; and

(b) give the administrator such information about the company’s

business, property, affairs and financial circumstances;

as the administrator reasonably requires.

(4) A person must not fail to comply with subsection (1), (2), (2A) or

(3).

(5) An offence based on subsection (4) is an offence of strict liability.

Note: For strict liability, see section 6.1 of the Criminal Code.

(6) Subsection (4) does not apply to the extent that the person has a

reasonable excuse.

Note: A defendant bears an evidential burden in relation to the matter in

subsection (6), see subsection 13.3(3) of the Criminal Code.

438C Administrator’s rights to company’s books

(1) A person is not entitled, as against the administrator of a company

under administration:

(a) to retain possession of books of the company; or

(b) to claim or enforce a lien on such books;

but such a lien is not otherwise prejudiced.

(2) Paragraph (1)(a) does not apply in relation to books of which a

secured creditor of the company is entitled to possession otherwise

than because of a lien, but the administrator is entitled to inspect,

and make copies of, such books at any reasonable time.

(3) The administrator of a company under administration may give to a

person a written notice requiring the person to deliver to the

administrator, as specified in the notice, books so specified that are

in the person’s possession.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Administration of a company’s affairs with a view to executing a deed of company

arrangement Part 5.3A

Administrator investigates company’s affairs Division 4

Section 438D

Corporations Act 2001 279

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(4) A notice under subsection (3) must specify a period of at least 3

business days as the period within which the notice must be

complied with.

(5) A person must comply with a notice under subsection (3).

(6) Subsection (5) does not apply to the extent that the person is

entitled, as against the company and the administrator, to retain

possession of the books.

Note: A defendant bears an evidential burden in relation to the matter in

subsection (6), see subsection 13.3(3) of the Criminal Code.

(7) An offence based on subsection (5) is an offence of strict liability.

Note: For strict liability, see section 6.1 of the Criminal Code.

438D Reports by administrator

(1) If it appears to the administrator of a company under

administration that:

(a) a past or present officer or employee, or a member, of the

company may have been guilty of an offence in relation to

the company; or

(b) a person who has taken part in the formation, promotion,

administration, management or winding up of the company:

(i) may have misapplied or retained, or may have become

liable or accountable for, money or property (in

Australia or elsewhere) of the company; or

(ii) may have been guilty of negligence, default, breach of

duty or breach of trust in relation to the company;

the administrator must:

(c) lodge a report about the matter as soon as practicable; and

(d) give ASIC such information, and such access to and facilities

for inspecting and taking copies of documents, as ASIC

requires.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.3A Administration of a company’s affairs with a view to executing a deed of

company arrangement

Division 4 Administrator investigates company’s affairs

Section 438D

280 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(2) The administrator may also lodge further reports specifying any

other matter that, in his or her opinion, it is desirable to bring to

ASIC’s notice.

(3) If it appears to the Court:

(a) that a past or present officer or employee, or a member, of a

company under administration has been guilty of an offence

in relation to the company; or

(b) that a person who has taken part in the formation, promotion,

administration, management or winding up of a company

under administration has engaged in conduct of a kind

referred to in paragraph (1)(b) in relation to the company;

and that the administrator has not lodged a report about the matter,

the Court may, on the application of an interested person, direct the

administrator to lodge such a report.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Administration of a company’s affairs with a view to executing a deed of company

arrangement Part 5.3A

Meeting of creditors decides company’s future Division 5

Section 439A

Corporations Act 2001 281

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Division 5—Meeting of creditors decides company’s future

439A Administrator to convene meeting and inform creditors

(1) The administrator of a company under administration must

convene a meeting of the company’s creditors within the

convening period as fixed by subsection (5) or extended under

subsection (6).

Note: For body corporate representatives’ powers at a meeting of the

company’s creditors, see section 250D.

(2) The meeting must be held within 5 business days before, or within

5 business days after, the end of the convening period.

(5) The convening period is:

(a) if the day after the administration begins is in December, or

is less than 25 business days before Good Friday—the period

of 25 business days beginning on:

(i) that day; or

(ii) if that day is not a business day—the next business day;

or

(b) otherwise—the period of 20 business days beginning on:

(i) the day after the administration begins; or

(ii) if that day is not a business day—the next business day.

(6) The Court may extend the convening period on an application

made during or after the period referred to in paragraph (5)(a) or

(b), as the case requires.

(7) If an application is made under subsection (6) after the period

referred to in paragraph (5)(a) or (b), as the case may be, the Court

may only extend the convening period if the Court is satisfied that

it would be in the best interests of the creditors if the convening

period were extended in accordance with the application.

(8) If an application is made under subsection (6) after the period

referred to in paragraph (5)(a) or (b), as the case may be, then, in

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.3A Administration of a company’s affairs with a view to executing a deed of

company arrangement

Division 5 Meeting of creditors decides company’s future

Section 439C

282 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

making an order about the costs of the application, the Court must

have regard to:

(a) the fact that the application was made after that period; and

(b) any other conduct engaged in by the administrator; and

(c) any other relevant matters.

439C What creditors may decide

At a meeting convened under section 439A, the creditors may

resolve:

(a) that the company execute a deed of company arrangement

specified in the resolution (even if it differs from the

proposed deed (if any) details of which accompanied any

notice of meeting); or

(b) that the administration should end; or

(c) that the company be wound up.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Administration of a company’s affairs with a view to executing a deed of company

arrangement Part 5.3A

Protection of company’s property during administration Division 6

Section 440A

Corporations Act 2001 283

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Division 6—Protection of company’s property during

administration

440A Winding up company

(1) A company under administration cannot be wound up voluntarily,

except as provided by section 446A or 446AA.

(2) The Court is to adjourn the hearing of an application for an order to

wind up a company if the company is under administration and the

Court is satisfied that it is in the interests of the company’s

creditors for the company to continue under administration rather

than be wound up.

(3) The Court is not to appoint a provisional liquidator of a company if

the company is under administration and the Court is satisfied that

it is in the interests of the company’s creditors for the company to

continue under administration rather than have a provisional

liquidator appointed.

440B Restrictions on exercise of third party property rights

General rule

(1) During the administration of a company, the restrictions set out in

the table at the end of this section apply in relation to the exercise

of the rights of a person (the third party) in property of the

company, or other property used or occupied by, or in the

possession of, the company, as set out in the table.

Note: The property of the company includes any PPSA retention of title

property of the company (see section 435B).

Exception—consent of administrator or leave of court

(2) The restrictions set out in the table at the end of this section do not

apply in relation to the exercise of a third party’s rights in property

if the rights are exercised:

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.3A Administration of a company’s affairs with a view to executing a deed of

company arrangement

Division 6 Protection of company’s property during administration

Section 440B

284 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(a) with the administrator’s written consent; or

(b) with the leave of the Court.

Possessory security interests—continued possession

(3) If a company’s property is subject to a possessory security interest,

and the property is in the lawful possession of the secured party,

the secured party may continue to possess the property during the

administration of the company.

Restrictions on exercise of third party rights

Item If the third party is … then …

1 a secured party in relation to

property of the company, and is not

otherwise covered by this table

the third party cannot enforce the

security interest.

2 a secured party in relation to a

possessory security interest in the

property of the company

the third party cannot sell the

property, or otherwise enforce the

security interest.

3 a lessor of property used or occupied

by, or in the possession of, the

company, including a secured party

(a PPSA secured party) in relation

to a PPSA security interest in goods

arising out of a lease of the goods

the following restrictions apply:

(a) distress for rent must not be

carried out against the property;

(b) the third party cannot take

possession of the property or

otherwise recover it;

(c) if the third party is a PPSA

secured party—the third party

cannot otherwise enforce the

security interest.

4 an owner (other than a lessor) of

property used or occupied by, or in

the possession of, the company,

including a secured party (a PPSA

secured party) in relation to a PPSA

security interest in the property

the following restrictions apply:

(a) the third party cannot take

possession of the property or

otherwise recover it;

(b) if the third party is a PPSA

secured party—the third party

cannot otherwise enforce the

security interest.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Administration of a company’s affairs with a view to executing a deed of company

arrangement Part 5.3A

Protection of company’s property during administration Division 6

Section 440D

Corporations Act 2001 285

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

440D Stay of proceedings

(1) During the administration of a company, a proceeding in a court

against the company or in relation to any of its property cannot be

begun or proceeded with, except:

(a) with the administrator’s written consent; or

(b) with the leave of the Court and in accordance with such

terms (if any) as the Court imposes.

(2) Subsection (1) does not apply to:

(a) a criminal proceeding; or

(b) a prescribed proceeding.

440E Administrator not liable in damages for refusing consent

A company’s administrator is not liable to an action or other

proceeding for damages in respect of a refusal to give an approval

or consent for the purposes of this Division.

440F Suspension of enforcement process

During the administration of a company, no enforcement process in

relation to property of the company can be begun or proceeded

with, except:

(a) with the leave of the Court; and

(b) in accordance with such terms (if any) as the Court imposes.

440G Duties of court officer in relation to property of company

(1) This section applies where an officer of a court (in this section

called the court officer), being:

(a) a sheriff; or

(b) the registrar or other appropriate officer of the court;

receives written notice of the fact that a company is under

administration.

(2) During the administration, the court officer cannot:

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.3A Administration of a company’s affairs with a view to executing a deed of

company arrangement

Division 6 Protection of company’s property during administration

Section 440G

286 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(a) take action to sell property of the company under a process of

execution; or

(b) pay to a person (other than the administrator):

(i) proceeds of selling property of the company (at any

time) under a process of execution; or

(ii) money of the company seized (at any time) under a

process of execution; or

(iii) money paid (at any time) to avoid seizure or sale of

property of the company under a process of execution;

or

(c) take action in relation to the attachment of a debt due to the

company; or

(d) pay to a person (other than the administrator) money received

because of the attachment of such a debt.

(3) The court officer must deliver to the administrator any property of

the company that is in the court officer’s possession under a

process of execution (whenever begun).

(4) The court officer must pay to the administrator all proceeds or

money of a kind referred to in paragraph (2)(b) or (d) that:

(a) are in the court officer’s possession; or

(b) have been paid into the court and have not since been paid

out.

(5) The costs of the execution or attachment are a first charge on

property delivered under subsection (3) or proceeds or money paid

under subsection (4).

(6) In order to give effect to a charge under subsection (5) on proceeds

or money, the court officer may retain, on behalf of the person

entitled to the charge, so much of the proceeds or money as the

court officer thinks necessary.

(7) The Court may, if it is satisfied that it is appropriate to do so,

permit the court officer to take action, or to make a payment, that

subsection (2) would otherwise prevent.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Administration of a company’s affairs with a view to executing a deed of company

arrangement Part 5.3A

Protection of company’s property during administration Division 6

Section 440H

Corporations Act 2001 287

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(8) A person who buys property in good faith under a sale under a

process of execution gets a good title to the property as against the

company and the administrator, despite anything else in this

section.

440H Lis pendens taken to exist

(1) This section has effect only for the purposes of a law about the

effect of a lis pendens on purchasers or mortgagees.

(2) During the administration of a company, an application to wind up

the company is taken to be pending.

(3) An application that is taken because of subsection (2) to be

pending constitutes a lis pendens.

440J Administration not to trigger liability of director or relative

under guarantee of company’s liability

(1) During the administration of a company:

(a) a guarantee of a liability of the company cannot be enforced,

as against:

(i) a director of the company who is a natural person; or

(ii) a spouse or relative of such a director; and

(b) without limiting paragraph (a), a proceeding in relation to

such a guarantee cannot be begun against such a director,

spouse or relative;

except with the leave of the Court and in accordance with such

terms (if any) as the Court imposes.

(2) While subsection (1) prevents a person (the creditor) from:

(a) enforcing as against another person (the guarantor) a

guarantee of a liability of a company; or

(b) beginning a proceeding against another person (the

guarantor) in relation to such a guarantee;

section 1323 applies in relation to the creditor and the guarantor as

if:

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.3A Administration of a company’s affairs with a view to executing a deed of

company arrangement

Division 6 Protection of company’s property during administration

Section 440JA

288 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(c) a civil proceeding against the guarantor had begun under this

Act; and

(d) the creditor were the only person of a kind referred to in that

section as an aggrieved person.

Note: Under section 1323 the Court can make a range of orders to ensure

that a person can meet the person’s liabilities.

(3) The effect that section 1323 has because of a particular application

of subsection (2) is additional to, and does not prejudice, the effect

the section otherwise has.

(4) In this section:

guarantee, in relation to a liability of a company, includes a

relevant agreement (as defined in section 9) because of which a

person other than the company has incurred, or may incur, whether

jointly with the company or otherwise, a liability in respect of the

liability of the company.

liability means a debt, liability or other obligation.

440JA Property subject to a banker’s lien—exemption from this

Division

If:

(a) a company is under administration; and

(b) property of the company consists of:

(i) cash in the form of notes or coins; or

(ii) a negotiable instrument; or

(iii) a security (as defined by subsection 92(1)); or

(iv) a derivative (as defined in Chapter 7); and

(c) the property is subject to a possessory security interest; and

(d) the secured party is:

(i) an ADI (within the meaning of the Banking Act 1959);

or

(ii) the operator of a clearing and settlement facility (within

the meaning of section 768A);

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Administration of a company’s affairs with a view to executing a deed of company

arrangement Part 5.3A

Protection of company’s property during administration Division 6

Section 440JA

Corporations Act 2001 289

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

this Division does not apply to the property.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.3A Administration of a company’s affairs with a view to executing a deed of

company arrangement

Division 7 Rights of secured party, owner or lessor

Section 441

290 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Division 7—Rights of secured party, owner or lessor

Subdivision A—General

441 Application of Division

Except as expressly provided, nothing in this Division limits the

generality of anything else in it.

Subdivision B—Property subject to security interests

441AA Application of Subdivision—PPSA security interests

This Subdivision only applies in relation to the enforcement of a

PPSA security interest if the security interest is perfected, within

the meaning of the Personal Property Securities Act 2009, at the

time the enforcement starts.

441A Secured party acts before or during decision period

Scope

(1) This section applies if:

(a) the whole, or substantially the whole, of the property of a

company under administration is subject to a security

interest; and

(b) before or during the decision period, the secured party

enforced the security interest in relation to all property

(including any PPSA retention of title property) of the

company subject to the security interest, whether or not the

security interest was enforced in the same way in relation to

all that property.

(2) This section also applies if:

(a) a company is under administration; and

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Administration of a company’s affairs with a view to executing a deed of company

arrangement Part 5.3A

Rights of secured party, owner or lessor Division 7

Section 441A

Corporations Act 2001 291

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(b) the same person is the secured party in relation to each of 2

or more security interests in property (including PPSA

retention of title property) of the company; and

(c) the property of the company (the secured property) subject to

the respective security interests together constitutes the

whole, or substantially the whole, of the company’s property;

and

(d) before or during the decision period, the secured party

enforced the security interests in relation to all the secured

property:

(i) whether or not the security interests were enforced in

the same way in relation to all the secured property; and

(ii) whether or not any of the security interests was enforced

in the same way in relation to all the property of the

company subject to that security interest; and

(iii) in so far as the security interests were enforced in

relation to property of the company by a receiver or

controller appointed for the purposes of Part 5.2

(whether under an instrument relating to the security

interest or a court order)—whether or not the same

person was appointed in respect of all of the

last-mentioned property.

Power of enforcement by secured party, receiver or controller

(3) Nothing in section 198G, 440B, 440F or 440G, or in an order

under subsection 444F(2), prevents any of the following from

enforcing the security interest, or any of the security interests:

(a) the secured party;

(b) a receiver or controller appointed for the purposes of Part 5.2

(whether under an instrument relating to the security interest

or a court order, and even if appointed after the decision

period).

(4) Section 437D does not apply in relation to a transaction or dealing

that affects property of the company and is entered into by:

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.3A Administration of a company’s affairs with a view to executing a deed of

company arrangement

Division 7 Rights of secured party, owner or lessor

Section 441B

292 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(a) the secured party in the performance or exercise of a function

or power as secured party; or

(b) a receiver or controller mentioned in paragraph (3)(b) of this

section, in the performance or exercise of a function or power

as such a receiver or controller.

441B Where enforcement of security interest begins before

administration

(1) This section applies if, before the beginning of the administration

of a company, a secured party, receiver or other person:

(a) entered into possession, or assumed control, of property of

the company; or

(b) entered into an agreement to sell such property; or

(c) made arrangements for such property to be offered for sale

by public auction; or

(d) publicly invited tenders for the purchase of such property; or

(e) exercised any other power in relation to such property;

for the purpose of enforcing a security interest in that property.

(2) Nothing in section 198G, 440B, 440F or 440G prevents the secured

party, receiver or other person from enforcing the security interest

in relation to that property.

(3) Section 437D does not apply in relation to a transaction or dealing

that affects that property and is entered into:

(a) in the exercise of a power of the secured party as secured

party; or

(b) in the performance or exercise of a function or power of the

receiver or other person;

as the case may be.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Administration of a company’s affairs with a view to executing a deed of company

arrangement Part 5.3A

Rights of secured party, owner or lessor Division 7

Section 441C

Corporations Act 2001 293

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

441C Security interest in perishable property

Scope

(1) This section applies if perishable property of a company under

administration is subject to a security interest.

Power of enforcement by secured party, receiver or controller

(2) Nothing in section 198G or 440B prevents any of the following

from enforcing the security interest, so far as it is a security interest

in perishable property:

(a) the secured party;

(b) a receiver or controller appointed for the purposes of Part 5.2

(whether under an instrument relating to the security interest

or a court order, and even if appointed after the decision

period).

(3) Section 437D does not apply in relation to a transaction or dealing

that affects perishable property of the company and is entered into

by:

(a) the secured party in the performance or exercise of a function

or power as secured party; or

(b) a receiver or controller mentioned in paragraph (2)(b) of this

section, in the performance or exercise of a function or power

as such a receiver or controller.

441D Court may limit powers of secured party etc. in relation to

secured property

(1) This section applies if:

(a) for the purpose of enforcing a security interest in property of

a company, the secured party, or a receiver or other person,

does or proposes to do an act of a kind referred to in a

paragraph of subsection 441B(1); and

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.3A Administration of a company’s affairs with a view to executing a deed of

company arrangement

Division 7 Rights of secured party, owner or lessor

Section 441E

294 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(b) the company is under administration when the secured party,

receiver or other person does or proposes to do the act, or the

company later begins to be under administration;

but does not apply in a case where section 441A applies.

(2) On application by the administrator, the Court may order the

secured party, receiver or other person not to perform specified

functions, or exercise specified powers, except as permitted by the

order.

(3) The Court may only make an order if satisfied that what the

administrator proposes to do during the administration will

adequately protect the secured party’s interests.

(4) An order may only be made, and only has effect, during the

administration.

(5) An order has effect despite sections 441B and 441C.

441E Giving a notice under a security agreement etc.

Nothing in section 198G or 440B prevents a person from giving a

notice under the provisions of an agreement or instrument under

which a security interest is created or arises.

441EA Sale of property subject to a possessory security interest

Scope

(1) This section applies if:

(a) a company is under administration; and

(b) property of the company is subject to a possessory security

interest; and

(c) the property is in the possession of the secured party; and

(ca) either:

(i) there is no other security interest in the property; or

(ii) there are one or more other security interests in the

property, but none of the debts secured by those other

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Administration of a company’s affairs with a view to executing a deed of company

arrangement Part 5.3A

Rights of secured party, owner or lessor Division 7

Section 441EB

Corporations Act 2001 295

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

security interests has a priority that is equal to or higher

than the priority of the debt secured by the possessory

security interest; and

(d) the secured party sells the property.

Distribution of proceeds of sale

(2) The secured party is entitled to retain proceeds of the sale as

follows:

(a) if the net proceeds of sale equals the debt secured by the

possessory security interest—the secured party is entitled to

retain the net proceeds;

(b) if the net proceeds of sale exceeds the debt secured by the

possessory security interest—the secured party is entitled to

retain so much of the net proceeds as equals the amount of

the debt secured by the security interest, but must pay the

excess to the administrator on behalf of the company;

(c) if the net proceeds of sale fall short of the debt secured by the

possessory security interest—the secured party is entitled to

retain the net proceeds.

Subdivision C—Property not subject to security interests

441EB Scope of Subdivision

This Subdivision does not apply in relation to the enforcement of a

right, or the performance or exercise of a function or power, if the

enforcement, performance or exercise is authorised by (or because

of) a transaction or dealing that gives rise to a security interest in

the property concerned.

Example: An example of a transaction or dealing in relation to which this

Subdivision does not apply because of this section is a commercial

consignment of personal property. Such a transaction gives rise to a

PPSA security interest because of section 12 of the Personal Property

Securities Act 2009. The consigned property is PPSA retention of title

property of the company (see sections 51F and 435B).

Note: Subdivision B (property subject to security interests) may apply in

relation to transactions or dealings to which this Subdivision does not

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.3A Administration of a company’s affairs with a view to executing a deed of

company arrangement

Division 7 Rights of secured party, owner or lessor

Section 441F

296 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

apply because of this section. For example, Subdivision B would

apply in relation to a commercial consignment of personal property,

because such a transaction gives rise to a PPSA security interest.

441F Where recovery of property begins before administration

(1) This section applies if, before the beginning of the administration

of a company, a receiver or other person:

(a) entered into possession, or assumed control, of property used

or occupied by, or in the possession of, the company; or

(b) exercised any other power in relation to such property;

for the purpose of enforcing a right of the owner or lessor of the

property to take possession of the property or otherwise recover it.

(2) Nothing in section 198G or 440B prevents the receiver or other

person from performing a function, or exercising a power, in

relation to the property.

(3) Section 437D does not apply in relation to a transaction or dealing

that affects the property and is entered into in the performance or

exercise of a function or power of the receiver or other person.

441G Recovering perishable property

(1) Nothing in section 198G or 440B prevents a person from taking

possession of, or otherwise recovering, perishable property.

(2) Section 437D does not apply in relation to a transaction or dealing

that affects perishable property and is entered into for the purpose

of enforcing a right of the owner or lessor of the property to take

possession of the property or otherwise recover it.

441H Court may limit powers of receiver etc. in relation to property

used by company

(1) This section applies if:

(a) for the purpose of enforcing a right of the owner or lessor of

property used or occupied by, or in the possession of, a

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Administration of a company’s affairs with a view to executing a deed of company

arrangement Part 5.3A

Rights of secured party, owner or lessor Division 7

Section 441J

Corporations Act 2001 297

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

company to take possession of the property or otherwise

recover it, a person:

(i) enters into possession, or assumes control, of the

property; or

(ii) exercises any other power in relation to the property;

and

(b) the company is under administration when the person does

so, or the company later begins to be under administration.

(2) On application by the administrator, the Court may order the

person not to perform specified functions, or exercise specified

powers, in relation to the property, except as permitted by the

order.

(3) The Court may only make an order if satisfied that what the

administrator proposes to do during the administration will

adequately protect the interests of the owner or lessor.

(4) An order may only be made, and only has effect, during the

administration.

(5) An order has effect despite sections 441F and 441G.

441J Giving a notice under an agreement about property

Nothing in section 198G or 440C prevents a person from giving a

notice to a company under an agreement relating to property that is

used or occupied by, or is in the possession of, the company.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.3A Administration of a company’s affairs with a view to executing a deed of

company arrangement

Division 8 Powers of administrator

Section 442A

298 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Division 8—Powers of administrator

442A Additional powers of administrator

Without limiting section 437A, the administrator of a company

under administration has power to do any of the following:

(a) remove from office a director of the company;

(b) appoint a person as such a director, whether to fill a vacancy

or not;

(c) execute a document, bring or defend proceedings, or do

anything else, in the company’s name and on its behalf;

(d) whatever else is necessary for the purposes of this Part.

442B Dealing with property subject to circulating security interests

Scope

(1) This section applies if a security interest in property (the secured

property) of a company under administration was a circulating

security interest when the interest arose, but has stopped being a

circulating security interest because:

(a) in the case of a PPSA security interest—the property has

stopped being a circulating asset (within the meaning of the

Personal Property Securities Act 2009); or

(b) in the case of a security interest that was a floating charge

when it arose—the floating charge has since become a fixed

or specific charge.

Note 1: A circulating security interest can be either a PPSA security interest

to which a circulating asset has attached, or a floating charge, in the

circumstances set out in section 51C.

Note 2: For the meaning of circulating asset, see section 340 of the Personal

Property Securities Act 2009.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Administration of a company’s affairs with a view to executing a deed of company

arrangement Part 5.3A

Powers of administrator Division 8

Section 442C

Corporations Act 2001 299

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Security interest in circulating asset

(2) Subject to sections 442C and 442D, in the case of a PPSA security

interest, the administrator may deal with any of the secured

property in any way the company could deal with the secured

property immediately before it stopped being a circulating asset.

Floating charge

(3) Subject to sections 442C and 442D, in the case of a security

interest that was a floating charge when it arose, the administrator

may deal with any of the secured property as if the security interest

were still a floating charge.

Note: Section 442C deals with the disposal of encumbered property by an

administrator. Section 442D makes the administrator’s functions and

powers subject to those of a secured party, receiver or controller.

442C When administrator may dispose of encumbered property

(1) The administrator of a company under administration or of a deed

of company arrangement must not dispose of:

(a) property of the company that is subject to a security interest;

or

(b) property (other than PPSA retention of title property) that is

used or occupied by, or is in the possession of, the company

but of which someone else is the owner or lessor.

Note: PPSA retention of title property is subject to a PPSA security interest,

and so is covered by paragraph (a) (see definition of PPSA retention

of title property in section 51F).

(2) Subsection (1) does not prevent a disposal:

(a) in the ordinary course of the company’s business; or

(b) with the written consent of the secured party, owner or lessor,

as the case may be; or

(c) with the leave of the Court.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.3A Administration of a company’s affairs with a view to executing a deed of

company arrangement

Division 8 Powers of administrator

Section 442C

300 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(3) The Court may only give leave under paragraph (2)(c) if satisfied

that arrangements have been made to protect adequately the

interests of the secured party, owner or lessor, as the case may be.

(4) If the administrator proposes to dispose of property under

paragraph (2)(a), the Court may, by order, direct the administrator

not to carry out that proposal.

(5) The Court may only make an order under subsection (4) on the

application of:

(a) if paragraph (1)(a) applies—the secured party; or

(b) if paragraph (1)(b) applies—the owner or lessor, as the case

may be.

(6) The Court may only make an order under subsection (4) if it is not

satisfied that arrangements have been made to protect adequately

the interests of the applicant for the order.

(7) If:

(a) a company is under administration or is subject to a deed of

company arrangement; and

(b) property of the company is subject to a security interest; and

(c) the administrator disposes of the property;

the disposal extinguishes the security interest.

(8) For the purposes of paragraph (2)(a), if:

(a) property is used or occupied by, or is in the possession of, a

company; and

(b) another person is the owner of the property; and

(c) either:

(i) the property is PPSA retention of title property; or

(ii) the property is subject to a retention of title clause under

a contract; and

(d) the owner demands the return of the property;

a disposal of the property that occurs after the demand is made

does not mean that the disposal is not in the ordinary course of the

company’s business.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Administration of a company’s affairs with a view to executing a deed of company

arrangement Part 5.3A

Powers of administrator Division 8

Section 442CA

Corporations Act 2001 301

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

442CA Property subject to a possessory security interest—

inspection or examination by potential purchasers etc.

(1) If:

(a) a company is under administration; and

(b) property of the company is subject to a possessory security

interest; and

(c) the administrator is entitled to dispose of the property by way

of sale;

the secured party must, if requested to do so by the administrator,

give potential purchasers a reasonable opportunity to inspect or

examine the property.

(2) If:

(a) a company is under administration; and

(b) property of the company is subject to a possessory security

interest; and

(c) the administrator disposes of the property by way of sale;

the administrator is entitled to obtain possession of the property in

order to effect the sale.

442CB Property subject to a security interest or to a retention of

title clause—administrator’s duty of care in exercising

power of sale

(1) If the administrator of a company is entitled to dispose of property

of the company by way of sale, and the property is subject to a

security interest, the administrator must act reasonably in

exercising a power of sale in respect of the property.

Note: A company’s property includes its PPSA retention of title property

(see the definition of property applying to Part 5.3A, in section 435B).

(2) If:

(a) a company is under administration; and

(b) property is used or occupied by, or is in the possession of, the

company; and

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.3A Administration of a company’s affairs with a view to executing a deed of

company arrangement

Division 8 Powers of administrator

Section 442CC

302 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(c) another person is the owner of the property; and

(d) the property is subject to a retention of title clause under a

contract; and

(e) the administrator is entitled to dispose of the property by way

of sale;

then, in exercising a power of sale in respect of the property, the

administrator must act reasonably.

(3) Subsections (1) and (2) do not limit section 180, 181, 182, 183 or

184.

442CC Proceeds of sale of property

Property subject to a possessory security interest

(1) If:

(a) a company is under administration; and

(b) property of the company is subject to a possessory security

interest; and

(c) the administrator disposes of the property by way of sale;

then:

(d) if the net proceeds of sale equals or exceeds the total of the

debts secured by:

(i) the possessory security interest; and

(ii) any other security interest in the property, where the

debt secured by the security interest has a priority that is

equal to or higher than the priority of the debt secured

by the possessory security interest;

the administrator must:

(iii) set aside so much of the net proceeds as equals the total

of those debts; and

(iv) apply the amount so set aside in paying those debts; or

(e) if the net proceeds of sale fall short of the total of the debts

secured by:

(i) the possessory security interest; and

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Administration of a company’s affairs with a view to executing a deed of company

arrangement Part 5.3A

Powers of administrator Division 8

Section 442CC

Corporations Act 2001 303

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(ii) any other security interest in the property, where the

debt secured by the security interest has a priority that is

equal to or higher than the priority of the debt secured

by the possessory security interest;

then:

(iii) the administrator must set aside the net proceeds; and

(iv) the administrator must apply the amount so set aside in

paying those debts in order of priority, on the basis that

if the amount is insufficient to fully pay debts of the

same priority, they must be paid proportionately; and

(v) if any of those debts is not fully paid—so much of the

debt as remains unpaid may be recovered from the

company as an unsecured debt.

PPSA retention of title property

(1A) If the administrator of a company disposes of PPSA retention of

title property of the company by way of sale, then the administrator

must apply the net proceeds of the sale in the same way as a

secured party is required, under section 140 of the Personal

Property Securities Act 2009, to apply an amount, personal

property or proceeds of collateral received by the secured party as

a result of enforcing a security interest in the property.

Note: PPSA retention of title property does not include property that is

subject to a retention of title clause (see section 9, definitions of PPSA

retention of title property and retention of title clause).

Subsection (2) deals with property that is subject to a retention of title

clause.

Property subject to a retention of title clause

(2) If:

(a) a company is under administration; and

(b) property is used or occupied by, or is in the possession of, the

company; and

(c) another person is the owner of the property; and

(d) the property is subject to a retention of title clause under a

contract (the original contract); and

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.3A Administration of a company’s affairs with a view to executing a deed of

company arrangement

Division 8 Powers of administrator

Section 442D

304 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(e) the administrator disposes of the property by way of sale;

then:

(f) if the net proceeds of sale equals or exceeds the total of:

(i) so much of the purchase price, or other amount, under

the original contract as remains unpaid; and

(ii) if there are one or more securities over the property—

the debts secured by the securities;

the administrator must:

(iii) set aside so much of the net proceeds as equals that

total; and

(iv) apply the amount so set aside in paying that total; or

(g) if the net proceeds of sale fall short of the total of:

(i) so much of the purchase price, or other amount, under

the original contract as remains unpaid; and

(ii) if there are one or more securities over the property—

the debts secured by the securities;

then:

(iii) the administrator must set aside the net proceeds; and

(iv) the administrator must apply the amount so set aside in

paying those debts in order of priority, on the basis that

if the amount is insufficient to fully pay debts of the

same priority, they must be paid proportionately; and

(v) if any of those debts is not fully paid—so much of the

debt as remains unpaid may be recovered from the

company as an unsecured debt.

Note: Property that is subject to a retention of title clause does not include

PPSA retention of title property (see section 9, definitions of PPSA

retention of title property and retention of title clause).

Subsection (1A) deals with PPSA retention of title property.

442D Administrator’s powers subject to powers of secured party,

receiver or controller

(1) Where section 441A applies, the administrator’s functions and

powers are subject to the functions and powers of a person as:

(a) the secured party; or

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Administration of a company’s affairs with a view to executing a deed of company

arrangement Part 5.3A

Powers of administrator Division 8

Section 442E

Corporations Act 2001 305

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(b) a receiver or controller appointed under Part 5.2 (whether

under an instrument relating to the security interest or a court

order, and even if appointed after the decision period).

(2) Where section 441C applies, then, so far as concerns perishable

property of the company, the administrator’s functions and powers

are subject to the functions and powers of a person as:

(a) the secured party; or

(b) a receiver or controller appointed under Part 5.2 (whether

under an instrument relating to the security interest or a court

order, and even if appointed after the decision period).

(3) Where section 441B, 441F or 441G applies, then, so far as

concerns the property referred to in subsection 441B(1), 441F(1) or

441G(1), the administrator’s functions and powers are subject to

the functions and powers of the secured party, receiver or

controller.

442E Administrator has qualified privilege

A person who is or has been the administrator of a company under

administration has qualified privilege in respect of a statement that

he or she has made, whether orally or in writing, in the course of

performing or exercising any of his or her functions and powers as

administrator of the company.

442F Protection of persons dealing with administrator

(1) Sections 128 and 129 apply in relation to a company under

administration as if:

(a) a reference in those sections to the company, or to an officer

of the company, included a reference to the administrator;

and

(b) a reference in those sections to an assumption referred to in

section 129 included a reference to an assumption that the

administrator is:

(i) acting within his or her functions and powers as

administrator; and

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.3A Administration of a company’s affairs with a view to executing a deed of

company arrangement

Division 8 Powers of administrator

Section 442F

306 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(ii) in particular, is complying with this Act.

(2) The effect that sections 128 and 129 have because of subsection (1)

of this section is additional to, and does not prejudice, the effect

that sections 128 and 129 otherwise have in relation to a company

under administration.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Administration of a company’s affairs with a view to executing a deed of company

arrangement Part 5.3A

Administrator’s liability and indemnity for debts of administration Division 9

Section 443A

Corporations Act 2001 307

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Division 9—Administrator’s liability and indemnity for

debts of administration

Subdivision A—Liability

443A General debts

(1) The administrator of a company under administration is liable for

debts he or she incurs, in the performance or exercise, or purported

performance or exercise, of any of his or her functions and powers

as administrator, for:

(a) services rendered; or

(b) goods bought; or

(c) property hired, leased, used or occupied, including property

consisting of goods that is subject to a lease that gives rise to

a PPSA security interest in the goods; or

(d) the repayment of money borrowed; or

(e) interest in respect of money borrowed; or

(f) borrowing costs.

(2) Subsection (1) has effect despite any agreement to the contrary, but

without prejudice to the administrator’s rights against the company

or anyone else.

443B Payments for property used or occupied by, or in the

possession of, the company

Scope

(1) This section applies if, under an agreement made before the

administration of a company began, the company continues to use

or occupy, or to be in possession of, property of which someone

else is the owner or lessor, including property consisting of goods

that is subject to a lease that gives rise to a PPSA security interest

in the goods.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.3A Administration of a company’s affairs with a view to executing a deed of

company arrangement

Division 9 Administrator’s liability and indemnity for debts of administration

Section 443B

308 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

General rule

(2) Subject to this section, the administrator is liable for so much of

the rent or other amounts payable by the company under the

agreement as is attributable to a period:

(a) that begins more than 5 business days after the administration

began; and

(b) throughout which:

(i) the company continues to use or occupy, or to be in

possession of, the property; and

(ii) the administration continues.

(3) Within 5 business days after the beginning of the administration,

the administrator may give to the owner or lessor a notice that:

(a) specifies the property; and

(b) states that the company does not propose to exercise rights in

relation to the property; and

(c) if the administrator:

(i) knows the location of the property; or

(ii) could, by the exercise of reasonable diligence, know the

location of the property;

specifies the location of the property.

(4) Despite subsection (2), the administrator is not liable for so much

of the rent or other amounts payable by the company under the

agreement as is attributable to a period during which a notice under

subsection (3) is in force, but such a notice does not affect a

liability of the company.

(5) A notice under subsection (3) ceases to have effect if:

(a) the administrator revokes it by writing given to the owner or

lessor; or

(b) the company exercises, or purports to exercise, a right in

relation to the property.

(6) For the purposes of subsection (5), the company does not exercise,

or purport to exercise, a right in relation to the property merely

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Administration of a company’s affairs with a view to executing a deed of company

arrangement Part 5.3A

Administrator’s liability and indemnity for debts of administration Division 9

Section 443BA

Corporations Act 2001 309

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

because the company continues to occupy, or to be in possession

of, the property, unless the company:

(a) also uses the property; or

(b) asserts a right, as against the owner or lessor, so to continue.

Restrictions on general rule

(7) Subsection (2) does not apply in relation to so much of a period as

elapses after:

(a) a receiver of the property is appointed; or

(b) under an agreement or instrument under which a security

interest in the property is created or arises:

(i) the secured party appoints an agent to enter into

possession, or to assume control, of the property; or

(ii) the secured party takes possession, or assumes control,

of the property;

but this subsection does not affect a liability of the company.

(8) Subsection (2) does not apply in so far as a court, by order, excuses

the administrator from liability, but an order does not affect a

liability of the company.

(9) The administrator is not taken because of subsection (2):

(a) to have adopted the agreement; or

(b) to be liable under the agreement otherwise than as mentioned

in subsection (2).

443BA Certain taxation liabilities

(1) The administrator of a company is liable to pay to the

Commissioner of Taxation:

(a) each amount payable under a remittance provision because of

a deduction made by the administrator; and

(b) without limiting paragraph (a), so much of each amount

payable under a remittance provision because of a deduction

made by the company during the administration as equals so

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.3A Administration of a company’s affairs with a view to executing a deed of

company arrangement

Division 9 Administrator’s liability and indemnity for debts of administration

Section 443C

310 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

much of the deduction as is attributable to a period

throughout which the administration continued;

even if the amount became payable after the end of the

administration.

(2) In this section:

remittance provision means any of the following former provisions

of the Income Tax Assessment Act 1936:

(aa) section 220AAE, 220AAM or 220AAR;

(a) section 221F (except subsection 221F(12)) or section 221G

(except subsection 221G(4A));

(b) subsection 221YHDC(2);

(c) subsection 221YHZD(1) or (1A);

(d) subsection 221YN(1);

and any of the provisions of Subdivision 16-B in Schedule 1 to the

Taxation Administration Act 1953.

443C Administrator not otherwise liable for company’s debts

The administrator of a company under administration is not liable

for the company’s debts except under this Subdivision.

Subdivision B—Indemnity

443D Right of indemnity

The administrator of a company under administration is entitled to

be indemnified out of the company’s property (other than any

PPSA retention of title property subject to a PPSA security interest

that is perfected within the meaning of the Personal Property

Securities Act 2009) for:

(a) debts for which the administrator is liable under Subdivision

A or a remittance provision as defined in

subsection 443BA(2); and

(aa) any other debts or liabilities incurred, or damages or losses

sustained, in good faith and without negligence, by the

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Administration of a company’s affairs with a view to executing a deed of company

arrangement Part 5.3A

Administrator’s liability and indemnity for debts of administration Division 9

Section 443E

Corporations Act 2001 311

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

administrator in the performance or exercise, or purported

performance or exercise, of any of his or her functions or

powers as administrator; and

(b) the remuneration to which he or she is entitled under

Division 60 of Schedule 2 (external administrator’s

remuneration).

443E Right of indemnity has priority over other debts

General rule

(1) Subject to section 556, a right of indemnity under section 443D has

priority over:

(a) all the company’s unsecured debts; and

(b) any debts of the company secured by a PPSA security

interest in property of the company if, when the

administration of the company begins, the security interest is

vested in the company because of the operation of any of the

following provisions:

(i) section 267 or 267A of the Personal Property Securities

Act 2009 (property subject to unperfected security

interests);

(ii) section 588FL of this Act (collateral not registered

within time); and

(c) subject otherwise to this section—debts of the company

secured by a circulating security interest in property of the

company.

Debts secured by circulating security interests—receiver appointed

before the beginning of administration etc.

(2) A right of indemnity under section 443D does not have priority

over debts of the company under administration that are secured by

a circulating security interest in property of the company, except so

far as the secured party agrees, if:

(a) before the beginning of the administration, the secured party:

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.3A Administration of a company’s affairs with a view to executing a deed of

company arrangement

Division 9 Administrator’s liability and indemnity for debts of administration

Section 443E

312 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(i) appointed a receiver of property of the company under a

power contained in an instrument relating to the security

interest; or

(ii) obtained an order for the appointment of a receiver of

property of the company for the purpose of enforcing

the security interest; or

(iii) entered into possession, or assumed control, of property

of the company for that purpose; or

(iv) appointed a person so to enter into possession or assume

control (whether as agent for the secured party or for the

company); and

(b) the receiver or person is still in office, or the secured party is

still in possession or control of the property.

Debts secured by circulating security interests—receiver appointed

during administration etc.

(3) Subsection (4) applies if:

(a) debts of a company under administration are secured by a

circulating security interest in property of the company; and

(b) during the administration, the secured party, consistently

with this Part:

(i) appoints a receiver of property of the company under a

power contained in an instrument relating to the security

interest; or

(ii) obtains an order for the appointment of a receiver of

property of the company for the purpose of enforcing

the security interest; or

(iii) enters into possession, or assumes control, of property

of the company for that purpose; or

(iv) appoints a person so to enter into possession or assume

control (whether as agent for the secured party or for the

company).

(4) A right of indemnity of the administrator under section 443D has

priority over those debts only in so far as it is a right of indemnity

for debts incurred, or remuneration accruing, before written notice

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Administration of a company’s affairs with a view to executing a deed of company

arrangement Part 5.3A

Administrator’s liability and indemnity for debts of administration Division 9

Section 443F

Corporations Act 2001 313

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

of the appointment, or of the entering into possession or assuming

of control, as the case may be, was given to the administrator.

Debts secured by circulating security interests—priority over right

of indemnity in relation to repayment of money borrowed etc.

(5) A right of indemnity under section 443D does not have priority

over debts of the company under administration that are secured by

a circulating security interest in property of the company, except so

far as the secured party consents in writing, to the extent that the

right of indemnity relates to debts incurred for:

(a) the repayment of money borrowed; or

(b) interest in respect of money borrowed; or

(c) borrowing costs.

443F Lien to secure indemnity

(1) To secure a right of indemnity under section 443D, the

administrator has a lien on the company’s property.

(2) A lien under subsection (1) has priority over another security

interest only in so far as the right of indemnity under section 443D

has priority over debts secured by the other security interest.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.3A Administration of a company’s affairs with a view to executing a deed of

company arrangement

Division 10 Execution and effect of deed of company arrangement

Section 444A

314 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Division 10—Execution and effect of deed of company

arrangement

444A Effect of creditors’ resolution

(1) This section applies where, at a meeting convened under

section 439A, a company’s creditors resolve that the company

execute a deed of company arrangement.

(2) The administrator of the company is to be the administrator of the

deed, unless the creditors, by resolution passed at the meeting,

appoint someone else to be administrator of the deed.

(3) The administrator of the company must prepare an instrument

setting out the terms of the deed.

(4) The instrument must also specify the following:

(a) the administrator of the deed;

(b) the property of the company (whether or not already owned

by the company when it executes the deed) that is to be

available to pay creditors’ claims;

(c) the nature and duration of any moratorium period for which

the deed provides;

(d) to what extent the company is to be released from its debts;

(e) the conditions (if any) for the deed to come into operation;

(f) the conditions (if any) for the deed to continue in operation;

(g) the circumstances in which the deed terminates;

(h) the order in which proceeds of realising the property referred

to in paragraph (b) are to be distributed among creditors

bound by the deed;

(i) the day (not later than the day when the administration

began) on or before which claims must have arisen if they are

to be admissible under the deed.

(5) The instrument is taken to include the prescribed provisions, except

so far as it provides otherwise.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Administration of a company’s affairs with a view to executing a deed of company

arrangement Part 5.3A

Execution and effect of deed of company arrangement Division 10

Section 444B

Corporations Act 2001 315

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

444B Execution of deed

(1) This section applies where an instrument is prepared under

section 444A.

(2) The company must execute the instrument within:

(a) 15 business days after the end of the meeting of creditors; or

(b) such further period as the Court allows on an application

made within those 15 business days.

(3) The board of the company may, by resolution, authorise the

instrument to be executed by or on behalf of the company.

(4) Subsection (3) has effect despite section 198G, but does not limit

the functions and powers of the administrator of the company.

(5) The proposed administrator of the deed must execute the

instrument before, or as soon as practicable after, the company

executes it.

(6) When executed by both the company and the deed’s proposed

administrator, the instrument becomes a deed of company

arrangement.

(7) Division 12 provides for consequences of the company

contravening subsection (2).

444C Creditor etc. not to act inconsistently with deed before its

execution

(1) Where, at a meeting convened under section 439A, a company’s

creditors resolve that the company execute a deed of company

arrangement, this section applies until:

(a) the deed is executed by both the company and the deed’s

administrator; or

(b) the period within which subsection 444B(2) requires the

company to execute the deed ends;

whichever happens sooner.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.3A Administration of a company’s affairs with a view to executing a deed of

company arrangement

Division 10 Execution and effect of deed of company arrangement

Section 444D

316 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(2) In so far as a person would be bound by the deed if it had already

been so executed, the person:

(a) must not do anything inconsistent with the deed, except with

the leave of the Court; and

(b) is subject to section 444E.

444D Effect of deed on creditors

(1) A deed of company arrangement binds all creditors of the

company, so far as concerns claims arising on or before the day

specified in the deed under paragraph 444A(4)(i).

(2) Subsection (1) does not prevent a secured creditor from realising or

otherwise dealing with the security interest, except so far as:

(a) the deed so provides in relation to a secured creditor who

voted in favour of the resolution of creditors because of

which the company executed the deed; or

(b) the Court orders under subsection 444F(2).

(3) Subsection (1) does not affect a right that an owner or lessor of

property has in relation to that property, except so far as:

(a) the deed so provides in relation to an owner or lessor of

property who voted in favour of the resolution of creditors

because of which the company executed the deed; or

(b) the Court orders under subsection 444F(4).

(3A) Subsection (3) does not apply in relation to an owner or lessor of

PPSA retention of title property of the company.

Note: Subsection (2) applies in relation to an owner or lessor of PPSA

retention of title property of the company. Such an owner or lessor is a

secured creditor of the company (see section 51F (meaning of PPSA

retention of title property)).

(4) Section 231 does not prevent a creditor of the company from

becoming a member of the company as a result of the deed

requiring the creditor to accept an offer of shares in the company.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Administration of a company’s affairs with a view to executing a deed of company

arrangement Part 5.3A

Execution and effect of deed of company arrangement Division 10

Section 444DA

Corporations Act 2001 317

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

444DA Giving priority to eligible employee creditors

(1) A deed of company arrangement must contain a provision to the

effect that, for the purposes of the application by the administrator

of the property of the company coming under his or her control

under the deed, any eligible employee creditors will be entitled to a

priority at least equal to what they would have been entitled if the

property were applied in accordance with sections 556, 560 and

561.

(2) However, the rule in subsection (1) does not apply if:

(a) at a meeting of eligible employee creditors held before the

meeting convened under section 439A, the eligible employee

creditors pass a resolution agreeing to the non-inclusion of

such a provision; or

(b) the Court makes an order under subsection (5) approving the

non-inclusion of such a provision.

Meeting of eligible employee creditors

(3) The administrator of the company must convene a meeting under

paragraph (2)(a) by giving written notice of the meeting to as many

of the eligible employee creditors as reasonably practicable at least

5 business days before the meeting.

(4) A notice under subsection (3) must be accompanied by a copy of a

statement setting out:

(a) the administrator’s opinion whether the non-inclusion of such

a provision would be likely to result in the same or a better

outcome for eligible employee creditors as a whole than

would result from an immediate winding up of the company;

and

(b) his or her reasons for that opinion; and

(c) such other information known to the administrator as will

enable the eligible employee creditors to make an informed

decision about the matter covered by paragraph (a).

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.3A Administration of a company’s affairs with a view to executing a deed of

company arrangement

Division 10 Execution and effect of deed of company arrangement

Section 444DB

318 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Court approval

(5) The Court may approve the non-inclusion of such a provision if the

Court is satisfied that the non-inclusion of the provision would be

likely to result in the same or a better outcome for eligible

employee creditors as a whole than would result from an

immediate winding up of the company.

(6) The Court may only make an order under subsection (5) on the

application of:

(a) the administrator, or proposed administrator, of the deed; or

(b) an eligible employee creditor; or

(c) any interested person.

(7) The Court may make an order under subsection (5) before or after

the meeting convened under section 439A.

444DB Superannuation contribution debts not admissible to proof

Whole of superannuation contribution debt

(1) A deed of company arrangement must contain a provision to the

effect that the administrator of the deed must determine that the

whole of a debt by way of a superannuation contribution is not

admissible to proof against the company if:

(a) a debt by way of superannuation guarantee charge:

(i) has been paid; or

(ii) is, or is to be, admissible to proof against the company;

and

(b) the administrator of the deed is satisfied that the

superannuation guarantee charge is attributable to the whole

of the first-mentioned debt.

(2) If the administrator of a deed of company arrangement determines,

under a provision covered by subsection (1), that the whole of a

debt is not admissible to proof against the company, the whole of

the debt is extinguished.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Administration of a company’s affairs with a view to executing a deed of company

arrangement Part 5.3A

Execution and effect of deed of company arrangement Division 10

Section 444E

Corporations Act 2001 319

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Part of superannuation contribution debt

(3) A deed of company arrangement must contain a provision to the

effect that the administrator of the deed must determine that a

particular part of a debt by way of a superannuation contribution is

not admissible to proof against the company if:

(a) a debt by way of superannuation guarantee charge:

(i) has been paid; or

(ii) is, or is to be, admissible to proof against the company;

and

(b) the administrator of the deed is satisfied that the

superannuation guarantee charge is attributable to that part of

the first-mentioned debt.

(4) If the administrator of a deed of company arrangement determines,

under a provision covered by subsection (3), that a part of a debt is

not admissible to proof against the company, that part of the debt is

extinguished.

Definition

(5) In this section:

superannuation contribution has the same meaning as in

section 556.

444E Protection of company’s property from persons bound by deed

(1) Until a deed of company arrangement terminates, this section

applies to a person bound by the deed.

(2) The person cannot:

(a) make an application for an order to wind up the company; or

(b) proceed with such an application made before the deed

became binding on the person.

(3) The person cannot:

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.3A Administration of a company’s affairs with a view to executing a deed of

company arrangement

Division 10 Execution and effect of deed of company arrangement

Section 444F

320 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(a) begin or proceed with a proceeding against the company or in

relation to any of its property; or

(b) begin or proceed with enforcement process in relation to

property of the company;

except:

(c) with the leave of the Court; and

(d) in accordance with such terms (if any) as the Court imposes.

(4) In subsection (3):

property of a company includes:

(a) any PPSA retention of title property of the company; and

(b) any other property used or occupied by, or in the possession

of, the company.

Note: See sections 9 (definition of property) and 51F (PPSA retention of

title property).

444F Court may limit rights of secured creditor or owner or lessor

(1) This section applies where:

(a) at a meeting convened under section 439A, a company’s

creditors have resolved that the company execute a deed of

company arrangement; or

(b) a company has executed such a deed.

(2) Subject to subsection 441A(3), the Court may order a secured

creditor of the company not to realise or otherwise deal with the

security interest, except as permitted by the order.

(3) The Court may only make an order under subsection (2) if satisfied

that:

(a) for the creditor to realise or otherwise deal with the security

interest would have a material adverse effect on achieving the

purposes of the deed; and

(b) having regard to:

(i) the terms of the deed; and

(ii) the terms of the order; and

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Administration of a company’s affairs with a view to executing a deed of company

arrangement Part 5.3A

Execution and effect of deed of company arrangement Division 10

Section 444G

Corporations Act 2001 321

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(iii) any other relevant matter;

the creditor’s interests will be adequately protected.

(4) The Court may order the owner or lessor of property that is used or

occupied by, or is in the possession of, the company not to take

possession of the property or otherwise recover it.

(4A) Subsection (4) does not apply in relation to PPSA retention of title

property of the company.

(5) The Court may only make an order under subsection (4) if satisfied

that:

(a) for the owner or lessor to take possession of the property or

otherwise recover it would have a material adverse effect on

achieving the purposes of the deed; and

(b) having regard to:

(i) the terms of the deed; and

(ii) the terms of the order; and

(iii) any other relevant matter;

the interests of the owner or lessor will be adequately

protected.

(6) An order under this section may be made subject to conditions.

(7) An order under this section may only be made on the application

of:

(a) if paragraph (1)(a) applies—the administrator of the

company; or

(b) if paragraph (1)(b) applies—the deed’s administrator.

444G Effect of deed on company, officers and members

A deed of company arrangement also binds:

(a) the company; and

(b) its officers and members; and

(c) the deed’s administrator.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.3A Administration of a company’s affairs with a view to executing a deed of

company arrangement

Division 10 Execution and effect of deed of company arrangement

Section 444GA

322 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

444GA Transfer of shares

(1) The administrator of a deed of company arrangement may transfer

shares in the company if the administrator has obtained:

(a) the written consent of the owner of the shares; or

(b) the leave of the Court.

(2) A person is not entitled to oppose an application for leave under

subsection (1) unless the person is:

(a) a member of the company; or

(b) a creditor of the company; or

(c) any other interested person; or

(d) ASIC.

(3) The Court may only give leave under subsection (1) if it is satisfied

that the transfer would not unfairly prejudice the interests of

members of the company.

444H Extent of release of company’s debts

A deed of company arrangement releases the company from a debt

only in so far as:

(a) the deed provides for the release; and

(b) the creditor concerned is bound by the deed.

444J Guarantees and indemnities

Section 444H does not affect a creditor’s rights under a guarantee

or indemnity.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Administration of a company’s affairs with a view to executing a deed of company

arrangement Part 5.3A

Variation, termination and avoidance of deed Division 11

Section 445A

Corporations Act 2001 323

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Division 11—Variation, termination and avoidance of deed

445A Variation of deed by creditors

A deed of company arrangement may be varied by a resolution

passed at a meeting of the company’s creditors, but only if the

variation is not materially different from a proposed variation set

out in the notice of the meeting.

445B Court may cancel variation

(1) Where a deed of company arrangement is varied under

section 445A, a creditor of the company may apply to the Court for

an order cancelling the variation.

(2) On an application, the Court:

(a) may make an order cancelling the variation, or confirming it,

either wholly or in part, on such conditions (if any) as the

order specifies; and

(b) may make such other orders as it thinks appropriate.

445C When deed terminates

A deed of company arrangement terminates when:

(a) the Court makes under section 445D an order terminating the

deed; or

(b) the company’s creditors pass a resolution terminating the

deed at a meeting; or

(c) if the deed specifies circumstances in which it is to

terminate—those circumstances exist; or

(d) the administrator of the deed executes a notice of termination

of the deed in accordance with section 445FA;

whichever happens first.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.3A Administration of a company’s affairs with a view to executing a deed of

company arrangement

Division 11 Variation, termination and avoidance of deed

Section 445CA

324 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

445CA When creditors may terminate deed

The creditors are not entitled to pass a resolution under

paragraph 445C(b) unless:

(a) there has been a breach of the deed; and

(b) the breach has not been rectified before the resolution is

passed.

445D When Court may terminate deed

(1) The Court may make an order terminating a deed of company

arrangement if satisfied that:

(a) information about the company’s business, property, affairs

or financial circumstances that:

(i) was false or misleading; and

(ii) can reasonably be expected to have been material to

creditors of the company in deciding whether to vote in

favour of the resolution that the company execute the

deed;

was given to the administrator of the company or to such

creditors; or

(b) such information was contained in a document that

accompanied a notice of the meeting at which the resolution

was passed; or

(c) there was an omission from such a document and the

omission can reasonably be expected to have been material to

such creditors in so deciding; or

(d) there has been a material contravention of the deed by a

person bound by the deed; or

(e) effect cannot be given to the deed without injustice or undue

delay; or

(f) the deed or a provision of it is, an act or omission done or

made under the deed was, or an act or omission proposed to

be so done or made would be:

(i) oppressive or unfairly prejudicial to, or unfairly

discriminatory against, one or more such creditors; or

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Administration of a company’s affairs with a view to executing a deed of company

arrangement Part 5.3A

Variation, termination and avoidance of deed Division 11

Section 445E

Corporations Act 2001 325

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(ii) contrary to the interests of the creditors of the company

as a whole; or

(g) the deed should be terminated for some other reason.

(2) An order may be made on the application of:

(a) a creditor of the company; or

(b) the company; or

(ba) ASIC; or

(c) any other interested person.

445E Creditors may terminate deed and resolve that company be

wound up

Where:

(a) the company’s creditors pass a resolution at a meeting

terminating the deed; and

(b) the notice of the meeting set out a proposed resolution that

the company be wound up;

the creditors may also resolve at the meeting that the company be

wound up.

445FA Notice of termination of deed

(1) If a company is subject to a deed of company arrangement, and:

(a) the administrator of the deed has applied all of the proceeds

of the realisation of the assets available for the payment of

creditors; or

(b) the administrator of the deed has paid to the creditors:

(i) the sum of 100 cents in the dollar; or

(ii) any lesser sum determined by the creditors at a general

meeting; or

(c) all of the following conditions are satisfied:

(i) the company’s obligations under the deed have been

fulfilled;

(ii) the obligations of any other party to the deed have been

fulfilled;

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.3A Administration of a company’s affairs with a view to executing a deed of

company arrangement

Division 11 Variation, termination and avoidance of deed

Section 445G

326 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(iii) creditors’ claims under the deed have been dealt with in

accordance with the deed;

the administrator of the deed must:

(d) certify to that effect in writing; and

(e) within 28 days, lodge with ASIC a notice of termination of

the deed.

(2) The notice of termination must be in the prescribed form.

Note: For termination of the deed, see section 445C.

445G When Court may void or validate deed

(1) Where there is doubt, on a specific ground, whether a deed of

company arrangement was entered into in accordance with this

Part or complies with this Part, the administrator of the deed, a

member or creditor of the company, or ASIC, may apply to the

Court for an order under this section.

(2) On an application, the Court may make an order declaring the

deed, or a provision of it, to be void or not to be void, as the case

requires, on the ground specified in the application or some other

ground.

(3) On an application, the Court may declare the deed, or a provision

of it, to be valid, despite a contravention of a provision of this Part,

if the Court is satisfied that:

(a) the provision was substantially complied with; and

(b) no injustice will result for anyone bound by the deed if the

contravention is disregarded.

(4) Where the Court declares a provision of a deed of company

arrangement to be void, the Court may by order vary the deed, but

only with the consent of the deed’s administrator.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Administration of a company’s affairs with a view to executing a deed of company

arrangement Part 5.3A

Variation, termination and avoidance of deed Division 11

Section 445H

Corporations Act 2001 327

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

445H Effect of termination or avoidance

The termination or avoidance, in whole or in part, of a deed of

company arrangement does not affect the previous operation of the

deed.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.3A Administration of a company’s affairs with a view to executing a deed of

company arrangement

Division 11AA Notification of contravention of deed

Section 445HA

328 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Division 11AA—Notification of contravention of deed

445HA Notification of contravention of deed of company

arrangement

Director to notify administrator

(1) If a director of a company that is subject to a deed of company

arrangement becomes aware that:

(a) there has been a material contravention of the deed by a

person bound by the deed (who may be the director); or

(b) there is likely to be a material contravention of the deed by a

person bound by the deed (who may be the director);

the director must, as soon as practicable after becoming aware of

the contravention or likely contravention, give notice of the

contravention or likely contravention to the administrator of the

deed of company arrangement. The notice must be in the

prescribed form.

Administrator to notify company’s creditors

(2) If the administrator of a deed of company arrangement becomes

aware that:

(a) there has been a material contravention of the deed by a

person bound by the deed (who may be the administrator); or

(b) there is likely to be a material contravention of the deed by a

person bound by the deed (who may be the administrator);

the administrator must, as soon as practicable after becoming

aware of the contravention or likely contravention, give notice of

the contravention or likely contravention to as many of the

company’s creditors as reasonably practicable. The notice must be

in the prescribed form.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Administration of a company’s affairs with a view to executing a deed of company

arrangement Part 5.3A

Transition to creditors’ voluntary winding up Division 12

Section 446A

Corporations Act 2001 329

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Division 12—Transition to creditors’ voluntary winding up

446A Administrator becomes liquidator in certain cases

(1) This section applies if:

(a) the creditors of a company under administration resolve at a

particular time under paragraph 439C(c) that the company be

wound up; or

(b) a company under administration contravenes

subsection 444B(2) at a particular time; or

(c) the company’s creditors:

(i) pass a resolution terminating a deed of company

arrangement executed by the company; and

(ii) also resolve at a particular time under section 445E that

the company be wound up.

(2) The company is taken:

(a) to have passed, at the time referred to in paragraph (1)(a) or

(b) or subparagraph (1)(c)(ii), as the case may be, a special

resolution under section 491 that the company be wound up

voluntarily; and

(b) to have done so without a declaration having been made and

lodged under section 494.

(3) Section 497 is taken to have been complied with in relation to the

winding up.

(5) The liquidator must:

(a) within 5 business days after the day on which the company is

taken to have passed the resolution, lodge a written notice

stating that the company is taken because of this section to

have passed such a resolution and specifying that day; and

(b) cause the notice to be published, within the period

ascertained in accordance with the regulations, in the

prescribed manner.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.3A Administration of a company’s affairs with a view to executing a deed of

company arrangement

Division 12 Transition to creditors’ voluntary winding up

Section 446AA

330 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(6) Section 482 applies in relation to the winding up as if it were a

winding up in insolvency or by the Court.

Note: Section 482 empowers the Court to stay or terminate a winding up and

give consequential directions.

(7) An application under section 482 as applying because of

subsection (6) may be made:

(a) despite section 198G (exercise of powers while company

under external administration), by the company pursuant to a

resolution of the board; or

(b) by the liquidator; or

(c) by a creditor; or

(d) by a contributory.

Note: See also section 499 (appointment of liquidator).

446AA Administrator becomes liquidator—additional cases

Scope

(1) This section applies if a company has executed a deed of company

arrangement and:

(a) the Court, at a particular time, makes an order under

section 445D terminating the deed of company arrangement;

or

(b) both:

(i) the deed of company arrangement specifies

circumstances in which the deed is to terminate and the

company is to be wound up; and

(ii) those circumstances exist at a particular time.

Resolution that company be wound up voluntarily

(2) The company is taken:

(a) to have passed, at the time referred to in paragraph (1)(a) or

subparagraph (1)(b)(ii), as the case may be, a special

resolution under section 491 that the company be wound up

voluntarily; and

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Administration of a company’s affairs with a view to executing a deed of company

arrangement Part 5.3A

Transition to creditors’ voluntary winding up Division 12

Section 446AA

Corporations Act 2001 331

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(b) to have done so without a declaration having been made and

lodged under section 494.

Information about company’s affairs

(3) Section 497 is taken to have been complied with in relation to the

winding up.

Notice of resolution

(4) The liquidator must:

(a) within 5 business days after the day on which the company is

taken to have passed the resolution, lodge with ASIC a

written notice in the prescribed form:

(i) stating that the company is taken because of this section

to have passed such a resolution; and

(ii) specifying that day; and

(b) cause the notice to be published, within 5 business days after

that day, in the prescribed manner.

Power to stay or terminate winding up

(5) Section 482 applies in relation to the winding up as if it were a

winding up in insolvency or by the Court.

Note: Section 482 empowers the Court to stay or terminate a winding up and

give consequential directions.

(6) An application under section 482 as applying because of

subsection (5) may be made:

(a) despite section 198G (exercise of directors’ powers while

company under external administration), by the company

pursuant to a resolution of the board; or

(b) by the liquidator; or

(c) by a creditor; or

(d) by a contributory.

Note: See also section 499 (appointment of liquidator).

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.3A Administration of a company’s affairs with a view to executing a deed of

company arrangement

Division 12 Transition to creditors’ voluntary winding up

Section 446B

332 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

446B Regulations may provide for transition in other cases

(1) The regulations may prescribe cases where:

(a) a company under administration; or

(b) a company that has executed a deed of company arrangement

(even if the deed has terminated);

is taken to have passed a special resolution under section 491 that

the company be wound up voluntarily.

(2) The regulations may provide for Part 5.5 or Schedule 2 to apply

with prescribed modifications in cases prescribed for the purposes

of subsection (1).

(3) Without limiting subsection (2), the regulations may provide, in

relation to such cases, for matters of a kind provided for by any of

subsections 446A(2) to (7) and 446AA(2) to (6), inclusive.

(4) Regulations in force for the purposes of this section have effect

accordingly.

446C Liquidator may require submission of a report about the

company’s affairs

Scope

(1) This section applies if:

(a) at a particular time (the liquidation time), a company

resolves by special resolution that it be wound up voluntarily;

and

(b) immediately before the liquidation time:

(i) the company was under administration; or

(ii) the company was subject to a deed of company

arrangement.

Report

(2) The liquidator may, by written notice given to a person who is or

has been an officer of the company, require the person to:

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Administration of a company’s affairs with a view to executing a deed of company

arrangement Part 5.3A

Transition to creditors’ voluntary winding up Division 12

Section 446C

Corporations Act 2001 333

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(a) give the liquidator a report containing such information as is

specified in the notice about:

(i) the affairs of the company, as at a date specified in the

notice; or

(ii) if one or more of the affairs of the company are

specified in the notice—those affairs, as at a date

specified in the notice; and

(b) verify the report by a statement in writing in the prescribed

form.

(3) The following provisions have effect:

(a) if subparagraph (1)(b)(i) applies—the date specified in the

subsection (2) notice must not be earlier than the beginning

of the administration;

(b) if subparagraph (1)(b)(ii) applies—the date specified in the

subsection (2) notice must not be earlier than the beginning

of the administration that ended when the deed was executed.

Deadline for giving report to liquidator

(4) If a person is given a notice under subsection (2), the person must

give the liquidator the report required by the notice:

(a) within 14 days after the notice was given; or

(b) if the liquidator, by written notice given to the person, allows

a longer period—within that longer period.

(5) The liquidator may allow a longer period under paragraph (4)(b)

only on written application made within the period of 14 days

mentioned in paragraph (4)(a).

(6) The liquidator may allow a longer period under paragraph (4)(b)

only if the liquidator believes there are special reasons for doing

so.

Report to be lodged with ASIC

(7) The liquidator must, within 7 days after receiving a report under

subsection (2), lodge a copy of the report with ASIC.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.3A Administration of a company’s affairs with a view to executing a deed of

company arrangement

Division 12 Transition to creditors’ voluntary winding up

Section 446C

334 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Cost of preparation of report

(8) If:

(a) a person is required to give a report under subsection (2); and

(b) the person incurs costs or expenses in relation to the

preparation or giving of the report;

the person is entitled to be paid by the liquidator out of the

property of the company (other than its PPSA retention of title

property), so much of those costs and expenses as the liquidator

considers reasonable.

Reasonable excuse

(9) Subsection (4) does not apply to the extent that the person has a

reasonable excuse.

Note: A defendant bears an evidential burden in relation to the matter in

subsection (9), see subsection 13.3(3) of the Criminal Code.

Strict liability

(10) An offence against subsection 1311(1) that relates to subsection (4)

of this section is an offence of strict liability.

Note: For strict liability, see section 6.1 of the Criminal Code.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Administration of a company’s affairs with a view to executing a deed of company

arrangement Part 5.3A

Powers of Court Division 13

Section 447A

Corporations Act 2001 335

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Division 13—Powers of Court

447A General power to make orders

(1) The Court may make such order as it thinks appropriate about how

this Part is to operate in relation to a particular company.

(2) For example, if the Court is satisfied that the administration of a

company should end:

(a) because the company is solvent; or

(b) because provisions of this Part are being abused; or

(c) for some other reason;

the Court may order under subsection (1) that the administration is

to end.

(3) An order may be made subject to conditions.

(4) An order may be made on the application of:

(a) the company; or

(b) a creditor of the company; or

(c) in the case of a company under administration—the

administrator of the company; or

(d) in the case of a company that has executed a deed of

company arrangement—the deed’s administrator; or

(e) ASIC; or

(f) any other interested person.

447B Orders to protect creditors during administration

(1) On the application of ASIC, the Court may make such order as it

thinks necessary to protect the interests of a company’s creditors

while the company is under administration.

(2) On the application of a creditor of a company, the Court may make

such order as it thinks necessary to protect the creditor’s interests

while the company is under administration.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.3A Administration of a company’s affairs with a view to executing a deed of

company arrangement

Division 13 Powers of Court

Section 447C

336 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(3) An order may be made subject to conditions.

447C Court may declare whether administrator validly appointed

(1) If there is doubt, on a specific ground, about whether a purported

appointment of a person as administrator of a company, or of a

deed of company arrangement, is valid, the person, the company or

any of the company’s creditors may apply to the Court for an order

under subsection (2).

(2) On an application, the Court may make an order declaring whether

or not the purported appointment was valid on the ground specified

in the application or on some other ground.

447F Effect of Division

Nothing in this Division limits the generality of anything else in it.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Administration of a company’s affairs with a view to executing a deed of company

arrangement Part 5.3A

Qualifications of administrators Division 14

Section 448A

Corporations Act 2001 337

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Division 14—Qualifications of administrators

448A Appointee must consent

A person cannot be appointed as administrator of a company or of

a deed of company arrangement unless:

(a) the person has consented in writing to the appointment; and

(b) as at the time of the appointment, the person has not

withdrawn the consent.

448B Administrator must be registered liquidator

(1) A person must not consent to be appointed, and must not act, as

administrator of a company or of a deed of company arrangement.

(2) Subsection (1) does not apply if the person is a registered

liquidator.

Note: A defendant bears an evidential burden in relation to the matter in

subsection (2), see subsection 13.3(3) of the Criminal Code.

(3) An offence based on subsection (1) is an offence of strict liability.

Note: For strict liability, see section 6.1 of the Criminal Code.

448C Disqualification of person connected with company

(1) Subject to this section, a person must not, except with the leave of

the Court, seek or consent to be appointed as, or act as,

administrator of a company or of a deed of company arrangement

if:

(a) the person, or a body corporate in which the person has a

substantial holding, is indebted in an amount exceeding

$5,000 to the company or to a body corporate related to the

company; or

(b) the person is, otherwise than in a capacity as administrator or

liquidator of, or as administrator of a deed of company

arrangement executed by, the company or a related body

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.3A Administration of a company’s affairs with a view to executing a deed of

company arrangement

Division 14 Qualifications of administrators

Section 448C

338 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

corporate, a creditor of the company or of a related body

corporate in an amount exceeding $5,000; or

(c) the person is a director, secretary, senior manager or

employee of the company; or

(d) the person is a director, secretary, senior manager or

employee of a body corporate that is a secured party in

relation to property of the company; or

(e) the person is an auditor of the company; or

(f) the person is a partner or employee of an auditor of the

company; or

(g) the person is a partner, employer or employee of an officer of

the company; or

(h) the person is a partner or employee of an employee of an

officer of the company.

(1A) An offence based on subsection (1) is an offence of strict liability.

Note: For strict liability, see section 6.1 of the Criminal Code.

(2) For the purposes of paragraph (1)(a), disregard a debt owed by a

natural person to a body corporate if:

(a) the body corporate is:

(i) an Australian ADI; or

(ii) a body corporate registered under section 21 of the Life

Insurance Act 1995; and

(b) the debt arose because of a loan that the body corporate or

entity made to the person in the ordinary course of its

ordinary business; and

(c) the person used the amount of the loan to pay the whole or

part of the purchase price of premises that the person uses as

their principal place of residence.

(3) For the purposes of this section, a person is taken to be a director,

secretary, senior manager, employee or auditor of a company if:

(a) the person is or has, within the last 2 years, been a director,

secretary, senior manager, employee, auditor or promoter of

the company or a related body corporate; and

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Administration of a company’s affairs with a view to executing a deed of company

arrangement Part 5.3A

Qualifications of administrators Division 14

Section 448C

Corporations Act 2001 339

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(b) ASIC has not directed that the person not be taken to be a

director, secretary, senior manager, employee or auditor for

the purposes of this section.

ASIC may give a direction under paragraph (b) only if it thinks fit

in the circumstances of the case.

(4) For the purposes of paragraphs (1)(g) and (h), officer does not

include liquidator.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.3A Administration of a company’s affairs with a view to executing a deed of

company arrangement

Division 15 Removal and replacement of administrator

Section 449A

340 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Division 15—Removal and replacement of administrator

449A Appointment of administrator cannot be revoked

The appointment of a person as administrator of a company or of a

deed of company arrangement cannot be revoked.

449C Vacancy in office of administrator of company

(1) Where the administrator of a company under administration:

(a) dies; or

(b) becomes prohibited from acting as administrator of the

company; or

(c) resigns by notice in writing given to his or her appointer and

to the company;

his or her appointer may appoint someone else as administrator of

the company.

(2) In subsection (1):

appointer, in relation to the administrator of a company under

administration, means:

(a) if the administrator was appointed by the Court under

Division 90 of Schedule 2 (review of the external

administration of a company) or subsection (6) of this

section—the Court; or

(b) otherwise:

(i) if the administration began because of an appointment

under section 436A—the company; or

(ii) if the administration began because of an appointment

under section 436B—a liquidator or provisional

liquidator of the company; or

(iii) if the administration began because of an appointment

under section 436C—a person who is entitled, or would

apart from section 440B or 441D be entitled, to enforce

the security interest.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Administration of a company’s affairs with a view to executing a deed of company

arrangement Part 5.3A

Removal and replacement of administrator Division 15

Section 449CA

Corporations Act 2001 341

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(3) An appointment under subsection (1) by the company under

administration must be made pursuant to a resolution of the board.

(4) Within 5 business days after being appointed under subsection (1)

as administrator of a company otherwise than by the Court, a

person must convene a meeting of the company’s creditors so that

they may:

(a) determine whether to remove the person from office; and

(b) if so, appoint someone else as administrator of the company.

(6) Where a company is under administration, but for some reason no

administrator is acting, the Court may appoint a person as

administrator on the application of ASIC or of an officer, member

or creditor of the company.

(7) Subsections (3) and (6) have effect despite section 198G.

449CA Declarations by administrator—indemnities and relevant

relationships

Scope

(1) This section applies to an administrator appointed under

subsection 449C(1) otherwise than by the Court.

Declaration of relationships and indemnities

(2) As soon as practicable after being appointed, the administrator

must make:

(a) a declaration of relevant relationships; and

(b) a declaration of indemnities.

Note: Failure to comply with this subsection is an offence (see

subsection 1311(1)).

Notification of creditors

(3) The administrator must:

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.3A Administration of a company’s affairs with a view to executing a deed of

company arrangement

Division 15 Removal and replacement of administrator

Section 449CA

342 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(a) give a copy of each declaration under subsection (2) to as

many of the company’s creditors as reasonably practicable;

and

(b) do so at the same time as the administrator gives those

creditors notice of the meeting convened under

subsection 449C(4).

Note: Failure to comply with this subsection is an offence (see

subsection 1311(1)).

(4) The administrator must table a copy of each declaration under

subsection (2) at the meeting convened under subsection 449C(4).

Note: Failure to comply with this subsection is an offence (see

subsection 1311(1)).

(4A) As soon as practicable after making a declaration under

subsection (2), the administrator must lodge a copy of the

declaration with ASIC.

Note: Failure to comply with this subsection is an offence (see

subsection 1311(1)).

Updating of declaration

(5) If:

(a) at a particular time, the administrator makes:

(i) a declaration of relevant relationships; or

(ii) a declaration of indemnities;

under subsection (2) or this subsection; and

(b) at a later time:

(i) the declaration has become out-of-date; or

(ii) the administrator becomes aware of an error in the

declaration;

the administrator must, as soon as practicable, make:

(c) if subparagraph (a)(i) applies—a replacement declaration of

relevant relationships; or

(d) if subparagraph (a)(ii) applies—a replacement declaration of

indemnities.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Administration of a company’s affairs with a view to executing a deed of company

arrangement Part 5.3A

Removal and replacement of administrator Division 15

Section 449CA

Corporations Act 2001 343

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Note: Failure to comply with this subsection is an offence (see

subsection 1311(1)).

(6) The administrator must table a copy of a replacement declaration

under subsection (5):

(a) if:

(i) there is a committee of inspection; and

(ii) the next meeting of the committee of inspection occurs

before the next meeting of the company’s creditors;

at the next meeting of the committee of inspection; or

(b) in any other case—at the next meeting of the company’s

creditors.

Note: Failure to comply with this subsection is an offence (see

subsection 1311(1)).

(6A) As soon as practicable after making a replacement declaration

under subsection (5), the administrator must lodge a copy of the

replacement declaration with ASIC.

Note: Failure to comply with this subsection is an offence (see

subsection 1311(1)).

Defence

(7) In a prosecution for an offence constituted by a failure to include a

particular matter in a declaration under this section, it is a defence

if the defendant proves that:

(a) the defendant made reasonable enquiries; and

(b) after making these enquiries, the defendant had no reasonable

grounds for believing that the matter should have been

included in the declaration.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.3A Administration of a company’s affairs with a view to executing a deed of

company arrangement

Division 16 Notices about steps taken under Part

Section 450A

344 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Division 16—Notices about steps taken under Part

450A Appointment of administrator

(1) Where an administrator of a company is appointed under

section 436A, 436B or 436C, the administrator must:

(a) lodge a notice of the appointment before the end of the next

business day after the appointment; and

(b) cause a notice setting out the prescribed information about

the appointment to be published, within the period

ascertained in accordance with the regulations, in the

prescribed manner.

(1A) A notice under paragraph (1)(b) that relates to a company may be

combined with a notice under paragraph 436E(3)(b) that relates to

the company.

(2) As soon as practicable, and in any event before the end of the next

business day, after appointing an administrator of a company under

section 436C, a person must give to the company a written notice

of the appointment.

(3) As soon as practicable, and in any event before the end of the next

business day, after an administrator of a company is appointed

under section 436A, 436B or 436C, he or she must give a written

notice of the appointment to:

(a) each person who holds a security interest in the whole, or

substantially the whole, of the company’s property; and

(b) each person who holds 2 or more security interests in

property of the company where the property of the company

subject to the respective security interests together constitutes

the whole, or substantially the whole, of the company’s

property.

Note: For electronic notification, see section 600G.

(4) An administrator need not give a notice under subsection (3) to the

person who appointed the administrator.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Administration of a company’s affairs with a view to executing a deed of company

arrangement Part 5.3A

Notices about steps taken under Part Division 16

Section 450B

Corporations Act 2001 345

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

450B Execution of deed of company arrangement

As soon as practicable after a deed of company arrangement is

executed, the deed’s administrator must:

(a) send to each creditor of the company a written notice of the

execution of the deed; and

(b) lodge notice in the prescribed form with ASIC of the

execution of the deed.

Note: For electronic notification under paragraph (a), see section 600G.

450C Failure to execute deed of company arrangement

As soon as practicable after a company contravenes

subsection 444B(2), the deed’s administrator must:

(a) lodge a notice that the company has failed to execute the

instrument within the required period; and

(b) send such a notice to each of the company’s creditors.

Note: For electronic notification under paragraph (b), see section 600G.

450D Termination of deed of company arrangement

Where a deed of company arrangement terminates because of

paragraph 445C(b), the deed’s administrator must:

(a) lodge a notice of the termination; and

(b) send such a notice to each of the company’s creditors.

Note: For electronic notification under paragraph (b), see section 600G.

450E Notice in public documents etc. of company

(1) A company under administration must set out, in every public

document, and in every negotiable instrument, of the company,

after the company’s name where it first appears, the expression

(“administrator appointed”).

(2) Except with the leave of the Court, until a deed of company

arrangement terminates, the company must set out, in every public

document, and in every negotiable instrument, of the company,

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.3A Administration of a company’s affairs with a view to executing a deed of

company arrangement

Division 16 Notices about steps taken under Part

Section 450F

346 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

after the company’s name where it first appears, the expression

(“subject to deed of company arrangement”).

(3) An offence based on subsection (1) or (2) is an offence of strict

liability.

Note: For strict liability, see section 6.1 of the Criminal Code.

(4) The Court may only grant leave under subsection (2) on the

application of:

(a) the administrator of the deed of company arrangement; or

(b) any interested person.

(5) The Court may only grant leave under subsection (2) if it is

satisfied that the granting of leave will not result in any significant

risk to the interests of the company’s creditors (including

contingent or prospective creditors) as a whole.

450F Effect of contravention of this Division

A contravention of this Division does not affect the validity of

anything done or omitted under this Part, except so far as the Court

otherwise orders.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Administration of a company’s affairs with a view to executing a deed of company

arrangement Part 5.3A

Miscellaneous Division 17

Section 451A

Corporations Act 2001 347

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Division 17—Miscellaneous

451A Appointment of 2 or more administrators of company

(1) Where a provision of this Act provides for an administrator of a

company to be appointed, 2 or more persons may be appointed as

administrators of the company.

(2) Where, because of subsection (1), there are 2 or more

administrators of a company:

(a) a function or power of an administrator of the company may

be performed or exercised by any one of them, or by any 2 or

more of them together, except so far as the instrument or

resolution appointing them otherwise provides; and

(b) a reference in this Act to an administrator, or to the

administrator, of a company is, in the case of the

first-mentioned company, a reference to whichever one or

more of those administrators the case requires.

451B Appointment of 2 or more administrators of deed of company

arrangement

(1) Where a provision of this Act provides for an administrator of a

deed of company arrangement to be appointed, 2 or more persons

may be appointed as administrators of the deed.

(2) Where, because of subsection (1), there are 2 or more

administrators of a deed of company arrangement:

(a) a function or power of an administrator of the deed may be

performed or exercised by any one of them, or by any 2 or

more of them together, except so far as the deed, or the

resolution or instrument appointing them, otherwise

provides; and

(b) a reference in this Act to an administrator, or to the

administrator, of a deed of company arrangement is, in the

case of the first-mentioned deed, a reference to whichever

one or more of those administrators the case requires.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.3A Administration of a company’s affairs with a view to executing a deed of

company arrangement

Division 17 Miscellaneous

Section 451C

348 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

451C Effect of things done during administration of company

A payment made, transaction entered into, or any other act or thing

done, in good faith, by, or with the consent of, the administrator of

a company under administration:

(a) is valid and effectual for the purposes of this Act; and

(b) is not liable to be set aside in a winding up of the company.

451D Time for doing act does not run while act prevented by this

Part

Where:

(a) for any purpose (for example, the purposes of a law,

agreement or instrument) an act must or may be done within

a particular period or before a particular time; and

(b) this Part prevents the act from being done within that period

or before that time;

the period is extended, or the time is deferred, because of this

section, according to how long this Part prevented the act from

being done.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Winding up in insolvency Part 5.4

When company to be wound up in insolvency Division 1

Section 459A

Corporations Act 2001 349

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Part 5.4—Winding up in insolvency

Division 1—When company to be wound up in insolvency

459A Order that insolvent company be wound up in insolvency

On an application under section 459P, the Court may order that an

insolvent company be wound up in insolvency.

459B Order made on application under section 234, 462 or 464

Where, on an application under section 234, 462 or 464, the Court

is satisfied that the company is insolvent, the Court may order that

the company be wound up in insolvency.

459C Presumptions to be made in certain proceedings

(1) This section has effect for the purposes of:

(a) an application under section 234, 459P, 462 or 464; or

(b) an application for leave to make an application under

section 459P.

(2) The Court must presume that the company is insolvent if, during or

after the 3 months ending on the day when the application was

made:

(a) the company failed (as defined by section 459F) to comply

with a statutory demand; or

(b) execution or other process issued on a judgment, decree or

order of an Australian court in favour of a creditor of the

company was returned wholly or partly unsatisfied; or

(c) a receiver, or receiver and manager, of property of the

company was appointed under a power contained in an

instrument relating to a circulating security interest in such

property; or

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.4 Winding up in insolvency

Division 1 When company to be wound up in insolvency

Section 459D

350 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(d) an order was made for the appointment of such a receiver, or

receiver and manager, for the purpose of enforcing such a

security interest; or

(e) a person entered into possession, or assumed control, of such

property for such a purpose; or

(f) a person was appointed so to enter into possession or assume

control (whether as agent for the secured party or for the

company).

(3) A presumption for which this section provides operates except so

far as the contrary is proved for the purposes of the application.

459D Contingent or prospective liability relevant to whether

company solvent

(1) In determining, for the purposes of an application of a kind referred

to in subsection 459C(1), whether or not the company is solvent,

the Court may take into account a contingent or prospective

liability of the company.

(2) Subsection (1) does not limit the matters that may be taken into

account in determining, for a particular purpose, whether or not a

company is solvent.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Winding up in insolvency Part 5.4

Statutory demand Division 2

Section 459E

Corporations Act 2001 351

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Division 2—Statutory demand

459E Creditor may serve statutory demand on company

(1) A person may serve on a company a demand relating to:

(a) a single debt that the company owes to the person, that is due

and payable and whose amount is at least the statutory

minimum; or

(b) 2 or more debts that the company owes to the person, that are

due and payable and whose amounts total at least the

statutory minimum.

(2) The demand:

(a) if it relates to a single debt—must specify the debt and its

amount; and

(b) if it relates to 2 or more debts—must specify the total of the

amounts of the debts; and

(c) must require the company to pay the amount of the debt, or

the total of the amounts of the debts, or to secure or

compound for that amount or total to the creditor’s

reasonable satisfaction, within 21 days after the demand is

served on the company; and

(d) must be in writing; and

(e) must be in the prescribed form (if any); and

(f) must be signed by or on behalf of the creditor.

(3) Unless the debt, or each of the debts, is a judgment debt, the

demand must be accompanied by an affidavit that:

(a) verifies that the debt, or the total of the amounts of the debts,

is due and payable by the company; and

(b) complies with the rules.

(4) A person may make a demand under this section relating to a debt

even if the debt is owed to the person as assignee.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.4 Winding up in insolvency

Division 2 Statutory demand

Section 459F

352 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(5) A demand under this section may relate to a liability under any of

the following provisions of the Income Tax Assessment Act 1936:

(aa) former section 220AAE, 220AAM or 220AAR;

(a) former section 221F (except subsection 221F(12)), former

section 221G (except subsection 221G(4A)) or former

section 221P;

(b) former subsection 221YHDC(2);

(c) former subsection 221YHZD(1) or (1A);

(d) former subsection 221YN(1);

(e) section 222AHA;

and any of the provisions of Subdivision 16-B in Schedule 1 to the

Taxation Administration Act 1953, even if the liability arose before

1 January 1991.

(6) Subsection (5) is to avoid doubt and is not intended to limit the

generality of a reference in this Act to a debt.

459F When company taken to fail to comply with statutory demand

(1) If, as at the end of the period for compliance with a statutory

demand, the demand is still in effect and the company has not

complied with it, the company is taken to fail to comply with the

demand at the end of that period.

(2) The period for compliance with a statutory demand is:

(a) if the company applies in accordance with section 459G for

an order setting aside the demand:

(i) if, on hearing the application under section 459G, or on

an application by the company under this paragraph, the

Court makes an order that extends the period for

compliance with the demand—the period specified in

the order, or in the last such order, as the case requires,

as the period for such compliance; or

(ii) otherwise—the period beginning on the day when the

demand is served and ending 7 days after the

application under section 459G is finally determined or

otherwise disposed of; or

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Winding up in insolvency Part 5.4

Statutory demand Division 2

Section 459F

Corporations Act 2001 353

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(b) otherwise—21 days after the demand is served.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.4 Winding up in insolvency

Division 3 Application to set aside statutory demand

Section 459G

354 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Division 3—Application to set aside statutory demand

459G Company may apply

(1) A company may apply to the Court for an order setting aside a

statutory demand served on the company.

(2) An application may only be made within 21 days after the demand

is so served.

(3) An application is made in accordance with this section only if,

within those 21 days:

(a) an affidavit supporting the application is filed with the Court;

and

(b) a copy of the application, and a copy of the supporting

affidavit, are served on the person who served the demand on

the company.

459H Determination of application where there is a dispute or

offsetting claim

(1) This section applies where, on an application under section 459G,

the Court is satisfied of either or both of the following:

(a) that there is a genuine dispute between the company and the

respondent about the existence or amount of a debt to which

the demand relates;

(b) that the company has an offsetting claim.

(2) The Court must calculate the substantiated amount of the demand

in accordance with the formula:

where:

admitted total means:

(a) the admitted amount of the debt; or

Admitted total Offsetting total

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Winding up in insolvency Part 5.4

Application to set aside statutory demand Division 3

Section 459H

Corporations Act 2001 355

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(b) the total of the respective admitted amounts of the debts;

as the case requires, to which the demand relates.

offsetting total means:

(a) if the Court is satisfied that the company has only one

offsetting claim—the amount of that claim; or

(b) if the Court is satisfied that the company has 2 or more

offsetting claims—the total of the amounts of those claims;

or

(c) otherwise—a nil amount.

(3) If the substantiated amount is less than the statutory minimum, the

Court must, by order, set aside the demand.

(4) If the substantiated amount is at least as great as the statutory

minimum, the Court may make an order:

(a) varying the demand as specified in the order; and

(b) declaring the demand to have had effect, as so varied, as from

when the demand was served on the company.

(5) In this section:

admitted amount, in relation to a debt, means:

(a) if the Court is satisfied that there is a genuine dispute

between the company and the respondent about the existence

of the debt—a nil amount; or

(b) if the Court is satisfied that there is a genuine dispute

between the company and the respondent about the amount

of the debt—so much of that amount as the Court is satisfied

is not the subject of such a dispute; or

(c) otherwise—the amount of the debt.

offsetting claim means a genuine claim that the company has

against the respondent by way of counterclaim, set-off or

cross-demand (even if it does not arise out of the same transaction

or circumstances as a debt to which the demand relates).

respondent means the person who served the demand on the

company.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.4 Winding up in insolvency

Division 3 Application to set aside statutory demand

Section 459J

356 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(6) This section has effect subject to section 459J.

459J Setting aside demand on other grounds

(1) On an application under section 459G, the Court may by order set

aside the demand if it is satisfied that:

(a) because of a defect in the demand, substantial injustice will

be caused unless the demand is set aside; or

(b) there is some other reason why the demand should be set

aside.

(2) Except as provided in subsection (1), the Court must not set aside a

statutory demand merely because of a defect.

459K Effect of order setting aside demand

A statutory demand has no effect while there is in force under

section 459H or 459J an order setting aside the demand.

459L Dismissal of application

Unless the Court makes, on an application under section 459J, an

order under section 459H or 459J, the Court is to dismiss the

application.

459M Order subject to conditions

An order under section 459H or 459J may be made subject to

conditions.

459N Costs where company successful

Where, on an application under section 459G, the Court sets aside

the demand, it may order the person who served the demand to pay

the company’s costs in relation to the application.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Winding up in insolvency Part 5.4

Application for order to wind up company in insolvency Division 4

Section 459P

Corporations Act 2001 357

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Division 4—Application for order to wind up company in

insolvency

459P Who may apply for order under section 459A

(1) Any one or more of the following may apply to the Court for a

company to be wound up in insolvency:

(a) the company;

(b) a creditor (even if the creditor is a secured creditor or is only

a contingent or prospective creditor);

(c) a contributory;

(d) a director;

(e) a liquidator or provisional liquidator of the company;

(f) ASIC;

(g) a prescribed agency.

(2) An application by any of the following, or by persons including

any of the following, may only be made with the leave of the

Court:

(a) a person who is a creditor only because of a contingent or

prospective debt;

(b) a contributory;

(c) a director;

(d) ASIC.

(3) The Court may give leave if satisfied that there is a prima facie

case that the company is insolvent, but not otherwise.

(4) The Court may give leave subject to conditions.

(5) Except as permitted by this section, a person cannot apply for a

company to be wound up in insolvency.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.4 Winding up in insolvency

Division 4 Application for order to wind up company in insolvency

Section 459Q

358 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

459Q Application relying on failure to comply with statutory

demand

If an application for a company to be wound up in insolvency relies

on a failure by the company to comply with a statutory demand,

the application:

(a) must set out particulars of service of the demand on the

company and of the failure to comply with the demand; and

(b) must have attached to it:

(i) a copy of the demand; and

(ii) if the demand has been varied by an order under

subsection 459H(4)—a copy of the order; and

(c) unless the debt, or each of the debts, to which the demand

relates is a judgment debt—must be accompanied by an

affidavit that:

(i) verifies that the debt, or the total of the amounts of the

debts, is due and payable by the company; and

(ii) complies with the rules.

459R Period within which application must be determined

(1) An application for a company to be wound up in insolvency is to

be determined within 6 months after it is made.

(2) The Court may by order extend the period within which an

application must be determined, but only if:

(a) the Court is satisfied that special circumstances justify the

extension; and

(b) the order is made within that period as prescribed by

subsection (1), or as last extended under this subsection, as

the case requires.

(3) An application is, because of this subsection, dismissed if it is not

determined as required by this section.

(4) An order under subsection (2) may be made subject to conditions.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Winding up in insolvency Part 5.4

Application for order to wind up company in insolvency Division 4

Section 459S

Corporations Act 2001 359

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

459S Company may not oppose application on certain grounds

(1) In so far as an application for a company to be wound up in

insolvency relies on a failure by the company to comply with a

statutory demand, the company may not, without the leave of the

Court, oppose the application on a ground:

(a) that the company relied on for the purposes of an application

by it for the demand to be set aside; or

(b) that the company could have so relied on, but did not so rely

on (whether it made such an application or not).

(2) The Court is not to grant leave under subsection (1) unless it is

satisfied that the ground is material to proving that the company is

solvent.

459T Application to wind up joint debtors in insolvency

(1) A single application may be made for 2 or more companies to be

wound up in insolvency if they are joint debtors, whether partners

or not.

(2) On such an application, the Court may order that one or more of

the companies be wound up in insolvency, even if it dismisses the

application in so far as it relates to another or others.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.4A Winding up by the Court on other grounds

Section 461

360 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Part 5.4A—Winding up by the Court on other

grounds

461 General grounds on which company may be wound up by Court

(1) The Court may order the winding up of a company if:

(a) the company has by special resolution resolved that it be

wound up by the Court; or

(c) the company does not commence business within one year

from its incorporation or suspends its business for a whole

year; or

(d) the company has no members; or

(e) directors have acted in affairs of the company in their own

interests rather than in the interests of the members as a

whole, or in any other manner whatsoever that appears to be

unfair or unjust to other members; or

(f) affairs of the company are being conducted in a manner that

is oppressive or unfairly prejudicial to, or unfairly

discriminatory against, a member or members or in a manner

that is contrary to the interests of the members as a whole; or

(g) an act or omission, or a proposed act or omission, by or on

behalf of the company, or a resolution, or a proposed

resolution, of a class of members of the company, was or

would be oppressive or unfairly prejudicial to, or unfairly

discriminatory against, a member or members or was or

would be contrary to the interests of the members as a whole;

or

(h) ASIC has stated in a report prepared under Division 1 of

Part 3 of the ASIC Act that, in its opinion:

(i) the company cannot pay its debts and should be wound

up; or

(ii) it is in the interests of the public, of the members, or of

the creditors, that the company should be wound up; or

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Winding up by the Court on other grounds Part 5.4A

Section 462

Corporations Act 2001 361

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(k) the Court is of opinion that it is just and equitable that the

company be wound up.

(2) A company must lodge a copy of a special resolution referred to in

paragraph (1)(a) with ASIC within 14 days after the resolution is

passed.

462 Standing to apply for winding up

(1) A reference in this section to an order to wind up a company is a

reference to an order to wind up the company on a ground provided

for by section 461.

(2) Subject to this section, any one or more of the following may apply

for an order to wind up a company:

(a) the company; or

(b) a creditor (including a contingent or prospective creditor) of

the company; or

(c) a contributory; or

(d) the liquidator of the company; or

(e) ASIC pursuant to section 464; or

(f) ASIC (in the circumstances set out in subsection (2A)); or

(h) APRA.

(2A) ASIC may apply for an order to wind up a company under

paragraph (2)(f) only if:

(a) the company has no members; and

(b) ASIC has given the company at least 1 month’s written

notice of its intention to apply for the order.

(4) The Court must not hear an application by a person being, or

persons including, a contingent or prospective creditor of a

company for an order to wind up the company unless and until:

(a) such security for costs has been given as the Court thinks

reasonable; and

(b) a prima facie case for winding up the company has been

established to the Court’s satisfaction.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.4A Winding up by the Court on other grounds

Section 464

362 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(5) Except as permitted by this section, a person is not entitled to apply

for an order to wind up a company.

464 Application for winding up in connection with investigation

under ASIC Act

(1) Where ASIC is investigating, or has investigated, under Division 1

of Part 3 of the ASIC Act:

(a) matters being, or connected with, affairs of a company; or

(b) matters including such matters;

ASIC may apply to the Court for the winding up of the company.

(2) For the purposes of an application under subsection (1), this Act

applies, with such modifications as the circumstances require, as if

a winding up application had been made by the company.

(3) ASIC must give a copy of an application made under

subsection (1) to the company.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Winding up in insolvency or by the Court Part 5.4B

Preliminary Division 1A

Section 465

Corporations Act 2001 363

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Part 5.4B—Winding up in insolvency or by the

Court

Division 1A—Preliminary

465 Definitions

In this Part:

property of a company includes PPSA retention of title property, if

the security interest in the property is vested in the company

because of the operation of any of the following provisions:

(a) section 267 or 267A of the Personal Property Securities Act

2009 (property subject to unperfected security interests);

(b) section 588FL of this Act (collateral not registered within

time).

Note: See sections 9 (definition of property) and 51F (PPSA retention of

title property).

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.4B Winding up in insolvency or by the Court

Division 1 General

Section 465A

364 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Division 1—General

465A Notice of application

(1) A person who applies under section 459P, 462 or 464 for a

company to be wound up must:

(a) lodge notice in the prescribed form that the application has

been made; and

(b) within 14 days after the application is made, serve a copy of

it on the company; and

(c) cause a notice setting out the prescribed information about

the application to be published in the prescribed manner.

(2) If the Court orders the winding up of a company as a result of an

application under section 459P, 462 or 464, the liquidator (or

provisional liquidator) must cause notice setting out prescribed

information about the order to be published in the prescribed

manner.

465B Substitution of applicants

(1) The Court may by order substitute, as applicant or applicants in an

application under section 459P, 462 or 464 for a company to be

wound up, a person or persons who might otherwise have so

applied for the company to be wound up.

(2) The Court may only make an order if the Court thinks it

appropriate to do so:

(a) because the application is not being proceeded with diligently

enough; or

(b) for some other reason.

(3) The substituted applicant may be, or the substituted applicants may

be or include, the person who was the applicant, or any of the

persons who were the applicants, before the substitution.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Winding up in insolvency or by the Court Part 5.4B

General Division 1

Section 465C

Corporations Act 2001 365

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(4) After an order is made, the application may proceed as if the

substituted applicant or applicants had been the original applicant

or applicants.

465C Applicant to be given notice of grounds for opposing

application

On the hearing of an application under section 459P, 462 or 464, a

person may not, without the leave of the Court, oppose the

application unless, within the period prescribed by the rules, the

person has filed, and served on the applicant:

(a) notice of the grounds on which the person opposes the

application; and

(b) an affidavit verifying the matters stated in the notice.

466 Payment of preliminary costs etc.

(1) The persons, other than the company itself or the liquidator of the

company, on whose application any winding up order is made

must, at their own cost, prosecute all proceedings in the winding up

until a liquidator has been appointed under this Part.

(2) The liquidator must, unless the Court orders otherwise, reimburse

the applicant out of the property of the company the taxed costs

incurred by the applicant in any such proceedings.

(3) Where the company has no property or does not have sufficient

property and, in the opinion of ASIC, a fraud has been committed

by any person in the promotion or formation of the company or by

any officer or employee of the company in relation to the company

since its formation, the taxed costs or so much of them as is not

reimbursed under subsection (2) may be reimbursed by ASIC to an

amount not exceeding $1,000.

(4) Where any winding up order is made upon the application of the

company or a liquidator of the company, the costs incurred must,

subject to any order of the Court, be paid out of the property of the

company in like manner as if they were the costs of any other

applicant.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.4B Winding up in insolvency or by the Court

Division 1 General

Section 467

366 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

467 Court’s powers on hearing application

(1) Subject to subsection (2) and section 467A, on hearing a winding

up application the Court may:

(a) dismiss the application with or without costs, even if a

ground has been proved on which the Court may order the

company to be wound up on the application; or

(b) adjourn the hearing conditionally or unconditionally; or

(c) make any interim or other order that it thinks fit.

(2) The Court must not refuse to make a winding up order merely

because:

(a) the total amount secured by one or more security interests in

the property of the company is equal to or greater than the

value of the property subject to the interest (or interests); or

(b) the company has no property.

(3) The Court may, on the application coming on for hearing or at any

time at the request of the applicant, the company or any person

who has given notice of intention to appear on the hearing of the

application:

(a) direct that any notices be given or any steps be taken before

or after the hearing of the application; and

(b) dispense with any notices being given or steps being taken

that are required by this Act, or by the rules, or by any prior

order of the Court; and

(c) direct that oral evidence be taken on the application or any

matter relating to the application; and

(d) direct a speedy hearing or trial of the application or of any

issue or matter; and

(e) allow the application to be amended or withdrawn; and

(f) give such directions as to the proceedings as the Court thinks

fit.

(4) Where the application is made by members as contributories on the

ground that it is just and equitable that the company should be

wound up or that the directors have acted in a manner that appears

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Winding up in insolvency or by the Court Part 5.4B

General Division 1

Section 467A

Corporations Act 2001 367

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

to be unfair or unjust to other members, the Court, if it is of the

opinion that:

(a) the applicants are entitled to relief either by winding up the

company or by some other means; and

(b) in the absence of any other remedy it would be just and

equitable that the company should be wound up;

must make a winding up order unless it is also of the opinion that

some other remedy is available to the applicants and that they are

acting unreasonably in seeking to have the company wound up

instead of pursuing that other remedy.

(5) Notwithstanding any rule of law to the contrary, the Court must not

refuse to make an order for winding up on the application of a

contributory on the ground that, if the order were made, no

property of the company would be available for distribution among

the contributories.

(7) At any time after the filing of a winding up application and before

a winding up order has been made, the company or any creditor or

contributory may, where any action or other civil proceeding

against the company is pending, apply to the Court to stay or

restrain further proceedings in the action or proceeding, and the

Court may stay or restrain the proceedings accordingly on such

terms as it thinks fit.

467A Effect of defect or irregularity on application under Part 5.4

or 5.4A

An application under Part 5.4 or 5.4A must not be dismissed

merely because of one or more of the following:

(a) in any case—a defect or irregularity in connection with the

application;

(b) in the case of an application for a company to be wound up in

insolvency—a defect in a statutory demand;

unless the Court is satisfied that substantial injustice has been

caused that cannot otherwise be remedied (for example, by an

adjournment or an order for costs).

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.4B Winding up in insolvency or by the Court

Division 1 General

Section 467B

368 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

467B Court may order winding up of company that is being wound

up voluntarily

The Court may make an order under section 233, 459A, 459B or

461 even if the company is already being wound up voluntarily.

468 Avoidance of dispositions of property, attachments etc.

(1) Any disposition of property of the company, other than an exempt

disposition, made after the commencement of the winding up by

the Court is, unless the Court otherwise orders, void.

(2) In subsection (1), exempt disposition, in relation to a company that

has commenced to be wound up by the Court, means:

(a) a disposition made by the liquidator, or by a provisional

liquidator, of the company pursuant to a power conferred on

him or her by:

(i) this Act; or

(ii) rules of the Court that appointed him or her; or

(iii) an order of the Court; or

(aa) a disposition made in good faith by, or with the consent of,

an administrator of the company; or

(ab) a disposition under a deed of company arrangement executed

by the company; or

(b) a payment of money by an Australian ADI out of an account

maintained by the company with the Australian ADI, being a

payment made by the Australian ADI:

(i) on or before the day on which the Court makes the order

for the winding up of the company; and

(ii) in good faith and in the ordinary course of the banking

business of the Australian ADI.

(3) Notwithstanding subsection (1), the Court may, where an

application for winding up has been filed but a winding up order

has not been made, by order:

(a) validate the making, after the filing of the application, of a

disposition of property of the company; or

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Winding up in insolvency or by the Court Part 5.4B

General Division 1

Section 468A

Corporations Act 2001 369

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(b) permit the business of the company or a portion of the

business of the company to be carried on, and such acts as

are incidental to the carrying on of the business or portion of

the business to be done, during the period before a winding

up order (if any) is made;

on such terms as it thinks fit.

(4) Any attachment, sequestration, distress or execution put in force

against the property of the company after the commencement of

the winding up by the Court is void.

468A Effect of winding up on company’s members

Transfer of shares

(1) A transfer of shares in a company that is made after the

commencement of the winding up by the Court is void except if:

(a) both:

(i) the liquidator gives written consent to the transfer; and

(ii) that consent is unconditional; or

(b) all of the following subparagraphs apply:

(i) the liquidator gives written consent to the transfer;

(ii) that consent is subject to one or more specified

conditions;

(iii) those conditions have been satisfied; or

(c) the Court makes an order under subsection (4) authorising

the transfer.

(2) The liquidator may only give consent under paragraph (1)(a) or (b)

if he or she is satisfied that the transfer is in the best interests of the

company’s creditors as a whole.

(3) If the liquidator refuses to give consent under paragraph (1)(a) or

(b) to a transfer of shares in the company:

(a) the prospective transferor; or

(b) the prospective transferee; or

(c) a creditor of the company;

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.4B Winding up in insolvency or by the Court

Division 1 General

Section 468A

370 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

may apply to the Court for an order authorising the transfer.

(4) If the Court is satisfied, on an application under subsection (3), that

the transfer is in the best interests of the company’s creditors as a

whole, the Court may, by order, authorise the transfer.

(5) If the liquidator gives consent under paragraph (1)(b) to a transfer

of shares in the company:

(a) the prospective transferor; or

(b) the prospective transferee; or

(c) a creditor of the company;

may apply to the Court for an order setting aside any or all of the

conditions to which the consent is subject.

(6) If the Court is satisfied, on an application under subsection (5), that

any or all of the conditions covered by the application are not in

the best interests of the company’s creditors as a whole, the Court

may, by order, set aside any or all of the conditions.

(7) The liquidator is entitled to be heard in a proceeding before the

Court in relation to an application under subsection (3) or (5).

Alteration in the status of members

(8) An alteration in the status of members of a company that is made

after the commencement of the winding up by the Court is void

except if:

(a) both:

(i) the liquidator gives written consent to the alteration; and

(ii) that consent is unconditional; or

(b) all of the following subparagraphs apply:

(i) the liquidator gives written consent to the alteration;

(ii) that consent is subject to one or more specified

conditions;

(iii) those conditions have been satisfied; or

(c) the Court makes an order under subsection (12) authorising

the alteration.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Winding up in insolvency or by the Court Part 5.4B

General Division 1

Section 468A

Corporations Act 2001 371

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(9) The liquidator may only give consent under paragraph (8)(a) or (b)

if he or she is satisfied that the alteration is in the best interests of

the company’s creditors as a whole.

(10) The liquidator must refuse to give consent under paragraph (8)(a)

or (b) if the alteration would contravene Part 2F.2.

(11) If the liquidator refuses to give consent under paragraph (8)(a) or

(b) to an alteration in the status of members of a company:

(a) a member of the company; or

(b) a creditor of the company;

may apply to the Court for an order authorising the alteration.

(12) If the Court is satisfied, on an application under subsection (11),

that:

(a) the alteration is in the best interests of the company’s

creditors as a whole; and

(b) the alteration does not contravene Part 2F.2;

the Court may, by order, authorise the alteration.

(13) If the liquidator gives consent under paragraph (8)(b) to an

alteration in the status of members of a company:

(a) a member of the company; or

(b) a creditor of the company;

may apply to the Court for an order setting aside any or all of the

conditions to which the consent is subject.

(14) If the Court is satisfied, on an application under subsection (13),

that any or all of the conditions covered by the application are not

in the best interests of the company’s creditors as a whole, the

Court may, by order, set aside any or all of the conditions.

(15) The liquidator is entitled to be heard in a proceeding before the

Court in relation to an application under subsection (11) or (13).

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.4B Winding up in insolvency or by the Court

Division 1 General

Section 469

372 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

469 Application to be lis pendens

An application for winding up a company constitutes a lis pendens

for the purposes of any law relating to the effect of a lis pendens

upon purchasers or mortgagees.

470 Certain notices to be lodged

(1) An applicant (other than ASIC) for the winding up of a company

must:

(a) lodge, not later than 10.30 am on the next business day after

the filing of the application, notice of the filing of the

application and of the date on which the application was

filed; and

(b) after an order for winding up is made—lodge, within 2

business days after the making of the order, notice of the

making of the order, of the date on which the order was made

and of the name and address of the liquidator; and

(c) if the application is withdrawn or dismissed—lodge, within 2

business days after the withdrawal or dismissal of the

application, notice of the withdrawal or dismissal of the

application and of the date on which the application was

withdrawn or dismissed.

(2) The applicant must, within 7 days after the passing and entering of

a winding up order:

(a) except where the applicant is ASIC—lodge an office copy of

the order; and

(b) serve an office copy of the order on the company or such

other person as the Court directs; and

(c) deliver to the liquidator an office copy of the order together

with a statement that the order has been served as mentioned

in paragraph (b).

(3) Where ASIC applies for the winding up of a company, ASIC must

enter in its records particulars of the application and, after the

passing and entering of a winding up order, an office copy of the

order, and subsection 1274(2) applies in relation to the document

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Winding up in insolvency or by the Court Part 5.4B

General Division 1

Section 470

Corporations Act 2001 373

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

containing those particulars and to the office copy as if they were

documents lodged with ASIC.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.4B Winding up in insolvency or by the Court

Division 1A Effect of winding up order

Section 471

374 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Division 1A—Effect of winding up order

471 Effect on creditors and contributories

An order for winding up a company operates in favour of all the

creditors and contributories of the company as if it had been made

on the joint application of all the creditors and contributories.

471B Stay of proceedings and suspension of enforcement process

While a company is being wound up in insolvency or by the Court,

or a provisional liquidator of a company is acting, a person cannot

begin or proceed with:

(a) a proceeding in a court against the company or in relation to

property of the company; or

(b) enforcement process in relation to such property;

except with the leave of the Court and in accordance with such

terms (if any) as the Court imposes.

471C Secured creditor’s rights not affected

Nothing in section 471B affects a secured creditor’s right to realise

or otherwise deal with the security interest.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Winding up in insolvency or by the Court Part 5.4B

Court-appointed liquidators Division 2

Section 472

Corporations Act 2001 375

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Division 2—Court-appointed liquidators

472 Court to appoint registered liquidator

(1) On an order being made for the winding up of a company, the

Court may appoint a registered liquidator to be liquidator of the

company.

(2) The Court may appoint a registered liquidator provisionally at any

time after the filing of a winding up application and before the

making of a winding up order or, if there is an appeal against a

winding up order, before a decision in the appeal is made.

(3) A liquidator appointed provisionally has or may exercise such

functions and powers:

(a) as are conferred on him or her by this Act or by rules of the

Court that appointed him or her; or

(b) as the Court specifies in the order appointing him or her.

(4) A liquidator of a company appointed provisionally also has:

(a) power to carry on the company’s business; and

(b) the powers that a liquidator of the company would have

under paragraph 477(1)(d), subsection 477(2) (except

paragraph 477(2)(m)) and subsection 477(3) if the company

were being wound up in insolvency or by the Court.

(5) Subsections 477(2A) and (2B) apply in relation to a company’s

provisional liquidator, with such modifications (if any) as the

circumstances require, as if he or she were a liquidator appointed

for the purposes of a winding up in insolvency or by the Court.

(6) If more than one liquidator is appointed by the Court, the Court

must declare whether anything that is required or authorised by this

Act to be done by the liquidator is to be done by all or any one or

more of the persons appointed.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.4B Winding up in insolvency or by the Court

Division 2 Court-appointed liquidators

Section 473

376 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

473 Resignation of liquidators

A liquidator appointed by the Court may resign.

473A Vacancies in office of court-appointed liquidator

(1) A vacancy in the office of a liquidator appointed by the Court may

be filled by:

(a) the Court; or

(b) ASIC.

(2) If ASIC fills a vacancy in the office of a liquidator under

subsection (1), ASIC must:

(a) publish notice of the filling of the vacancy; and

(b) publish the notice in the prescribed manner.

(3) If ASIC fills a vacancy in the office of a liquidator under

subsection (1), the liquidator is taken, for the purposes of this Act,

to be appointed by the Court.

(4) If more than one liquidator is appointed under this section, the

Court or ASIC (as the case may be) must declare whether anything

that is required or authorised by this Act to be done by the

liquidator is to be done by all or any one or more of the persons

appointed.

(5) If a declaration made by ASIC under subsection (4) is inconsistent

with a declaration of the Court made under that subsection, the

declaration of the Court prevails to the extent of any inconsistency.

474 Custody and vesting of company’s property

(1) If a company is being wound up in insolvency or by the Court, or a

provisional liquidator of a company has been appointed:

(a) in a case in which a liquidator or provisional liquidator has

been appointed—the liquidator or provisional liquidator must

take into his or her custody, or under his or her control, all

the property which is, or which appears to be, property of the

company; or

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Winding up in insolvency or by the Court Part 5.4B

Court-appointed liquidators Division 2

Section 475

Corporations Act 2001 377

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(b) in a case in which there is no liquidator—all the property of

the company is to be in the custody of the Court.

Note: Section 465 extends the meaning of the property of the company to

include PPSA retention of title property, if the security interest in the

property has vested in the company in certain situations.

(2) The Court may, on the application of the liquidator, by order direct

that all or any part of the property of the company vests in the

liquidator and thereupon the property to which the order relates

vests accordingly and the liquidator may, after giving such

indemnity (if any) as the Court directs, bring, or may defend, any

action or other legal proceeding that relates to that property or that

it is necessary to bring or defend for the purpose of effectually

winding up the company and recovering its property.

(3) Where an order is made under this section, the liquidator of the

company to which the order relates must, within 14 days after the

making of the order, lodge with ASIC an office copy of the order.

475 Report as to company’s affairs to be submitted to liquidator

(1A) In this section:

liquidator includes a provisional liquidator.

(1) There must be made out and verified by a statement in writing in

the prescribed form, and submitted to the liquidator, by the persons

who were, at the date of the winding up order or, if the liquidator

specifies an earlier date, that earlier date, the directors and

secretary of the company a report in the prescribed form as to the

affairs of the company as at the date concerned.

(2) The liquidator may, by notice in writing served personally or by

post addressed to the last known address of the person, require one

or more persons included in one or more of the following classes of

persons to make out as required by the notice, verify by a statement

in writing in the prescribed form, and submit to him or her, a

report, containing such information as is specified in the notice as

to the affairs of the company or as to such of those affairs as are

specified in the notice, as at a date specified in the notice:

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.4B Winding up in insolvency or by the Court

Division 2 Court-appointed liquidators

Section 475

378 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(a) persons who are or have been officers of the company;

(b) where the company was formed within one year before the

date of the winding up order—persons who have taken part

in the formation of the company;

(c) persons who are employed by the company or have been

employed by the company within one year before the date of

the winding up order and are, in the opinion of the liquidator,

capable of giving the information required;

(d) persons who are, or have been within one year before the

date of the winding up order, officers of, or employed by, a

body corporate that is, or within that year was, an officer of

the company to the affairs of which the report relates;

(e) a person who was a provisional liquidator of the company.

(3) The liquidator may, in a notice under subsection (2), specify the

information that he or she requires as to affairs of the company by

reference to information required by this Act or the regulations to

be included in any other report, statement or notice under this Act.

(4) A report referred to in subsection (1) must, subject to

subsection (6), be submitted to the liquidator not later than 10

business days after the making of the winding up order.

(5) A person required to submit a report referred to in subsection (2)

must, subject to subsection (6), submit it not later than 10 business

days after the liquidator serves notice of the requirement.

(6) Where the liquidator believes there are special reasons for so

doing, he or she may, on an application in writing made to him or

her before the end of the time limited by subsection (4) or (5) for

the submission by the applicant of a report under subsection (1) or

(2), grant, by notice in writing, an extension of that time.

(7) A liquidator:

(a) must, within 5 business days after receiving a report under

subsection (1) or (2), cause a copy of the report to be filed

with the Court and a copy to be lodged; and

(b) must, where he or she gives a notice under subsection (6), as

soon as practicable lodge a copy of the notice.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Winding up in insolvency or by the Court Part 5.4B

Court-appointed liquidators Division 2

Section 477

Corporations Act 2001 379

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(8) A person making or concurring in making a report required by this

section and verifying it as required by this section must, subject to

the rules, be allowed, and must be paid by the liquidator out of the

property of the company, such costs and expenses incurred in and

about the preparation and making of the report and the verification

of that report as the liquidator considers reasonable.

(9) A person must not contravene a provision of this section.

(10) An offence based on subsection (9) is an offence of strict liability.

Note: For strict liability, see section 6.1 of the Criminal Code.

(11) Subsection (9) does not apply to the extent that the person has a

reasonable excuse.

Note: A defendant bears an evidential burden in relation to the matter in

subsection (11), see subsection 13.3(3) of the Criminal Code.

477 Powers of liquidator

(1) Subject to this section, a liquidator of a company may:

(a) carry on the business of the company so far as is, in the

opinion of the liquidator, required for the beneficial disposal

or winding up of that business; and

(b) subject to the provisions of section 556, pay any class of

creditors in full; and

(c) make any compromise or arrangement with creditors or

persons claiming to be creditors or having or alleging that

they have any claim (present or future, certain or contingent,

ascertained or sounding only in damages) against the

company or whereby the company may be rendered liable;

and

(d) compromise any calls, liabilities to calls, debts, liabilities

capable of resulting in debts and any claims (present or

future, certain or contingent, ascertained or sounding only in

damages) subsisting or supposed to subsist between the

company and a contributory or other debtor or person

apprehending liability to the company, and all questions in

any way relating to or affecting the property or the winding

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.4B Winding up in insolvency or by the Court

Division 2 Court-appointed liquidators

Section 477

380 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

up of the company, on such terms as are agreed, and take any

security for the discharge of, and give a complete discharge

in respect of, any such call, debt, liability or claim.

(2) Subject to this section, a liquidator of a company may:

(a) bring or defend any legal proceeding in the name and on

behalf of the company; and

(b) appoint a solicitor to assist him or her in his or her duties;

and

(c) sell or otherwise dispose of, in any manner, all or any part of

the property of the company; and

(ca) exercise the Court’s powers under subsection 483(3) (except

paragraph 483(3)(b)) in relation to calls on contributories;

and

(d) do all acts and execute in the name and on behalf of the

company all deeds, receipts and other documents and for that

purpose use when necessary a seal of the company; and

(e) subject to the Bankruptcy Act 1966, prove in the bankruptcy

of any contributory or debtor of the company or under any

deed executed under that Act; and

(f) draw, accept, make and indorse any bill of exchange or

promissory note in the name and on behalf of the company;

and

(g) obtain credit, whether on the security of the property of the

company or otherwise; and

(h) take out letters of administration of the estate of a deceased

contributory or debtor, and do any other act necessary for

obtaining payment of any money due from a contributory or

debtor, or his or her estate, that cannot be conveniently done

in the name of the company; and

(k) appoint an agent to do any business that the liquidator is

unable to do, or that it is unreasonable to expect the

liquidator to do, in person; and

(m) do all such other things as are necessary for winding up the

affairs of the company and distributing its property.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Winding up in insolvency or by the Court Part 5.4B

Court-appointed liquidators Division 2

Section 477

Corporations Act 2001 381

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(2A) Except with the approval of the Court, of the committee of

inspection or of a resolution of the creditors, a liquidator of a

company must not compromise a debt to the company if the

amount claimed by the company is more than:

(a) if an amount greater than $20,000 is prescribed—the

prescribed amount; or

(b) otherwise—$20,000.

(2B) Except with the approval of the Court, of the committee of

inspection or of a resolution of the creditors, a liquidator of a

company must not enter into an agreement on the company’s

behalf (for example, but without limitation, a lease or a an

agreement under which a security interest arises or is created) if:

(a) without limiting paragraph (b), the term of the agreement

may end; or

(b) obligations of a party to the agreement may, according to the

terms of the agreement, be discharged by performance;

more than 3 months after the agreement is entered into, even if the

term may end, or the obligations may be discharged, within those 3

months.

(2C) Subsection (2B) does not apply to an agreement if the costs and

expenses of the company under the agreement are to be paid out of

money paid to the liquidator:

(a) by ASIC on behalf of the Commonwealth; and

(b) for the purpose of paying the costs and expenses.

(3) A liquidator of a company is entitled to inspect at any reasonable

time any books of the company and a person who refuses or fails to

allow the liquidator to inspect such books at such a time is guilty of

an offence.

(5) For the purpose of enabling the liquidator to take out letters of

administration or recover money as mentioned in paragraph (2)(h),

the money due is taken to be due to the liquidator.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.4B Winding up in insolvency or by the Court

Division 2 Court-appointed liquidators

Section 478

382 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(6) Subject to this Part, the liquidator must use his or her own

discretion in the management of affairs and property of the

company and the distribution of its property.

(7) This section does not apply to calls on shares in a no liability

company.

478 Application of property; list of contributories

(1) As soon as practicable after the Court orders that a company be

wound up, the liquidator must:

(a) cause the company’s property to be collected and applied in

discharging the company’s liabilities; and

(b) consider whether subsection (1A) requires him or her to

settle a list of contributories.

(1A) A liquidator of a company that is being wound up in insolvency or

by the Court must settle a list of contributories if it appears to him

or her likely that:

(a) either:

(i) there are persons liable as members or past members to

contribute to the company’s property on the winding up;

or

(ii) there will be a surplus available for distribution; and

(b) it will be necessary:

(i) to make calls on contributories; or

(ii) to adjust the rights of the contributories among

themselves.

(1B) A liquidator of such a company may rectify the register of

members so far as required under this Part.

(3) In settling the list of contributories the liquidator must distinguish

between persons who are contributories in their own right and

persons who are contributories by virtue of representing, or being

liable for the debts of, other persons.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Winding up in insolvency or by the Court Part 5.4B

Court-appointed liquidators Division 2

Section 480

Corporations Act 2001 383

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(4) The list of contributories, when settled in accordance with the

regulations, is prima facie evidence of the liabilities of the persons

named in the list as contributories.

(5) Paragraph (1)(b) and subsections (1A), (1B), (3) and (4) do not

apply to a no liability company.

480 Release of liquidator and deregistration of company

When the liquidator:

(a) has realised all the property of the company or so much of

that property as can in his or her opinion be realised without

needlessly protracting the winding up, and has distributed a

final dividend (if any) to the creditors and adjusted the rights

of the contributories among themselves and made a final

return (if any) to the contributories; or

(b) has resigned or has been removed from office;

he or she may apply to the Court:

(c) for an order that he or she be released; or

(d) for an order that he or she be released and that ASIC

deregister the company.

481 Orders for release or deregistration

(1) The Court:

(a) may cause a report on the accounts of the liquidator to be

prepared by the auditor appointed by ASIC under

section 70-15 of Schedule 2 (audit of administration books)

or by some other registered company auditor appointed by

the Court; and

(b) on the liquidator complying with all the requirements of the

Court—must take into consideration the report and any

objection against the release of the liquidator that is made by

the auditor or by any creditor, contributory or other person

interested; and

(c) must either grant or withhold the release accordingly.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.4B Winding up in insolvency or by the Court

Division 2 Court-appointed liquidators

Section 481

384 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(2) Where the release of a liquidator is withheld and the Court is

satisfied that the liquidator has been guilty of default, negligence,

breach of trust or breach of duty, the Court may order the

liquidator to make good any loss that the company has sustained by

reason of the default, negligence, breach of trust or breach of duty

and may make such other order as it thinks fit.

(3) An order of the Court releasing the liquidator discharges him or her

from all liability in respect of any act done or default made by him

or her in the administration of the affairs of the company or

otherwise in relation to his or her conduct as liquidator, but any

such order may be revoked on proof that it was obtained by fraud

or by suppression or concealment of any material fact.

(4) Where the liquidator has not previously resigned or been removed,

his or her release operates as a removal from office.

(5) Where the Court has made:

(a) an order that the liquidator be released; or

(b) an order that the liquidator be released and that ASIC

deregister the company;

the liquidator must, within 14 days after the making of the order,

lodge an office copy of the order.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Winding up in insolvency or by the Court Part 5.4B

General powers of Court Division 3

Section 482

Corporations Act 2001 385

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Division 3—General powers of Court

Subdivision A—General powers

482 Power to stay or terminate winding up

(1) At any time during the winding up of a company, the Court may,

on application, make an order staying the winding up either

indefinitely or for a limited time or terminating the winding up on a

day specified in the order.

(1A) An application may be made by:

(a) in any case—the liquidator, or a creditor or contributory, of

the company; or

(b) in the case of a company registered under section 21 of the

Life Insurance Act 1995—APRA; or

(c) in the case of a company subject to a deed of company

arrangement—the administrator of the deed.

(2) On such an application, the Court may, before making an order,

direct the liquidator to give a report with respect to a relevant fact

or matter.

(2A) If such an application is made in relation to a company subject to a

deed of company arrangement, then, in determining the

application, the Court must have regard to all of the following

matters:

(a) any report that has been given to the Court by:

(i) the administrator, or a former administrator, of the

company; or

(ii) the liquidator, or a former liquidator, of the company; or

(iii) ASIC;

and that contains an allegation that an officer of the company

has engaged in misconduct;

(b) any report that has been lodged with ASIC by:

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.4B Winding up in insolvency or by the Court

Division 3 General powers of Court

Section 482

386 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(i) the administrator, or a former administrator, of the

company; or

(ii) the liquidator, or a former liquidator, of the company;

and that contains an allegation that an officer of the company

has engaged in misconduct;

(c) the decision of the company’s creditors to resolve that the

company execute a deed of company arrangement;

(d) any document that accompanied a notice of the meeting

under section 439A when the company was under

administration;

(da) any notice that has been given to the administrator of the

deed of company arrangement or the company’s creditors

under section 445HA (notification of contravention of deed

of company arrangement);

(e) whether the deed of company arrangement is likely to result

in the company becoming or remaining insolvent;

(f) any other relevant matters.

(3) Where the Court has made an order terminating the winding up, the

Court may give such directions as it thinks fit for the resumption of

the management and control of the company by its officers,

including directions for the convening of a general meeting of

members of the company to elect directors of the company to take

office upon the termination of the winding up.

(4) The costs of proceedings before the Court under this section and

the costs incurred in convening a meeting of members of the

company in accordance with an order of the Court under this

section, if the Court so directs, forms part of the costs, charges and

expenses of the winding up.

(5) Where an order is made under this section, the company must

lodge an office copy of the order within 14 days after the making

of the order.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Winding up in insolvency or by the Court Part 5.4B

General powers of Court Division 3

Section 483

Corporations Act 2001 387

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

483 Delivery of property to liquidator

(1) The Court may require a person who is a contributory, trustee,

receiver, banker, agent, officer or employee of the company to pay,

deliver, convey, surrender or transfer to the liquidator or

provisional liquidator, as soon as practicable or within a specified

period, any money, property of the company or books in the

person’s hands to which the company is prima facie entitled.

(2) The Court may make an order directing any contributory for the

time being on the list of contributories to pay to the company in the

manner directed by the order any money due from the contributory

or from the estate of the person whom the contributory represents,

exclusive of any money payable by the contributory or the estate

by virtue of any call pursuant to this Act, and may:

(a) in the case of an unlimited company—allow to the

contributory by way of set-off any money due to the

contributory or to the estate that the contributory represents

from the company on any independent dealing or contract but

not any money due to the contributory as a member of the

company in respect of any dividend or profit; and

(b) in the case of a limited company—make to any director

whose liability is unlimited or to such a director’s estate the

like allowance;

and, in the case of any company whether limited or unlimited,

when all the creditors are paid in full, any money due on any

account whatever to a contributory from the company may be

allowed to him, her or it by way of set-off against any subsequent

call.

(3) The Court may, either before or after it has ascertained the

sufficiency of the property of the company:

(a) make calls on all or any of the contributories for the time

being on the list of contributories, to the extent of their

liability, for payment of any money that the Court considers

necessary to satisfy the debts and liabilities of the company

and the costs, charges and expenses of winding up and for the

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.4B Winding up in insolvency or by the Court

Division 3 General powers of Court

Section 484

388 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

adjustment of the rights of the contributories among

themselves; and

(b) make an order for payment of any calls made by the Court or

the company’s liquidator;

and, in making a call, may take into consideration the probability

that some of the contributories may partly or wholly fail to pay the

call.

(3A) Subsection (3) does not apply to a no liability company.

(4) The Court may order any contributory, purchaser or other person

from whom money is due to the company to pay the amount due

into a bank named in the order to the account of the liquidator

instead of to the liquidator, and any such order may be enforced in

the same manner as if it had directed payment to the liquidator.

(5) All money and securities paid or delivered into any bank under this

Division are subject in all respects to orders of the Court.

(6) An order made by the Court under this section is, subject to any

right of appeal, conclusive evidence that the money (if any)

thereby appearing to be due or ordered to be paid is due, and all

other pertinent matters stated in the order are taken to be truly

stated as against all persons and in all proceedings.

484 Appointment of special manager

(1) The liquidator may, if satisfied that the nature of the property or

business of the company, or the interests of the creditors or

contributories generally, requires or require the appointment of a

special manager of the property or business of the company other

than himself or herself, apply to the Court, and the Court may

appoint a special manager of the property or business to act during

such time as the Court directs with such powers, including any of

the powers of a receiver or manager, as are entrusted to him or her

by the Court.

(2) The special manager:

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Winding up in insolvency or by the Court Part 5.4B

General powers of Court Division 3

Section 485

Corporations Act 2001 389

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(a) must give such security and account in such manner as the

Court directs; and

(b) must receive such remuneration as is fixed by the Court; and

(c) may at any time resign by notice in writing addressed to the

liquidator or may, on cause shown, be removed by the Court.

485 Claims of creditors and distribution of property

(1) The Court may fix a day on or before which creditors are to prove

their debts or claims or after which they will be excluded from the

benefit of any distribution made before those debts are proved.

(2) The Court must adjust the rights of the contributories among

themselves and distribute any surplus among the persons entitled to

it.

(3) The Court may, in the event of the property being insufficient to

satisfy the liabilities, make an order as to the payment out of the

property of the costs, charges and expenses incurred in the winding

up in such order of priority as the Court thinks just.

486 Inspection of books by creditors and contributories

The Court may make such order for inspection of the books of the

company by creditors and contributories as the Court thinks just,

and any books in the possession of the company may be inspected

by creditors or contributories accordingly, but not further or

otherwise.

486A Court may make order to prevent officer or related entity

from avoiding liability to company

(1) The Court may make one or more of the following:

(a) an order prohibiting, either absolutely or subject to

conditions, an officer, employee or related entity of a

company from taking or sending out of this jurisdiction, or

out of Australia, money or other property of the company or

of the officer, employee or related entity;

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.4B Winding up in insolvency or by the Court

Division 3 General powers of Court

Section 486A

390 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(b) an order appointing:

(i) a receiver or trustee, with specified powers, of property

of an officer or employee of a company, or of property

of a related entity of a company that is a natural person;

or

(ii) a receiver, or a receiver and manager, with specified

powers, of property of a related entity of a company that

is not a natural person;

(c) an order requiring an officer or employee of a company, or a

related entity of a company that is a natural person, to

surrender to the Court his or her passport and any other

specified documents;

(d) an order prohibiting an officer or employee of a company, or

a related entity of a company that is a natural person, from

leaving this jurisdiction, or Australia, without the Court’s

consent.

(2) The Court may only make an order under subsection (1) if:

(a) the company is being wound up in insolvency or by the

Court, or an application has been made for the company to be

so wound up; and

(b) the Court is satisfied that there is at least a prima facie case

that the officer, employee or related entity is or will become

liable:

(i) to pay money to the company, whether in respect of a

debt, by way of damages or compensation or otherwise;

or

(ii) to account for property of the company; and

(c) the Court is also satisfied that there is substantial evidence

that the officer, employee or related entity:

(i) has concealed or removed money or other property, has

tried to do so, or intends to do so; or

(ii) has tried to leave this jurisdiction or Australia, or

intends to do so;

in order to avoid that liability or its consequences; and

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Winding up in insolvency or by the Court Part 5.4B

General powers of Court Division 3

Section 486A

Corporations Act 2001 391

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(d) the Court thinks it necessary or desirable to make the order in

order to protect the company’s rights against the officer,

employee or related entity.

(2A) An order under subsection (1) may only be made on the application

of:

(a) a liquidator or provisional liquidator of the company; or

(b) ASIC.

(3) On hearing an application for an order under subsection (1), the

Court must have regard to any relevant application under

section 1323.

(4) Before considering an application for an order under

subsection (1), the Court may, if in the Court’s opinion it is

desirable to do so, grant an interim order of the kind applied for

that is expressed to have effect until the application is determined.

(5) The Court must not require an applicant for an order under

subsection (1) or any other person, as a condition of granting an

interim order under subsection (4), to give an undertaking as to

damages.

(6) On the application of a person who applied for, or is affected by,

an order under this section, the Court may make a further order

discharging or varying the first-mentioned order.

(7) An order under subsection (1) may be expressed to operate for a

specified period or until it is discharged by a further order.

(8) A person must not intentionally or recklessly contravene an order

under this section that is applicable to the person.

(9) This section has effect subject to the Bankruptcy Act 1966.

(10) Nothing in this section affects any other powers of the Court.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.4B Winding up in insolvency or by the Court

Division 3 General powers of Court

Section 486B

392 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

486B Warrant to arrest person who is absconding, or who has dealt

with property or books, in order to avoid obligations in

connection with winding up

(1) The Court may issue a warrant for a person to be arrested and

brought before the Court if:

(a) a company is being wound up in insolvency or by the Court,

or an application has been made for a company to be so

wound up; and

(b) the Court is satisfied that the person:

(i) is about to leave this jurisdiction, or Australia, in order

to avoid:

(A) paying money payable to the company; or

(B) being examined about the company’s affairs; or

(C) complying with an order of the Court, or some

other obligation, under this Chapter in

connection with the winding up; or

(ii) has concealed or removed property of the company in

order to prevent or delay the taking of the property into

the liquidator’s custody or control; or

(iii) has destroyed, concealed or removed books of the

company or is about to do so.

Note: For procedures relating to such a warrant, see Subdivision B.

(2) A warrant under subsection (1) may also provide for property or

books of the company in the person’s possession to be seized and

delivered into the custody of a specified person.

(3) A warrant under subsection (1) may only be issued on the

application of:

(a) a liquidator or provisional liquidator of the company; or

(b) ASIC.

487 Power to arrest absconding contributory

The Court, at any time before or after making a winding up order,

on proof of probable cause for believing that a contributory is

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Winding up in insolvency or by the Court Part 5.4B

General powers of Court Division 3

Section 488

Corporations Act 2001 393

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

about to leave this jurisdiction, or Australia, or otherwise to

abscond or to remove or conceal any of his or her property for the

purpose of evading payment of calls or of avoiding examination

respecting affairs of the company, may cause the contributory to be

arrested and held in custody and the books and movable personal

property of the contributory to be seized and safely kept until such

time as the Court orders.

488 Delegation to liquidator of certain powers of Court

(1) Provision may be made by rules or regulations for enabling or

requiring all or any of the powers and duties conferred and

imposed on the Court by this Part or Schedule 2 in respect of:

(a) the holding and conducting of meetings to ascertain the

wishes of creditors and contributories; and

(b) the paying, delivery, conveyance, surrender or transfer of

money, property or books to the liquidator; and

(c) the adjusting of the rights of contributories among

themselves and the distribution of any surplus among the

persons entitled to it; and

(d) the fixing of a time within which debts and claims must be

proved;

to be exercised or performed by the liquidator as an officer of the

Court and subject to the control of the Court.

(2) Despite anything in rules or regulations made for the purposes of

subsection (1), a liquidator may distribute a surplus only with the

Court’s special leave.

489 Powers of Court cumulative

Any powers conferred on the Court by this Act are in addition to,

and not in derogation of, any existing powers of instituting

proceedings against any contributory or debtor of the company or

the property of any contributory or debtor for the recovery of any

call or other sums.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.4B Winding up in insolvency or by the Court

Division 3 General powers of Court

Section 489A

394 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Subdivision B—Procedures relating to section 486B warrants

489A Arrest of person subject to warrant

If:

(a) the Court issues a section 486B warrant for a person to be

arrested and brought before the Court; and

(b) the person is not in prison;

the person named in the section 486B warrant may be arrested by:

(c) an officer of the police force of the State or Territory in

which the person is found; or

(d) the Sheriff of that State or Territory, or any of the Sheriff’s

officers; or

(e) a member or special member of the Australian Federal

Police.

489B Procedure after arrest

(1) As soon as practicable after being arrested, the person is to be

taken before the Court that issued the section 486B warrant.

(2) The Court must order:

(a) that the person be remanded on bail on condition that the

person appear at the Court at such time and place as the

Court specifies; or

(b) that the person be remanded in such custody or otherwise as

the Court specifies, pending the person’s appearance at the

Court at such time and place as the Court specifies; or

(c) that the person be released.

(3) An order under this section may be subject to other specified

conditions.

489C Procedure on remand on bail

(1) If the Court has made an order under section 489B remanding the

person (the warrant person) on bail, the Court must prepare, or

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Winding up in insolvency or by the Court Part 5.4B

General powers of Court Division 3

Section 489D

Corporations Act 2001 395

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

cause to be prepared, an instrument setting out the conditions to

which the grant of bail is subject.

(2) The instrument must be signed by:

(a) a judge of the Court, or the person who prepared the

instrument; and

(b) the warrant person.

(3) The warrant person must be given a copy of the instrument.

(4) The Court must revoke the order, and make an order remanding the

warrant person in custody, if that person:

(a) refuses to sign the instrument; or

(b) does not comply with a condition to which the grant of bail is

subject and that condition is a condition precedent to that

person’s release on bail.

489D Court’s power to make orders under other provisions

(1) To avoid doubt, the Court may make an order under section 486A,

598 or 1323, or section 45-1 or 90-15 of Schedule 2 in relation to a

person appearing before the Court under:

(a) a section 486B warrant; or

(b) section 489B.

(2) Subsection (1) does not limit section 486A, 598 or 1323, or

section 45-1 or 90-15 of Schedule 2.

489E Jurisdiction under this Subdivision

To avoid doubt, a matter arising under this Subdivision is a civil

matter for the purposes of Part 9.6A.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.4C Winding up by ASIC

Section 489EA

396 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Part 5.4C—Winding up by ASIC

489EA ASIC may order the winding up of a company

(1) ASIC may order the winding up of a company if:

(a) the response to a return of particulars given to the company is

at least 6 months late; and

(b) the company has not lodged any other documents under this

Act in the last 18 months; and

(c) ASIC has reason to believe that the company is not carrying

on business; and

(d) ASIC has reason to believe that making the order is in the

public interest.

(2) ASIC may order the winding up of a company if the company’s

review fee in respect of a review date has not been paid in full at

least 12 months after the due date for payment.

(3) ASIC may order the winding up of a company if:

(a) ASIC has reinstated the registration of the company under

subsection 601AH(1) in the last 6 months; and

(b) ASIC has reason to believe that making the order is in the

public interest.

(4) ASIC may order the winding up of a company if:

(a) ASIC has reason to believe that the company is not carrying

on business; and

(b) at least 20 business days before making the order, ASIC

gives to:

(i) the company; and

(ii) each director of the company;

a notice:

(iii) stating ASIC’s intention to make the order; and

(iv) informing the company or the director, as the case may

be, that the company or the director may, within 10

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Winding up by ASIC Part 5.4C

Section 489EB

Corporations Act 2001 397

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

business days after the receipt of the notice, give ASIC

a written objection to the making of the order; and

(c) neither the company, nor any of its directors, has given ASIC

such an objection within the time limit specified in the

notice.

(5) Paragraphs (4)(b) and (c) do not apply to a person if ASIC does not

have the necessary information about the person’s identity or

address.

(6) Before making an order under subsection (1), (2), (3) or (4), ASIC

must:

(a) give notice of its intention to make the order on ASIC

database; and

(b) both:

(i) publish notice of its intention to make the order; and

(ii) do so in the prescribed manner.

(7) ASIC must not order the winding up of a company under

subsection (1), (2), (3) or (4) if an application is before the Court

for the winding up of the company.

(8) Paragraph (b) of the definition of director in section 9 does not

apply to subsection (4) of this section.

(9) To avoid doubt, subsections (1), (2), (3) and (4):

(a) have effect independently of each other; and

(b) do not limit each other.

489EB Deemed resolution that company be wound up voluntarily

If ASIC orders under section 489EA that a company be wound up:

(a) the company is taken to have passed a special resolution

under section 491 that the company be wound up voluntarily;

and

(b) the company is taken to have passed the special resolution:

(i) at the time when ASIC made the order under

section 489EA; and

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.4C Winding up by ASIC

Section 489EC

398 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(ii) without a declaration having been made and lodged

under section 494; and

(c) section 496 has effect as if:

(i) a declaration had been made under section 494; and

(ii) the reference in subsection 496(1) to the period stated in

the declaration were a reference to the 12-month period

beginning when ASIC made the order under

section 489EA; and

(d) section 497 is taken to have been complied with in relation to

the winding up.

489EC Appointment of liquidator

(1) If ASIC orders under section 489EA that a company be wound up,

ASIC may appoint a liquidator for the purpose of winding up the

affairs and distributing the property of the company.

Note: For the remuneration of liquidators appointed under this section, see

Subdivision D of Division 60 of Schedule 2.

(2) An appointment of a liquidator by ASIC must not be made without

the written consent of the liquidator.

(3) A vacancy in the office of a liquidator appointed by ASIC is to be

filled by the appointment of a liquidator by ASIC.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Voluntary winding up Part 5.5

Preliminary Division 1A

Section 489F

Corporations Act 2001 399

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Part 5.5—Voluntary winding up

Division 1A—Preliminary

489F Definitions

In this Part:

property of a company includes PPSA retention of title property, if

the security interest in the property is vested in the company

because of the operation of any of the following provisions:

(a) section 267 or 267A of the Personal Property Securities Act

2009 (property subject to unperfected security interests);

(b) section 588FL of this Act (collateral not registered within

time).

Note: See sections 9 (definition of property) and 51F (PPSA retention of

title property).

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.5 Voluntary winding up

Division 1 Resolution for winding up

Section 490

400 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Division 1—Resolution for winding up

490 When company cannot wind up voluntarily

(1) Except with the leave of the Court, a company cannot resolve that

it be wound up voluntarily if:

(a) an application for the company to be wound up in insolvency

has been filed; or

(b) the Court has ordered that the company be wound up in

insolvency, whether or not the order was made on such an

application; or

(c) the company is a trustee company (within the meaning of

Chapter 5D) that is in the course of administering or

managing one or more estates.

(2) A person with a proper interest (within the meaning of Chapter 5D)

in the estate referred to in paragraph (1)(c), or who has any claim

in respect of the estate, is entitled to be heard in a proceeding

before the Court for leave under subsection (1).

491 Circumstances in which company may be wound up voluntarily

(1) Subject to section 490, a company may be wound up voluntarily if

the company so resolves by special resolution.

(2) A company must:

(a) within 7 days after the passing of a resolution for voluntary

winding up, lodge with ASIC, in the prescribed form, a

notice setting out the text of the resolution; and

(b) within the period ascertained in accordance with the

regulations, cause a notice setting out the prescribed

information about the resolution to be published in the

prescribed manner.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Voluntary winding up Part 5.5

Resolution for winding up Division 1

Section 493

Corporations Act 2001 401

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

493 Effect of voluntary winding up

The company must, from the passing of the resolution, cease to

carry on its business except so far as is in the opinion of the

liquidator required for the beneficial disposal or winding up of that

business, but the corporate state and corporate powers of the

company, notwithstanding anything to the contrary in its

constitution, continue until it is deregistered.

493A Effect of voluntary winding up on company’s members

Transfer of shares

(1) A transfer of shares in a company that is made after the passing of

the resolution is void except if:

(a) both:

(i) the liquidator gives written consent to the transfer; and

(ii) that consent is unconditional; or

(b) all of the following subparagraphs apply:

(i) the liquidator gives written consent to the transfer;

(ii) that consent is subject to one or more specified

conditions;

(iii) those conditions have been satisfied; or

(c) the Court makes an order under subsection (4) authorising

the transfer.

(2) The liquidator may only give consent under paragraph (1)(a) or (b)

if he or she is satisfied that the transfer is in the best interests of the

company’s creditors as a whole.

(3) If the liquidator refuses to give consent under paragraph (1)(a) or

(b) to a transfer of shares in the company:

(a) the prospective transferor; or

(b) the prospective transferee; or

(c) a creditor of the company;

may apply to the Court for an order authorising the transfer.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.5 Voluntary winding up

Division 1 Resolution for winding up

Section 493A

402 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(4) If the Court is satisfied, on an application under subsection (3), that

the transfer is in the best interests of the company’s creditors as a

whole, the Court may, by order, authorise the transfer.

(5) If the liquidator gives consent under paragraph (1)(b) to a transfer

of shares in the company:

(a) the prospective transferor; or

(b) the prospective transferee; or

(c) a creditor of the company;

may apply to the Court for an order setting aside any or all of the

conditions to which the consent is subject.

(6) If the Court is satisfied, on an application under subsection (5), that

any or all of the conditions covered by the application are not in

the best interests of the company’s creditors as a whole, the Court

may, by order, set aside any or all of the conditions.

(7) The liquidator is entitled to be heard in a proceeding before the

Court in relation to an application under subsection (3) or (5).

Alteration in the status of members

(8) An alteration in the status of members of a company that is made

after the passing of the resolution is void except if:

(a) both:

(i) the liquidator gives written consent to the alteration; and

(ii) that consent is unconditional; or

(b) all of the following subparagraphs apply:

(i) the liquidator gives written consent to the alteration;

(ii) that consent is subject to one or more specified

conditions;

(iii) those conditions have been satisfied; or

(c) the Court makes an order under subsection (12) authorising

the alteration.

(9) The liquidator may only give consent under paragraph (8)(a) or (b)

if he or she is satisfied that the alteration is in the best interests of

the company’s creditors as a whole.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Voluntary winding up Part 5.5

Resolution for winding up Division 1

Section 494

Corporations Act 2001 403

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(10) The liquidator must refuse to give consent under paragraph (8)(a)

or (b) if the alteration would contravene Part 2F.2.

(11) If the liquidator refuses to give consent under paragraph (8)(a) or

(b) to an alteration in the status of members of a company:

(a) a member of the company; or

(b) a creditor of the company;

may apply to the Court for an order authorising the alteration.

(12) If the Court is satisfied, on an application under subsection (11),

that:

(a) the alteration is in the best interests of the company’s

creditors as a whole; and

(b) the alteration does not contravene Part 2F.2;

the Court may, by order, authorise the alteration.

(13) If the liquidator gives consent under paragraph (8)(b) to an

alteration in the status of members of a company:

(a) a member of the company; or

(b) a creditor of the company;

may apply to the Court for an order setting aside any or all of the

conditions to which the consent is subject.

(14) If the Court is satisfied, on an application under subsection (13),

that any or all of the conditions covered by the application are not

in the best interests of the company’s creditors as a whole, the

Court may, by order, set aside any or all of the conditions.

(15) The liquidator is entitled to be heard in a proceeding before the

Court in relation to an application under subsection (11) or (13).

494 Declaration of solvency

(1) Where it is proposed to wind up a company voluntarily, a majority

of the directors may, before the date on which the notices of the

meeting at which the resolution for the winding up of the company

is to be proposed are sent out, make a written declaration to the

effect that they have made an inquiry into the affairs of the

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.5 Voluntary winding up

Division 1 Resolution for winding up

Section 494

404 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

company and that, at a meeting of directors, they have formed the

opinion that the company will be able to pay its debts in full within

a period not exceeding 12 months after the commencement of the

winding up.

(2) There must be attached to the declaration a statement of affairs of

the company showing, in the prescribed form:

(a) the property of the company, and the total amount expected

to be realised from that property; and

(b) the liabilities of the company; and

(c) the estimated expenses of winding up;

made up to the latest practicable date before the making of the

declaration.

(3) A declaration so made has no effect for the purposes of this Act

unless:

(a) the declaration is made at the meeting of directors referred to

in subsection (1); and

(b) the declaration is lodged before the date on which the notices

of the meeting at which the resolution for the winding up of

the company is to be proposed are sent out or such later date

as ASIC, whether before, on or after the first-mentioned date,

allows; and

(c) the resolution for voluntary winding up is passed within the

period of 5 weeks after the making of the declaration or

within such further period after the making of that

declaration as ASIC, whether before or after the end of that

period of 5 weeks, allows.

(4) A director who makes a declaration under this section (including a

declaration that has no effect for the purposes of this Act by reason

of subsection (3)) without having reasonable grounds for his or her

opinion that the company will be able to pay its debts in full within

the period stated in the declaration is guilty of an offence.

(5) If the company is wound up pursuant to a resolution for voluntary

winding up passed within the period of 5 weeks after the making of

the declaration or, if pursuant to paragraph (3)(c) ASIC has

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Voluntary winding up Part 5.5

Resolution for winding up Division 1

Section 494

Corporations Act 2001 405

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

allowed a further period after the end of that period of 5 weeks,

within that further period, but its debts are not paid or provided for

in full within the period stated in the declaration, it is to be

presumed, unless the contrary is shown, that a director who made

the declaration did not have reasonable grounds for his or her

opinion.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.5 Voluntary winding up

Division 2 Members’ voluntary winding up

Section 495

406 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Division 2—Members’ voluntary winding up

495 Appointment of liquidator etc.

(1) The company in general meeting must appoint a liquidator or

liquidators for the purpose of winding up the affairs and

distributing the property of the company.

Note: For rules about the liquidator’s remuneration, see Division 60 of

Part 3 of Schedule 2. For rules about convening meetings, see

Division 75 of Part 3 of Schedule 2.

(2) If a vacancy occurs in the office of a liquidator (whether by death,

resignation or otherwise), the company in general meeting may fill

the vacancy by the appointment of a liquidator.

(3) A general meeting may be convened for the purposes of

subsection (2) by any contributory or, if there were 2 or more

liquidators, by the continuing liquidators.

(4) The meeting must be held in the manner provided by this Act or by

the company’s constitution or in such manner as is, on application

by any contributory or by the continuing liquidators, determined by

the Court.

496 Duty of liquidator where company turns out to be insolvent

(1) Where a declaration has been made under section 494 and the

liquidator is at any time of the opinion that the company will not be

able to pay or provide for the payment of its debts in full within the

period stated in the declaration, he or she must do one of the

following as soon as practicable:

(a) apply under section 459P for the company to be wound up in

insolvency;

(b) appoint an administrator of the company under section 436B;

(c) convene a meeting of the company’s creditors;

and if he or she convenes such a meeting, the following

subsections apply.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Voluntary winding up Part 5.5

Members’ voluntary winding up Division 2

Section 496

Corporations Act 2001 407

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(4) The liquidator must lay before the meeting a statement of the assets

and liabilities of the company and the notice convening the

meeting must draw the attention of the creditors to the right

conferred upon them by subsection (5).

(5) The creditors may, at the meeting convened under subsection (1),

appoint some other person to be liquidator for the purpose of

winding up the affairs and distributing the property of the company

instead of the liquidator appointed by the company.

(6) If the creditors appoint some other person under subsection (5), the

winding up must thereafter proceed as if the winding up were a

creditors’ voluntary winding up.

(7) The liquidator or, if another person is appointed by the creditors to

be liquidator, the person so appointed must, within 7 days after a

meeting has been held pursuant to subsection (1), lodge a notice in

the prescribed form.

(8) After the meeting the winding up must proceed as if it were a

creditors’ voluntary winding up.

(9) An offence based on subsection (4), (5), (6), (7) or (8) is an offence

of strict liability.

Note: For strict liability, see section 6.1 of the Criminal Code.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.5 Voluntary winding up

Division 3 Creditors’ voluntary winding up

Section 497

408 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Division 3—Creditors’ voluntary winding up

497 Information about the company’s affairs

(1) The liquidator of the company must, within 10 business days after

the day of the meeting of the company at which the resolution for

voluntary winding up is passed:

(a) send to each creditor:

(i) a summary of the affairs of the company in the

prescribed form; and

(ii) a list setting out the names of all creditors, the addresses

of those creditors and the estimated amounts of their

claims, as shown in the records of the company; and

(b) lodge a copy of the documents sent in accordance with

paragraph (a).

Note: For electronic notification under paragraph (a), see section 600G.

(2) The list referred to in subparagraph (1)(a)(ii) must identify any

creditors that are related entities of the company.

(3) Unless the Court orders otherwise, nothing in subsection (1)

requires the liquidator to send the list referred to in

subparagraph (1)(a)(ii) to a creditor whose debt does not exceed

$1,000.

(4) Within 5 business days after the day of the meeting of the company

at which the resolution for voluntary winding up is passed or such

longer period as the liquidator allows, the directors of the company

must give the liquidator a report, in the prescribed form, about the

company’s business, property, affairs and financial circumstances.

(5) An offence based on subsection (4) is an offence of strict liability.

Note: For strict liability, see section 6.1 of the Criminal Code.

(6) The liquidator must, within 10 business days after receiving a

report under subsection (4), lodge a copy of the report.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Voluntary winding up Part 5.5

Creditors’ voluntary winding up Division 3

Section 499

Corporations Act 2001 409

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(7) A person must not contravene subsection (6).

(8) An offence based on subsection (7) is an offence of strict liability.

Note: For strict liability, see section 6.1 of the Criminal Code.

(9) Subsection (7) does not apply to the extent that the person has a

reasonable excuse.

Note: A defendant bears an evidential burden in relation to the matter in this

subsection, see subsection 13.3(3) of the Criminal Code.

499 Liquidators

(1) The company in general meeting must appoint a liquidator for the

purpose of winding up the affairs and distributing the property of

the company.

(2) However, subsection (1) does not apply to the company if:

(a) section 446A or 446AA applies in relation to the company;

or

(b) regulations made for the purposes of section 446B have the

effect that the company is taken to have passed a special

resolution under section 491 that the company be wound up

voluntarily.

(2A) If section 446A applies in relation to the company because of

paragraph 446A(1)(a):

(a) the company’s creditors may, at the meeting at which the

resolution referred to in that paragraph is passed, appoint a

person to be liquidator for the purpose of winding up the

affairs and distributing the property of the company; and

(b) if an appointment is not made under paragraph (a) of this

subsection before the end of the meeting at which the

resolution referred to in paragraph 446A(1)(a) is passed:

(i) the company’s creditors are taken to have appointed the

administrator of the company to be liquidator for the

purpose of winding up the affairs and distributing the

property of the company; and

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.5 Voluntary winding up

Division 3 Creditors’ voluntary winding up

Section 499

410 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(ii) the appointment under subparagraph (i) of this

paragraph takes effect at the end of that meeting.

(2B) If section 446A applies in relation to the company because of

paragraph 446A(1)(b):

(a) the company’s creditors are taken to have appointed the

administrator of the company to be liquidator for the purpose

of winding up the affairs and distributing the property of the

company; and

(b) the appointment takes effect at the time referred to in that

paragraph.

(2C) If section 446A applies in relation to the company because of

paragraph 446A(1)(c):

(a) the company’s creditors may, at the meeting at which the

resolution referred to in subparagraph 446A(1)(c)(ii) is

passed, appoint a person to be liquidator for the purpose of

winding up the affairs and distributing the property of the

company; and

(b) if an appointment is not made under paragraph (a) of this

subsection before the end of the meeting at which the

resolution referred to in subparagraph 446A(1)(c)(ii) is

passed:

(i) the company’s creditors are taken to have appointed the

administrator of the deed to be liquidator for the

purpose of winding up the affairs and distributing the

property of the company; and

(ii) the appointment under subparagraph (i) of this

paragraph takes effect at the end of that meeting.

(2D) If section 446AA applies in relation to the company because of

paragraph 446AA(1)(a):

(a) the Court may, immediately after it makes the order referred

to in that paragraph, appoint a person to be the liquidator for

the purpose of winding up the affairs and distributing the

property of the company; and

(b) if no appointment is made under paragraph (a) of this

subsection:

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Voluntary winding up Part 5.5

Creditors’ voluntary winding up Division 3

Section 499

Corporations Act 2001 411

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(i) the company is taken to have appointed the

administrator of the deed of company arrangement

referred to in section 446AA to be the liquidator for the

purpose of winding up the affairs and distributing the

property of the company; and

(ii) the appointment takes effect at the time referred to in

paragraph 446AA(1)(a).

(2E) If section 446AA applies in relation to the company because of

paragraph 446AA(1)(b):

(a) the company is taken to have appointed the administrator of

the deed of company arrangement referred to in

section 446AA to be the liquidator for the purpose of

winding up the affairs and distributing the property of the

company; and

(b) the appointment takes effect at the time referred to in

subparagraph 446AA(1)(b)(ii).

(2F) If regulations made for the purposes of section 446B have the

effect that a company under administration is taken to have passed

a special resolution under section 491 that the company be wound

up voluntarily:

(a) the company is taken to have appointed the administrator of

the company to be the liquidator for the purpose of winding

up the affairs and distributing the property of the company;

and

(b) the appointment takes effect when the resolution is taken to

have been passed.

(2G) If regulations made for the purposes of section 446B have the

effect that a company subject to a deed of company arrangement is

taken to have passed a special resolution under section 491 that the

company be wound up voluntarily:

(a) the company is taken to have appointed the administrator of

the deed to be the liquidator for the purpose of winding up

the affairs and distributing the property of the company; and

(b) the appointment takes effect when the resolution is taken to

have been passed.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.5 Voluntary winding up

Division 3 Creditors’ voluntary winding up

Section 500

412 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(3) If a liquidator, other than a liquidator appointed by, or by the

direction of, the Court resigns:

(a) the Court; or

(b) ASIC; or

(c) the creditors;

may fill the vacancy by the appointment of a liquidator.

Note: If the registration of a liquidator is suspended or cancelled, ASIC must

fill the vacancy: see section 40-111 of Schedule 2.

(4) If ASIC fills a vacancy in the office of a liquidator under

subsection (3), ASIC must:

(a) publish notice of the filling of the vacancy; and

(b) publish the notice in the prescribed manner.

(5) If ASIC or the Court fills a vacancy in the office of a liquidator

under subsection (3), the liquidator is taken, for the purposes of

this Act, to be appointed by the creditors.

500 Execution and civil proceedings

(1) Any attachment, sequestration, distress or execution put in force

against the property of the company after the passing of the

resolution for voluntary winding up is void.

(2) After the passing of the resolution for voluntary winding up, no

action or other civil proceeding is to be proceeded with or

commenced against the company except by leave of the Court and

subject to such terms as the Court imposes.

(3) The Court may require any contributory, trustee, receiver, banker,

agent, officer or employee of the company to pay, deliver, convey,

surrender or transfer forthwith or within such time as the Court

directs to the liquidator any money, property of the company or

books in his, her or its hands to which the company is prima facie

entitled.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Voluntary winding up Part 5.5

Voluntary winding up generally Division 4

Section 501

Corporations Act 2001 413

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Division 4—Voluntary winding up generally

501 Distribution of property of company

Subject to the provisions of this Act as to preferential payments,

the property of a company must, on its winding up, be applied in

satisfaction of its liabilities equally and, subject to that application,

must, unless the company’s constitution otherwise provides, be

distributed among the members according to their rights and

interests in the company.

506 Powers and duties of liquidator

(1) The liquidator may:

(b) exercise any of the powers that this Act confers on a

liquidator in a winding up in insolvency or by the Court; or

(c) exercise the power under section 478 of a liquidator

appointed by the Court to settle a list of contributors; or

(d) exercise the Court’s powers under subsection 483(3) (except

paragraph 483(3)(b)) in relation to calls on contributories; or

(e) exercise the power of the Court of fixing a time within which

debts and claims must be proved.

(1A) Subsections 477(2A) and (2B) apply in relation to the liquidator as

if:

(a) he or she were a liquidator in a winding up in insolvency or

by the Court; and

(b) in the case of a members’ voluntary winding up—a reference

in those subsections to an approval were a reference to the

approval of a special resolution of the company.

(1B) The company must lodge a copy of a special resolution referred to

in paragraph (1A)(b) with ASIC within 14 days after the resolution

is passed.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.5 Voluntary winding up

Division 4 Voluntary winding up generally

Section 506A

414 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(2) A list of contributories settled in accordance with paragraph (1)(c)

is prima facie evidence of the liability of the persons named in the

list to be contributories.

(3) The liquidator must pay the debts of the company and adjust the

rights of the contributories among themselves.

506A Declarations by liquidator—relevant relationships and

indemnities

Scope

(1) This section applies to a liquidator appointed in relation to a

creditors’ voluntary winding up.

Declaration and notification of relevant relationships and

indemnities

(2) Within 10 business days after the day of the meeting of the

company at which the resolution for voluntary winding up is

passed, the liquidator must:

(a) make:

(i) a declaration of relevant relationships; and

(ii) a declaration of indemnities; and

(b) give a copy of each declaration to as many of the company’s

creditors as reasonably practicable.

Note: Failure to comply with this subsection is an offence (see

subsection 1311(1)).

(3) As soon as practicable after making a declaration under

subsection (2), the administrator must lodge a copy of the

declaration with ASIC.

Note: Failure to comply with this subsection is an offence (see

subsection 1311(1)).

Replacement declarations

(4) If:

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Voluntary winding up Part 5.5

Voluntary winding up generally Division 4

Section 506A

Corporations Act 2001 415

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(a) at a particular time, the liquidator makes:

(i) a declaration of relevant relationships; or

(ii) a declaration of indemnities;

under subsection (2) of this section; and

(b) at a later time:

(i) the declaration has become out-of-date; or

(ii) the liquidator becomes aware of an error in the

declaration;

the liquidator must, as soon as practicable, make:

(c) if subparagraph (a)(i) applies—a replacement declaration of

relevant relationships; or

(d) if subparagraph (a)(ii) applies—a replacement declaration of

indemnities.

Note: Failure to comply with this subsection is an offence (see

subsection 1311(1)).

(5) The liquidator must table a copy of a replacement declaration

under subsection (4):

(a) if:

(i) there is a committee of inspection; and

(ii) the next meeting of the committee of inspection occurs

before the next meeting of the company’s creditors;

at the next meeting of the committee of inspection; or

(b) in any other case—at the next meeting of the company’s

creditors.

Note: Failure to comply with this subsection is an offence (see

subsection 1311(1)).

(6) As soon as practicable after making a replacement declaration

under subsection (4), the administrator must lodge a copy of the

replacement declaration with ASIC.

Note: Failure to comply with this subsection is an offence (see

subsection 1311(1)).

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.5 Voluntary winding up

Division 4 Voluntary winding up generally

Section 507

416 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(7) In a prosecution for an offence constituted by a failure to include a

matter in a declaration under this section, it is a defence if the

defendant proves that:

(a) the defendant made reasonable enquiries; and

(b) after making these enquiries, the defendant had no reasonable

grounds for believing that the matter should have been

included in the declaration.

507 Power of liquidator to accept shares etc. as consideration for

sale of property of company

(1) This section applies where it is proposed to transfer or sell to a

body corporate the whole or a part of the business or property of a

company.

(2) The liquidator of the company may, with the sanction of a special

resolution of the company conferring on the liquidator either a

general authority or an authority in respect of a particular

arrangement, enter into an arrangement under which, in

compensation or part compensation for the transfer or sale:

(a) the liquidator is to receive shares, debentures, policies or

other like interests in the body corporate for distribution

among the members of the company; or

(b) the members of the company may, instead of, or as well as,

receiving cash, shares, debentures, policies or other like

interests in the body corporate, participate in the profits of, or

receive any other benefit from, the body corporate.

(3) A transfer, sale or arrangement under this section is binding on the

members of the company.

(4) If a member of the company who did not vote in favour of a special

resolution expresses dissent from the resolution in writing

addressed to the liquidator and left at the office of the liquidator

within 7 days after the passing of the resolution, the member may

require the liquidator either to abstain from carrying the resolution

into effect or to purchase the member’s interest at a price to be

determined by agreement or by arbitration under this section.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Voluntary winding up Part 5.5

Voluntary winding up generally Division 4

Section 507

Corporations Act 2001 417

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(5) If the liquidator elects to purchase the member’s interest, the

purchase money must be paid before the company is deregistered

and be raised by the liquidator in such manner as is determined by

special resolution.

(6) A special resolution is not invalid for the purposes of this section

because it is passed before, or concurrently with, a resolution for

voluntary winding up or for appointing liquidators but, if an order

for winding up the company by the Court is made within 1 year

after the passing of the resolution, the resolution is not valid unless

sanctioned by the Court.

(7) For the purposes of an arbitration under this section, the agreed

arbitration law applies as if there were a submission for reference

to 2 arbitrators, one to be appointed by each party.

(7A) Parties to the arbitration may agree on the State or Territory in this

jurisdiction whose law is to govern the arbitration. The agreed

arbitration law is the law of that State or Territory relating to

commercial arbitration.

(8) The appointment of an arbitrator may be made in writing signed

by:

(a) if there is only one liquidator—the liquidator; or

(b) if there is more than one liquidator—any 2 or more of the

liquidators.

(9) The Court may give any directions necessary for the initiation and

conduct of the arbitration and any such direction is binding on the

parties.

(10) In the case of a creditors’ voluntary winding up, the powers of the

liquidator under this section must not be exercised except with the

approval of the Court or the committee of inspection.

(11) The company must lodge a copy of a special resolution referred to

in subsection (2) or (5) with ASIC within 14 days after the

resolution is passed.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.5 Voluntary winding up

Division 4 Voluntary winding up generally

Section 509

418 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

509 Deregistration

ASIC must deregister at the end of 3 month period

(1) If an end of administration return for a company is lodged with

ASIC on the basis that the affairs of the company are fully wound

up, ASIC must deregister the company at the end of the period of 3

months beginning on the day after the return is lodged (the

deregistration period).

ASIC must deregister on a day specified by the Court

(2) On application by the liquidator or any other interested party, the

Court may make an order that ASIC deregister the company on a

specified day. The Court must make the order before the end of the

deregistration period.

(3) The person on whose application an order under subsection (2) is

made must, within 10 business days after the making of the order,

lodge a copy of the order.

510 Arrangement: when binding on creditors

(1) An arrangement entered into between a company about to be, or in

the course of being, wound up and its creditors is, subject to

subsection (4):

(a) binding on the company if sanctioned by a special resolution;

and

(b) binding on the creditors if sanctioned by a resolution of the

creditors.

(1A) The company must lodge a copy of a special resolution referred to

in paragraph (1)(a) with ASIC within 14 days after the resolution is

passed.

(2) A creditor must be accounted a creditor for value for such sum as

upon an account fairly stated, after allowing the value of any

security interests held by the creditor and the amount of any debt or

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Voluntary winding up Part 5.5

Voluntary winding up generally Division 4

Section 510

Corporations Act 2001 419

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

set-off owing by the creditor to the company, appears to be the

balance due to the creditor.

(3) A dispute about the value of any such security interest or the

amount of any such debt or set-off may be settled by the Court on

the application of the company, the liquidator or the creditor.

(4) A creditor or contributory may, within 3 weeks after the

completion of the arrangement, appeal to the Court in respect of

the arrangement, and the Court may confirm, set aside or modify

the arrangement and make such further order as it thinks just.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.6 Winding up generally

Division 1 Preliminary

Section 513

420 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Part 5.6—Winding up generally

Division 1—Preliminary

513 Application of Part

Except so far as the contrary intention appears, the provisions of

this Act about winding up apply in relation to the winding up of a

company whether in insolvency, by the Court or voluntarily.

513AA Definitions

In this Part:

property of a company includes PPSA retention of title property, if

the security interest in the property is vested in the company

because of the operation of any of the following provisions:

(a) section 267 or 267A of the Personal Property Securities Act

2009 (property subject to unperfected security interests);

(b) section 588FL of this Act (collateral not registered within

time).

Note: See sections 9 (definition of property) and 51F (PPSA retention of

title property).

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Winding up generally Part 5.6

When winding up taken to begin Division 1A

Section 513A

Corporations Act 2001 421

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Division 1A—When winding up taken to begin

513A Winding up ordered by the Court

If the Court orders under section 233, 459A, 459B or 461 that a

company be wound up, the winding up is taken to have begun or

commenced:

(a) if, when the order was made, a winding up of the company

was already in progress—when the last-mentioned winding

up is taken because of this Division to have begun or

commenced; or

(b) if, immediately before the order was made, the company was

under administration—on the section 513C day in relation to

the administration; or

(c) if:

(i) when the order was made, a provisional liquidator of the

company was acting; and

(ii) immediately before the provisional liquidator was

appointed, the company was under administration;

on the section 513C day in relation to the administration; or

(d) if, immediately before the order was made, a deed of

company arrangement had been executed by the company

and had not yet terminated—on the section 513C day in

relation to the administration that ended when the deed was

executed; or

(e) otherwise—on the day when the order was made.

513B Voluntary winding up

Where a company resolves by special resolution that it be wound

up voluntarily, the winding up is taken to have begun or

commenced:

(a) if, when the resolution was passed, a winding up of the

company was already in progress—when the last-mentioned

winding up is taken because of this Division to have begun or

commenced; or

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.6 Winding up generally

Division 1A When winding up taken to begin

Section 513C

422 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(b) if, immediately before the resolution was passed, the

company was under administration—on the section 513C day

in relation to the administration; or

(c) if, immediately before the resolution was passed, a deed of

company arrangement had been executed by the company but

had not yet terminated—on the section 513C day in relation

to the administration that ended when the deed was executed;

or

(d) if the resolution is taken to have been passed because the

company’s creditors:

(i) passed a resolution terminating a deed of company

arrangement executed by the company; and

(ii) also resolved under section 445E that the company be

wound up;

on the section 513C day in relation to the administration that

ended when the deed was executed; or

(da) if the resolution is taken to have been passed under

section 446AA because of:

(i) the making of an order under section 445D by the Court

terminating a deed of company arrangement executed

by the company; or

(ii) the existence of circumstances that are specified in a

deed of company arrangement executed by the company

to be circumstances in which the deed is to terminate

and the company is to be wound up;

on the section 513C day in relation to the administration that

ended when the deed was executed; or

(e) otherwise—on the day on which the resolution was passed.

513C Section 513C day in relation to an administration under

Part 5.3A

The section 513C day in relation to the administration of a

company is:

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Winding up generally Part 5.6

When winding up taken to begin Division 1A

Section 513D

Corporations Act 2001 423

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(a) if, when the administration began, a winding up of the

company was in progress—the day on which the winding up

is taken because of this Division to have begun; or

(b) otherwise—the day on which the administration began.

513D Validity of proceedings in earlier winding up

Where, at the time when:

(a) the Court orders under section 233, 459A, 459B or 461 that a

company be wound up; or

(b) a company resolves by special resolution that it be wound up

voluntarily;

a winding up of the company is already in progress, all proceedings

in the last-mentioned winding up are taken to have been valid,

except so far as the Court otherwise orders because fraud or

mistake has been proved.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.6 Winding up generally

Division 2 Contributories

Section 514

424 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Division 2—Contributories

514 Where Division applies

(1) This Division applies where a company is wound up.

(2) This Division does not apply to the winding up of a no liability

company.

515 General liability of contributory

Subject to this Division, a present or past member is liable to

contribute to the company’s property to an amount sufficient:

(a) to pay the company’s debts and liabilities and the costs,

charges and expenses of the winding up; and

(b) to adjust the rights of the contributories among themselves.

516 Company limited by shares

Subject to sections 518 and 519, if the company is a company

limited by shares, a member need not contribute more than the

amount (if any) unpaid on the shares in respect of which the

member is liable as a present or past member.

517 Company limited by guarantee

Subject to sections 518 and 519, if the company is a company

limited by guarantee, a member need not contribute more than the

amount the member has undertaken to contribute to the company’s

property if the company is wound up.

518 Company limited both by shares and by guarantee

Subject to section 519, if the company is a company limited both

by shares and by guarantee, neither of sections 516 and 517 applies

but the member need not contribute more than the aggregate of the

following:

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Winding up generally Part 5.6

Contributories Division 2

Section 519

Corporations Act 2001 425

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(a) the amount (if any) unpaid on shares in respect of which the

member is liable as a present or past member;

(b) the amount that the member has undertaken to contribute to

the company’s property if the company is wound up.

519 Exceptions for former unlimited company

Despite sections 516, 517 and 518, if the company is a limited

company and became a limited company by virtue of a change of

status, the amount that a member at the time of the change of

status, or a person who at that time was a past member, is liable to

contribute in respect of the company’s debts and liabilities

contracted before that time is unlimited.

520 Past member: later debts

A past member need not contribute in respect of a debt or liability

of the company contracted after the past member ceased to be a

member.

521 Person ceasing to be a member a year or more before winding

up

Subject to section 523, a past member need not contribute if he, she

or it was a member at no time during the year ending on the day of

the commencement of the winding up.

522 Present members to contribute first

Subject to paragraph 523(b), a past member need not contribute

unless it appears to the Court that the existing members are unable

to satisfy the contributions they are liable to make under this Act.

523 Past member of former unlimited company

If an unlimited company changes to a limited company under

section 164, a past member who was a member at the time of the

change is liable:

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.6 Winding up generally

Division 2 Contributories

Section 524

426 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(a) despite section 521; and

(b) if no person who was a member at that time is a member at

the commencement of the winding up—despite section 522;

to contribute in respect of the company’s debts and liabilities

contracted before that time.

524 Past member of former limited company

If a limited company changes to an unlimited company under

section 164, a person who, at the time when the company applied

for the change, was a past member and did not again become a

member after that time need not contribute more than they would

have been liable to contribute if the company had not changed

type.

526 Liability on certain contracts

Nothing in this Act invalidates a provision, in a policy of insurance

or other contract, whereby the liability of individual members on

the policy or contract is restricted or whereby the funds of the

company are alone made liable in respect of the policy or contract.

527 Nature of contributory’s liability

A contributory’s liability is of the nature of a specialty debt

according to the law of the Capital Territory accruing due from the

contributory when the contributory’s liability commenced but

payable at the times when calls are made for enforcing the liability.

528 Death of contributory

If a contributory dies, whether before or after being placed on the

list of contributories:

(a) his or her personal representatives are liable in due course of

administration to contribute to the company’s property in

discharge of his or her liability to contribute and are

contributories accordingly; and

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Winding up generally Part 5.6

Contributories Division 2

Section 529

Corporations Act 2001 427

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(b) if his or her personal representatives default in paying any

money that they are ordered to pay—proceedings may be

taken for administering his or her estate and for compelling

payment, out of the assets of that estate, of the money due.

529 Bankruptcy of contributory

If a contributory becomes an insolvent under administration, or

assigns his or her estate for the benefit of his or her creditors,

whether before or after being placed on the list of contributories:

(a) his or her trustee is to represent him or her for the purposes

of the winding up and is to be a contributory accordingly;

and

(b) calls already made, and the estimated value of his or her

liability to future calls, may be proved against his or her

estate.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.6 Winding up generally

Division 3 Liquidators

Section 530

428 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Division 3—Liquidators

530 Appointment of 2 or more liquidators of a company

If 2 or more persons have been appointed as liquidators of a

company:

(a) a function or power of a liquidator of the company may be

performed or exercised by any one of them, or by any 2 or

more of them together, except so far as the order or

resolution appointing them otherwise provides; and

(b) a reference in this Act to a liquidator, or to the liquidator, of a

company is, in the case of the first-mentioned company, a

reference to whichever one or more of those liquidators the

case requires.

530AA Appointment of 2 or more provisional liquidators of a

company

If 2 or more persons have been appointed as provisional liquidators

of a company:

(a) a function or power of a provisional liquidator of the

company may be performed or exercised by any one of them,

or by any 2 or more of them together, except so far as the

order appointing them otherwise provides; and

(b) a reference in this Act to a provisional liquidator, or to the

provisional liquidator, of a company is, in the case of the

first-mentioned company, a reference to whichever one or

more of those provisional liquidators the case requires.

530A Officers to help liquidator

(1) As soon as practicable after the Court orders that a company be

wound up or appoints a provisional liquidator of a company, or a

company resolves that it be wound up, each officer of the company

must:

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Winding up generally Part 5.6

Liquidators Division 3

Section 530A

Corporations Act 2001 429

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(a) deliver to the liquidator appointed for the purposes of the

winding up, or to the provisional liquidator, as the case may

be, all books in the officer’s possession that relate to the

company, other than books possession of which the officer is

entitled, as against the company and the liquidator or

provisional liquidator, to retain; and

(b) if the officer knows where other books relating to the

company are—tell the liquidator or provisional liquidator

where those books are.

(2) Where a company is being wound up, or a provisional liquidator of

a company is acting, an officer of the company must:

(a) attend on the liquidator or provisional liquidator at such

times; and

(b) give the liquidator or provisional liquidator such information

about the company’s business, property, affairs and financial

circumstances; and

(c) attend such meetings of the company’s creditors or members;

as the liquidator or provisional liquidator reasonably requires.

(3) An officer of a company that is being wound up must do whatever

the liquidator reasonably requires the officer to do to help in the

winding up.

(4) An officer of a company must do whatever a provisional liquidator

of the company reasonably requires the officer to do to help in the

performance or exercise of any of the provisional liquidator’s

functions and powers.

(5) The liquidator or provisional liquidator of a company may require

an officer of the company:

(a) to tell the liquidator the officer’s residential address and work

or business address; or

(b) to keep the liquidator informed of any change in either of

those addresses that happens during the winding up.

(6) A person must not fail to comply with subsection (1), (2), (3) or

(4), or with a requirement under subsection (5).

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.6 Winding up generally

Division 3 Liquidators

Section 530B

430 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(6A) An offence based on subsection (6) is an offence of strict liability.

Note: For strict liability, see section 6.1 of the Criminal Code.

(6B) Subsection (6) does not apply to the extent that the person has a

reasonable excuse.

Note: A defendant bears an evidential burden in relation to the matter in

subsection (6B), see subsection 13.3(3) of the Criminal Code.

(7) For the purposes of this section, officer includes a former officer.

(9) Nothing in this section limits the generality of anything else in it.

530B Liquidator’s rights to company’s books

(1) A person is not entitled, as against the liquidator of a company:

(a) to retain possession of books of the company; or

(b) to claim or enforce a lien on such books;

but such a lien is not otherwise prejudiced.

(2) Paragraph (1)(a) does not apply in relation to books of which a

secured creditor of the company is entitled to possession otherwise

than because of a lien, but the liquidator is entitled to inspect, and

make copies of, such books at any reasonable time.

(3) A person must not engage in conduct that results in the hindering

or obstruction of a liquidator of a company in obtaining possession

of books of the company.

(3A) Subsection (3) does not apply if the person is entitled, as against

the company and the liquidator, to retain possession of the books.

Note: A defendant bears an evidential burden in relation to the matter in

subsection (3A), see subsection 13.3(3) of the Criminal Code.

(4) The liquidator of a company may give to a person a written notice

requiring the person to deliver to the liquidator, as specified in the

notice, books so specified that are in the person’s possession.

(5) A notice under subsection (4) must specify a period of at least 3

days as the period within which the notice must be complied with.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Winding up generally Part 5.6

Liquidators Division 3

Section 530C

Corporations Act 2001 431

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(6) A person must comply with a notice under subsection (4).

(6A) Subsection (6) does not apply to the extent that the person is

entitled, as against the company and the liquidator, to retain

possession of the books.

Note: A defendant bears an evidential burden in relation to the matter in

subsection (6A), see subsection 13.3(3) of the Criminal Code.

(6B) An offence based on subsection (6) is an offence of strict liability.

Note: For strict liability, see section 6.1 of the Criminal Code.

(7) In this section:

liquidator includes a provisional liquidator.

530C Warrant to search for, and seize, company’s property or

books

(1) The Court may issue a warrant under subsection (2) if:

(a) a company is being wound up or a provisional liquidator of a

company is acting; and

(b) on application by the liquidator or provisional liquidator, as

the case may be, or by ASIC, the Court is satisfied that a

person:

(i) has concealed or removed property of the company with

the result that the taking of the property into the custody

or control of the liquidator or provisional liquidator will

be prevented or delayed; or

(ii) has concealed, destroyed or removed books of the

company or is about to do so.

(2) The warrant may authorise a specified person, with such help as is

reasonably necessary:

(a) to search for and seize property or books of the company in

the possession of the person referred to in subsection (1); and

(b) to deliver, as specified in the warrant, property or books

seized under it.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.6 Winding up generally

Division 3 Liquidators

Section 532

432 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(3) In order to seize property or books under the warrant, the specified

person may break open a building, room or receptacle where the

property is or the books are, or where the person reasonably

believes the property or books to be.

(4) A person who has custody of property or a book because of the

execution of the warrant must retain it until the Court makes an

order for its disposal.

532 Disqualification of liquidator

(1A) In this section:

liquidator includes a provisional liquidator.

(1) Subject to this section, a person must not consent to be appointed,

and must not act, as liquidator of a company unless he or she is a

registered liquidator.

(2) Subject to this section, a person must not, except with the leave of

the Court, seek to be appointed, or act, as liquidator of a company:

(a) if the person, or a body corporate in which the person has a

substantial holding, is indebted in an amount exceeding

$5,000 to the company or a body corporate related to the

company; or

(b) if the person is, otherwise than in his or her capacity as

liquidator, a creditor of the company or of a related body

corporate in an amount exceeding $5,000; or

(c) if:

(i) the person is an officer or employee of the company

(otherwise than by reason of being a liquidator of the

company or of a related body corporate); or

(ii) the person is an officer or employee of any body

corporate that is a secured party in relation to property

of the company; or

(iii) the person is an auditor of the company; or

(iv) the person is a partner or employee of an auditor of the

company; or

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Winding up generally Part 5.6

Liquidators Division 3

Section 532

Corporations Act 2001 433

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(v) the person is a partner, employer or employee of an

officer of the company; or

(vi) the person is a partner or employee of an employee of

an officer of the company.

(3) For the purposes of paragraph (2)(a), disregard a debt owed by a

natural person to a body corporate if:

(a) the body corporate is:

(i) an Australian ADI; or

(ii) a body corporate registered under section 21 of the Life

Insurance Act 1995; and

(b) the debt arose because of a loan that the body corporate or

entity made to the person in the ordinary course of its

ordinary business; and

(c) the person used the amount of the loan to pay the whole or

part of the purchase price of premises that the person uses as

their principal place of residence.

(4) Subsection (1) and paragraph (2)(c) do not apply to a members’

voluntary winding up of a proprietary company.

(5) Paragraph (2)(c) does not apply to a creditors’ voluntary winding

up if, by a resolution of the creditors passed at a meeting of the

creditors of which 7 days notice has been given to every creditor

stating the purpose of the meeting, it is determined that that

paragraph does not so apply.

(6) For the purposes of subsection (2), a person is taken to be an

officer, employee or auditor of a company if:

(a) the person is an officer, employee or auditor of a related body

corporate; or

(b) except where ASIC, if it thinks fit in the circumstances of the

case, directs that this paragraph does not apply in relation to

the person—the person has, at any time within the

immediately preceding period of 2 years, been an officer,

employee, auditor or promoter of the company or of a related

body corporate.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.6 Winding up generally

Division 3 Liquidators

Section 533

434 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(8) A person must not consent to be appointed, and must not act, as

liquidator of a company that is being wound up by order of the

Court if the person is not entitled to act as such a liquidator in

accordance with the current conditions (if any) imposed on the

person.

(9) A person must not be appointed as liquidator of a company unless

the person has, before his or her appointment, consented in writing

to act as liquidator of the company.

(10) An offence based on subsection (1), (2), (8) or (9) is an offence of

strict liability.

Note: For strict liability, see section 6.1 of the Criminal Code.

533 Reports by liquidator

(1) If it appears to the liquidator of a company, in the course of a

winding up of the company, that:

(a) a past or present officer or employee, or a member or

contributory, of the company may have been guilty of an

offence under a law of the Commonwealth or a State or

Territory in relation to the company; or

(b) a person who has taken part in the formation, promotion,

administration, management or winding up of the company:

(i) may have misapplied or retained, or may have become

liable or accountable for, any money or property of the

company; or

(ii) may have been guilty of any negligence, default, breach

of duty or breach of trust in relation to the company; or

(c) the company may be unable to pay its unsecured creditors

more than 50 cents in the dollar;

the liquidator must:

(d) as soon as practicable, and in any event within 6 months,

after it so appears to him or her, lodge a report with respect to

the matter and state in the report whether he or she proposes

to make an application for an examination or order under

section 597; and

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Winding up generally Part 5.6

Liquidators Division 3

Section 534

Corporations Act 2001 435

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(e) give ASIC such information, and give to it such access to and

facilities for inspecting and taking copies of any documents,

as ASIC requires.

(2) The liquidator may also, if he or she thinks fit, lodge further reports

specifying any other matter that, in his or her opinion, it is

desirable to bring to the notice of ASIC.

(3) If it appears to the Court, in the course of winding up a company:

(a) that a past or present officer or employee, or a contributory or

member, of the company has been guilty of an offence under

a law referred to in paragraph (1)(a) in relation to the

company; or

(b) that a person who has taken part in the formation, promotion,

administration, management or winding up of the company

has engaged in conduct referred to in paragraph (1)(b) in

relation to the company;

and that the liquidator has not lodged with ASIC a report with

respect to the matter, the Court may, on the application of a person

interested in the winding up, direct the liquidator so to lodge such a

report.

534 Prosecution by liquidator of delinquent officers and members

(1) Where:

(a) a report has been lodged under section 533; and

(b) it appears to ASIC that the matter is not one in respect of

which a prosecution ought to be begun;

it must inform the liquidator accordingly, and the liquidator may

begin a prosecution for any offence referred to in the report.

(2) ASIC may direct that the whole or a specified part of the costs and

expenses properly incurred by a liquidator in proceedings under

this section must be paid out of money of ASIC.

(3) Subject to a direction under subsection (2), to any security interests

in the property of the company and to any debts to which this Act

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.6 Winding up generally

Division 3 Liquidators

Section 535

436 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

gives priority, all such costs and expenses are payable out of that

property as part of the costs of the winding up.

535 When liquidator has qualified privilege

(1) A liquidator has qualified privilege in respect of a statement that he

or she makes, whether orally or in writing, in the course of his or

her duties as liquidator.

(2) In this section:

liquidator includes a provisional liquidator.

537 Notice of appointment and address of liquidator

(1A) In this section:

liquidator includes a provisional liquidator.

(1) A liquidator must, within 14 days after his or her appointment,

lodge notice in the prescribed form of his or her appointment and

of the address of his or her office and, in the event of any change in

the situation of his or her office, must, within 14 days after the

change, lodge notice in the prescribed form of the change.

(2) A liquidator must, within 14 days after his or her resignation or

removal from office, lodge notice of the resignation or removal in

the prescribed form.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Winding up generally Part 5.6

General Division 4

Section 541

Corporations Act 2001 437

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Division 4—General

541 Notification that company is in liquidation

(1) A company that is being wound up must set out, in every public

document, and in every negotiable instrument, of the company,

after the name of the company where it first appears, the

expression in liquidation.

(2) An offence based on subsection (1) is an offence of strict liability.

Note: For strict liability, see section 6.1 of the Criminal Code.

543 Investment of surplus funds on general account

(1) Whenever the cash balance standing to the credit of a company that

is in the course of being wound up is in excess of the amount that,

in the opinion of the committee of inspection, or, if there is no

committee of inspection, of the liquidator, is required for the time

being to answer demands in respect of the property of the

company, the liquidator, if so directed in writing by the committee

of inspection, or, if there is not committee of inspection, the

liquidator himself or herself, may, unless the Court on application

by any creditor thinks fit to order otherwise and so orders, invest

the sum or any part of the sum:

(a) in any manner in which trustees are for the time being

authorised by law to invest trust funds; or

(b) on deposit with an eligible money market dealer; or

(c) on deposit at interest with any bank;

and any interest received in respect of that money so invested

forms part of the property of the company.

(2) Whenever any part of the money so invested is, in the opinion of

the committee of inspection, or, if there is no committee of

inspection, of the liquidator, required to answer any demands in

respect of the property of the company, the committee of

inspection may direct, or, if there is no committee of inspection,

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.6 Winding up generally

Division 4 General

Section 544

438 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

the liquidator may arrange for, the sale or realisation of such part

of the securities as is necessary.

544 Unclaimed money to be paid to ASIC

(1) Where a liquidator of a company has in his or her hands or under

his or her control:

(a) any amount being a dividend or other money that has

remained unclaimed for more than 6 months after the day

when the dividend or other money became payable; or

(b) after making a final distribution, any unclaimed or

undistributed amount of money arising from the property of

the company;

he or she must forthwith pay that money to ASIC to be dealt with

under Part 9.7.

(1A) If a liquidator has, or has control of, the money of a company that

has no members, the liquidator must pay it to ASIC as soon as

practicable for it to be dealt with under Part 9.7.

(2) The Court may at any time, on the application of ASIC:

(a) order a liquidator of a company to submit to it an account,

verified by affidavit, of any unclaimed or undistributed

funds, dividends or other money in his or her hands or under

his or her control; and

(b) direct an audit of accounts submitted to it in accordance with

paragraph (a); and

(c) direct a liquidator of a company to pay any money referred to

in paragraph (a) to ASIC to be dealt with under Part 9.7.

(3) Where a liquidator of a company pays money to ASIC pursuant to

subsection (1) or (1A) or an order of the Court made under

paragraph (2)(c), the liquidator is entitled to a receipt for the

money so paid and the giving of that receipt discharges the

liquidator from any liability in respect of the money.

(4) For the purposes of this section the Court may exercise all the

powers conferred by this Act with respect to the discovery and

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Winding up generally Part 5.6

General Division 4

Section 545

Corporations Act 2001 439

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

realisation of the property of a company and the provisions of this

Act with respect to the exercise of those powers apply, with such

adaptations as are prescribed, to proceedings under this section.

(5) The provisions of this section do not, except as expressly declared

in this Act, deprive a person of any other right or remedy to which

the person is entitled against the liquidator or another person.

545 Expenses of winding up where property insufficient

(1) Subject to this section, a liquidator is not liable to incur any

expense in relation to the winding up of a company unless there is

sufficient available property.

(2) The Court or ASIC may, on the application of a creditor or a

contributory, direct a liquidator to incur a particular expense on

condition that the creditor or contributory indemnifies the

liquidator in respect of the recovery of the amount expended and, if

the Court or ASIC so directs, gives such security to secure the

amount of the indemnity as the Court or ASIC thinks reasonable.

(3) Nothing in this section is taken to relieve a liquidator of any

obligation to lodge a document (including a report) with ASIC

under any provision of this Act by reason only that he or she would

be required to incur expense in order to perform that obligation.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.6 Winding up generally

Division 6 Proof and ranking of claims

Section 553

440 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Division 6—Proof and ranking of claims

Subdivision A—Admission to proof of debts and claims

553 Debts or claims that are provable in winding up

(1) Subject to this Division and Division 8, in every winding up, all

debts payable by, and all claims against, the company (present or

future, certain or contingent, ascertained or sounding only in

damages), being debts or claims the circumstances giving rise to

which occurred before the relevant date, are admissible to proof

against the company.

(1A) Even though the circumstances giving rise to a debt payable by the

company, or a claim against the company, occur on or after the

relevant date, the debt or claim is admissible to proof against the

company in the winding up if:

(a) the circumstances occur at a time when the company is under

a deed of company arrangement; and

(b) the company is under the deed immediately before the

resolution or court order that the company be wound up.

This subsection has effect subject to the other sections in this

Division.

Note 1: See Division 10 of Part 5.3A (sections 444A-444H) for the provisions

dealing with deeds of company arrangement.

Note 2: See paragraph 513A(d) for deeds that are followed immediately by

court ordered winding up. See paragraphs 513B(c), (d) and (da) for

deeds that are followed immediately by voluntary winding up.

Subsections 446A(2) and 446AA(2) and section 446B provide that

companies are taken in certain circumstances to have passed

resolutions that they be wound up.

Note 3: A debt or claim admissible to proof under subsection (1A) will only

be covered by paragraph 556(1)(a) if the administrator of the deed is

personally liable for the debt or claim (see subsection 556(1AA).

(1B) For the purpose of applying the other sections of this Division to a

debt or claim that is admissible to proof under subsection (1A), the

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Winding up generally Part 5.6

Proof and ranking of claims Division 6

Section 553A

Corporations Act 2001 441

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

relevant date for the debt or claim is the date on which the deed

terminates.

(2) Where, after the relevant date, an order is made under section 91 of

the ASIC Act against a company that is being wound up, the

amount that, pursuant to the order, the company is liable to pay is

admissible to proof against the company.

553A Member cannot prove debt unless contributions paid

A debt owed by a company to a person in the person’s capacity as

a member of the company, whether by way of dividends, profits or

otherwise, is not admissible to proof against the company unless

the person has paid to the company or the liquidator all amounts

that the person is liable to pay as a member of the company.

553AA Selling shareholder cannot prove debt unless documents

given

The selling shareholder in a share buy-back may claim in a

winding up of the company but is not entitled to a distribution of

money or property unless the shareholder has discharged the

shareholder’s obligations to give documents in connection with the

buy-back.

Note: The selling shareholder’s claim ranks after those of non-member

creditors and before those of other member creditors (see

section 563AA).

553AB Superannuation contribution debts not admissible to proof

Whole of superannuation contribution debt

(1) In a winding up, the liquidator must determine that the whole of a

debt by way of a superannuation contribution is not admissible to

proof against the company if:

(a) a debt by way of superannuation guarantee charge, or by way

of a liability to pay the amount of an estimate under

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.6 Winding up generally

Division 6 Proof and ranking of claims

Section 553AB

442 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Division 268 in Schedule 1 to the Taxation Administration

Act 1953:

(i) has been paid; or

(ii) is, or is to be, admissible to proof against the company;

and

(b) the liquidator is satisfied that the superannuation guarantee

charge or estimate liability is attributable to the whole of the

first-mentioned debt.

(2) If the liquidator determines, under subsection (1), that the whole of

a debt is not admissible to proof against the company, the whole of

the debt is extinguished.

Part of superannuation contribution debt

(3) In a winding up, the liquidator must determine that a particular part

of a debt by way of a superannuation contribution is not admissible

to proof against the company if:

(a) a debt by way of superannuation guarantee charge, or by way

of a liability to pay the amount of an estimate under

Division 268 in Schedule 1 to the Taxation Administration

Act 1953:

(i) has been paid; or

(ii) is, or is to be, admissible to proof against the company;

and

(b) the liquidator is satisfied that the superannuation guarantee

charge or estimate liability is attributable to that part of the

first-mentioned debt.

(4) If the liquidator determines, under subsection (3), that a part of a

debt is not admissible to proof against the company, that part of the

debt is extinguished.

Definition

(5) In this section:

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Winding up generally Part 5.6

Proof and ranking of claims Division 6

Section 553B

Corporations Act 2001 443

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

superannuation contribution has the same meaning as in

section 556.

553B Insolvent companies—penalties and fines not generally

provable

(1) Subject to subsection (2), penalties or fines imposed by a court in

respect of an offence against a law are not admissible to proof

against an insolvent company.

(2) An amount payable under a pecuniary penalty order, or an

interstate pecuniary penalty order, within the meaning of the

Proceeds of Crime Act 1987, is admissible to proof against an

insolvent company.

553C Insolvent companies—mutual credit and set-off

(1) Subject to subsection (2), where there have been mutual credits,

mutual debts or other mutual dealings between an insolvent

company that is being wound up and a person who wants to have a

debt or claim admitted against the company:

(a) an account is to be taken of what is due from the one party to

the other in respect of those mutual dealings; and

(b) the sum due from the one party is to be set off against any

sum due from the other party; and

(c) only the balance of the account is admissible to proof against

the company, or is payable to the company, as the case may

be.

(2) A person is not entitled under this section to claim the benefit of a

set-off if, at the time of giving credit to the company, or at the time

of receiving credit from the company, the person had notice of the

fact that the company was insolvent.

553D Debts or claims may be proved formally or informally

(1) A debt or claim must be proved formally if the liquidator, in

accordance with the regulations, requires it to be proved formally.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.6 Winding up generally

Division 6 Proof and ranking of claims

Section 553E

444 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(2) A debt or claim that is not required to be proved formally:

(a) may be proved formally; or

(b) may be proved in some other way, subject to compliance

with the requirements of the regulations (if any) relating to

the informal proof of debts and claims.

(3) A debt or claim is proved formally if it satisfies the requirements of

the regulations relating to the formal proof of debts and claims.

553E Application of Bankruptcy Act to winding up of insolvent

company

Subject to this Division, in the winding up of an insolvent company

the same rules are to prevail and be observed with regard to debts

provable as are in force for the time being under the Bankruptcy

Act 1966 in relation to the estates of bankrupt persons (except the

rules in sections 82 to 94 (inclusive) and 96 of that Act), and all

persons who in any such case would be entitled to prove for and

receive dividends out of the property of the company may come in

under the winding up and make such claims against the company

as they respectively are entitled to because of this section.

Subdivision B—Computation of debts and claims

554 General rule—compute amount as at relevant date

(1) The amount of a debt or claim of a company (including a debt or

claim that is for or includes interest) is to be computed for the

purposes of the winding up as at the relevant date.

(2) Subsection (1) does not apply to an amount admissible to proof

under subsection 553(2).

554A Determination of value of debts and claims of uncertain value

(1) This section applies where, in the winding up of a company, the

liquidator admits a debt or claim that, as at the relevant date, did

not bear a certain value.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Winding up generally Part 5.6

Proof and ranking of claims Division 6

Section 554A

Corporations Act 2001 445

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(2) The liquidator must:

(a) make an estimate of the value of the debt or claim as at the

relevant date; or

(b) refer the question of the value of the debt or claim to the

Court.

(3) A person who is aggrieved by the liquidator’s estimate of the value

of the debt or claim may, in accordance with the regulations,

appeal to the Court against the liquidator’s estimate.

(4) If:

(a) the liquidator refers the question of the value of the debt or

claim to the Court; or

(b) a person appeals to the Court against the liquidator’s estimate

of the value of the debt or claim;

the Court must:

(c) make an estimate of the value of the debt or claim as at the

relevant date; or

(d) determine a method to be applied by the liquidator in

working out the value of the debt or claim as at the relevant

date.

(5) If the Court determines a method to be applied by the liquidator in

working out the value of the debt or claim, the liquidator must

work out the value of the debt or claim as at the relevant date in

accordance with that method.

(6) If:

(a) the Court has determined a method to be applied by the

liquidator in working out the value of the debt or claim as at

the relevant date; and

(b) a person is aggrieved by the way in which that method has

been applied by the liquidator in working out that value;

the person may, in accordance with the regulations, appeal to the

Court against the way in which the method was applied.

(7) If:

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.6 Winding up generally

Division 6 Proof and ranking of claims

Section 554B

446 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(a) a person appeals to the Court against the way in which the

liquidator, in working out the value of the debt or claim,

applied a method determined by the court; and

(b) the Court is satisfied that the liquidator did not correctly

apply that method;

the Court must work out the value of the debt or claim as at the

relevant date in accordance with that method.

(8) For the purposes of this Division, the amount of the debt or claim

that is admissible to proof is the value as estimated or worked out

under this section.

554B Discounting of debts payable after relevant date

The amount of a debt that is admissible to proof but that, as at the

relevant date, was not payable by the company until an ascertained

or ascertainable date (the future date) after the relevant date is the

amount payable on the future date reduced by the amount of the

discount worked out in accordance with the regulations.

554C Conversion into Australian currency of foreign currency debts or claims

(1) This section applies if the amount of a debt or claim admissible to

proof against a company would, apart from this section, be an

amount of foreign currency.

(2) If the company and the creditor or claimant have, in an instrument

created before the relevant date, agreed on a method to be applied

for the purpose of converting the company’s liability in respect of

the debt or claim into Australian currency, the amount of the debt

or claim that is admissible to proof is the equivalent in Australian

currency of the amount of foreign currency, worked out as at the

relevant date and in accordance with the agreed method.

(3) If subsection (2) does not apply, the amount of the debt or claim

that is admissible to proof is the equivalent in Australian currency

of the amount of foreign currency, worked out by reference to the

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Winding up generally Part 5.6

Proof and ranking of claims Division 6

Section 554D

Corporations Act 2001 447

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

opening carded on demand airmail buying rate in relation to the

foreign currency available at the Commonwealth Bank of Australia

on the relevant date.

Subdivision C—Special provisions relating to secured creditors

of insolvent companies

554D Application of Subdivision

(1) This Subdivision applies in relation to the proof of a secured debt

in the winding up of an insolvent company.

(2) For the purposes of the application of this Subdivision in relation

to a secured debt of an insolvent company that is being wound up,

the amount of the debt is taken to be the amount of the debt as at

the relevant date (as worked out in accordance with Subdivision

B).

554E Proof of debt by secured creditor

(1) In the winding up of an insolvent company, a secured creditor is

not entitled to prove the whole or a part of the secured debt

otherwise than in accordance with this section and with any other

provisions of this Act or the regulations that are applicable to

proving the debt.

(2) The creditor’s proof of debt must be in writing.

(3) If the creditor surrenders the security interest to the liquidator for

the benefit of creditors generally, the creditor may prove for the

whole of the amount of the secured debt.

(4) If the creditor realises the security interest, the creditor may prove

for any balance due after deducting the net amount realised, unless

the liquidator is not satisfied that the realisation has been effected

in good faith and in a proper manner.

(5) If the creditor has not realised or surrendered the security interest,

the creditor may:

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.6 Winding up generally

Division 6 Proof and ranking of claims

Section 554F

448 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(a) estimate its value; and

(b) prove for the balance due after deducting the value so

estimated.

(6) If subsection (5) applies, the proof of debt must include particulars

of the security interest and the creditor’s estimate of its value.

554F Redemption of security interest by liquidator

(1) This section applies where a secured creditor’s proof of debt is in

respect of the balance due after deducting the creditor’s estimate of

the value of the security interest.

(2) The liquidator may, at any time, redeem the security interest on

payment to the creditor of the amount of the creditor’s estimate of

its value.

(3) If the liquidator is dissatisfied with the amount of the creditor’s

estimate of the value of the security interest, the liquidator may

require the property comprised in the security interest to be offered

for sale at such times and on such terms and conditions as are

agreed on by the creditor and the liquidator or, in default of

agreement, as the Court determines.

(4) If the property is offered for sale by public auction, both the

creditor and the liquidator are entitled to bid for, and purchase, the

property.

(5) The creditor may at any time, by notice in writing, require the

liquidator to elect whether to exercise the power to redeem the

security interest or to require it to be sold and, if the liquidator does

not, within 3 months after receiving the notice, notify the creditor,

in writing, that the liquidator elects to exercise the power:

(a) the liquidator is not entitled to exercise it; and

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Winding up generally Part 5.6

Proof and ranking of claims Division 6

Section 554G

Corporations Act 2001 449

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(b) subject to subsection (6), any equity of redemption or other

interest in the property comprised in the security interest that

is vested in the company or the liquidator vests in the

creditor; and

(c) the amount of the creditor’s debt is, for the purposes of this

Division, taken to be reduced by the amount of the creditor’s

estimate of the value of the security interest.

(6) The vesting of an equity of redemption or other interest in property

because of paragraph (5)(b) is subject to compliance with any law

requiring the transmission of such interests in property to be

registered.

554G Amendment of valuation

(1) If a secured creditor’s proof of debt is in respect of the balance due

after deducting the creditor’s estimate of the value of the security

interest, the creditor may, at any time, apply to the liquidator or the

Court for permission to amend the proof of debt by altering the

estimated value.

(2) If the liquidator or the Court is satisfied:

(a) that the estimate of the value of the security interest was

made in good faith on a mistaken basis; or

(b) that the value of the security interest has changed since the

estimate was made;

the liquidator or the Court may permit the creditor to amend the

proof of debt accordingly.

(3) If the Court permits the creditor to amend the proof of debt, it may

do so on such terms as it thinks just and equitable.

554H Repayment of excess

(1) Where a creditor who has amended a proof of debt under

section 554G has received, in the winding up of the debtor

company, an amount in excess of the amount to which the creditor

would have been entitled under the amended proof of debt, the

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.6 Winding up generally

Division 6 Proof and ranking of claims

Section 554J

450 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

creditor must, without delay, repay the amount of the excess to the

liquidator.

(2) Where a creditor who has so amended a proof of debt has received,

in the winding up of the debtor company, less than the amount to

which the creditor would have been entitled under the amended

proof of debt, the creditor is entitled to be paid, out of the money

remaining for distribution in the winding up, the amount of the

deficiency before any of that money is applied in the payment of

future distributions, but the creditor is not entitled to affect a

distribution made before the amendment of the proof of debt.

554J Subsequent realisation of security interest

Where:

(a) a secured creditor’s proof of debt is in respect of the balance

due after deducting the creditor’s estimate of the value of the

security interest; and

(b) subsequently:

(i) the creditor realises the security interest; or

(ii) the security interest is realised under section 554F;

the net amount realised is to be substituted for the estimated value

of the security interest and section 554H applies as if the proof of

debt had been amended accordingly under section 554G.

Subdivision D—Priorities

555 Debts and claims proved to rank equally except as otherwise

provided

Except as otherwise provided by this Act, all debts and claims

proved in a winding up rank equally and, if the property of the

company is insufficient to meet them in full, they must be paid

proportionately.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Winding up generally Part 5.6

Proof and ranking of claims Division 6

Section 556

Corporations Act 2001 451

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

556 Priority payments

(1) Subject to this Division, in the winding up of a company the

following debts and claims must be paid in priority to all other

unsecured debts and claims:

(a) first, expenses (except deferred expenses) properly incurred

by a relevant authority in preserving, realising or getting in

property of the company, or in carrying on the company’s

business;

(b) if the Court ordered the winding up—next, the costs in

respect of the application for the order (including the

applicant’s taxed costs payable under section 466);

(ba) if:

(i) during the period of 12 months ending when the

winding up commenced, an application (the first

application) was made under section 459P for the

company to be wound up in insolvency; and

(ii) when the first application was made, the company was

not under administration; and

(iii) the company began to be under administration at a time

after the first application was made; and

(iv) the first application was not withdrawn or dismissed

before the administration began; and

(v) the Court did not, in response to the first application,

make an order under section 459A that the company be

wound up in insolvency;

next, the costs in respect of the first application;

(c) next, the debts for which paragraph 443D(a) or (aa) entitles

an administrator of the company to be indemnified (even if

the administration ended before the relevant date), except

expenses covered by paragraph (a) of this subsection and

deferred expenses;

(da) if the Court ordered the winding up—next, costs and

expenses that are payable under subsection 475(8) out of the

company’s property;

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.6 Winding up generally

Division 6 Proof and ranking of claims

Section 556

452 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(daa) if the company resolved by special resolution that it be

wound up voluntarily—next, costs and expenses that are

payable under subsection 446C(8) out of the company’s

property;

(db) next, costs that form part of the expenses of the winding up

because of subsection 539(6), or subsection 70-15(5) (audit

of administration books by ASIC) or section 90-27 (review

by another registered liquidator) of Schedule 2;

(dd) next, any other expenses (except deferred expenses) properly

incurred by a relevant authority;

(de) next, the deferred expenses;

(df) if a committee of inspection has been appointed for the

purposes of the winding up—next, expenses incurred by a

person as a member of the committee;

(e) subject to subsection (1A)—next:

(i) wages, superannuation contributions and

superannuation guarantee charge payable by the

company in respect of services rendered to the company

by employees before the relevant date; or

(ii) liabilities to pay the amounts of estimates under

Division 268 in Schedule 1 to the Taxation

Administration Act 1953 of superannuation guarantee

charge mentioned in subparagraph (i);

(f) next, amounts due in respect of injury compensation, being

compensation the liability for which arose before the relevant

date;

(g) subject to subsection (1B)—next, all amounts due:

(i) on or before the relevant date; and

(ii) because of an industrial instrument; and

(iii) to, or in respect of, employees of the company; and

(iv) in respect of leave of absence;

(h) subject to subsection (1C)—next, retrenchment payments

payable to employees of the company.

(1AA) Paragraph (1)(a) does not apply to expenses:

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Winding up generally Part 5.6

Proof and ranking of claims Division 6

Section 556

Corporations Act 2001 453

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(a) incurred by the administrator of a deed of company

arrangement; and

(b) relating to a debt or claim admissible to proof under

subsection 553(1A);

unless the administrator is personally liable for the expenses.

Superannuation guarantee charge

(1A) The amount or total paid under paragraph (1)(e) to, or in respect of,

an excluded employee of the company must be such that so much

(if any) of it as is attributable to non-priority days does not exceed

$2,000.

(1AB) For the purposes of paragraph (1)(e), if:

(a) the company has a superannuation guarantee shortfall for a

quarter; and

(b) the shortfall relates to one or more employees; and

(c) the quarter ends before the relevant date;

superannuation guarantee charge in respect of the quarter is taken

to be payable by the company in respect of services rendered to the

company by those employees before the relevant date.

(1AC) If:

(a) the company has a superannuation guarantee shortfall for a

quarter; and

(b) the shortfall relates to one or more employees; and

(c) the relevant date occurs during the quarter; and

(d) the relevant date is not the first day of the quarter;

then:

(e) for the purposes of paragraph (1)(e), so much of the

superannuation guarantee charge in respect of the quarter as

is attributable to the period before the relevant date is taken

to be payable by the company in respect of services rendered

to the company by those employees before the relevant date;

and

(f) the remainder of the superannuation guarantee charge in

respect of the quarter is taken:

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.6 Winding up generally

Division 6 Proof and ranking of claims

Section 556

454 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(i) to be an expense referred to in paragraph (1)(a); and

(ii) not to be an amount of superannuation guarantee charge

referred in paragraph (1)(e).

(1AD) If:

(a) the company has a superannuation guarantee shortfall for a

quarter; and

(b) the shortfall relates to one or more employees; and

(c) the relevant date is the first day of the quarter;

the superannuation guarantee charge in respect of the quarter is

taken:

(d) to be an expense referred to in paragraph (1)(a); and

(e) not to be an amount of superannuation guarantee charge

referred in paragraph (1)(e).

(1AE) For the purposes of paragraph (1)(e), if:

(a) the company has a superannuation guarantee shortfall for a

quarter; and

(b) the shortfall relates to one or more employees; and

(c) the quarter begins after the relevant date; and

(d) one or more payments were made by the company during the

quarter on account of wages payable to those employees in

respect of services rendered to the company by those

employees before the relevant date; and

(e) those payments were made as a result of an advance of

money by a person after the relevant date for the purpose of

making those payments;

then:

(f) for the purposes of paragraph (1)(e), so much of the

superannuation guarantee charge in respect of the quarter as

is attributable to those payments is taken to be payable by the

company in respect of services rendered to the company by

those employees before the relevant date; and

(g) the remainder of the superannuation guarantee charge in

respect of the quarter is taken:

(i) to be an expense referred to in paragraph (1)(a); and

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Winding up generally Part 5.6

Proof and ranking of claims Division 6

Section 556

Corporations Act 2001 455

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(ii) not to be an amount of superannuation guarantee charge

referred in paragraph (1)(e).

(1AF) If:

(a) the company has a superannuation guarantee shortfall for a

quarter; and

(b) the shortfall relates to one or more employees; and

(c) the relevant date occurs during the quarter; and

(d) one or more payments were made by the company during the

quarter on account of wages payable to those employees in

respect of services rendered to the company by those

employees before the relevant date; and

(e) those payments were made as a result of an advance of

money by a person after the relevant date for the purpose of

making those payments;

then:

(f) for the purposes of paragraph (1)(e), so much of the

superannuation guarantee charge in respect of the quarter as

is attributable to either or both of the following:

(i) those payments;

(ii) the period before the relevant date;

is taken to be payable by the company in respect of services

rendered to the company by those employees before the

relevant date; and

(g) the remainder of the superannuation guarantee charge in

respect of the quarter is taken:

(i) to be an expense referred to in paragraph (1)(a); and

(ii) not to be an amount of superannuation guarantee charge

referred in paragraph (1)(e); and

(h) subsections (1AC) and (1AD) do not apply to the

superannuation guarantee charge in respect of the quarter.

(1AG) Subsections (1AC) to (1AF) apply to a liability to pay the amount

of an estimate of superannuation guarantee charge for a quarter in

the same way as they apply to superannuation guarantee charge

payable for the quarter.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.6 Winding up generally

Division 6 Proof and ranking of claims

Section 556

456 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Leave amounts

(1B) The amount or total paid under paragraph (1)(g) to, or in respect of,

an excluded employee of the company must be such that so much

(if any) of it as is attributable to non-priority days does not exceed

$1,500.

Retrenchment payments

(1C) A payment under paragraph (1)(h) to an excluded employee of the

company must not include an amount attributable to non-priority

days.

Definitions

(2) In this section:

company means a company that is being wound up.

deferred expenses, in relation to a company, means expenses

properly incurred by a relevant authority, in so far as they consist

of:

(a) remuneration, or fees for services, payable to the relevant

authority; or

(b) expenses incurred by the relevant authority in respect of the

supply of services to the relevant authority by:

(i) a partnership of which the relevant authority is a

member; or

(ii) an employee of the relevant authority; or

(iii) a member or employee of such a partnership; or

(c) expenses incurred by the relevant authority in respect of the

supply to the relevant authority of services that it is

reasonable to expect could have instead been supplied by:

(i) the relevant authority; or

(ii) a partnership of which the relevant authority is a

member; or

(iii) an employee of the relevant authority; or

(iv) a member or employee of such a partnership.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Winding up generally Part 5.6

Proof and ranking of claims Division 6

Section 556

Corporations Act 2001 457

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

employee, in relation to a company, means a person:

(a) who has been or is an employee of the company, whether

remunerated by salary, wages, commission or otherwise; and

(b) whose employment by the company commenced before the

relevant date.

excluded employee, in relation to a company, means:

(a) an employee of the company who has been:

(i) at any time during the period of 12 months ending on

the relevant date; or

(ii) at any time since the relevant date;

or who is, a director of the company;

(b) an employee of the company who has been:

(i) at any time during the period of 12 months ending on

the relevant date; or

(ii) at any time since the relevant date;

or who is, the spouse of an employee of the kind referred to

in paragraph (a); or

(c) an employee of the company who is a relative (other than a

spouse) of an employee of the kind referred to in

paragraph (a).

non-priority day, in relation to an excluded employee of a

company, means a day on which the employee was:

(a) if paragraph (a) of the definition of excluded employee

applies—a director of the company; or

(b) if paragraph (b) of that definition applies—a spouse of an

employee of the kind referred to in paragraph (a) of that

definition; or

(c) if paragraph (c) of that definition applies—a relative (other

than a spouse) of an employee of the kind referred to in

paragraph (a) of that definition;

even if the day was more than 12 months before the relevant date.

quarter has the same meaning as in the Superannuation Guarantee

(Administration) Act 1992.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.6 Winding up generally

Division 6 Proof and ranking of claims

Section 558

458 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

relevant authority, in relation to a company, means any of the

following:

(a) in any case—a liquidator or provisional liquidator of the

company;

(c) in any case—an administrator of the company, even if the

administration ended before the winding up began;

(d) in any case—an administrator of a deed of company

arrangement executed by the company, even if the deed

terminated before the winding up began.

retrenchment payment, in relation to an employee of a company,

means an amount payable by the company to the employee, by

virtue of an industrial instrument, in respect of the termination of

the employee’s employment by the company, whether the amount

becomes payable before, on or after the relevant date.

superannuation contribution, in relation to a company, means a

contribution by the company to a fund or scheme for the purposes

of making provision for, or obtaining, superannuation benefits

(including defined benefits) for an employee of the company, or

for dependants of such an employee.

558 Debts due to employees

(1) Where a contract of employment with a company being wound up

was subsisting immediately before the relevant date, the employee

under the contract is, whether or not he or she is a person referred

to in subsection (2), entitled to payment under section 556 as if his

or her services with the company had been terminated by the

company on the relevant date.

(2) Where, for the purposes of the winding up of a company, a

liquidator employs a person whose services with the company had

been terminated by reason of the winding up, that person is, for the

purpose of calculating any entitlement to payment for leave of

absence, or any entitlement to a retrenchment amount in respect of

employment, taken, while the liquidator employs him or her for

those purposes, to be employed by the company.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Winding up generally Part 5.6

Proof and ranking of claims Division 6

Section 559

Corporations Act 2001 459

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(3) Subject to subsection (4), where, after the relevant date, an amount

in respect of long service leave or extended leave, or a

retrenchment amount, becomes payable to a person referred to in

subsection (2) in respect of the employment so referred to, the

amount is a cost of the winding up.

(4) Where, at the relevant date, the length of qualifying service of a

person employed by a company that is being wound up is

insufficient to entitle him or her to any amount in respect of long

service leave or extended leave, or to any retrenchment amount in

respect of employment by the company, but, by the operation of

subsection (2) he or she becomes entitled to such an amount after

that date, that amount:

(a) is a cost of the winding up to the extent of an amount that

bears to that amount the same proportion as the length of his

or her qualifying service after that relevant date bears to the

total length of his or her qualifying service; and

(b) is, to the extent of the balance of that amount, taken, for the

purposes of section 556, to be an amount referred to in

paragraph 556(1)(g), or a retrenchment payment payable to

the person, as the case may be.

(5) In this section, retrenchment amount, in relation to employment of

a person, means an amount payable to the person, by virtue of an

industrial instrument, in respect of termination of the employment.

559 Debts of a class to rank equally

The debts of a class referred to in each of the paragraphs of

subsection 556(1) rank equally between themselves and must be

paid in full, unless the property of the company is insufficient to

meet them, in which case they must be paid proportionately.

560 Advances for company to make priority payments in relation to

employees

If:

(a) a payment has been made by a company:

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.6 Winding up generally

Division 6 Proof and ranking of claims

Section 561

460 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(i) on account of wages; or

(ii) on account of superannuation contributions (within the

meaning of section 556); or

(iii) in respect of leave of absence, or termination of

employment, under an industrial instrument; and

(b) the payment was made as a result of an advance of money by

a person (whether before, on or after the relevant date) for the

purpose of making the payment;

then:

(c) the person by whom the money was advanced has the same

rights under this Chapter as a creditor of the company; and

(d) subject to paragraph (e), the person by whom the money was

advanced has, in the winding up of the company, the same

right of priority of payment in respect of the money so

advanced and paid as the person who received the payment

would have had if the payment had not been made; and

(e) the right of priority conferred by paragraph (d) is not to

exceed the amount by which the sum in respect of which the

person who received the payment would have been entitled

to priority in the winding up has been diminished by reason

of the payment.

561 Priority of employees’ claims over circulating security interests

So far as the property of a company available for payment of

creditors other than secured creditors is insufficient to meet

payment of:

(a) any debt referred to in paragraph 556(1)(e), (g) or (h); and

(b) any amount that pursuant to subsection 558(3) or (4) is a cost

of the winding up, being an amount that, if it had been

payable on or before the relevant date, would have been a

debt referred to in paragraph 556(1)(e), (g) or (h); and

(c) any amount in respect of which a right of priority is given by

section 560;

payment of that debt or amount must be made in priority over the

claims of a secured party in relation to a circulating security

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Winding up generally Part 5.6

Proof and ranking of claims Division 6

Section 562

Corporations Act 2001 461

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

interest created by the company and may be made accordingly out

of any property comprised in or subject to the circulating security

interest.

562 Application of proceeds of contracts of insurance

(1) Where a company is, under a contract of insurance (not being a

contract of reinsurance) entered into before the relevant date,

insured against liability to third parties, then, if such a liability is

incurred by the company (whether before or after the relevant date)

and an amount in respect of that liability has been or is received by

the company or the liquidator from the insurer, the amount must,

after deducting any expenses of or incidental to getting in that

amount, be paid by the liquidator to the third party in respect of

whom the liability was incurred to the extent necessary to

discharge that liability, or any part of that liability remaining

undischarged, in priority to all payments in respect of the debts

mentioned in section 556.

(2) If the liability of the insurer to the company is less than the liability

of the company to the third party, subsection (1) does not limit the

rights of the third party in respect of the balance.

(3) This section has effect notwithstanding any agreement to the

contrary.

562A Application of proceeds of contracts of reinsurance

(1) This section applies where:

(a) a company is insured, under a contract of reinsurance entered

into before the relevant date, against liability to pay amounts

in respect of a relevant contract of insurance or relevant

contracts of insurance; and

(b) an amount in respect of that liability has been or is received

by the company or the liquidator under the contract of

reinsurance.

(2) Subject to subsection (4), if the amount received, after deducting

expenses of or incidental to getting in that amount, equals or

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.6 Winding up generally

Division 6 Proof and ranking of claims

Section 562A

462 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

exceeds the total of all the amounts that are payable by the

company under relevant contracts of insurance, the liquidator must,

out of the amount received and in priority to all payments in

respect of the debts mentioned in section 556, pay the amounts that

are so payable under those contracts of insurance.

(3) Subject to subsection (4), if subsection (2) does not apply, the

liquidator must, out of the amount received and in priority to all

payments in respect of the debts mentioned in section 556, pay to

each person to whom an amount is payable by the company under

a relevant contract of insurance an amount calculated in

accordance with the formula:

where:

particular amount owed means the amount payable to the person

under the relevant contract of insurance.

reinsurance payment means the amount received under the

contract of reinsurance, less any expenses of or incidental to

getting in that amount.

total amount owed means the total of all the amounts payable by

the company under relevant contracts of insurance.

(4) The Court may, on application by a person to whom an amount is

payable under a relevant contract of insurance, make an order to

the effect that subsections (2) and (3) do not apply to the amount

received under the contract of reinsurance and that that amount

must, instead, be applied by the liquidator in the manner specified

in the order, being a manner that the Court considers just and

equitable in the circumstances.

(5) The matters that the Court may take into account in considering

whether to make an order under subsection (4) include, but are not

limited to:

Particular amount owed Reinsurance payment

Total amount owed 

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Winding up generally Part 5.6

Proof and ranking of claims Division 6

Section 563

Corporations Act 2001 463

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(a) whether it is possible to identify particular relevant contracts

of insurance as being the contracts in respect of which the

contract of reinsurance was entered into; and

(b) whether it is possible to identify persons who can be said to

have paid extra in order to have particular relevant contracts

of insurance protected by reinsurance; and

(c) whether particular relevant contracts of insurance include

statements to the effect that the contracts are to be protected

by reinsurance; and

(d) whether a person to whom an amount is payable under a

relevant contract of insurance would be severely prejudiced if

subsections (2) and (3) applied to the amount received under

the contract of reinsurance.

(6) If receipt of a payment under this section only partially discharges

a liability of the company to a person, nothing in this section

affects the rights of the person in respect of the balance of the

liability.

(7) This section has effect despite any agreement to the contrary.

(8) In this section:

relevant contract of insurance means a contract of insurance

entered into by the company, as insurer, before the relevant date.

563 Provisions relating to injury compensation

(1) Notwithstanding anything in section 556, paragraph 556(1)(f) does

not apply in relation to the winding up of a company in any case

where:

(a) the company is being wound up voluntarily merely for the

purpose of reconstruction or of amalgamation with another

company and the right to the injury compensation has, on the

reconstruction or amalgamation, been preserved to the person

entitled to it; or

(b) the company has entered into a contract with an insurer in

respect of any liability for injury compensation.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.6 Winding up generally

Division 6 Proof and ranking of claims

Section 563AA

464 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(2) Where injury compensation is payable by way of periodical

payments, the amount of that compensation is, for the purposes of

paragraph 556(1)(f), taken to be the lump sum for which those

periodical payments could, if redeemable, be redeemed under the

law under which the periodical payments are made.

563AA Seller under a buy-back agreement

(1) The selling shareholder’s claim under a buy-back agreement is

postponed until all debts owed to people otherwise than as

members of the company have been satisfied.

(2) The shareholder’s claim is not a debt owed by the company to the

seller in the shareholder’s capacity as a member of the company

for the purposes of section 563A.

563A Postponing subordinate claims

(1) The payment of a subordinate claim against a company is to be

postponed until all other debts payable by, and claims against, the

company are satisfied.

(2) In this section:

claim means a claim that is admissible to proof against the

company (within the meaning of section 553).

debt means a debt that is admissible to proof against the company

(within the meaning of section 553).

subordinate claim means:

(a) a claim for a debt owed by the company to a person in the

person’s capacity as a member of the company (whether by

way of dividends, profits or otherwise); or

(b) any other claim that arises from buying, holding, selling or

otherwise dealing in shares in the company.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Winding up generally Part 5.6

Proof and ranking of claims Division 6

Section 563AAA

Corporations Act 2001 465

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

563AAA Redemption of debentures

Priorities

(1) Debentures of a company under a trust deed that are issued in place

of debentures under that deed that have been redeemed have the

priority that the redeemed debentures would have had if they had

never been redeemed.

Deposit of debentures to secure advance

(2) Debentures of a company are not to be taken to be redeemed

merely because:

(a) the debentures secure advances on current account or

otherwise; and

(b) the company’s account ceases to be in debit while those

debentures remain available.

Subdivision E—Miscellaneous

563B Interest on debts and claims from relevant date to date of

payment

(1) If, in the winding up of a company, the liquidator pays an amount

in respect of an admitted debt or claim, there is also payable to the

debtor or claimant, as a debt payable in the winding up, interest, at

the prescribed rate, on the amount of the payment in respect of the

period starting on the relevant date and ending on the day on which

the payment is made.

(2) Subject to subsection (3), payment of the interest is to be

postponed until all other debts and claims in the winding up have

been satisfied, other than subordinate claims (within the meaning

of section 563A).

(3) If the admitted debt or claim is a debt to which section 554B

applied, subsection (2) does not apply to postpone payment of so

much of the interest as is attributable to the period starting at the

relevant date and ending on the earlier of:

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.6 Winding up generally

Division 6 Proof and ranking of claims

Section 563C

466 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(a) the day on which the payment is made; and

(b) the future date, within the meaning of section 554B.

563C Debt subordination

(1) Nothing in this Division renders a debt subordination by a creditor

of a company unlawful or unenforceable, except so far as the debt

subordination would disadvantage any creditor of the company

who was not a party to, or otherwise concerned in, the debt

subordination.

(2) In this section:

debt subordination means an agreement or declaration by a

creditor of a company, however expressed, to the effect that, in

specified circumstances:

(a) a specified debt that the company owes the creditor; or

(b) a specified part of such a debt;

will not be repaid until other specified debts that the company

owes are repaid to a specified extent.

564 Power of Court to make orders in favour of certain creditors

Where in any winding up:

(a) property has been recovered under an indemnity for costs of

litigation given by certain creditors, or has been protected or

preserved by the payment of money or the giving of

indemnity by creditors; or

(b) expenses in relation to which a creditor has indemnified a

liquidator have been recovered;

the Court may make such orders, as it deems just with respect to

the distribution of that property and the amount of those expenses

so recovered with a view to giving those creditors an advantage

over others in consideration of the risk assumed by them.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Winding up generally Part 5.6

Effect on certain transactions Division 7

Section 565

Corporations Act 2001 467

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Division 7—Effect on certain transactions

565 Undue preference

(1) A settlement, a conveyance or transfer of property, a charge on

property, a payment made, or an obligation incurred, before

23 June 1993, by a company that, if it had been made or incurred

by a natural person, would, in the event of his or her becoming a

bankrupt, be void as against the trustee in the bankruptcy, is, in the

event of the company being wound up, void as against the

liquidator.

(2) For the purposes of subsection (1), the date that corresponds with

the date of presentation of the petition in bankruptcy in the case of

a natural person is the relation-back day.

(3) For the purposes of this section, the date that corresponds with the

date on which a person becomes a bankrupt is the relation-back

day.

(4) Subject to Part 5.3A, a transfer or assignment by a company of all

its property to trustees for the benefit of all its creditors is void.

566 Effect of floating charge

A floating charge on the undertaking or property of the company

created before 23 June 1993 and within 6 months before the

relation-back day is, unless it is proved that the company

immediately after the creation of the charge was solvent, invalid

except to the amount of any money paid to the company at the time

of or subsequently to the creation of and in consideration for the

charge together with interest on that amount at the rate of 8% per

annum or at such other rate as is prescribed.

567 Liquidator’s right to recover in respect of certain transactions

(1) Where any property, business or undertaking has been acquired by

a company for a cash consideration before 23 June 1993 and within

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.6 Winding up generally

Division 7 Effect on certain transactions

Section 567

468 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

4 years before the relation-back day in relation to a winding up of

the company:

(a) from a promoter of the company or a spouse of such a

promoter, or from a relative of such a promoter or spouse; or

(b) from a person who was, at the time of the acquisition, a

director of the company, from a spouse of such a director, or

from a relative of such a person or spouse; or

(c) from a body corporate that was, at the time of the acquisition,

related to the company; or

(d) from a person who was, at the time of the acquisition, a

director of a body corporate that was related to the company,

from a spouse of such a person, or from a relative of such a

person or spouse;

the liquidator may recover from the person or body corporate from

which the property, business or undertaking was acquired any

amount by which the cash consideration for the acquisition

exceeded the value of the property, business or undertaking at the

time of its acquisition.

(2) Where any property, business or undertaking has been sold by a

company for a cash consideration before 23 June 1993 and within

4 years before the relation-back day in relation to a winding up of

the company:

(a) to a promoter of the company or a spouse of such a promoter,

or to a relative of such a promoter or spouse; or

(b) to a person who was, at the time of the sale, a director of the

company, to a spouse of such a director, or to a relative of

such a person or spouse; or

(c) to a body corporate that was, at the time of the sale, related to

the company; or

(d) to a person who was, at the time of the sale, a director of a

body corporate that was related to the company, to a spouse

of such a director, or to a relative of such a person or spouse;

the liquidator may recover from the person or body corporate to

which the property, business or undertaking was sold any amount

by which the value of the property, business or undertaking at the

time of the sale exceeded the cash consideration.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Winding up generally Part 5.6

Effect on certain transactions Division 7

Section 567

Corporations Act 2001 469

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(3) For the purposes of this section, the value of the property, business

or undertaking includes the value of any goodwill, profits or gain

that might have been made from the property, business or

undertaking.

(4) In this section, cash consideration means any consideration

payable otherwise than by the issue of shares in the company.

(5) Where:

(a) a disposition of property is made by a company before

23 June 1993 and within 6 months before the relation-back

day in relation to a winding up of the company; and

(b) the disposition of property confers a preference upon a

creditor of the company; and

(c) the disposition of property has the effect of discharging an

officer of the company from a liability (whether under a

guarantee or otherwise and whether contingent or otherwise);

the liquidator:

(d) in a case to which paragraph (e) does not apply—may

recover from that officer an amount equal to the value of the

relevant property, as the case may be; or

(e) where the liquidator has recovered from the creditor in

respect of the disposition of the relevant property:

(i) an amount equal to part of the value of the relevant

property; or

(ii) part of the relevant property;

may recover from that officer an amount equal to the amount

by which the value of the relevant property exceeds the sum

of any amounts recovered as mentioned in subparagraph (i)

and the amount of the value of any property recovered as

mentioned in subparagraph (ii).

(6) Where:

(a) a liquidator recovers an amount of money from an officer of

a company in respect of a disposition of property to a creditor

as mentioned in subsection (5); and

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.6 Winding up generally

Division 7 Effect on certain transactions

Section 567

470 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(b) the liquidator subsequently recovers from that creditor an

amount equal to the whole or part of the value of the property

disposed of;

the officer may recover from the liquidator an amount equal to the

amount so recovered or the value of the property so recovered.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Winding up generally Part 5.6

Disclaimer of onerous property Division 7A

Section 568

Corporations Act 2001 471

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Division 7A—Disclaimer of onerous property

568 Disclaimer by liquidator; application to Court by party to

contract

(1) Subject to this section, a liquidator of a company may at any time,

on the company’s behalf, by signed writing disclaim property of

the company that consists of:

(a) land burdened with onerous covenants; or

(b) shares; or

(c) property that is unsaleable or is not readily saleable; or

(d) property that may give rise to a liability to pay money or

some other onerous obligation; or

(e) property where it is reasonable to expect that the costs,

charges and expenses that would be incurred in realising the

property would exceed the proceeds of realising the property;

or

(f) a contract;

whether or not:

(g) except in the case of a contract—the liquidator has tried to

sell the property, has taken possession of it or exercised an

act of ownership in relation to it; or

(h) in the case of a contract—the company or the liquidator has

tried to assign, or has exercised rights in relation to, the

contract or any property to which it relates.

(1AA) This section does not apply to:

(a) an agreement by the company to buy back its own shares; or

(b) PPSA retention of title property that is taken to form part of

the property of the company because of the definition of

property in section 513AA.

Note: The definition of property in section 513AA includes PPSA retention

of title property of the company, if the security interest in the property

has vested in the company in certain situations.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.6 Winding up generally

Division 7A Disclaimer of onerous property

Section 568

472 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(1A) A liquidator cannot disclaim a contract (other than an unprofitable

contract or a lease of land) except with the leave of the Court.

(1B) On an application for leave under subsection (1A), the Court may:

(a) grant leave subject to such conditions; and

(b) make such orders in connection with matters arising under, or

relating to, the contract;

as the Court considers just and equitable.

(8) Where:

(a) an application in writing has been made to the liquidator by a

person interested in property requiring the liquidator to

decide whether he or she will disclaim the property; and

(b) the liquidator has, for the period of 28 days after the receipt

of the application, or for such extended period as is allowed

by the Court, declined or neglected to disclaim the property;

the liquidator is not entitled to disclaim the property under this

section and, in the case of a contract, he or she is taken to have

adopted it.

(9) The Court may, on the application of a person who is, as against

the company, entitled to the benefit or subject to the burden of a

contract made with the company, make an order:

(a) discharging the contract on such terms as to payment by or to

either party of damages for the non-performance of the

contract, or otherwise, as the Court thinks proper; or

(b) rescinding the contract on such terms as to restitution by or to

either party, or otherwise, as the Court thinks proper.

(10) Amounts payable pursuant to an order under subsection (9) may be

proved as a debt in the winding up.

(13) For the purpose of determining whether property of a company is

of a kind to which subsection (1) applies, the liquidator may, by

notice served on a person claiming to have an interest in the

property, require the person to give to the liquidator within such

period, not being less than 14 days, as is specified in the notice, a

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Winding up generally Part 5.6

Disclaimer of onerous property Division 7A

Section 568A

Corporations Act 2001 473

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

statement of the interest claimed by the person and the person must

comply with the requirement.

568A Liquidator must give notice of disclaimer

(1) As soon as practicable after disclaiming property, a liquidator

must:

(a) lodge a written notice of the disclaimer; and

(b) give written notice of the disclaimer to each person who

appears to the liquidator to have, or to claim to have, an

interest in the property; and

(c) if the liquidator has reason to suspect that some person or

persons may have, or may claim to have, an interest or

interests in the property, but either does not know who, or

does not know where, the person is or the persons are—

comply with subsection (2); and

(d) if a law of the Commonwealth or of a State or Territory

requires the transfer or transmission of the property to be

registered—give written notice of the disclaimer to the

registrar or other person who has the function under that law

of registering the transfer or transmission of the property.

Note: For electronic notification under paragraph (b), see section 600G.

(2) If paragraph (1)(c) applies, the liquidator must cause a notice

setting out the prescribed information about the disclaimer to be

published in the prescribed manner.

568B Application to set aside disclaimer before it takes effect

(1) A person who has, or claims to have, an interest in disclaimed

property may apply to the Court for an order setting aside the

disclaimer before it takes effect, but may only do so within 14 days

after:

(a) if the liquidator gives to the person notice of the disclaimer,

because of paragraph 568A(1)(b), before the end of 14 days

after the liquidator lodges such notice—the liquidator gives

such notice to the person; or

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.6 Winding up generally

Division 7A Disclaimer of onerous property

Section 568C

474 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(b) if paragraph (a) does not apply but notice of the disclaimer is

published under subsection 568A(2) before the end of the 14

days referred to in that paragraph—the last such notice to be

so published is so published; or

(c) otherwise—the liquidator lodges notice of the disclaimer.

(2) On an application under subsection (1), the Court:

(a) may by order set aside the disclaimer; and

(b) if it does so—may make such further orders as it thinks

appropriate.

(3) However, the Court may set aside a disclaimer under this section

only if satisfied that the disclaimer would cause, to persons who

have, or claim to have, interests in the property, prejudice that is

grossly out of proportion to the prejudice that setting aside the

disclaimer would cause to the company’s creditors.

568C When disclaimer takes effect

(1) A disclaimer takes effect if, and only if:

(a) in a case where only one application under section 568B for

an order setting aside the disclaimer, or each of 2 or more

such applications, is made within the period that that section

prescribes for making the application—the application, or

each of the applications, is unsuccessful; or

(b) no such application is so made.

(2) For the purposes of subsection (1), an application under

section 568B is successful if, and only if, the result of the

application, and all appeals (if any) arising out of the application,

being finally determined or otherwise disposed of is an order

setting aside the disclaimer (whether or not further orders are also

made).

(3) A disclaimer that takes effect because of subsection (1) is taken to

have taken effect on the day after:

(a) if:

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Winding up generally Part 5.6

Disclaimer of onerous property Division 7A

Section 568D

Corporations Act 2001 475

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(i) the liquidator gave to a person notice of the disclaimer

because of paragraph 568A(1)(b); or

(ii) notice of the disclaimer was published under

subsection 568A(2);

before the end of 14 days after the liquidator lodged notice of

the disclaimer—the last day when the liquidator so gave such

notice or such notice was so published; or

(b) otherwise—the day when the liquidator lodged notice of the

disclaimer.

568D Effect of disclaimer

(1) A disclaimer is taken to have terminated, as from the day on which

it is taken because of subsection 568C(3) to take effect, the

company’s rights, interests, liabilities and property in or in respect

of the disclaimer property, but does not affect any other person’s

rights or liabilities except so far as necessary in order to release the

company and its property from liability.

(2) A person aggrieved by the operation of a disclaimer is taken to be a

creditor of the company to the extent of any loss suffered by the

person because of the disclaimer and may prove such a loss as a

debt in the winding up.

568E Application to set aside disclaimer after it has taken effect

(1) With the leave of the Court, a person who has, or claims to have,

an interest in disclaimed property may apply to the Court for an

order setting aside the disclaimer after it has taken effect.

(2) The Court may give leave only if it is satisfied that it is

unreasonable in all the circumstances to expect the person to have

applied for an order setting aside the disclaimer before it took

effect.

(3) The Court may give leave subject to conditions.

(4) On an application under subsection (1), the Court:

(a) may by order set aside the disclaimer; and

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.6 Winding up generally

Division 7A Disclaimer of onerous property

Section 568F

476 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(b) if it does so—may make such further orders as it thinks

appropriate, including orders necessary to put the company,

the liquidator or anyone else in the same position, as nearly

as practicable, as if the disclaimer had never taken effect.

(5) However, the Court may set aside a disclaimer only if satisfied that

the disclaimer has caused, or would cause, to persons who have, or

claim to have, interests in the property, prejudice that is grossly out

of proportion to the prejudice that setting aside the disclaimer (and

making any further orders) would cause to:

(a) the company’s creditors; and

(b) persons who have changed their position in reliance on the

disclaimer taking effect.

568F Court may dispose of disclaimed property

(1) The Court may order that disclaimed property vest in, or be

delivered to:

(a) a person entitled to the property; or

(b) a person in or to whom it seems to the Court appropriate that

the property be vested or delivered; or

(c) a person as trustee for a person of a kind referred to in

paragraph (a) or (b).

(2) The Court may make an order under subsection (1):

(a) on the application of a person who claims an interest in the

property, or is under a liability in respect of the property that

this Act has not discharged; and

(b) after hearing such persons as it thinks appropriate.

(3) Subject to subsection (4), where an order is made under

subsection (1) vesting property, the property vests immediately, for

the purposes of the order, without any conveyance, transfer or

assignment.

(4) Where:

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Winding up generally Part 5.6

Disclaimer of onerous property Division 7A

Section 568F

Corporations Act 2001 477

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(a) a law of the Commonwealth or of a State or Territory

requires the transfer of property vested by an order under

subsection (1) to be registered; and

(b) that law enables the order to be registered;

the property vests in equity because of the order but does not vest

at law until that law has been complied with.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.6 Winding up generally

Division 7B Effect on enforcement process against company’s property

Section 569

478 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Division 7B—Effect on enforcement process against

company’s property

569 Executions, attachments etc. before winding up

(1) Where:

(a) a creditor has issued execution against property of a

company, or instituted proceedings to attach a debt due to a

company or to enforce a charge or a charging order against

property of a company, within 6 months immediately before

the commencement of the winding up; and

(b) the company commences to be wound up;

the creditor must pay to the liquidator an amount equal to the

amount (if any) received by the creditor as a result of the

execution, attachment or enforcement of the charge or the charging

order, less an amount in respect of the costs of the execution,

attachment or enforcement of the charge or the charging order,

being an amount agreed between the creditor and the liquidator or,

if no agreement is reached, an amount equal to the taxed cost of

that execution, attachment or enforcement.

(2) Where the creditor has paid to the liquidator an amount in

accordance with subsection (1), the creditor may prove in the

winding up for the creditor’s debt as an unsecured creditor as if the

execution or attachment or the enforcement of the charge or the

charging order, as the case may be, had not taken place.

(3) Subject to subsections (4) and (5), where a creditor of a company

receives:

(a) notice in writing of an application to the Court for the

winding up of the company; or

(b) notice in writing of the convening of a meeting of the

company to consider a resolution that the company be wound

up voluntarily;

it is not competent for the creditor to take any action, or any further

action, as the case may be, to attach a debt due to the company or

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Winding up generally Part 5.6

Effect on enforcement process against company’s property Division 7B

Section 570

Corporations Act 2001 479

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

to enforce a charge or a charging order against property of the

company.

(4) Subsection (3) does not affect the right of a creditor to take action

or further action if:

(a) in a case to which paragraph (3)(a) applies—the application

has been withdrawn or dismissed; or

(b) in a case to which paragraph (3)(b) applies—the meeting of

the company has refused to pass the resolution.

(5) Subsection (3) does not prevent a creditor from performing a

binding contract for the sale of property entered into before the

creditor received a notice referred to in that subsection.

(6) Notwithstanding anything contained in this Division, a person who

purchases property in good faith:

(a) under a sale by the sheriff in consequence of the issue of

execution against property of a company that, after the sale,

commences to be wound up; or

(b) under a sale in consequence of the enforcement by a creditor

of a charge or a charging order against property of a company

that, after the sale, commences to be wound up;

acquires a good title to it as against the liquidator and the company.

(7) In this section:

charge means a charge created by a law upon registration of a

judgment in a registry.

charging order means a charging order made by a court in respect

of a judgment.

570 Duties of sheriff after receiving notice of application

(1) Subject to this section, where a sheriff:

(a) receives notice in writing of an application to the Court for

the winding up of a company; or

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.6 Winding up generally

Division 7B Effect on enforcement process against company’s property

Section 570

480 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(b) receives notice in writing of the convening of a meeting of a

company to consider a resolution that the company be wound

up voluntarily;

it is not competent for the sheriff to:

(c) take any action to sell property of the company pursuant to

any process of execution issued by or on behalf of a creditor;

or

(d) pay to the creditor by whom or on whose behalf the process

of execution was issued or to any person on the creditor’s

behalf the proceeds of the sale of property of the company

that has been sold pursuant to such a process or any money

seized, or paid to avoid seizure or sale of property of the

company, under such a process.

(2) Subsection (1) does not affect the power of the sheriff to take any

action or make any payment if:

(a) in a case to which paragraph (1)(a) applies—the application

has been withdrawn or dismissed; or

(b) in a case to which paragraph (1)(b) applies—the meeting of

the company has refused to pass the resolution.

(3) Subject to this section, where the registrar or other appropriate

officer of a court to which proceeds of the sale of property of a

company or other money has been paid by a sheriff pursuant to a

process of execution issued by or on behalf of a creditor of the

company:

(a) receives notice in writing of an application to the Court for

the winding up of the company; or

(b) receives notice in writing of the convening of a meeting of

the company to consider a resolution that the company be

wound up voluntarily;

any of those proceeds or money not paid out of court must not be

paid to the creditor or to any person on behalf of the creditor.

(4) Subsection (3) does not prevent the making of a payment if:

(a) in a case to which paragraph (3)(a) applies—the application

has been withdrawn or dismissed; or

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Winding up generally Part 5.6

Effect on enforcement process against company’s property Division 7B

Section 570

Corporations Act 2001 481

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(b) in a case to which paragraph (3)(b) applies—the meeting of

the company has refused to pass the resolution.

(5) Where a company is being wound up, the liquidator may serve

notice in writing of that fact on a sheriff or the registrar or other

appropriate officer of a court.

(6) Upon such a notice being so served:

(a) the sheriff must deliver or pay to the liquidator:

(i) any property of the company in the sheriff’s possession

under a process of execution issued by or on behalf of a

creditor; and

(ii) any proceeds of the sale of property of the company or

other money in the sheriff’s possession, being proceeds

of the sale of property sold, whether before or after the

commencement of the winding up, pursuant to such a

process or money seized, or paid to avoid seizure or sale

of property of the company, whether before or after the

commencement of the winding up, under such a

process; or

(b) the registrar or other officer of the court must pay to the

liquidator any proceeds of the sale of property of the

company or other money in court, being proceeds of sale or

other money paid into court, whether before or after the

commencement of the winding up, by a sheriff pursuant to a

process of execution issued by or on behalf of a creditor;

as the case requires.

(7) Where:

(a) property is, or proceeds of the sale of property or other

money are, required by subsection (6) to be delivered or paid

to a liquidator; or

(b) a sheriff has, pursuant to subsection (1), refrained from

taking action to sell property of a company, being land, and

that company is being wound up under an order made on the

application referred to in that subsection;

the costs of the execution are a first charge on that property or on

those proceeds of sale or other money.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.6 Winding up generally

Division 7B Effect on enforcement process against company’s property

Section 570

482 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(8) For the purpose of giving effect to the charge referred to in

subsection (7), the sheriff, registrar or other officer may retain, on

behalf of the creditor entitled to the benefit of the charge, such

amount from the proceeds of sale or other money referred to in that

subsection as he or she thinks necessary for the purpose.

(9) The Court may, if in a particular case it considers it is proper to do

so:

(a) permit a sheriff to take action to sell property or make a

payment that the sheriff could not, by reason of

subsection (1), otherwise validly take; or

(b) permit the making of a payment the making of which would,

by reason of subsection (3), otherwise be prohibited.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Winding up generally Part 5.6

Pooling Division 8

Section 571

Corporations Act 2001 483

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Division 8—Pooling

Subdivision A—Pooling determinations

571 Pooling determination

Making of pooling determination

(1) If the following conditions are satisfied in relation to a group of 2

or more companies:

(a) each company in the group is being wound up;

(b) any of the following subparagraphs applies:

(i) each company in the group is a related body corporate

of each other company in the group;

(ii) apart from this section, the companies in the group are

jointly liable for one or more debts or claims;

(iii) the companies in the group jointly own or operate

particular property that is or was used, or for use, in

connection with a business, a scheme, or an

undertaking, carried on jointly by the companies in the

group;

(iv) one or more companies in the group own particular

property that is or was used, or for use, by any or all of

the companies in the group in connection with a

business, a scheme, or an undertaking, carried on jointly

by the companies in the group;

the liquidator or liquidators of the companies may, by writing:

(c) determine that the group is a pooled group for the purposes

of this section; and

(d) if the liquidator or liquidators consider that it is just and

equitable, as between the various creditors of the companies

in the group, to do so—determine that any or all of the

following provisions:

(i) subsection (2);

(ii) subsection (3);

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.6 Winding up generally

Division 8 Pooling

Section 571

484 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(iii) subsection (4);

(iv) subsection (5);

(v) subsection (6);

(vi) subsection (7);

are modified, as set out in the determination, in their

application to the companies in the group.

Note 1: Section 9 provides that pooling determination means a determination

under subsection (1) of this section.

Note 2: A pooling determination comes into force when it is approved by the

eligible unsecured creditors of each of the companies in the group—

see section 578.

Consequences of pooling determination

(2) If a determination under paragraph (1)(c) comes into force in

relation to a group of 2 or more companies:

(a) each company in the group is taken to be jointly and

severally liable for each debt payable by, and each claim

against, each other company in the group; and

(b) each debt payable by a company or companies in the group

to any other company or companies in the group is

extinguished; and

(c) each claim that a company or companies in the group has

against any other company or companies in the group is

extinguished.

(3) Subsection (2) applies to a debt or claim:

(a) whether present or future; and

(b) whether certain or contingent; and

(c) whether ascertained or sounding only in damages.

(4) Subsection (2) does not apply to a debt payable by, or a claim

against, a company in the group unless the debt or claim is

admissible to proof against the company.

(5) If a determination under paragraph (1)(c) comes into force in

relation to a group of 2 or more companies, the order of priority

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Winding up generally Part 5.6

Pooling Division 8

Section 571

Corporations Act 2001 485

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

applicable under sections 556, 560 and 561 is not altered for a

company in the group.

(6) If:

(a) a determination under paragraph (1)(c) comes into force in

relation to a group of 2 or more companies; and

(b) a secured creditor of a company in the group surrenders the

relevant security interest to the liquidator of the company for

the benefit of creditors of the companies in the group

generally;

the debt may be recovered as a debt that is jointly and severally

payable by the companies in the group.

(7) If:

(a) a determination under paragraph (1)(c) comes into force in

relation to a group of 2 or more companies; and

(b) a secured creditor of a company in the group realises the

security interest;

so much of the debt as remains after deducting the net amount

realised may be recovered as a debt that is jointly and severally

payable by the companies in the group.

(8) The following provisions have effect subject to any modifications

under paragraph (1)(d):

(a) subsection (2);

(b) subsection (3);

(c) subsection (4);

(d) subsection (5);

(e) subsection (6);

(f) subsection (7).

(9) Subsection (2) does not apply in relation to a secured creditor

unless the relevant debt is payable by a company or companies in

the group to any other company or companies in the group.

(10) If:

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.6 Winding up generally

Division 8 Pooling

Section 572

486 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(a) a pooling determination comes into force in relation to a

group of 2 or more companies; and

(b) there are one or more eligible employee creditors of a

company in the group;

those eligible employee creditors are entitled to a priority at least

equal to what they would have been entitled if the determination

had not been made.

Section 477 not limited

(11) This section does not limit section 477.

572 Variation of pooling determination

If a pooling determination is in force in relation to a group of 2 or

more companies, the liquidator or liquidators of the companies

may, by writing, vary the determination.

Note: A variation of a pooling determination comes into force when it is

approved by the creditors of the companies in the group—see

section 578.

573 Lodgment of copy of pooling determination etc.

Pooling determination

(1) Within 7 days after a pooling determination comes into force in

relation to a group of 2 or more companies, the liquidator or

liquidators of the companies in the group must lodge a copy of the

determination with ASIC.

Note: A pooling determination comes into force when it is approved by the

eligible unsecured creditors of each of the companies in the group—

see section 578.

Variation of pooling determination

(2) Within 7 days after a variation of a pooling determination comes

into force in relation to a group of 2 or more companies, the

liquidator or liquidators of the companies in the group must lodge a

copy of the variation with ASIC.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Winding up generally Part 5.6

Pooling Division 8

Section 577

Corporations Act 2001 487

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Note: A variation of a pooling determination comes into force when it is

approved by the eligible unsecured creditors of each of the companies

in the group—see section 578.

577 Eligible unsecured creditors may decide to approve the

determination or variation

(1A) Within 5 business days after the liquidator or liquidators of a group

of 2 or more companies:

(a) make a pooling determination in relation to the group; or

(b) vary a pooling determination in force in relation to the group;

the liquidator or liquidators must convene separate meetings of the

eligible unsecured creditors of each of the companies in the group.

Note: For eligible unsecured creditor, see section 579Q.

(1) At a meeting convened under subsection (1A), the eligible

unsecured creditors may resolve to approve the making of the

determination or variation.

(3) If, at a meeting convened under subsection (1A), the eligible

unsecured creditors do not resolve to approve the making of the

determination or variation:

(a) the determination or variation is cancelled at the end of the

meeting; and

(b) if, as at the end of the meeting, a corresponding resolution

has not been considered at another meeting convened under

subsection (1A) of the eligible unsecured creditors of another

company in the group—that other meeting is cancelled.

578 When pooling determination comes into force etc.

Pooling determination

(1) If:

(a) a pooling determination is made in relation to a group of 2 or

more companies; and

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.6 Winding up generally

Division 8 Pooling

Section 578

488 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(b) meetings are convened under subsection 577(1A) of the

eligible unsecured creditors of each company in the group;

and

(c) at each meeting, the eligible unsecured creditors pass a

resolution, as referred to in section 577, approving the

making of the determination;

then:

(d) if all the resolutions were passed at the same time—the

determination comes into force immediately after the

resolutions were passed; or

(e) if the resolutions were passed at different times—the

determination comes into force immediately after the last of

those times.

Note: For eligible unsecured creditor, see section 579Q.

Variation of pooling determination

(2) If:

(a) a pooling determination is in force in relation to a group of 2

or more companies; and

(b) the pooling determination is varied; and

(c) meetings are convened under subsection 577(1A) of the

eligible unsecured creditors of each company in the group;

and

(d) at each meeting, the eligible unsecured creditors pass a

resolution, as referred to in section 577, approving the

making of the variation;

then:

(e) if all the resolutions were passed at the same time—the

variation comes into force immediately after the resolutions

were passed; or

(f) if the resolutions were passed at different times—the

variation comes into force immediately after the last of those

times.

Note: For eligible unsecured creditor, see section 579Q.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Winding up generally Part 5.6

Pooling Division 8

Section 579

Corporations Act 2001 489

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

579 Duties of liquidator

(1) This section applies if:

(a) the liquidator or liquidators of a group of 2 or more

companies exercise a power conferred by section 571 or

subsection 577(1A); and

(b) the liquidator or liquidators, in the exercise of that power,

acted:

(i) with due care; and

(ii) in good faith; and

(iii) for the benefit of the creditors of the companies in the

group, considered as a whole.

(2) The liquidator or liquidators are taken not to be in breach of:

(a) any duty to a company in the group concerned (whether

under section 180, 181, 182, 183 or 184 or otherwise and

whether of a fiduciary nature or not); or

(b) any duty to the creditors of a company in the group

concerned (whether of a fiduciary nature or not);

in connection with the exercise of that power.

579A Court may vary or terminate pooling determination

(1) If a pooling determination is in force in relation to a group of 2 or

more companies, the Court may make an order varying or

terminating the pooling determination if the Court is satisfied that:

(a) information that was about the business, property, affairs or

financial circumstances of a company in the group, and that:

(i) was false or misleading; and

(ii) can reasonably be expected to have been material to

eligible unsecured creditors of a company in the group

in deciding whether to vote in favour of a resolution to

approve the making of the pooling determination;

was given to:

(iii) the liquidator of a company in the group; or

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.6 Winding up generally

Division 8 Pooling

Section 579A

490 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(iv) eligible unsecured creditors of a company in the group;

or

(b) information that was about the business, property, affairs or

financial circumstances of a company in the group, and that:

(i) was false or misleading; and

(ii) can reasonably be expected to have been material to

eligible unsecured creditors of a company in the group

in deciding whether to vote in favour of a resolution to

approve the making of the pooling determination;

was contained in a document that accompanied a notice of

the meeting at which the resolution was passed; or

(c) there was an omission from such a document, and the

omission can reasonably be expected to have been material to

any of those eligible unsecured creditors in deciding whether

to vote in favour of a resolution to approve the making of the

pooling determination; or

(d) effect cannot be given to the pooling determination without

injustice or undue delay; or

(e) the pooling determination would materially disadvantage an

eligible unsecured creditor who is an applicant for the order;

or

(f) the pooling determination would be oppressive or unfairly

prejudicial to, or unfairly discriminatory against, an applicant

for the order who is an eligible unsecured creditor of a

company in the group; or

(g) the pooling determination would be contrary to the interests

of the creditors of the companies in the group, considered as

a whole; or

(h) in a case where a company in the group is being wound up

under a members’ voluntary winding up:

(i) the pooling determination would materially

disadvantage a member of the company who is an

applicant for the order; or

(ii) the pooling determination would be oppressive or

unfairly prejudicial to, or unfairly discriminatory

against, one or more such members; or

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Winding up generally Part 5.6

Pooling Division 8

Section 579B

Corporations Act 2001 491

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(iii) the pooling determination would be contrary to the

interests of the members of the company as a whole; or

(i) the pooling determination should be varied or terminated for

some other reason.

Note: For eligible unsecured creditor, see section 579Q.

(2) An order may only be made on the application of:

(a) a creditor of a company in the group; or

(b) in a case where a company in the group is being wound up

under a members’ voluntary winding up—a member of the

company, so long as the member is not a company in the

group; or

(c) any other interested person.

(3) If the Court makes an order under subsection (1), the applicant for

the order must:

(a) lodge with ASIC a notice setting out the text of the order; and

(b) do so within 2 business days after the making of the order.

The notice must be in the prescribed form.

579B Court may cancel or confirm variation

(1) If:

(a) a pooling determination is in force in relation to a group of 2

or more companies; and

(b) the determination is varied; and

(c) the variation has come into force;

either of the following persons may apply to the Court for an order

cancelling the variation:

(d) a creditor of a company in the group;

(e) in a case where a company in the group is being wound up

under a members’ voluntary winding up—a member of the

company, so long as the member is not a company in the

group.

(2) On an application, the Court:

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.6 Winding up generally

Division 8 Pooling

Section 579C

492 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(a) may make an order cancelling the variation, or confirming it,

either wholly or in part, on such conditions (if any) as the

order specifies; and

(b) may make such other orders as it thinks appropriate.

(3) If the Court makes an order under subsection (2), the applicant for

the order must:

(a) lodge with ASIC a notice setting out the text of the order; and

(b) do so within 2 business days after the making of the order.

The notice must be in the prescribed form.

579C When Court may void or validate pooling determination

(1) If there is doubt, on a specific ground, whether a pooling

determination that relates to a group of 2 or more companies:

(a) was made, varied or approved in accordance with this

Division; or

(b) complies with this Division;

any of the following persons may apply to the Court for an order

under this section:

(c) the liquidator of a company in the group;

(d) a creditor of a company in the group;

(e) in a case where a company in the group is being wound up

under a members’ voluntary winding up—a member of the

company, so long as the member is not a company in the

group;

(f) ASIC.

(2) On an application, the Court may make an order declaring the

pooling determination, or a provision of it, to be void or not to be

void, as the case requires, on the ground specified in the

application or some other ground.

(3) On an application, the Court may declare the pooling

determination, or a provision of it, to be valid, despite a

contravention of a provision of this Division, if the Court is

satisfied that:

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Winding up generally Part 5.6

Pooling Division 8

Section 579D

Corporations Act 2001 493

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(a) the provision was substantially complied with; and

(b) no injustice will result for anyone affected by the pooling

determination if the contravention is disregarded.

(4) If the Court declares a provision of a pooling determination to be

void, the Court may, by order, vary the pooling determination.

(5) If the Court makes an order under subsection (2), the applicant for

the order must:

(a) lodge with ASIC a notice setting out the text of the order; and

(b) do so within 2 business days after the making of the order.

The notice must be in the prescribed form.

(6) If the Court makes a declaration under subsection (3), the applicant

for the declaration must:

(a) lodge with ASIC a notice setting out the text of the

declaration; and

(b) do so within 2 business days after the making of the

declaration.

The notice must be in the prescribed form.

(7) If the Court makes an order under subsection (4) on the application

of a person, the applicant for the order must:

(a) lodge with ASIC a notice setting out the text of the order; and

(b) do so within 2 business days after the making of the order.

The notice must be in the prescribed form.

579D Effect of termination or avoidance

The termination or avoidance, in whole or in part, of a pooling

determination does not affect the previous operation of:

(a) the pooling determination; or

(b) this Division in so far as it relates to the pooling

determination.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.6 Winding up generally

Division 8 Pooling

Section 579E

494 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Subdivision B—Pooling orders

579E Pooling orders

Making of pooling order

(1) If it appears to the Court that the following conditions are satisfied

in relation to a group of 2 or more companies:

(a) each company in the group is being wound up;

(b) any of the following subparagraphs applies:

(i) each company in the group is a related body corporate

of each other company in the group;

(ii) apart from this section, the companies in the group are

jointly liable for one or more debts or claims;

(iii) the companies in the group jointly own or operate

particular property that is or was used, or for use, in

connection with a business, a scheme, or an

undertaking, carried on jointly by the companies in the

group;

(iv) one or more companies in the group own particular

property that is or was used, or for use, by any or all of

the companies in the group in connection with a

business, a scheme, or an undertaking, carried on jointly

by the companies in the group;

the Court may, if the Court is satisfied that it is just and equitable

to do so, by order, determine that the group is a pooled group for

the purposes of this section.

Note 1: Section 9 provides that pooling order means an order under

subsection (1) of this section.

Note 2: See also subsection (12) (just and equitable criteria).

Consequences of pooling order

(2) If a pooling order comes into force in relation to a group of 2 or

more companies:

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Winding up generally Part 5.6

Pooling Division 8

Section 579E

Corporations Act 2001 495

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(a) each company in the group is taken to be jointly and

severally liable for each debt payable by, and each claim

against, each other company in the group; and

(b) each debt payable by a company or companies in the group

to any other company or companies in the group is

extinguished; and

(c) each claim that a company or companies in the group has

against any other company or companies in the group is

extinguished.

Note: For exemptions, see paragraph 579G(1)(a).

(3) Subsection (2) applies to a debt or claim:

(a) whether present or future; and

(b) whether certain or contingent; and

(c) whether ascertained or sounding only in damages.

(4) Subsection (2) does not apply to a debt payable by, or a claim

against, a company in the group unless the debt or claim is

admissible to proof against the company.

(5) If a pooling order comes into force in relation to a group of 2 or

more companies, the order of priority applicable under

sections 556, 560 and 561 is not altered for a company in the

group.

(6) If:

(a) a pooling order comes into force in relation to a group of 2 or

more companies; and

(b) a secured creditor of a company in the group surrenders the

relevant security interest to the liquidator of the company for

the benefit of creditors of the companies in the group

generally;

the debt may be recovered as a debt that is jointly and severally

payable by the companies in the group.

(7) If:

(a) a pooling order comes into force in relation to a group of 2 or

more companies; and

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.6 Winding up generally

Division 8 Pooling

Section 579E

496 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(b) a secured creditor of a company in the group realises the

security interest;

so much of the debt as remains after deducting the net amount

realised may be recovered as a debt that is jointly and severally

payable by the companies in the group.

(8) The following provisions have effect subject to any modifications

under paragraph 579G(1)(d):

(a) subsection (2);

(b) subsection (3);

(c) subsection (4);

(d) subsection (5);

(e) subsection (6);

(f) subsection (7).

(9) Subsection (2) does not apply in relation to a secured creditor

unless the relevant debt is payable by a company or companies in

the group to any other company or companies in the group.

(10) The Court must not make a pooling order in relation to a group of 2

or more companies if:

(a) both:

(i) the Court is satisfied the order would materially

disadvantage an eligible unsecured creditor of a

company in the group; and

(ii) the eligible unsecured creditor has not consented to the

making of the order; or

(b) all of the following conditions are satisfied:

(i) a company in the group is being wound up under a

members’ voluntary winding up;

(ii) the Court is satisfied that the order would materially

disadvantage a member of that company;

(iii) the member is not a company in the group;

(iv) the member has not consented to the making of the

order.

Note: For eligible unsecured creditor, see section 579Q.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Winding up generally Part 5.6

Pooling Division 8

Section 579E

Corporations Act 2001 497

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Standing

(11) The Court may only make a pooling order on the application of the

liquidator or liquidators of the companies in the group.

Just and equitable criteria

(12) In determining whether it is just and equitable to make a pooling

order, the Court must have regard to all of the following matters:

(a) the extent to which:

(i) a company in the group; and

(ii) the officers or employees of a company in the group;

were involved in the management or operations of any of the

other companies in the group;

(b) the conduct of:

(i) a company in the group; and

(ii) the officers or employees of a company in the group;

towards the creditors of any of the other companies in the

group;

(c) the extent to which the circumstances that gave rise to the

winding up of any of the companies in the group are directly

or indirectly attributable to the acts or omissions of:

(i) any of the other companies in the group; or

(ii) the officers or employees of any of the other companies

in the group;

(d) the extent to which the activities and business of the

companies in the group have been intermingled;

(e) the extent to which creditors of any of the companies in the

group may be advantaged or disadvantaged by the making of

the order;

(f) any other relevant matters.

Lodgment of pooling order

(13) A pooling order must be lodged with ASIC.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.6 Winding up generally

Division 8 Pooling

Section 579F

498 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

579F Variation of pooling orders

(1) The Court may, by order, vary a pooling order if the Court is of the

opinion that it is just and equitable to do so.

(2) A pooling order may only be varied on the application of:

(a) the liquidator of a company in the group; or

(b) a creditor of a company in the group; or

(c) in a case where a company in the group is being wound up

under a members’ voluntary winding up—a member of the

company, so long as the member is not a company in the

group.

Lodgment of order

(3) An order under subsection (1) must be lodged with ASIC.

579G Court may make ancillary orders etc.

(1) If the Court makes a pooling order in relation to a group of 2 or

more companies, the Court may, if the Court is of the opinion that

it is just and equitable to do so, do any or all of the following

things:

(a) by order, exempt:

(i) a specified debt or claim; or

(ii) a specified class of debts or claims;

from the application of subsection 579E(2) to the group;

(b) by order, transfer, or direct the transfer, of:

(i) specified property; or

(ii) a specified class of property;

from a company in the group to another company in the

group;

(c) by order, transfer, or direct the transfer, of liability for:

(i) a specified debt or claim; or

(ii) a specified class of debts or claims;

from a company in the group to another company in the

group;

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Winding up generally Part 5.6

Pooling Division 8

Section 579G

Corporations Act 2001 499

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(d) by order, modify the application of this Act in relation to the

winding up of the companies in the group;

(e) make such other orders, and give such directions, in relation

to the winding up of the companies in the group, as the Court

thinks fit.

Standing

(2) An order or direction under subsection (1) may only be made or

given on the application of:

(a) the liquidator of a company in the group; or

(b) a creditor of a company in the group; or

(c) in a case where a company in the group is being wound up

under a members’ voluntary winding up—a member of the

company, so long as the member is not a company in the

group.

Conditional orders etc.

(3) An order or direction under subsection (1) may be made or given

subject to conditions.

(4) An order or direction under subsection (1) may provide for

different returns for different creditors or classes of creditors.

(5) An order or direction under subsection (1) may provide for the

subordination of the debts and claims of specified creditors or

classes of creditors to those of other creditors.

(6) Subsections (4) and (5) do not limit subsection (1) or (3).

Rights of secured creditors

(7) An order or direction under subsection (1) does not affect the rights

of a secured creditor, unless the relevant debt is payable by a

company or companies in the group to any other company or

companies in the group.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.6 Winding up generally

Division 8 Pooling

Section 579H

500 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Lodgment of order or direction

(8) An order or direction under subsection (1) must be lodged with

ASIC.

579H Variation of ancillary orders etc.

Variation of ancillary order

(1) The Court may, by order, vary an order made under

subsection 579G(1) if the Court is of the opinion that it is just and

equitable to do so.

(2) An order made under subsection 579G(1) may only be varied on

the application of:

(a) the liquidator of a company in the group; or

(b) a creditor of a company in the group, so long as the creditor

is not a company in the group; or

(c) in a case where a company in the group is being wound up

under a members’ voluntary winding up—a member of the

company, so long as the member is not a company in the

group.

Variation of direction

(3) The Court may vary a direction given under subsection 579G(1) if

the Court is of the opinion that it is just and equitable to do so.

(4) A direction given under subsection 579G(1) may only be varied on

the application of:

(a) the liquidator of a company in the group; or

(b) a creditor of a company in the group; or

(c) in a case where a company in the group is being wound up

under a members’ voluntary winding up—a member of the

company, so long as the member is not a company in the

group.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Winding up generally Part 5.6

Pooling Division 8

Section 579J

Corporations Act 2001 501

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Lodgment of order or direction

(5) An order under subsection (1) must be lodged with ASIC.

(6) A variation of a direction given under subsection 579G(1) must be

lodged with ASIC.

579J Notice of application for pooling order etc.

(1) If the liquidator or liquidators of the companies in a group apply

for a pooling order, the liquidator or liquidators must give written

notice of:

(a) the application; or

(b) a website where persons can view a copy of the application;

to:

(c) each eligible unsecured creditor of each company in the

group; and

(d) in a case where a company in the group is being wound up

under a members’ voluntary winding up—each member of

the company, so long as the member is not a company in the

group; and

(e) such other persons (if any) as the Court directs.

Note 1: For eligible unsecured creditor, see section 579Q.

Note 2: For electronic notification under this subsection, see section 600G.

(2) If:

(a) a pooling order is made in relation to a group of 2 or more

companies; and

(b) the liquidator of a company in the group applies for:

(i) an order under subsection 579F(1); or

(ii) an order under subsection 579G(1); or

(iii) an order under subsection 579H(1); or

(iv) a direction under subsection 579G(1); or

(v) a variation of a direction given under

subsection 579G(1);

the liquidator must give written notice of:

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.6 Winding up generally

Division 8 Pooling

Section 579K

502 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(c) the application; or

(d) a website where persons can view a copy of the application;

to:

(e) each eligible unsecured creditor of each company in the

group; and

(f) in a case where a company in the group is being wound up

under a members’ voluntary winding up—each member of

the company, so long as the member is not a company in the

group; and

(g) such other persons (if any) as the Court directs.

Note 1: For eligible unsecured creditor, see section 579Q.

Note 2: For electronic notification under this subsection, see section 600G.

579K Notice of pooling order etc.

Notice of pooling order

(1) If a pooling order is made in relation to a group of 2 or more

companies, the liquidator or liquidators of the companies in the

group must:

(a) give each eligible unsecured creditor of each company in the

group a written notice setting out:

(i) the order; and

(ii) a summary description of the order; or

(b) give each eligible unsecured creditor of each company in the

group a written notice of a website where persons can view a

copy of:

(i) the order; and

(ii) a summary description of the order.

Note 1: For eligible unsecured creditor, see section 579Q.

Note 2: For electronic notification under this subsection, see section 600G.

(2) If:

(a) a pooling order is made in relation to a group of 2 or more

companies; and

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Winding up generally Part 5.6

Pooling Division 8

Section 579K

Corporations Act 2001 503

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(b) a company in the group is being wound up under a members’

voluntary winding up;

the liquidator or liquidators of the companies in the group must:

(c) give each member of that company a written notice setting

out:

(i) the order; and

(ii) a summary description of the order;

so long as the member is not a company in the group; or

(d) give each member of that company a written notice of a

website where persons can view a copy of:

(i) the order; and

(ii) a summary description of the order;

so long as the member is not a company in the group.

Note: For electronic notification under this subsection, see section 600G.

Notice of application by liquidator

(3) If:

(a) a pooling order is made in relation to a group of 2 or more

companies; and

(b) the Court does any of the following on the application of a

liquidator of a company in the group:

(i) makes an order under subsection 579F(1);

(ii) makes an order under subsection 579G(1);

(iii) makes an order under subsection 579H(1);

(iv) gives a direction under subsection 579G(1);

(v) varies a direction given under subsection 579G(1);

the liquidator must:

(c) give each eligible unsecured creditor of each company in the

group a written notice setting out:

(i) the order, direction or variation; and

(ii) a summary description of the order, direction or

variation; or

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.6 Winding up generally

Division 8 Pooling

Section 579K

504 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(d) give each eligible unsecured creditor of each company in the

group a written notice of a website where persons can view a

copy of:

(i) the order, direction or variation; and

(ii) a summary description of the order, direction or

variation.

Note 1: For eligible unsecured creditor, see section 579Q.

Note 2: For electronic notification under this subsection, see section 600G.

(4) If:

(a) a pooling order is made in relation to a group of 2 or more

companies; and

(b) the Court does any of the following on the application of a

liquidator of a company in the group:

(i) makes an order under subsection 579F(1);

(ii) makes an order under subsection 579G(1);

(iii) makes an order under subsection 579H(1);

(iv) gives a direction under subsection 579G(1);

(v) varies a direction given under subsection 579G(1); and

(c) a company in the group is being wound up under a members’

voluntary winding up;

the liquidator must:

(d) give each member of that company a written notice setting

out:

(i) the order, direction or variation; and

(ii) a summary description of the order, direction or

variation;

so long as the member is not a company in the group; or

(e) give each member of that company a written notice of a

website where persons can view a copy of:

(i) the order, direction or variation; and

(ii) a summary description of the order, direction or

variation;

so long as the member is not a company in the group.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Winding up generally Part 5.6

Pooling Division 8

Section 579L

Corporations Act 2001 505

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Note: For electronic notification under this subsection, see section 600G.

579L Consolidated meetings of creditors

(1) If:

(a) either:

(i) a pooling determination is in force in relation to a group

of 2 or more companies; or

(ii) a pooling order is in force in relation to a group of 2 or

more companies; and

(b) each company in the group is being wound up;

then, unless the Court otherwise orders:

(c) instead of convening separate meetings under or for the

purposes of a particular provision of this Act, the liquidator

or liquidators may convene a meeting under or for the

purposes of that provision, on a consolidated basis, of the

creditors of the companies in the group; and

(d) a resolution passed at a consolidated meeting by those

creditors is taken to have been passed by the creditors of each

of the companies in the group; and

(e) if there are 2 or more liquidators—one of those liquidators is

to preside at a consolidated meeting; and

(f) notice of a consolidated meeting may be given by the

liquidator or liquidators.

Note: See also Division 80 (committees of inspection) of Schedule 2.

(2) The regulations may make provision for or in relation to:

(a) the convening of, conduct of, and procedure and voting at,

consolidated meetings of creditors; and

(b) the number of persons required to constitute a quorum at any

such meeting; and

(c) the sending of notices of meetings to persons entitled to

attend any such meeting; and

(d) the lodging of copies of notices of, and of resolutions passed

at, any such meeting; and

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.6 Winding up generally

Division 8 Pooling

Section 579M

506 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(e) generally regulating the conduct of, and procedure at, any

such meeting.

Subdivision C—Other provisions

579M When debts or claims are provable in winding up

If a debt or claim becomes a debt payable by, or a claim against, a

company under any of the following provisions:

(a) subsection 571(2) (including that subsection as modified by a

determination under paragraph 571(1)(d));

(b) subsection 571(6) (including that subsection as modified by a

determination under paragraph 571(1)(d));

(c) subsection 571(7) (including that subsection as modified by a

determination under paragraph 571(1)(d));

(d) subsection 579E(2) (including that subsection as modified by

an order under paragraph 579G(1)(d));

(e) subsection 579E(6) (including that subsection as modified by

an order under paragraph 579G(1)(d));

(f) subsection 579E(7) (including that subsection as modified by

an order under paragraph 579G(1)(d));

(g) subsection 579G(1);

then, in the winding up of the company, the debt or claim is

admissible to proof against the company.

579N Group of companies

To avoid doubt, for the purposes of:

(a) this Division; or

(b) any other provision of this Act to the extent to which it

relates to this Division;

a group of 2 or more companies need not be associated with each

other in any way (other than a way described in

paragraph 571(1)(b) or 579E(1)(b)).

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Winding up generally Part 5.6

Pooling Division 8

Section 579P

Corporations Act 2001 507

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

579P Secured debt may become unsecured

For the purposes of this Division, a secured debt becomes an

unsecured debt to the extent that the creditor proves for the debt as

an unsecured creditor.

579Q Eligible unsecured creditor

(1) Subject to subsection (2), for the purposes of the application of this

Division to a group of 2 or more companies, a creditor of a

company in the group is an eligible unsecured creditor of that

company if:

(a) both:

(i) the creditor’s debt or claim is unsecured; and

(ii) the creditor is not a company in the group; or

(b) the creditor is specified in the regulations.

Note: For specification by class, see subsection 13(3) of the Legislative

Instruments Act 2003.

(2) The regulations may provide that, for the purposes of the

application of this Division to a group of 2 or more companies, a

specified creditor of a company in the group is not an eligible

unsecured creditor of that company.

Note: For specification by class, see subsection 13(3) of the Legislative

Instruments Act 2003.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.6 Winding up generally

Division 9 Co-operation between Australian and foreign courts in external

administration matters

Section 580

508 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Division 9—Co-operation between Australian and foreign

courts in external administration matters

580 Definitions

In this Division:

external administration matter means a matter relating to:

(a) winding up, under this Chapter, a company or a Part 5.7

body; or

(b) winding up, outside Australia, a body corporate or a Part 5.7

body; or

(c) the insolvency of a body corporate or of a Part 5.7 body.

prescribed country means:

(a) a country prescribed for the purposes of this definition; or

(b) a colony, overseas territory or protectorate of a country so

prescribed.

581 Courts to act in aid of each other

(1) All courts having jurisdiction in matters arising under this Act, the

Judges of those courts and the officers of, or under the control of,

those courts must severally act in aid of, and be auxiliary to, each

other in all external administration matters.

(2) In all external administration matters, the Court:

(a) must act in aid of, and be auxiliary to, the courts of:

(i) external Territories; and

(ii) States that are not in this jurisdiction; and

(iii) prescribed countries;

that have jurisdiction in external administration matters; and

(b) may act in aid of, and be auxiliary to, the courts of other

countries that have jurisdiction in external administration

matters.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Winding up generally Part 5.6

Co-operation between Australian and foreign courts in external administration matters

Division 9

Section 581

Corporations Act 2001 509

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(3) Where a letter of request from a court of an external Territory, or

of a country other than Australia, requesting aid in an external

administration matter is filed in the Court, the Court may exercise

such powers with respect to the matter as it could exercise if the

matter had arisen in its own jurisdiction.

(4) The Court may request a court of an external Territory, or of a

country other than Australia, that has jurisdiction in external

administration matters to act in aid of, and be auxiliary to, it in an

external administration matter.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.7 Winding up bodies other than companies

Section 582

510 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Part 5.7—Winding up bodies other than companies

582 Application of Part

(1) This Part has effect in addition to, and not in derogation of,

sections 601CC and 601CL and any provisions contained in this

Act or any other law with respect to the winding up of bodies, and

the liquidator or Court may exercise any powers or do any act in

the case of Part 5.7 bodies that might be exercised or done by him,

her or it in the winding up of companies.

(2) Nothing in this Part affects the operation of the Bankruptcy Act

1966.

(3) A Part 5.7 body may be wound up under this Part notwithstanding

that it is being wound up or has been dissolved, deregistered or has

otherwise ceased to exist as a body corporate under or by virtue of

the laws of the place under which it was incorporated.

583 Winding up Part 5.7 bodies

Subject to this Part, a Part 5.7 body may be wound up under this

Chapter and this Chapter applies accordingly to a Part 5.7 body

with such adaptations as are necessary, including the following

adaptations:

(a) the principal place of business of a Part 5.7 body in this

jurisdiction is taken, for all the purposes of the winding up, to

be the registered office of the Part 5.7 body;

(b) a Part 5.7 body is not to be wound up voluntarily under this

Chapter;

(c) the circumstances in which a Part 5.7 body may be wound up

are as follows:

(i) if the Part 5.7 body is unable to pay its debts, has been

dissolved or deregistered, has ceased to carry on

business in this jurisdiction or has a place of business in

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Winding up bodies other than companies Part 5.7

Section 585

Corporations Act 2001 511

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

this jurisdiction only for the purpose of winding up its

affairs;

(ii) if the Court is of opinion that it is just and equitable that

the Part 5.7 body should be wound up;

(iii) if ASIC has stated in a report prepared under Division 1

of Part 3 of the ASIC Act that, in its opinion:

(A) the Part 5.7 body cannot pay its debts and

should be wound up; or

(B) it is in the interests of the public, of the

members, or of the creditors, that the Part 5.7

body should be wound up;

(d) if the Part 5.7 body is a registrable Australian body—the

winding up must deal only with the affairs of the body

outside its place of origin.

585 Insolvency of Part 5.7 body

For the purposes of this Part, a Part 5.7 body is taken to be unable

to pay its debts if:

(a) a creditor, by assignment or otherwise, to whom the Part 5.7

body is indebted in a sum exceeding the statutory minimum

then due has served on the Part 5.7 body, by leaving at its

principal place of business in this jurisdiction or by

delivering to the secretary or a director or senior manager of

the Part 5.7 body or by otherwise serving in such manner as

the Court approves or directs, a demand, signed by or on

behalf of the creditor, requiring the body to pay the sum so

due and the body has, for 3 weeks after the service of the

demand, failed to pay the sum or to secure or compound for

it to the satisfaction of the creditor; or

(b) an action or other proceeding has been instituted against any

member for any debt or demand due or claimed to be due

from the Part 5.7 body or from the member as such and,

notice in writing of the institution of the action or proceeding

having been served on the body by leaving it at its principal

place of business in this jurisdiction or by delivering it to the

secretary or a director or senior manager of the Part 5.7 body

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.7 Winding up bodies other than companies

Section 586

512 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

or by otherwise serving it in such manner as the Court

approves or directs, the Part 5.7 body has not, within 10 days

after service of the notice, paid, secured or compounded for

the debt or demand or procured the action or proceeding to be

stayed or indemnified the defendant to his, her or its

reasonable satisfaction against the action or proceeding and

against all costs, damages and expenses to be incurred by

him, her or it by reason of the action or proceeding; or

(c) execution or other process issued on a judgment, decree or

order obtained in a court (whether an Australian court or not)

in favour of a creditor against the Part 5.7 body or a member

of the Part 5.7 body as such, or a person authorised to be

sued as nominal defendant on behalf of the Part 5.7 body, is

returned unsatisfied; or

(d) it is otherwise proved to the satisfaction of the Court that the

Part 5.7 body is unable to pay its debts.

586 Contributories in winding up of Part 5.7 body

(1) On a Part 5.7 body being wound up, every person who:

(a) in any case—is liable to pay or contribute to the payment of:

(i) a debt or liability of the Part 5.7 body; or

(ii) any sum for the adjustment of the rights of the members

among themselves; or

(iii) the costs and expenses of winding up; or

(b) if the Part 5.7 body has been dissolved or deregistered in its

place of origin—was so liable immediately before the

dissolution or deregistration;

is a contributory and every contributory is liable to contribute to

the property of the Part 5.7 body all sums due from the

contributory in respect of any such liability.

(2) On the death or bankruptcy of a contributory, the provisions of this

Act with respect to the personal representatives of deceased

contributories or the assignees and trustees of bankrupt

contributories, as the case may be, apply.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Winding up bodies other than companies Part 5.7

Section 587

Corporations Act 2001 513

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

587 Power of Court to stay or restrain proceedings

(1) The provisions of this Act with respect to staying and restraining

actions and other civil proceedings against a company at any time

after the filing of an application for winding up and before the

making of a winding up order extend, in the case of a Part 5.7 body

where the application to stay or restrain is by a creditor, to actions

and other civil proceedings against a contributory of the Part 5.7

body.

(2) Where an order has been made for winding up a Part 5.7 body, no

action or other civil proceeding is to be proceeded with or

commenced against a contributory of the Part 5.7 body in respect

of a debt of the Part 5.7 body except by leave of the Court and

subject to such terms as the Court imposes.

588 Outstanding property of defunct registrable body

(1) This section applies if, after the dissolution or deregistration of a

registrable body, outstanding property of the body remains:

(a) in this jurisdiction; and

(b) outside the body’s place of origin.

(2) The estate and interest in the property, at law or in equity, of the

body or its liquidator at that time, together with all claims, rights

and remedies that the body or its liquidator then had in respect of

the property, vests by force of this section in:

(a) if the body was incorporated in Australia or an external

Territory—the person entitled to the property under the law

of the body’s place of origin; or

(b) if paragraph (a) does not apply and the property was held by

the body or liquidator on trust—the Commonwealth; or

(c) otherwise—ASIC.

(3) Where any claim, right or remedy of a liquidator may under this

Act be made, exercised or availed of only with the approval or

concurrence of the Court or some other person, the Commonwealth

or ASIC may, for the purposes of this section, make, exercise or

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.7 Winding up bodies other than companies

Section 588

514 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

avail itself of the claim, right or remedy without such approval or

concurrence.

(4) Section 601AE applies to:

(a) property that vests in the Commonwealth under

paragraph (2)(b) of this section as if the property were vested

in the Commonwealth under subsection 601AD(1A); and

(b) property that vests in ASIC under paragraph (2)(c) of this

section as if the property were vested in ASIC under

subsection 601AD(2).

(5) In this section:

property of a body includes PPSA retention of title property, if the

security interest in the property is vested in the body because of the

operation of any of the following provisions:

(a) section 267 or 267A of the Personal Property Securities Act

2009 (property subject to unperfected security interests);

(b) section 588FL of this Act (collateral not registered within

time).

Note: See sections 9 (definition of property) and 51F (PPSA retention of

title property).

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Recovering property or compensation for the benefit of creditors of insolvent company

Part 5.7B

Preliminary Division 1

Section 588C

Corporations Act 2001 515

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Part 5.7B—Recovering property or compensation

for the benefit of creditors of insolvent

company

Division 1—Preliminary

588C Definitions

In this Part:

property of a company includes PPSA retention of title property, if

the security interest in the property is vested in the company

because of the operation of any of the following provisions:

(a) section 267 or 267A of the Personal Property Securities Act

2009 (property subject to unperfected security interests);

(b) section 588FL of this Act (collateral not registered within

time).

Note: See sections 9 (definition of property) and 51F (PPSA retention of

title property).

588D Secured debt may become unsecured

For the purposes of this Part, a secured debt becomes an unsecured

debt to the extent that the creditor proves for the debt as an

unsecured creditor.

588E Presumptions to be made in recovery proceedings

(1) In this section:

recovery proceeding, in relation to a company, means:

(a) an application under section 588FF by the company’s

liquidator; or

(b) proceedings begun under subsection 588FH(2) by the

company’s liquidator; or

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.7B Recovering property or compensation for the benefit of creditors of insolvent

company

Division 1 Preliminary

Section 588E

516 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(c) proceedings, in so far as they relate to the question whether a

security interest created by the company is void to any

extent, as against the company’s liquidator, because of

subsection 588FJ(2); or

(d) proceedings begun under subsection 588FJ(6) by the

company’s liquidator; or

(e) proceedings for a contravention of subsection 588G(2) in

relation to the incurring of a debt by the company (including

proceedings under section 588M in relation to the incurring

of the debt but not including proceedings for an offence); or

(f) proceedings under section 588W in relation to the incurring

of a debt by the company.

(2) Subsections (3) to (9), inclusive, have effect for the purposes of a

recovery proceeding in relation to a company.

(3) If:

(a) the company is being wound up; and

(b) it is proved, or because of subsection (4) or (8) it must be

presumed, that the company was insolvent at a particular

time during the 12 months ending on the relation-back day;

it must be presumed that the company was insolvent throughout the

period beginning at that time and ending on that day.

(4) Subject to subsections (5) to (7), if it is proved that the company:

(a) has failed to keep financial records in relation to a period as

required by subsection 286(1); or

(b) has failed to retain financial records in relation to a period for

the 7 years required by subsection 286(2);

the company is to be presumed to have been insolvent throughout

the period.

(5) Paragraph (4)(a) does not apply in relation to a contravention of

subsection 286(1) that is only minor or technical.

(6) Subsection (4) does not have effect, in so far as it would prejudice

a right or interest of a person for the company to be presumed

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Recovering property or compensation for the benefit of creditors of insolvent company

Part 5.7B

Preliminary Division 1

Section 588E

Corporations Act 2001 517

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

insolvent because of a contravention of subsection 286(2), if it is

proved that:

(a) the contravention was due solely to someone destroying,

concealing or removing financial records of the company;

and

(b) none of those financial records was destroyed, concealed or

removed by the first-mentioned person; and

(c) the person was not in any way, by act or omission, directly or

indirectly, knowingly or recklessly, concerned in, or party to,

destroying, concealing or removing any of those financial

records.

(7) If the recovery proceeding is an application under section 588FF,

subsection (4) of this section does not have effect for the purposes

of proving, for the purposes of the application, that an unfair

preference given by the company to a creditor of the company is an

insolvent transaction, unless it is proved, for the purposes of the

application, that a related entity of the company was a party to the

unfair preference.

(8) If, for the purposes of another recovery proceeding in relation to

the company, there has been proved:

(a) if the other proceeding is of the kind referred to in

paragraph (1)(a) of this section—a matter of the kind referred

to in a paragraph of section 588FC or of

subsection 588FG(2); or

(b) if the other proceeding is of the kind referred to in

paragraph (1)(b) of this section—a matter of the kind referred

to in a paragraph of section 588FC or of subsection 588FG(2)

or 588FH(1), or a defence under subsection 588FH(3); or

(c) if the other proceeding is of the kind referred to in

paragraph (1)(c) or (d) of this section—a matter of the kind

referred to in subsection 588FJ(3); or

(d) if the other proceeding is of the kind referred to in

paragraph (1)(e) of this section—a matter of the kind referred

to in a paragraph of section 588G, or a defence under

section 588H; or

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.7B Recovering property or compensation for the benefit of creditors of insolvent

company

Division 1 Preliminary

Section 588F

518 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(e) if the other proceeding is of the kind referred to in

paragraph (1)(f) of this section—a matter of the kind referred

to in a paragraph of subsection 588V(1), or a defence under

section 588X;

it must be presumed that that matter was the case, or that the

matters constituting that defence were the case.

(9) A presumption for which this section provides operates except so

far as the contrary is proved for the purposes of the proceeding

concerned.

588F Certain taxation liabilities taken to be debts

(1) For the purposes of this Part, a company’s liability under a

remittance provision to pay to the Commissioner of Taxation an

amount equal to a deduction made by the company, after 1 July

1993, from a payment:

(a) is taken to be a debt; and

(b) is taken to have been incurred when the deduction was made.

(2) In this section:

remittance provision means any of the following former provisions

of the Income Tax Assessment Act 1936:

(aa) section 220AAE, 220AAM or 220AAR;

(a) section 221F (except subsection 221F(12)) or section 221G

(except subsection 221G(4A));

(b) subsection 221YHDC(2);

(c) subsection 221YHZD(1) or (1A);

(d) subsection 221YN(1);

or any of the provisions of Subdivision 16-B in Schedule 1 to the

Taxation Administration Act 1953.

(3) This section is not intended to limit the generality of a reference in

this Act to a debt or to incurring a debt.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Recovering property or compensation for the benefit of creditors of insolvent company

Part 5.7B

Voidable transactions Division 2

Section 588FA

Corporations Act 2001 519

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Division 2—Voidable transactions

588FA Unfair preferences

(1) A transaction is an unfair preference given by a company to a

creditor of the company if, and only if:

(a) the company and the creditor are parties to the transaction

(even if someone else is also a party); and

(b) the transaction results in the creditor receiving from the

company, in respect of an unsecured debt that the company

owes to the creditor, more than the creditor would receive

from the company in respect of the debt if the transaction

were set aside and the creditor were to prove for the debt in a

winding up of the company;

even if the transaction is entered into, is given effect to, or is

required to be given effect to, because of an order of an Australian

court or a direction by an agency.

(2) For the purposes of subsection (1), a secured debt is taken to be

unsecured to the extent of so much of it (if any) as is not reflected

in the value of the security.

(3) Where:

(a) a transaction is, for commercial purposes, an integral part of

a continuing business relationship (for example, a running

account) between a company and a creditor of the company

(including such a relationship to which other persons are

parties); and

(b) in the course of the relationship, the level of the company’s

net indebtedness to the creditor is increased and reduced from

time to time as the result of a series of transactions forming

part of the relationship;

then:

(c) subsection (1) applies in relation to all the transactions

forming part of the relationship as if they together constituted

a single transaction; and

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.7B Recovering property or compensation for the benefit of creditors of insolvent

company

Division 2 Voidable transactions

Section 588FB

520 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(d) the transaction referred to in paragraph (a) may only be taken

to be an unfair preference given by the company to the

creditor if, because of subsection (1) as applying because of

paragraph (c) of this subsection, the single transaction

referred to in the last-mentioned paragraph is taken to be

such an unfair preference.

588FB Uncommercial transactions

(1) A transaction of a company is an uncommercial transaction of the

company if, and only if, it may be expected that a reasonable

person in the company’s circumstances would not have entered

into the transaction, having regard to:

(a) the benefits (if any) to the company of entering into the

transaction; and

(b) the detriment to the company of entering into the transaction;

and

(c) the respective benefits to other parties to the transaction of

entering into it; and

(d) any other relevant matter.

(2) A transaction may be an uncommercial transaction of a company

because of subsection (1):

(a) whether or not a creditor of the company is a party to the

transaction; and

(b) even if the transaction is given effect to, or is required to be

given effect to, because of an order of an Australian court or

a direction by an agency.

588FC Insolvent transactions

A transaction of a company is an insolvent transaction of the

company if, and only if, it is an unfair preference given by the

company, or an uncommercial transaction of the company, and:

(a) any of the following happens at a time when the company is

insolvent:

(i) the transaction is entered into; or

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Recovering property or compensation for the benefit of creditors of insolvent company

Part 5.7B

Voidable transactions Division 2

Section 588FD

Corporations Act 2001 521

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(ii) an act is done, or an omission is made, for the purpose

of giving effect to the transaction; or

(b) the company becomes insolvent because of, or because of

matters including:

(i) entering into the transaction; or

(ii) a person doing an act, or making an omission, for the

purpose of giving effect to the transaction.

588FD Unfair loans to a company

(1) A loan to a company is unfair if, and only if:

(a) the interest on the loan was extortionate when the loan was

made, or has since become extortionate because of a

variation; or

(b) the charges in relation to the loan were extortionate when the

loan was made, or have since become extortionate because of

a variation;

even if the interest is, or the charges are, no longer extortionate.

(2) In determining:

(a) whether interest on a loan was or became extortionate at a

particular time as mentioned in paragraph (1)(a); or

(b) whether charges in relation to a loan were or became

extortionate at a particular time as mentioned in

paragraph (1)(b);

regard is to be had to the following matters as at that time:

(c) the risk to which the lender was exposed; and

(d) the value of any security in respect of the loan; and

(e) the term of the loan; and

(f) the schedule for payments of interest and charges and for

repayments of principal; and

(g) the amount of the loan; and

(h) any other relevant matter.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.7B Recovering property or compensation for the benefit of creditors of insolvent

company

Division 2 Voidable transactions

Section 588FDA

522 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

588FDA Unreasonable director-related transactions

(1) A transaction of a company is an unreasonable director-related

transaction of the company if, and only if:

(a) the transaction is:

(i) a payment made by the company; or

(ii) a conveyance, transfer or other disposition by the

company of property of the company; or

(iii) the issue of securities by the company; or

(iv) the incurring by the company of an obligation to make

such a payment, disposition or issue; and

(b) the payment, disposition or issue is, or is to be, made to:

(i) a director of the company; or

(ii) a close associate of a director of the company; or

(iii) a person on behalf of, or for the benefit of, a person

mentioned in subparagraph (i) or (ii); and

(c) it may be expected that a reasonable person in the company’s

circumstances would not have entered into the transaction,

having regard to:

(i) the benefits (if any) to the company of entering into the

transaction; and

(ii) the detriment to the company of entering into the

transaction; and

(iii) the respective benefits to other parties to the transaction

of entering into it; and

(iv) any other relevant matter.

The obligation referred to in subparagraph (a)(iv) may be a

contingent obligation.

Note: Subparagraph (a)(iv)—This would include, for example, granting

options over shares in the company.

(2) To avoid doubt, if:

(a) the transaction is a payment, disposition or issue; and

(b) the transaction is entered into for the purpose of meeting an

obligation the company has incurred;

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Recovering property or compensation for the benefit of creditors of insolvent company

Part 5.7B

Voidable transactions Division 2

Section 588FE

Corporations Act 2001 523

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

the test in paragraph (1)(c) applies to the transaction taking into

account the circumstances as they exist at the time when the

transaction is entered into (rather than as they existed at the time

when the obligation was incurred).

(3) A transaction may be an unreasonable director-related transaction

because of subsection (1):

(a) whether or not a creditor of the company is a party to the

transaction; and

(b) even if the transaction is given effect to, or is required to be

given effect to, because of an order of an Australian court or

a direction by an agency.

588FE Voidable transactions

(1) If a company is being wound up:

(a) a transaction of the company may be voidable because of any

one or more of subsections (2) to (6) if the transaction was

entered into on or after 23 June 1993; and

(b) a transaction of the company may be voidable because of

subsection (6A) if the transaction was entered into on or after

the commencement of the Corporations Amendment

(Repayment of Directors’ Bonuses) Act 2003.

(2) The transaction is voidable if:

(a) it is an insolvent transaction of the company; and

(b) it was entered into, or an act was done for the purpose of

giving effect to it:

(i) during the 6 months ending on the relation-back day; or

(ii) after that day but on or before the day when the winding

up began.

(2A) The transaction is voidable if:

(a) the transaction is:

(i) an uncommercial transaction of the company; or

(ii) an unfair preference given by the company to a creditor

of the company; or

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.7B Recovering property or compensation for the benefit of creditors of insolvent

company

Division 2 Voidable transactions

Section 588FE

524 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(iii) an unfair loan to the company; or

(iv) an unreasonable director-related transaction of the

company; and

(b) the company was under administration immediately before:

(i) the company resolved by special resolution that it be

wound up voluntarily; or

(ii) the Court ordered that the company be wound up; and

(c) the transaction was entered into, or an act was done for the

purpose of giving effect to it, during the period beginning at

the start of the relation-back day and ending:

(i) when the company made the special resolution that it be

wound up voluntarily; or

(ii) when the Court made the order that the company be

wound up; and

(d) the transaction, or the act done for the purpose of giving

effect to it, was not entered into, or done, on behalf of the

company by, or under the authority of, the administrator of

the company.

(2B) The transaction is voidable if:

(a) the transaction is:

(i) an uncommercial transaction of the company; or

(ii) an unfair preference given by the company to a creditor

of the company; or

(iii) an unfair loan to the company; or

(iv) an unreasonable director-related transaction of the

company; and

(b) the company was subject to a deed of company arrangement

immediately before:

(i) the company resolved by special resolution that it be

wound up voluntarily; or

(ii) the Court ordered that the company be wound up; and

(c) the transaction was entered into, or an act was done for the

purpose of giving effect to it, during the period beginning at

the start of the relation-back day and ending:

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Recovering property or compensation for the benefit of creditors of insolvent company

Part 5.7B

Voidable transactions Division 2

Section 588FE

Corporations Act 2001 525

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(i) when the company made the special resolution that it be

wound up voluntarily; or

(ii) when the Court made the order that the company be

wound up; and

(d) the transaction, or the act done for the purpose of giving

effect to it, was not entered into, or done, on behalf of the

company by, or under the authority of:

(i) the administrator of the deed; or

(ii) the administrator of the company.

(3) The transaction is voidable if:

(a) it is an insolvent transaction, and also an uncommercial

transaction, of the company; and

(b) it was entered into, or an act was done for the purpose of

giving effect to it, during the 2 years ending on the

relation-back day.

(4) The transaction is voidable if:

(a) it is an insolvent transaction of the company; and

(b) a related entity of the company is a party to it; and

(c) it was entered into, or an act was done for the purpose of

giving effect to it, during the 4 years ending on the

relation-back day.

(5) The transaction is voidable if:

(a) it is an insolvent transaction of the company; and

(b) the company became a party to the transaction for the

purpose, or for purposes including the purpose, of defeating,

delaying, or interfering with, the rights of any or all of its

creditors on a winding up of the company; and

(c) the transaction was entered into, or an act done was for the

purpose of giving effect to the transaction, during the 10

years ending on the relation-back day.

(6) The transaction is voidable if it is an unfair loan to the company

made at any time on or before the day when the winding up began.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.7B Recovering property or compensation for the benefit of creditors of insolvent

company

Division 2 Voidable transactions

Section 588FF

526 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(6A) The transaction is voidable if:

(a) it is an unreasonable director-related transaction of the

company; and

(b) it was entered into, or an act was done for the purposes of

giving effect to it:

(i) during the 4 years ending on the relation-back day; or

(ii) after that day but on or before the day when the winding

up began.

(7) A reference in this section to doing an act includes a reference to

making an omission.

588FF Courts may make orders about voidable transactions

(1) Where, on the application of a company’s liquidator, a court is

satisfied that a transaction of the company is voidable because of

section 588FE, the court may make one or more of the following

orders:

(a) an order directing a person to pay to the company an amount

equal to some or all of the money that the company has paid

under the transaction;

(b) an order directing a person to transfer to the company

property that the company has transferred under the

transaction;

(c) an order requiring a person to pay to the company an amount

that, in the court’s opinion, fairly represents some or all of

the benefits that the person has received because of the

transaction;

(d) an order requiring a person to transfer to the company

property that, in the court’s opinion, fairly represents the

application of either or both of the following:

(i) money that the company has paid under the transaction;

(ii) proceeds of property that the company has transferred

under the transaction;

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Recovering property or compensation for the benefit of creditors of insolvent company

Part 5.7B

Voidable transactions Division 2

Section 588FF

Corporations Act 2001 527

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(e) an order releasing or discharging, wholly or partly, a debt

incurred, or a security or guarantee given, by the company

under or in connection with the transaction;

(f) if the transaction is an unfair loan and such a debt, security or

guarantee has been assigned—an order directing a person to

indemnify the company in respect of some or all of its

liability to the assignee;

(g) an order providing for the extent to which, and the terms on

which, a debt that arose under, or was released or discharged

to any extent by or under, the transaction may be proved in a

winding up of the company;

(h) an order declaring an agreement constituting, forming part of,

or relating to, the transaction, or specified provisions of such

an agreement, to have been void at and after the time when

the agreement was made, or at and after a specified later

time;

(i) an order varying such an agreement as specified in the order

and, if the Court thinks fit, declaring the agreement to have

had effect, as so varied, at and after the time when the

agreement was made, or at and after a specified later time;

(j) an order declaring such an agreement, or specified provisions

of such an agreement, to be unenforceable.

(2) Nothing in subsection (1) limits the generality of anything else in

it.

(3) An application under subsection (1) may only be made:

(a) during the period beginning on the relation-back day and

ending:

(i) 3 years after the relation-back day; or

(ii) 12 months after the first appointment of a liquidator in

relation to the winding up of the company;

whichever is the later; or

(b) within such longer period as the Court orders on an

application under this paragraph made by the liquidator

during the paragraph (a) period.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.7B Recovering property or compensation for the benefit of creditors of insolvent

company

Division 2 Voidable transactions

Section 588FG

528 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(4) If the transaction is a voidable transaction solely because it is an

unreasonable director-related transaction, the court may make

orders under subsection (1) only for the purpose of recovering for

the benefit of the creditors of the company the difference between:

(a) the total value of the benefits provided by the company under

the transaction; and

(b) the value (if any) that it may be expected that a reasonable

person in the company’s circumstances would have provided

having regard to the matters referred to in

paragraph 588FDA(1)(c).

588FG Transaction not voidable as against certain persons

(1) A court is not to make under section 588FF an order materially

prejudicing a right or interest of a person other than a party to the

transaction if it is proved that:

(a) the person received no benefit because of the transaction; or

(b) in relation to each benefit that the person received because of

the transaction:

(i) the person received the benefit in good faith; and

(ii) at the time when the person received the benefit:

(A) the person had no reasonable grounds for

suspecting that the company was insolvent at

that time or would become insolvent as

mentioned in paragraph 588FC(b); and

(B) a reasonable person in the person’s

circumstances would have had no such grounds

for so suspecting.

(2) A court is not to make under section 588FF an order materially

prejudicing a right or interest of a person if the transaction is not an

unfair loan to the company, or an unreasonable director-related

transaction of the company, and it is proved that:

(a) the person became a party to the transaction in good faith;

and

(b) at the time when the person became such a party:

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Recovering property or compensation for the benefit of creditors of insolvent company

Part 5.7B

Voidable transactions Division 2

Section 588FG

Corporations Act 2001 529

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(i) the person had no reasonable grounds for suspecting

that the company was insolvent at that time or would

become insolvent as mentioned in paragraph 588FC(b);

and

(ii) a reasonable person in the person’s circumstances

would have had no such grounds for so suspecting; and

(c) the person has provided valuable consideration under the

transaction or has changed his, her or its position in reliance

on the transaction.

(3) For the purposes of paragraph (2)(c), if an amount has been paid or

applied towards discharging to a particular extent a liability to pay

tax, the discharge is valuable consideration provided:

(a) by the person to whom the tax is payable; and

(b) under any transaction that consists of, or involves, the

payment or application.

(4) In subsection (3):

tax means tax (however described) payable under a law of the

Commonwealth or of a State or Territory, and includes, for

example, a levy, a charge, and municipal or other rates.

(5) For the purposes of paragraph (2)(c), if an amount has been paid or

applied towards discharging to a particular extent a liability to the

Commonwealth, or to the Commissioner of Taxation, that arose

under or because of an Act of which the Commissioner has the

general administration, the discharge is valuable consideration

provided by the Commonwealth, or by the Commissioner, as the

case requires, under any transaction that consists of, or involves,

the payment or application.

(6) Subsections (3) and (5):

(a) are to avoid doubt and are not intended to limit the cases

where a person may be taken to have provided valuable

consideration under a transaction; and

(b) apply to an amount even if it was paid or applied before the

commencement of this Act.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.7B Recovering property or compensation for the benefit of creditors of insolvent

company

Division 2 Voidable transactions

Section 588FGA

530 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

588FGA Directors to indemnify Commissioner of Taxation if certain

payments set aside

(1) This section applies if the court makes an order under

section 588FF against the Commissioner of Taxation because of

the payment of an amount in respect of a liability:

(a) under any of the following provisions:

(i) former section 220AAE, 220AAM or 220AAR of the

Income Tax Assessment Act 1936;

(ii) former section 221F (except subsection 221F(12)),

former section 221G (except subsection 221G(4A)) or

former section 221P of the Income Tax Assessment Act

1936;

(iii) former subsection 221YHDC(2) of the Income Tax

Assessment Act 1936;

(iv) former subsection 221YHZD(1) or (1A) of the Income

Tax Assessment Act 1936;

(v) former subsection 221YN(1) of the Income Tax

Assessment Act 1936;

(vi) section 222AHA of the Income Tax Assessment Act

1936;

(vii) Subdivision 16-B in Schedule 1 to the Taxation

Administration Act 1953; or

(b) to pay the amount of an estimate of unpaid superannuation

guarantee charge under Division 268 in Schedule 1 to the

Taxation Administration Act 1953.

(2) Each person who was a director of the company when the payment

was made is liable to indemnify the Commissioner in respect of

any loss or damage resulting from the order.

(3) An amount payable to the Commissioner under subsection (2):

(a) is a debt due to the Commonwealth and payable to the

Commissioner; and

(b) may be recovered in a court of competent jurisdiction by the

Commissioner, or a Deputy Commissioner of Taxation, suing

in his or her official name.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Recovering property or compensation for the benefit of creditors of insolvent company

Part 5.7B

Voidable transactions Division 2

Section 588FGB

Corporations Act 2001 531

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(4) The court may, in the proceedings in which it made the order

against the Commissioner, order a person to pay to the

Commissioner an amount payable by the person under

subsection (2).

(5) A person who pays an amount under subsection (2) has the same

rights:

(a) whether by way of indemnity, subrogation, contribution or

otherwise; and

(b) against the company or anyone else;

as if the payment had been made under a guarantee:

(c) of the liability referred to in subsection (1); and

(d) under which the person and every other person who was a

director of the company as mentioned in subsection (2) were

jointly and severally liable as guarantors.

588FGB Defences in proceedings under section 588FGA

(1) This section has effect for the purposes of:

(a) proceedings to recover from a person an amount payable

under subsection 588FGA(2); and

(b) proceedings under subsection 588FGA(5) against a person of

the kind referred to in paragraph 588FGA(5)(d).

(2) The time when the payment referred to in subsection 588FGA(1)

was made is called the payment time.

(3) It is a defence if it is proved that, at the payment time, the person

had reasonable grounds to expect, and did expect, that the company

was solvent at that time and would remain solvent even if it made

the payment.

(4) Without limiting the generality of subsection (3), it is a defence if

it is proved that, at the payment time, the person:

(a) had reasonable grounds to believe, and did believe:

(i) that a competent and reliable person (the other person)

was responsible for providing to the first-mentioned

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.7B Recovering property or compensation for the benefit of creditors of insolvent

company

Division 2 Voidable transactions

Section 588FH

532 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

person adequate information about whether the

company was solvent; and

(ii) that the other person was fulfilling that responsibility;

and

(b) expected, on the basis of information provided to the

first-mentioned person by the other person, that the company

was solvent at that time and would remain solvent even if it

made the payment.

(5) It is a defence if it is proved that, because of illness or for some

other good reason, the person did not take part in the management

of the company at the payment time.

(6) It is a defence if it is proved that:

(a) the person took all reasonable steps to prevent the company

from making the payment; or

(b) there were no such steps the person could have taken.

(7) In determining whether a defence under subsection (6) has been

proved, the matters to which regard is to be had include, but are not

limited to:

(a) any action the person took with a view to appointing an

administrator of the company; and

(b) when that action was taken; and

(c) the results of that action.

588FH Liquidator may recover from related entity benefit resulting

from insolvent transaction

(1) This section applies where a company is being wound up and a

transaction of the company:

(a) is an insolvent transaction of the company; and

(b) is voidable under section 588FE; and

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Recovering property or compensation for the benefit of creditors of insolvent company

Part 5.7B

Voidable transactions Division 2

Section 588FI

Corporations Act 2001 533

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(c) has had the effect of discharging, to the extent of a particular

amount, a liability (whether under a guarantee or otherwise

and whether contingent or otherwise) of a related entity of

the company.

(2) The company’s liquidator may recover from the related entity, as a

debt due to the company, an amount equal to the amount referred

to in paragraph (1)(c).

(3) In deciding what orders (if any) to make under section 588FF on an

application relating to the transaction, a court must take into

account any amount recovered under subsection (2) of this section.

(4) If the liquidator recovers an amount under subsection (2) from the

related entity, the related entity has the same rights:

(a) whether by way of indemnity, subrogation, contribution or

otherwise; and

(b) against the company or anyone else;

as if the related entity had paid the amount in discharging, to the

extent of that amount, the liability referred to in paragraph (1)(c).

588FI Creditor who gives up benefit of unfair preference may prove

for preferred debt

(1) This section applies where:

(a) a transaction is an unfair preference given by a company to a

creditor of the company after 23 June 1993; and

(b) at the request of the company’s liquidator, because of an

order under section 588FF, or for any other reason, the

creditor has put the company in the same position as if the

transaction had not been entered into.

(2) A court must not make under section 588FF, on an application

relating to the transaction, an order prejudicing a right or interest of

the creditor.

(3) The creditor may prove in the winding up as if the transaction had

not been entered into.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.7B Recovering property or compensation for the benefit of creditors of insolvent

company

Division 2 Voidable transactions

Section 588FJ

534 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

588FJ Circulating security interest created within 6 months before

relation-back day

(1) This section applies if:

(a) a company is being wound up in insolvency; and

(b) the company created a circulating security interest in

property of the company at a particular time that is at or after

23 June 1993 and:

(i) during the 6 months ending on the relation-back day; or

(ii) after that day but on or before the day when the winding

up began.

(2) The circulating security interest is void, as against the company’s

liquidator, except so far as it secures:

(a) an advance paid to the company, or at its direction, at or after

that time and as consideration for the circulating security

interest; or

(b) interest on such an advance; or

(c) the amount of a liability under a guarantee or other obligation

undertaken at or after that time on behalf of, or for the benefit

of, the company; or

(d) an amount payable for property or services supplied to the

company at or after that time; or

(e) interest on an amount so payable.

(3) Subsection (2) does not apply if it is proved that the company was

solvent immediately after that time.

(4) Paragraphs (2)(a) and (b) do not apply in relation to an advance so

far as it was applied to discharge, directly or indirectly, an

unsecured debt, whether contingent or otherwise, that the company

owed to:

(a) the secured party; or

(b) if the secured party was a body corporate—a related entity of

the body.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Recovering property or compensation for the benefit of creditors of insolvent company

Part 5.7B

Voidable transactions Division 2

Section 588FJ

Corporations Act 2001 535

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(5) Paragraphs (2)(d) and (e) do not apply in relation to an amount

payable as mentioned in paragraph (2)(d) in so far as the amount

exceeds the market value of the property or services when supplied

to the company.

(6) If, during the 6 months ending on the relation-back day, or after

that day but on or before the day when the winding up began, a

debt secured by the circulating security interest was discharged, out

of the company’s money or property, to the extent of a particular

amount (in this subsection called the realised amount), the

liquidator may, by proceedings in a court of competent jurisdiction,

recover from the secured party, as a debt due to the company, the

amount worked out in accordance with the formula:

where:

realisation costs means so much (if any) of the costs and expenses

of enforcing the security interest as is attributable to realising the

realised amount.

unsecured amount means so much of the realised amount as does

not exceed so much of the debt as would, if the debt had not been

so discharged, have been unsecured, as against the liquidator,

because of subsection (2).

Unsecured amount Realisation costs

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.7B Recovering property or compensation for the benefit of creditors of insolvent

company

Division 2A Vesting of PPSA security interests if not continuously perfected

Section 588FK

536 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Division 2A—Vesting of PPSA security interests if not

continuously perfected

588FK Interpretation and application

(1) A word or expression used in this Division has the same meaning

as in the Personal Property Securities Act 2009.

(2) Subsection (1) applies despite any other provision of this Act

(subject to subsection (4)).

(3) For the purposes of this Division, whether or not a person has

acquired actual or constructive knowledge of a circumstance is to

be determined in accordance with sections 297 to 300 of the

Personal Property Securities Act 2009.

(4) In this Division:

PPSA security interest has the meaning given by section 51.

Note: As a result of this section, in this Division, company has the same

meaning as in the Personal Property Securities Act 2009. At the time

this section was enacted, section 10 of that Act provided that company

means:

(a) a company registered under Part 2A.2 or Part 5B.1 of the Corporations Act 2001; or

(b) a registrable body that is registered under Division 1 or 2 of Part 5B.2 of that Act.

588FL Vesting of PPSA security interests if collateral not registered

within time

Scope

(1) This section applies if:

(a) any of the following events occurs:

(i) an order is made, or a resolution is passed, for the

winding up of a company;

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Recovering property or compensation for the benefit of creditors of insolvent company

Part 5.7B

Vesting of PPSA security interests if not continuously perfected Division 2A

Section 588FL

Corporations Act 2001 537

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(ii) an administrator of a company is appointed under

section 436A, 436B or 436C;

(iii) a company executes a deed of company arrangement

under Part 5.3A; and

(b) a PPSA security interest granted by the company in collateral

is covered by subsection (2).

Note: A security interest granted by a company in relation to which

paragraph (a) applies that is unperfected at the critical time may vest

in the company under section 267 or 267A of the Personal Property

Securities Act 2009.

(2) This subsection covers a PPSA security interest if:

(a) at the critical time, or, if the security interest arises after the

critical time, when the security interest arises:

(i) the security interest is enforceable against third parties

under the law of Australia; and

(ii) the security interest is perfected by registration, and by

no other means; and

(b) the registration time for the collateral is after the latest of the

following times:

(i) 6 months before the critical time;

(ii) the time that is the end of 20 business days after the

security agreement that gave rise to the security interest

came into force, or the time that is the critical time,

whichever time is earlier;

(iii) if the security agreement giving rise to the security

interest came into force under the law of a foreign

jurisdiction, but the security interest first became

enforceable against third parties under the law of

Australia after the time that is 6 months before the

critical time—the time that is the end of 56 days after

the security interest became so enforceable, or the time

that is the critical time, whichever time is earlier;

(iv) a later time ordered by the Court under section 588FM.

Note 1: For the meaning of critical time, see subsection (7).

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.7B Recovering property or compensation for the benefit of creditors of insolvent

company

Division 2A Vesting of PPSA security interests if not continuously perfected

Section 588FL

538 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Note 2: For when a security interest is enforceable against third parties under

the law of Australia, see section 20 of the Personal Property

Securities Act 2009.

Note 3: A security interest may become perfected at a particular time by a

registration that is made earlier than that time, if the security interest

attaches to the collateral at the later time (after registration). See

section 21 of the Personal Property Securities Act 2009.

Note 4: The Personal Property Securities Act 2009 provides for perfection by

registration, possession or control, or by force of that Act (see

section 21 of that Act).

Vesting of security interest in company

(4) The PPSA security interest vests in the company at the following

time, unless the security interest is unaffected by this section

because of section 588FN:

(a) if the security interest first becomes enforceable against third

parties at or before the critical time—immediately before the

event mentioned in paragraph (1)(a);

(b) if the security interest first becomes enforceable against third

parties after the critical time—at the time it first becomes so

enforceable.

Note: For the meaning of critical time, see subsection (7).

Property acquired for new value without knowledge

(5) Subsection (4) does not affect the title of a person to personal

property if:

(a) the person acquires the personal property for new value from

a secured party, from a person on behalf of a secured party,

or from a receiver in the exercise of powers:

(i) conferred by the security agreement providing for the

security interest; or

(ii) implied by the general law; and

(b) at the time the person acquires the property, the person has

no actual or constructive knowledge of the following (as the

case requires):

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Recovering property or compensation for the benefit of creditors of insolvent company

Part 5.7B

Vesting of PPSA security interests if not continuously perfected Division 2A

Section 588FM

Corporations Act 2001 539

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(i) the filing of an application for an order to wind up the

company;

(ii) the passing of a resolution to wind up the company;

(iii) the appointment of an administrator of the company

under section 436A, 436B or 436C;

(iv) the execution of a deed of company arrangement by the

company under Part 5.3A.

Note: For what is actual or constructive knowledge, see sections 297 and 298 of the Personal Property Securities Act 2009.

(6) In a proceeding in Australia under this Act, the onus of proving the

fact that a person acquires personal property without actual or

constructive knowledge as mentioned in paragraph (5)(b) lies with

the person asserting that fact.

(7) In this section:

critical time, in relation to a company, means:

(a) if the company is being wound up—when, on a day, the

event occurs by virtue of which the winding up is taken to

have begun or commenced on that day under section 513A or

513B; or

(b) in any other case—when, on a day, the event occurs by virtue

of which the day is the section 513C day for the company.

588FM Extension of time for registration

(1) A company, or any person interested, may apply to the Court

(within the meaning of section 58AA) for an order fixing a later

time for the purposes of subparagraph 588FL(2)(b)(iv).

Note: If an insolvency-related event occurs in relation to a company,

paragraph 588FL(2)(b) fixes a time by which a PPSA security interest

granted by the company must be registered under the Personal

Property Securities Act 2009, failing which the security interest may

vest in the company.

(2) On an application under this section, the Court may make the order

sought if it is satisfied that:

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.7B Recovering property or compensation for the benefit of creditors of insolvent

company

Division 2A Vesting of PPSA security interests if not continuously perfected

Section 588FN

540 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(a) the failure to register the collateral earlier:

(i) was accidental or due to inadvertence or some other

sufficient cause; or

(ii) is not of such a nature as to prejudice the position of

creditors or shareholders; or

(b) on other grounds, it is just and equitable to grant relief.

(3) The Court may make the order sought on any terms and conditions

that seem just and expedient to the Court.

588FN PPSA security interests unaffected by section 588FL

PPSA security interests arising under certain transactions

(1) Subsection 588FL(4) (vesting of security interests in company)

does not apply to a PPSA security interest provided for by any of

the following transactions, if the interest does not secure the

payment or performance of an obligation:

(a) a transfer of an account or chattel paper;

(b) a PPS lease, if paragraph (e) (serial numbered goods) of the

definition of PPS lease in subsection 13(1) of the Personal

Property Securities Act 2009 applies to the lease, and none of

paragraphs (a) to (d) of that definition applies to the lease;

(c) a commercial consignment.

Example: An example of a PPSA security interest mentioned in paragraph (b) is

a PPS lease of goods that does not secure the payment or performance

of an obligation, if:

(a) the goods leased may or must be described by serial number in accordance with regulations made for the purposes of the Personal Property Securities Act 2009; and

(b) the lease is for a term of between 90 days and 1 year; and

(c) paragraphs (c) and (d) of the definition of PPS lease in subsection 13(1) of the Personal Property Securities Act 2009 do not apply to the lease.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Recovering property or compensation for the benefit of creditors of insolvent company

Part 5.7B

Vesting of PPSA security interests if not continuously perfected Division 2A

Section 588FN

Corporations Act 2001 541

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

PPSA security interests and subordinated debts

(2) Subsection 588FL(4) (vesting of security interests in company)

does not apply to a PPSA security interest in an account if all of the

following conditions are satisfied:

(a) a person (the obligor) owes money to another person (the

senior creditor);

(b) the obligor also owes money to a third person (the junior

creditor);

(c) an agreement between the senior creditor and the junior

creditor provides (in substance):

(i) for the postponement or subordination of the obligor’s

debt to the junior creditor, to the obligor’s debt to the

senior creditor; and

(ii) in the event of the obligor’s debt to the junior creditor

being discharged (whether wholly or partly) by the

obligor transferring personal property to the junior

creditor—for the junior creditor to transfer the property,

or proceeds of the property, to the senior creditor to the

value of the amount owed by the obligor to the senior

creditor; and

(iii) in the event that the property or proceeds are not

transferred—for the junior creditor to hold the property

or proceeds on trust for the senior creditor to that value;

and

(iv) in the event of such a trust arising—for a security

interest to be granted by the junior creditor to the senior

creditor over the personal property or proceeds securing

payment of the obligor’s debt to the senior creditor;

(d) the security interest is a security interest granted under the

agreement, in the circumstances described in

subparagraph (c)(iv).

Transfer of collateral subject to PPSA security interests

(3) Subsection 588FL(4) (vesting of security interests in company)

does not apply to a PPSA security interest if:

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.7B Recovering property or compensation for the benefit of creditors of insolvent

company

Division 2A Vesting of PPSA security interests if not continuously perfected

Section 588FO

542 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(a) before the critical time that applies under section 588FL, the

company acquired, by transfer, the collateral in which the

PPSA security interest is granted; and

(b) the company did not acquire the collateral free of the security

interest; and

(c) the security interest became perfected before the critical time;

and

(d) the security interest was continuously perfected by

registration during a period covered by subsection (4) that

begins before the critical time.

(4) The period covered by this subsection:

(a) begins at whichever of the following times is applicable:

(i) in a case in which the secured party consented to the

transfer—the end of 5 business days after the day of the

transfer;

(ii) in a case in which the secured party otherwise acquires

the actual or constructive knowledge required to perfect

the secured party’s interest by registration (or to

re-perfect the interest by an amendment of a

registration)—the end of 5 business days after the day

the secured party acquires the knowledge; and

(b) ends no earlier than at the critical time that applies under

section 588FL.

Note: For what is actual or constructive knowledge, see sections 297 and

298 of the Personal Property Securities Act 2009.

588FO Certain lessors, bailors and consignors entitled to damages

Scope

(1) This section applies if either of the following PPSA security

interests is vested in a company under section 588FL:

(a) a PPSA security interest of a consignor under a commercial

consignment;

(b) a PPSA security interest of a lessor or bailor under a PPS

lease.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Recovering property or compensation for the benefit of creditors of insolvent company

Part 5.7B

Vesting of PPSA security interests if not continuously perfected Division 2A

Section 588FO

Corporations Act 2001 543

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Entitlement to damages and compensation

(2) The consignor, lessor or bailor:

(a) is taken to have suffered damage immediately before the

PPSA security interest was vested in the company; and

(b) may recover an amount of compensation from the company

equal to the greater of the following amounts:

(i) the amount determined in accordance with the

consignment, lease or bailment;

(ii) the sum of the market value of the consigned, leased or

bailed property immediately before the critical time that

applies under section 588FL, and the amount of any

other damage or loss resulting from the termination of

the consignment, lease or bailment.

Note: The consignor, lessor or bailor may be able to prove the amount of

compensation in proceedings related to the winding up of the

company.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.7B Recovering property or compensation for the benefit of creditors of insolvent

company

Division 2B Security interests in favour of company officers etc.

Section 588FP

544 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Division 2B—Security interests in favour of company

officers etc.

588FP Security interests in favour of an officer of a company etc.

void

General rule

(1) A security interest, and any powers purporting to be conferred by

the instrument under which the security interest is created, are

void, and are taken always to have been void, if:

(a) a company grants the security interest; and

(b) a person covered by subsection (2) is a secured party; and

(c) the secured party purports to take a step to enforce the

security interest, within 6 months after the time (the relevant

time) the instrument is made, without the leave of the Court

under subsection (4).

(2) This subsection covers the following persons:

(a) a person who is an officer (including a local agent of a

foreign company) of the company at the relevant time;

(b) a person who has been such an officer of the company at any

time within the period of 6 months ending at the relevant

time;

(c) a person associated, in relation to the creation of the security

interest, with a person of a kind mentioned in paragraph (a)

or (b).

(3) Without limiting paragraph (1)(c), a secured party takes a step to

enforce a security interest if:

(a) the secured party appoints a receiver, or a receiver and

manager, under powers conferred by an instrument creating

or evidencing the security interest; or

(b) whether directly or by an agent, the secured party enters into

possession or assumes control of property of a company for

the purposes of enforcing the security interest; or

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Recovering property or compensation for the benefit of creditors of insolvent company

Part 5.7B

Security interests in favour of company officers etc. Division 2B

Section 588FP

Corporations Act 2001 545

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(c) the secured party seizes the property under section 123 of the

Personal Property Securities Act 2009 for the purposes of

enforcing the security interest.

Extension of time on application to the Court

(4) On application by a secured party, the Court may give leave for a

security interest granted by a company to be enforced by the

secured party within 6 months after the relevant time, if it is

satisfied that:

(a) the company was solvent immediately before the relevant

time; and

(b) in all the circumstances of the case, it is just and equitable for

the Court to do so.

Exception for security interests in PPSA retention of title property

(5) This section does not apply in relation to a PPSA security interest

in PPSA retention of title property.

Effect on debts, liabilities, obligations and title

(6) A debt, liability or obligation is not affected by the fact that the

security interest securing the debt, liability or obligation is void

under subsection (1).

(7) Subsection (1) does not affect the title of a person to property if:

(a) the person acquires the property for new value (within the

meaning of the Personal Property Securities Act 2009) from

any of the following persons (the seller):

(i) a person covered by subsection (2);

(ii) another person on behalf of a person covered by

subsection (2);

(iii) a receiver, or receiver and manager, appointed under

powers conferred by an instrument creating or

evidencing the security interest; and

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.7B Recovering property or compensation for the benefit of creditors of insolvent

company

Division 2B Security interests in favour of company officers etc.

Section 588FP

546 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(b) at the time the person acquires the property, the person has

no actual or constructive knowledge that the seller is a

secured party or acting on behalf of a secured party.

(8) Sections 297 to 300 of the Personal Property Securities Act 2009

apply in relation to the determination of whether or not a person

has actual or constructive knowledge as mentioned in

paragraph (7)(b) of this section.

Onus of proof

(9) In a proceeding in Australia under this Act, the onus of proving the

fact that a person acquires property without actual or constructive

knowledge as mentioned in paragraph (7)(b) lies with the person

asserting that fact.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Recovering property or compensation for the benefit of creditors of insolvent company

Part 5.7B

Director’s duty to prevent insolvent trading Division 3

Section 588G

Corporations Act 2001 547

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Division 3—Director’s duty to prevent insolvent trading

588G Director’s duty to prevent insolvent trading by company

(1) This section applies if:

(a) a person is a director of a company at the time when the

company incurs a debt; and

(b) the company is insolvent at that time, or becomes insolvent

by incurring that debt, or by incurring at that time debts

including that debt; and

(c) at that time, there are reasonable grounds for suspecting that

the company is insolvent, or would so become insolvent, as

the case may be; and

(d) that time is at or after the commencement of this Act.

(1A) For the purposes of this section, if a company takes action set out

in column 2 of the following table, it incurs a debt at the time set

out in column 3.

When debts are incurred [operative table]

Action of company When debt is incurred

1 paying a dividend when the dividend is paid or, if the

company has a constitution that provides

for the declaration of dividends, when the

dividend is declared

2 making a reduction of share

capital to which Division 1 of

Part 2J.1 applies (other than a

reduction that consists only of the

cancellation of a share or shares

for no consideration)

when the reduction takes effect

3 buying back shares (even if the

consideration is not a sum certain

in money)

when the buy-back agreement is entered

into

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.7B Recovering property or compensation for the benefit of creditors of insolvent

company

Division 3 Director’s duty to prevent insolvent trading

Section 588G

548 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

When debts are incurred [operative table]

Action of company When debt is incurred

4 redeeming redeemable preference

shares that are redeemable at its

option

when the company exercises the option

5 issuing redeemable preference

shares that are redeemable

otherwise than at its option

when the shares are issued

6 financially assisting a person to

acquire shares (or units of shares)

in itself or a holding company

when the agreement to provide the

assistance is entered into or, if there is no

agreement, when the assistance is

provided

7 entering into an uncommercial

transaction (within the meaning of

section 588FB) other than one that

a court orders, or a prescribed

agency directs, the company to

enter into

when the transaction is entered into

(2) By failing to prevent the company from incurring the debt, the

person contravenes this section if:

(a) the person is aware at that time that there are such grounds

for so suspecting; or

(b) a reasonable person in a like position in a company in the

company’s circumstances would be so aware.

Note: This subsection is a civil penalty provision (see subsection 1317E(1)).

(3) A person commits an offence if:

(a) a company incurs a debt at a particular time; and

(aa) at that time, a person is a director of the company; and

(b) the company is insolvent at that time, or becomes insolvent

by incurring that debt, or by incurring at that time debts

including that debt; and

(c) the person suspected at the time when the company incurred

the debt that the company was insolvent or would become

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Recovering property or compensation for the benefit of creditors of insolvent company

Part 5.7B

Director’s duty to prevent insolvent trading Division 3

Section 588H

Corporations Act 2001 549

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

insolvent as a result of incurring that debt or other debts (as

in paragraph (1)(b)); and

(d) the person’s failure to prevent the company incurring the

debt was dishonest.

(3A) For the purposes of an offence based on subsection (3), absolute

liability applies to paragraph (3)(a).

Note: For absolute liability, see section 6.2 of the Criminal Code.

(3B) For the purposes of an offence based on subsection (3), strict

liability applies to paragraphs (3)(aa) and (b).

Note: For strict liability, see section 6.1 of the Criminal Code.

(4) The provisions of Division 4 of this Part are additional to, and do

not derogate from, Part 9.4B as it applies in relation to a

contravention of this section.

588H Defences

(1) This section has effect for the purposes of proceedings for a

contravention of subsection 588G(2) in relation to the incurring of

a debt (including proceedings under section 588M in relation to the

incurring of the debt).

(2) It is a defence if it is proved that, at the time when the debt was

incurred, the person had reasonable grounds to expect, and did

expect, that the company was solvent at that time and would

remain solvent even if it incurred that debt and any other debts that

it incurred at that time.

(3) Without limiting the generality of subsection (2), it is a defence if

it is proved that, at the time when the debt was incurred, the

person:

(a) had reasonable grounds to believe, and did believe:

(i) that a competent and reliable person (the other person)

was responsible for providing to the first-mentioned

person adequate information about whether the

company was solvent; and

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.7B Recovering property or compensation for the benefit of creditors of insolvent

company

Division 3 Director’s duty to prevent insolvent trading

Section 588H

550 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(ii) that the other person was fulfilling that responsibility;

and

(b) expected, on the basis of information provided to the

first-mentioned person by the other person, that the company

was solvent at that time and would remain solvent even if it

incurred that debt and any other debts that it incurred at that

time.

(4) If the person was a director of the company at the time when the

debt was incurred, it is a defence if it is proved that, because of

illness or for some other good reason, he or she did not take part at

that time in the management of the company.

(5) It is a defence if it is proved that the person took all reasonable

steps to prevent the company from incurring the debt.

(6) In determining whether a defence under subsection (5) has been

proved, the matters to which regard is to be had include, but are not

limited to:

(a) any action the person took with a view to appointing an

administrator of the company; and

(b) when that action was taken; and

(c) the results of that action.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Recovering property or compensation for the benefit of creditors of insolvent company

Part 5.7B

Director liable to compensate company Division 4

Section 588J

Corporations Act 2001 551

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Division 4—Director liable to compensate company

Subdivision A—Proceedings against director

588J On application for civil penalty order, Court may order

compensation

(1) Where, on an application for a civil penalty order against a person

in relation to a contravention of subsection 588G(2), the Court is

satisfied that:

(a) the person committed the contravention in relation to the

incurring of a debt by a company; and

(b) the debt is wholly or partly unsecured; and

(c) the person to whom the debt is owed has suffered loss or

damage in relation to the debt because of the company’s

insolvency;

the Court may (whether or not it makes a pecuniary penalty order

under section 1317G or an order under section 206C disqualifying

a person from managing corporations) order the first-mentioned

person to pay to the company compensation equal to the amount of

that loss or damage.

(2) A company’s liquidator may intervene in an application for a civil

penalty order against a person in relation to a contravention of

subsection 588G(2).

(3) A company’s liquidator who so intervenes is entitled to be heard:

(a) only if the Court is satisfied that the person committed the

contravention in relation to the incurring of a debt by that

company; and

(b) only on the question whether the Court should order the

person to pay compensation to the company.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.7B Recovering property or compensation for the benefit of creditors of insolvent

company

Division 4 Director liable to compensate company

Section 588K

552 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

588K Criminal court may order compensation

If:

(a) a court finds a person guilty of an offence under

subsection 588G(3) in relation to the incurring of a debt by a

company; and

(b) the court is satisfied that:

(i) the debt is wholly or partly unsecured; and

(ii) the person to whom the debt is owed has suffered loss

or damage in relation to the debt because of the

company’s insolvency;

the court may (whether or not it imposes a penalty) order the

first-mentioned person to pay to the company compensation equal

to the amount of that loss or damage.

Note: Section 73A defines when a court is taken to find a person guilty of an

offence.

588L Enforcement of order under section 588J or 588K

An order to pay compensation that a court makes under

section 588J or 588K may be enforced as if it were a judgment of

the court.

588M Recovery of compensation for loss resulting from insolvent

trading

(1) This section applies where:

(a) a person (in this section called the director) has contravened

subsection 588G(2) or (3) in relation to the incurring of a

debt by a company; and

(b) the person (in this section called the creditor) to whom the

debt is owed has suffered loss or damage in relation to the

debt because of the company’s insolvency; and

(c) the debt was wholly or partly unsecured when the loss or

damage was suffered; and

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Recovering property or compensation for the benefit of creditors of insolvent company

Part 5.7B

Director liable to compensate company Division 4

Section 588N

Corporations Act 2001 553

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(d) the company is being wound up;

whether or not:

(e) the director has been convicted of an offence in relation to

the contravention; or

(f) a civil penalty order has been made against the director in

relation to the contravention.

(2) The company’s liquidator may recover from the director, as a debt

due to the company, an amount equal to the amount of the loss or

damage.

(3) The creditor may, as provided in Subdivision B but not otherwise,

recover from the director, as a debt due to the creditor, an amount

equal to the amount of the loss or damage.

(4) Proceedings under this section may only be begun within 6 years

after the beginning of the winding up.

588N Avoiding double recovery

An amount recovered in proceedings under section 588M in

relation to the incurring of a debt by a company is to be taken into

account in working out the amount (if any) recoverable in:

(a) any other proceedings under that section in relation to the

incurring of the debt; and

(b) proceedings under section 596AC in relation to a

contravention of section 596AB that is linked to the incurring

of the debt.

588P Effect of sections 588J, 588K and 588M

Sections 588J, 588K and 588M:

(a) have effect in addition to, and not in derogation of, any rule

of law about the duty or liability of a person because of the

person’s office or employment in relation to a company; and

(b) do not prevent proceedings from being instituted in respect of

a breach of such a duty or in respect of such a liability.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.7B Recovering property or compensation for the benefit of creditors of insolvent

company

Division 4 Director liable to compensate company

Section 588Q

554 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

588Q Certificates evidencing contravention

For the purposes of this Part, a certificate that:

(a) purports to be signed by the Registrar or other proper officer

of an Australian court; and

(b) states:

(i) that that court has declared that a specified person has,

by failing to prevent a specified company from

incurring a specified debt, contravened

subsection 588G(3) in relation to the company; or

(ii) that a specified person was convicted by that court for

an offence constituted by a contravention of

section 588G in relation to the incurring of a specified

debt by a specified company; or

(iii) that a specified person charged before that court with

such an offence was found in that court to have

committed the offence but that the court did not proceed

to convict the person of the offence;

is, unless it is proved that the declaration, conviction or finding

was set aside, quashed or reversed, conclusive evidence:

(c) that the declaration was made, that the person was convicted

of the offence, or that the person was so found, as the case

may be; and

(d) that the person committed the contravention.

Subdivision B—Proceedings by creditor

588R Creditor may sue for compensation with liquidator’s consent

(1) A creditor of a company that is being wound up may, with the

written consent of the company’s liquidator, begin proceedings

under section 588M in relation to the incurring by the company of

a debt that is owed to the creditor.

(2) Subsection (1) has effect despite section 588T, but subject to

section 588U.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Recovering property or compensation for the benefit of creditors of insolvent company

Part 5.7B

Director liable to compensate company Division 4

Section 588S

Corporations Act 2001 555

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

588S Creditor may give liquidator notice of intention to sue for

compensation

After the end of 6 months beginning when a company begins to be

wound up, a creditor of the company may give to the company’s

liquidator a written notice:

(a) stating that the creditor intends to begin proceedings under

section 588M in relation to the incurring by the company of a

specified debt that is owed to the creditor; and

(b) asking the liquidator to give to the creditor, within 3 months

after receiving the notice:

(i) a written consent to the creditor beginning the

proceedings; or

(ii) a written statement of the reasons why the liquidator

thinks that proceedings under section 588M in relation

to the incurring of that debt should not be begun.

588T When creditor may sue for compensation without liquidator’s

consent

(1) This section applies where a notice is given under section 588S.

(2) The creditor may begin proceedings in a court under section 588M

in relation to the incurring by the company of the debt specified in

the notice if:

(a) as at the end of 3 months after the liquidator receives the

notice, he or she has not consented to the creditor beginning

such proceedings; and

(b) on an application made after those 3 months, the court has

given leave for the proceedings to begin.

(3) If:

(a) during those 3 months, the liquidator gives to the creditor a

written statement of the reasons why the liquidator thinks

that such proceedings should not be begun; and

(b) the creditor applies for leave under paragraph (2)(b);

then:

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.7B Recovering property or compensation for the benefit of creditors of insolvent

company

Division 4 Director liable to compensate company

Section 588U

556 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(c) the creditor must file the statement with the court when so

applying; and

(d) in determining the application, the court is to have regard to

the reasons set out in the statement.

588U Events preventing creditor from suing

(1) A creditor of a company that is being wound up cannot begin

proceedings under section 588M in relation to the incurring of a

debt by the company if:

(a) the company’s liquidator has applied under section 588FF in

relation to the debt, or in relation to a transaction under

which the debt was incurred; or

(b) the company’s liquidator has begun proceedings under

section 588M in relation to the incurring of the debt; or

(c) the company’s liquidator has intervened in an application for

a civil penalty order against a person in relation to a

contravention of subsection 588G(2) in relation to the

incurring of the debt.

(2) Subsection (1) has effect despite sections 588R and 588T.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Recovering property or compensation for the benefit of creditors of insolvent company

Part 5.7B

Liability of holding company for insolvent trading by subsidiary Division 5

Section 588V

Corporations Act 2001 557

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Division 5—Liability of holding company for insolvent

trading by subsidiary

588V When holding company liable

(1) A corporation contravenes this section if:

(a) the corporation is the holding company of a company at the

time when the company incurs a debt; and

(b) the company is insolvent at that time, or becomes insolvent

by incurring that debt, or by incurring at that time debts

including that debt; and

(c) at that time, there are reasonable grounds for suspecting that

the company is insolvent, or would so become insolvent, as

the case may be; and

(d) one or both of the following subparagraphs applies:

(i) the corporation, or one or more of its directors, is or are

aware at that time that there are such grounds for so

suspecting;

(ii) having regard to the nature and extent of the

corporation’s control over the company’s affairs and to

any other relevant circumstances, it is reasonable to

expect that:

(A) a holding company in the corporation’s

circumstances would be so aware; or

(B) one or more of such a holding company’s

directors would be so aware; and

(e) that time is at or after the commencement of this Act.

(2) A corporation that contravenes this section is not guilty of an

offence.

588W Recovery of compensation for loss resulting from insolvent

trading

(1) Where:

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.7B Recovering property or compensation for the benefit of creditors of insolvent

company

Division 5 Liability of holding company for insolvent trading by subsidiary

Section 588X

558 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(a) a corporation has contravened section 588V in relation to the

incurring of a debt by a company; and

(b) the person to whom the debt is owed has suffered loss or

damage in relation to the debt because of the company’s

insolvency; and

(c) the debt was wholly or partly unsecured when the loss or

damage was suffered; and

(d) the company is being wound up;

the company’s liquidator may recover from the corporation, as a

debt due to the company, an amount equal to the amount of the loss

or damage.

(2) Proceedings under this section may only be begun within 6 years

after the beginning of the winding up.

588X Defences

(1) This section has effect for the purposes of proceedings under

section 588W.

(2) It is a defence if it is proved that, at the time when the debt was

incurred, the corporation, and each relevant director (if any), had

reasonable grounds to expect, and did expect, that the company

was solvent at that time and would remain solvent even if it

incurred that debt and any other debts that it incurred at that time.

(3) Without limiting the generality of subsection (2), it is a defence if

it is proved that, at the time when the debt was incurred, the

corporation, and each relevant director (if any):

(a) had reasonable grounds to believe, and did believe:

(i) that a competent and reliable person was responsible for

providing to the corporation adequate information about

whether the company was solvent; and

(ii) that the person was fulfilling that responsibility; and

(b) expected, on the basis of the information provided to the

corporation by the person, that the company was solvent at

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Recovering property or compensation for the benefit of creditors of insolvent company

Part 5.7B

Liability of holding company for insolvent trading by subsidiary Division 5

Section 588X

Corporations Act 2001 559

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

that time and would remain solvent even if it incurred that

debt and any other debts that it incurred at that time.

(4) If it is proved that, because of illness or for some other good

reason, a particular relevant director did not take part in the

management of the corporation at the time when the company

incurred the debt, the fact that the director was aware as mentioned

in subparagraph 588V(1)(d)(i) is to be disregarded.

(5) It is a defence if it is proved that the corporation took all

reasonable steps to prevent the company from incurring the debt.

(6) In subsections (2), (3) and (4):

relevant director means a director of the corporation who was

aware as mentioned in subparagraph 588V(1)(d)(i).

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.7B Recovering property or compensation for the benefit of creditors of insolvent

company

Division 6 Application of compensation under Division 4 or 5

Section 588Y

560 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Division 6—Application of compensation under Division 4

or 5

588Y Application of amount paid as compensation

(1) An amount paid to a company under section 588J, 588K, 588M or

588W is not available to pay a secured debt of the company unless

all the company’s unsecured debts have been paid in full.

(2) Where:

(a) under section 588J or 588K, or in proceedings under

section 588M or 588W, a court orders a person to pay to the

company compensation, or an amount, equal to the amount

of loss or damage suffered by a person in relation to a debt

because of the company’s insolvency; and

(b) the court is satisfied that, at the time when the company

incurred the debt, the person who suffered the loss or damage

knew that the company was insolvent at that time or would

become insolvent by incurring the debt, or by incurring at

that time debts including the debt, as the case requires;

the court may order that the compensation or amount paid to the

company is not available to pay that debt unless all the company’s

unsecured debts (other than debts to which orders under this

subsection relate) have been paid in full.

(3) Subsection (2) does not apply in relation to proceedings under

section 588M in relation to the incurring of a debt by a company if

the proceedings are begun by a creditor of the company (as

provided for in Subdivision B of Division 4).

(4) Subsection (2) does not apply in relation to a liability that is taken

to be a debt because of section 588F.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Recovering property or compensation for the benefit of creditors of insolvent company

Part 5.7B

Person managing a corporation while disqualified may become liable for corporation’s

debts Division 7

Section 588Z

Corporations Act 2001 561

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Division 7—Person managing a corporation while

disqualified may become liable for corporation’s

debts

588Z Court may make order imposing liability

Where:

(a) a company is being wound up; and

(b) on or after 23 June 1993 and within 4 years before the

relation-back day, a person contravened section 206A by

managing the company;

the Court may, on the application of the company’s liquidator,

order that the person is personally liable for so much of the

company’s debts and liabilities as does not exceed an amount

specified in the order.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.8 Offences

Section 589

562 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Part 5.8—Offences

589 Interpretation and application

(1) Sections 590 to 593 (inclusive) apply to a company:

(a) that has been wound up or is in the course of being wound

up; or

(b) that has been in the course of being wound up, where the

winding up has been stayed or terminated by an order under

section 482; or

(ba) of which a provisional liquidator has been appointed; or

(c) that is or has been under administration; or

(ca) that has executed a deed of company arrangement, even if the

deed has since terminated; or

(d) affairs of which are or have been under investigation; or

(e) in respect of property of which a receiver, or a receiver and

manager, has at any time been appointed, whether by the

Court or under a power contained in an instrument, whether

or not the appointment has been terminated; or

(f) that has ceased to carry on business or is unable to pay its

debts; or

(g) that has entered into a compromise or arrangement with its

creditors.

(2) For the purposes of this Part, affairs of a company are or have been

under investigation if, and only if:

(a) ASIC is investigating, or has at any time investigated, under

Division 1 of Part 3 of the ASIC Act:

(i) matters being, or connected with, affairs of the

company; or

(ii) matters including such matters; or

(b) affairs of the company have at any time been under

investigation under:

(i) Part VII of the Companies Act 1981; or

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Offences Part 5.8

Section 589

Corporations Act 2001 563

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(ii) the provisions of a previous law of a State or Territory

that correspond to that Part.

(3) For the purposes of this Part, a company is taken to have ceased to

carry on business only if:

(a) ASIC has published in the prescribed manner a notice of the

proposed deregistration of the company under

subsection 601AA(4) or 601AB(3); and

(b) if the notice was published under subsection 601AA(4) or

under subsection 601AB(3) because of a decision under

subsection 601AB(1)—2 months have passed since the

notice was published and ASIC has not been informed that

the company is carrying on business.

(4) For the purposes of this Part, a company is taken to be unable to

pay its debts if, and only if, execution or other process issued on a

judgment, decree or order of a court (whether or not an Australian

court) in favour of a creditor of the company is returned unsatisfied

in whole or in part.

(5) In this Part:

appropriate officer means:

(a) in relation to a company that has been, has been being or is

being wound up—the liquidator; and

(aa) in relation to a company of which a provisional liquidator has

been appointed—the provisional liquidator; and

(b) in relation to a company that is or has been under

administration—the administrator; and

(ba) in relation to a company that has executed a deed of company

arrangement—the deed’s administrator; and

(c) in relation to a company affairs of which are or have been

under investigation—ASIC or the NCSC, as the case

requires; and

(d) in relation to a company in respect of property of which a

receiver, or a receiver and manager, has been appointed—the

receiver or the receiver and manager; and

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.8 Offences

Section 589

564 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(e) in relation to a company that has ceased to carry on business

or is unable to pay its debts—ASIC or the NCSC, as the case

requires; and

(f) in relation to a company that has entered into a compromise

or arrangement with its creditors—the person appointed by

the Court to administer the compromise or arrangement.

property of a company includes any PPSA retention of title

property of the company.

Note: See sections 9 (definition of property) and 51F (PPSA retention of

title property).

relevant day means the day on which:

(a) in relation to a company that has been wound up, has been in

the course of being wound up, or is being wound up:

(i) if, because of Division 1A of Part 5.6, the winding up is

taken to have begun on the day when an order that the

company be wound up was made—the application for

the order was filed; or

(ii) otherwise—the winding up is taken because of

Division 1A of Part 5.6 to have begun;

(aa) in relation to a company of which a provisional liquidator has

been appointed—the provisional liquidator was appointed;

(b) in relation to a company that is or has been under

administration—the administration began;

(ba) in relation to a company that has executed a deed of company

arrangement—the deed was executed;

(c) in relation to a company affairs of which are or have been

under investigation:

(i) if paragraph (2)(a) applies—the investigation began; or

(ii) if paragraph (2)(b) applies—a direction was given to the

NCSC to arrange for the investigation;

(d) in relation to a company in respect of property of which a

receiver, or a receiver and manager, has been appointed—the

receiver, or the receiver and manager, was appointed;

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Offences Part 5.8

Section 590

Corporations Act 2001 565

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(e) in relation to a company that is unable to pay its debts—the

execution or other process was returned unsatisfied in whole

or in part;

(f) in relation to a company that has ceased to carry on

business—a notice was first published in relation to the

company under subsection 601AA(4) or 601AB(3);

(g) in relation to a company that has entered into a compromise

or arrangement with its creditors—the compromise or

arrangement was approved by the Court.

(6) This Part applies in relation to a company that was first

incorporated other than under this Act:

(a) as if, in this Part (other than section 595) as so applying:

(i) a reference to the company included a reference to the

company as it existed at a time before its registration

day (including a time before the commencement of this

Act); and

(iii) a reference, in relation to a provision of this Act, to

ASIC included a reference to the NCSC (if relevant);

and

(b) with such other modifications as the circumstances require.

590 Offences by officers of certain companies

(1) A person who, being a past or present officer or employee of a

company to which this section applies:

(a) does not disclose to the appropriate officer all the property of

the company, and how and to whom and for what

consideration and when any part of the property of the

company was disposed of within 10 years next before the

relevant day, except such part as has been disposed of in the

ordinary course of the business of the company; or

(c) has, within 10 years next before the relevant day or at a time

on or after that day:

(i) engaged in conduct that resulted in the fraudulent

concealment or removal of any part of the property of

the company to the value of $100 or more; or

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.8 Offences

Section 590

566 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(ii) engaged in conduct that resulted in the concealment of

any debt due to or by the company; or

(iii) engaged in conduct that resulted in the fraudulent

parting with, alteration or making of any omission in, or

being privy to fraudulent parting with, altering or

making any omission in, any book affecting or relating

to affairs of the company; or

(iv) by any false representation or other fraud, obtained on

credit, for or on behalf of the company, any property

that the company has not subsequently paid for; or

(v) engaged in conduct that resulted in the fraudulent

pawning, pledging or disposal of, otherwise than in the

ordinary course of the business of the company,

property of the company that has been obtained on

credit and has not been paid for;

(d) fraudulently makes any material omission in any statement or

report relating to affairs of the company; or

(f) engaged in conduct that prevented the production to the

appropriate officer of any book affecting or relating to affairs

of the company; or

(g) has, within 10 years next before the relevant day or at a time

on or after that day, attempted to account for any part of the

property of the company by making entries in the books of

the company showing fictitious transactions, losses or

expenses; or

(h) has, within 10 years next before the relevant day or at a time

on or after that day, been guilty of any false representation or

other fraud for the purpose of obtaining the consent of the

creditors of the company or any of them to an agreement

with reference to affairs of the company or to the winding up;

contravenes this subsection.

(2) Absolute liability applies to so much of an offence based on

paragraph (1)(c), (g) or (h) as requires that an event occur within

10 years next before the relevant day or at a time on or after that

day.

Note: For absolute liability, see section 6.2 of the Criminal Code.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Offences Part 5.8

Section 590

Corporations Act 2001 567

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(3) Paragraph (1)(a) does not apply to the extent that the person is not

capable of disclosing the information referred to in that paragraph.

Note: A defendant bears an evidential burden in relation to the matters in

subsection (3), see subsection 13.3(3) of the Criminal Code.

(4) A person who, being a past or present officer or employee of a

company to which this section applies, does not deliver up to, or in

accordance with the directions of, the appropriate officer:

(a) all the property of the company in the person’s possession; or

(b) all books in the person’s possession belonging to the

company (except books of which the person is entitled, as

against the company and the appropriate officer, to retain

possession);

contravenes this subsection.

(4A) A person who, being a past or present officer or employee of a

company and knowing or believing that a false debt has been

proved by a person, fails for a period of one month to inform the

appropriate officer of his or her knowledge or belief contravenes

this subsection.

(4B) A person must not intentionally or recklessly fail to comply with

subsection (4) or (4A).

(5) Where a person pawns, pledges or disposes of any property in

circumstances that amount to a contravention by virtue of

subparagraph (1)(c)(v), a person who takes in pawn or pledge or

otherwise receives the property knowing it to be pawned, pledged

or disposed of in those circumstances contravenes this subsection.

(6) A person who takes in pawn or pledge or otherwise receives

property in circumstances mentioned in subsection (5) and with the

knowledge mentioned in that subsection is taken to hold the

property as trustee for the company concerned and is liable to

account to the company for the property.

(7) Where, in proceedings under subsection (6), it is necessary to

establish that a person has taken property in pawn or pledge, or

otherwise received property:

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.8 Offences

Section 592

568 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(a) in circumstances mentioned in subsection (5); and

(b) with the knowledge mentioned in that subsection;

the matter referred to in paragraph (b) of this subsection may be

established on the balance of probabilities.

592 Incurring of certain debts; fraudulent conduct

(1) Where:

(a) a company has incurred a debt before 23 June 1993; and

(b) immediately before the time when the debt was incurred:

(i) there were reasonable grounds to expect that the

company will not be able to pay all its debts as and

when they become due; or

(ii) there were reasonable grounds to expect that, if the

company incurs the debt, it will not be able to pay all its

debts as and when they become due; and

(c) the company was, at the time when the debt was incurred, or

becomes at a later time, a company to which this section

applies;

any person who was a director of the company, or took part in the

management of the company, at the time when the debt was

incurred contravenes this subsection and the company and that

person or, if there are 2 or more such persons, those persons are

jointly and severally liable for the payment of the debt.

(1A) An offence based on subsection (1) is an offence of strict liability.

Note: For strict liability, see section 6.1 of the Criminal Code.

(2) In any proceedings against a person under subsection (1), it is a

defence if it is proved:

(a) that the debt was incurred without the person’s express or

implied authority or consent; or

(b) that at the time when the debt was incurred, the person did

not have reasonable cause to expect:

(i) that the company would not be able to pay all its debts

as and when they became due; or

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Offences Part 5.8

Section 592

Corporations Act 2001 569

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(ii) that, if the company incurred that debt, it would not be

able to pay all its debts as and when they became due.

Note: A defendant bears a legal burden in relation to a matter mentioned in

subsection (2), see section 13.4 of the Criminal Code.

(3) Proceedings may be brought under subsection (1) for the recovery

of a debt whether or not the person against whom the proceedings

are brought, or any other person, has been convicted of an offence

under subsection (1) in respect of the incurring of that debt.

(4) In proceedings brought under subsection (1) for the recovery of a

debt, the liability of a person under that subsection in respect of the

debt may be established on the balance of probabilities.

(5) Where subsection (1) renders a person or persons liable to pay a

debt incurred by a company, the payment by that person or either

or any of those persons of the whole or any part of that debt does

not render the company liable to the person concerned in respect of

the amount so paid.

(6) Where:

(a) a company has done an act (including the making of a

contract or the entering into of a transaction) with intent to

defraud creditors of the company or of any other person or

for any other fraudulent purpose; and

(b) the company was at the time when it does the act, or becomes

at a later time, a company to which this section applies;

any person who was knowingly concerned in the doing of the act

with that intent or for that purpose contravenes this subsection.

(6A) For the purposes of an offence based on subsection (6), absolute

liability applies to paragraph (6)(b).

Note: For absolute liability, see section 6.2 of the Criminal Code.

(7) A certificate issued by the proper officer of an Australian court

stating that a person specified in the certificate:

(a) was convicted of an offence under subsection (1) in relation

to a debt specified in the certificate incurred by a company so

specified; or

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.8 Offences

Section 593

570 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(b) was convicted of an offence under subsection (6) in relation

to a company specified in the certificate;

is, in any proceedings, prima facie evidence of the matters stated in

the certificate.

(8) A document purporting to be a certificate issued under

subsection (7) is, unless the contrary is established, taken to be

such a certificate and to have been duly issued.

593 Powers of Court

(1) Where a person has been convicted of an offence under

subsection 592(1) in respect of the incurring of a debt, the Court,

on the application of ASIC or the person to whom the debt is

payable, may, if it thinks it proper to do so, declare that the

first-mentioned person is personally responsible without any

limitation of liability for the payment to the person to whom the

debt is payable of an amount equal to the whole of the debt or such

part of it as the Court thinks proper.

(2) Where a person has been convicted of an offence under

subsection 592(6), the Court, on the application of ASIC or of a

prescribed person, may, if it thinks it proper to do so, declare that

the first-mentioned person is personally responsible without any

limitation of liability for the payment to the company of the

amount required to satisfy so much of the debts of the company as

the Court thinks proper.

(3) In relation to a company in respect of which a conviction referred

to in subsection (2) relates:

(a) the appropriate officer; and

(b) a creditor or contributory of the company authorised by

ASIC to make an application under that subsection; and

(c) if the company was a company to which section 592 applied

by reason of paragraph 589(1)(c)—a member of the

company;

are prescribed persons for the purposes of that subsection.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Offences Part 5.8

Section 594

Corporations Act 2001 571

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(4) Where the Court makes a declaration under subsection (1) in

relation to a person, it may give such further directions as it thinks

proper for the purpose of giving effect to that declaration.

(5) In particular, the Court may order that the liability of the person

under the declaration is a charge:

(a) on a debt or obligation due from the company to the person;

or

(b) on a right or interest under a security interest in any property

of the company held by or vested in the person or a person on

the person’s behalf, or a person claiming as assignee from or

through the person liable or a person acting on the person’s

behalf.

(6) The Court may, from time to time, make such further order as it

thinks proper for the purpose of enforcing a charge imposed under

subsection (5).

(7) For the purpose of subsection (5), assignee includes a person to

whom or in whose favour, by the directions of the person liable,

the debt, obligation or security interest was created, issued or

transferred or the interest created, but does not include an assignee

for valuable consideration, not including consideration by way of

marriage, given in good faith and without actual knowledge of any

of the matters upon which the conviction or declaration was made.

(8) On the hearing of an application under subsection (1) or (2), the

appropriate officer or other applicant may give evidence or call

witnesses.

594 Certain rights not affected

Except as provided by subsection 592(4) nothing in

subsection 592(1) or 593(1) or (2) affects any rights of a person to

indemnity, subrogation or contribution.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.8 Offences

Section 595

572 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

595 Inducement to be appointed liquidator etc. of company

(1) A person must not give, or agree or offer to give, to another person

any valuable consideration with a view to securing the

first-mentioned person’s own appointment or nomination, or to

securing or preventing the appointment or nomination of a third

person, as:

(a) a liquidator or provisional liquidator of a company; or

(b) an administrator of a company; or

(c) an administrator of a deed of company arrangement executed,

or to be executed, by a company; or

(d) a receiver, or a receiver and manager, of property of a

company; or

(e) a trustee or other person to administer a compromise or

arrangement made between a company and any other person

or persons.

(2) An offence based on subsection (1) is an offence of strict liability.

Note: For strict liability, see section 6.1 of the Criminal Code.

596 Frauds by officers

(1) A person who, while an officer or employee of a company:

(a) by false pretences or by means of any other fraud, induces a

person to give credit to the company or to a related body

corporate; or

(b) with intent to defraud the company or a related body

corporate, or members or creditors of the company or of a

related body corporate, makes or purports to make, or causes

to be made or to be purported to be made, any gift or transfer

of, or security interest in, or causes or connives at the levying

of any execution against, property of the company or of a

related body corporate; or

(c) with intent to defraud the company or a related body

corporate, or members or creditors of the company or of a

related body corporate, engages in conduct that results in the

concealment or removal of any part of the property of the

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Offences Part 5.8

Section 596

Corporations Act 2001 573

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

company or of a related body corporate after, or within 2

months before, the date of any unsatisfied judgment or order

for payment of money obtained against the company or a

related body corporate;

contravenes this section.

(2) Absolute liability applies to so much of an offence based on

paragraph (1)(c) as requires that an event occur after, or within 2

months before, the date of any unsatisfied judgment or order for

payment of money obtained against the company or a related body

corporate.

Note: For absolute liability, see section 6.2 of the Criminal Code.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.8A Employee entitlements

Section 596AA

574 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Part 5.8A—Employee entitlements

596AA Object and coverage of Part

Object

(1) The object of this Part is to protect the entitlements of a company’s

employees from agreements and transactions that are entered into

with the intention of defeating the recovery of those entitlements.

Employee entitlements

(2) The entitlements of an employee of a company that are protected

under this Part are:

(a) wages payable by the company for services rendered to the

company by the employee; and

(b) superannuation contributions (that is, contributions by the

company to a fund or scheme for the purposes of making

provision for, or obtaining, superannuation benefits

(including defined benefits) for the employee, or for

dependants of the employee) payable by the company in

respect of services rendered to the company by the employee;

and

(c) amounts due in respect of injury compensation in relation to

the employee; and

(d) amounts due under an industrial instrument in respect of the

employee’s leave of absence; and

(e) retrenchment payments for the employee (that is, amounts

payable by the company to the employee, under an industrial

instrument, in respect of the termination of the employee’s

employment by the company).

An entitlement of an employee need not be owed to the employee.

It might, for example, be an amount owed to the employee’s

dependants or a superannuation contribution payable to a fund in

respect of services rendered by the employee.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Employee entitlements Part 5.8A

Section 596AB

Corporations Act 2001 575

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(3) The entitlements of an excluded employee (within the meaning of

section 556) are protected under this Part only to the extent to

which they have priority under paragraph 556(1)(e), (f), (g) or (h).

Employees

(4) For the purposes of this Part, a person is an employee of a company

if the person is, or has been, an employee of the company (whether

remunerated by salary, wages, commission or otherwise).

(5) If an entitlement of an employee of a company is owed to a person

other than the employee, this Part applies to the entitlement as if a

reference to the employee included a reference to the person to

whom the entitlement is owed.

596AB Entering into agreements or transactions to avoid employee

entitlements

(1) A person must not enter into a relevant agreement or a transaction

with the intention of, or with intentions that include the intention

of:

(a) preventing the recovery of the entitlements of employees of a

company; or

(b) significantly reducing the amount of the entitlements of

employees of a company that can be recovered.

(2) Subsection (1) applies even if:

(a) the company is not a party to the agreement or transaction; or

(b) the agreement or transaction is approved by a court.

(3) A reference in this section to a relevant agreement or a

transaction includes a reference to:

(a) a relevant agreement and a transaction; and

(b) a series or combination of:

(i) relevant agreements or transactions; or

(ii) relevant agreements; or

(iii) transactions.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.8A Employee entitlements

Section 596AC

576 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(4) If a person contravenes this section by incurring a debt (within the

meaning of section 588G), the incurring of the debt and the

contravention are linked for the purposes of this Act.

596AC Person who contravenes section 596AB liable to compensate

for loss

(1) A person is liable to pay compensation under subsection (2) or (3)

if:

(a) the person contravenes section 596AB in relation to the

entitlements of employees of a company; and

(b) the company is being wound up; and

(c) the employees suffer loss or damage because of:

(i) the contravention; or

(ii) action taken to give effect to an agreement or

transaction involved in the contravention.

The person is liable whether or not the person has been convicted

of an offence in relation to the contravention.

(2) The company’s liquidator may recover from the person an amount

equal to the loss or damage as a debt due to the company.

Note: Because employee entitlements are priority payments under

paragraphs 556(1)(e) to (h), employees have priority to any

compensation recovered by the liquidator in proceedings brought

under this section.

(3) If an employee of the company has suffered loss or damage

because of:

(a) the contravention; or

(b) action taken to give effect to an agreement or transaction

involved in the contravention;

the employee may, as provided in section 596AF to 596AI (but not

otherwise), recover from the person, as a debt due to the employee,

an amount equal to the amount of the loss or damage. Any amount

recovered by the employee under this subsection is to be taken into

account in working out the amount for which the employee may

prove in the liquidation of the company.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Employee entitlements Part 5.8A

Section 596AD

Corporations Act 2001 577

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(4) Proceedings under this section may only be begun within 6 years

after the beginning of the winding up.

596AD Avoiding double recovery

An amount recovered in proceedings under section 596AC in

relation to a contravention of section 596AB is to be taken into

account in working out the amount (if any) recoverable in:

(a) any other proceedings under that section in relation to the

contravention; and

(b) proceedings under section 588M in relation to the incurring

of a debt that is linked to the contravention.

596AE Effect of section 596AC

Section 596AC:

(a) has effect in addition to, and not in derogation of, any rule of

law about the duty or liability of a person because of the

person’s office or employment in relation to a company; and

(b) does not prevent proceedings from being instituted in respect

of a breach of such a duty or in respect of such a liability.

596AF Employee may sue for compensation with liquidator’s

consent

(1) If a company is being wound up, an employee of the company

may, with the written consent of the company’s liquidator, begin

proceedings under section 596AC in relation to a contravention of

section 596AB in relation to an entitlement of the employee.

(2) Subsection (1) has effect despite section 596AH, but subject to

section 596AI.

596AG Employee may give liquidator notice of intention to sue for

compensation

An employee of a company that is being wound up may give the

company’s liquidator a written notice:

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.8A Employee entitlements

Section 596AH

578 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(a) stating that the employee intends to begin proceedings under

section 596AC in relation to a contravention of

section 596AB in relation to an entitlement of the employee;

and

(b) specifying the contravention of section 596AB and the

entitlement to which the proposed proceedings relate; and

(c) asking the liquidator to give the employee, within 3 months

after receiving the notice:

(i) a written consent to the employee beginning the

proceedings; or

(ii) a written statement of the reasons why the liquidator

thinks that proceedings under section 596AC in relation

to the contravention should not be begun.

The notice may be given only after the end of 6 months beginning

when the company begins to be wound up.

596AH When employee may sue for compensation without

liquidator’s consent

(1) This section applies if an employee of a company gives a notice

under section 596AG in relation to a contravention of

section 569AB and to an entitlement.

(2) The employee may begin proceedings in a court under

section 596AC in relation to the contravention and the entitlement

if:

(a) as at the end of 3 months after the liquidator receives the

notice, he or she has not consented to the employee

beginning such proceedings; and

(b) on an application made after those 3 months, the court has

given leave for the proceedings to begin.

(3) If:

(a) during those 3 months, the liquidator gives to the employee a

written statement of the reasons why the liquidator thinks

that such proceedings should not be begun; and

(b) the employee applies for leave under paragraph (2)(b);

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Employee entitlements Part 5.8A

Section 596AI

Corporations Act 2001 579

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

then:

(c) the employee must file the statement with the court when so

applying; and

(d) in determining the application, the court is to have regard to

the reasons set out in the statement.

596AI Events preventing employee from suing

(1) An employee of a company that is being wound up cannot begin

proceedings under section 596AC in relation to a contravention in

relation to an entitlement of the employee if:

(a) the company’s liquidator has applied under section 588FF in

relation to a transaction that constituted, or was part of, the

contravention; or

(b) the company’s liquidator has begun proceedings under

section 596AC in relation to the contravention; or

(c) the company’s liquidator has begun proceedings under

section 588M in relation to the incurring of the debt that is

linked to the contravention; or

(d) the company’s liquidator has intervened in an application for

a civil penalty order against a person in relation to a

contravention of section 588G in relation to the incurring of

the debt that is linked to the contravention.

(2) Subsection (1) has effect despite sections 596AF and 596AH.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.9 Miscellaneous

Division 1 Examining a person about a corporation

Section 596A

580 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Part 5.9—Miscellaneous

Division 1—Examining a person about a corporation

596A Mandatory examination

The Court is to summon a person for examination about a

corporation’s examinable affairs if:

(a) an eligible applicant applies for the summons; and

(b) the Court is satisfied that the person is an officer or

provisional liquidator of the corporation or was such an

officer or provisional liquidator during or after the 2 years

ending:

(i) if the corporation is under administration—on the

section 513C day in relation to the administration; or

(ii) if the corporation has executed a deed of company

arrangement that has not yet terminated—on the

section 513C day in relation to the administration that

ended when the deed was executed; or

(iii) if the corporation is being, or has been, wound up—

when the winding up began; or

(iv) otherwise—when the application is made.

596B Discretionary examination

(1) The Court may summon a person for examination about a

corporation’s examinable affairs if:

(a) an eligible applicant applies for the summons; and

(b) the Court is satisfied that the person:

(i) has taken part or been concerned in examinable affairs

of the corporation and has been, or may have been,

guilty of misconduct in relation to the corporation; or

(ii) may be able to give information about examinable

affairs of the corporation.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Miscellaneous Part 5.9

Examining a person about a corporation Division 1

Section 596C

Corporations Act 2001 581

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(2) This section has effect subject to section 596A.

596C Affidavit in support of application under section 596B

(1) A person who applies under section 596B must file an affidavit

that supports the application and complies with the rules.

(2) The affidavit is not available for inspection except so far as the

Court orders.

596D Content of summons

(1) A summons to a person under section 596A or 596B is to require

the person to attend before the Court:

(a) at a specified place and at a specified time on a specified day,

being a place, time and day that are reasonable in the

circumstances; and

(b) to be examined on oath about the corporation’s examinable

affairs.

(2) A summons to a person under section 596A or 596B may require

the person to produce at the examination specified books that:

(a) are in the person’s possession; and

(b) relate to the corporation or to any of its examinable affairs.

(3) A summons under section 596A is to require under subsection (2)

of this section the production of such of the books requested in the

application for the summons as the summons may so require.

596E Notice of examination

If the Court summons a person for examination, the person who

applied for the summons must give written notice of the

examination to:

(a) as many of the corporation’s creditors as reasonably

practicable; and

(b) each eligible applicant in relation to the corporation, except:

(i) the person who applied for the examination; and

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.9 Miscellaneous

Division 1 Examining a person about a corporation

Section 596F

582 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(ii) if a person authorised by ASIC applied for the

examination—ASIC; and

(iii) a person who is such an eligible applicant only because

the person is authorised by ASIC.

596F Court may give directions about examination

(1) Subject to section 597, the Court may at any time give one or more

of the following:

(a) a direction about the matters to be inquired into at an

examination;

(b) a direction about the procedure to be followed at an

examination;

(c) a direction about who may be present at an examination

while it is being held in private;

(d) a direction that a person be excluded from an examination,

even while it is being held in public;

(e) a direction about access to records of the examination;

(f) a direction prohibiting publication or communication of

information about the examination (including questions

asked, and answers given, at the examination);

(g) a direction that a document that relates to the examination

and was created at the examination be destroyed.

(2) The Court may give a direction under paragraph (1)(e), (f) or (g) in

relation to all or part of an examination even if the examination, or

that part, was held in public.

(3) A person must not contravene a direction under subsection (1).

597 Conduct of examination

(4) An examination is to be held in public except to such extent (if

any) as the Court considers that, by reason of special

circumstances, it is desirable to hold the examination in private.

(5A) Any of the following may take part in an examination:

(a) ASIC;

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Miscellaneous Part 5.9

Examining a person about a corporation Division 1

Section 597

Corporations Act 2001 583

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(b) any other eligible applicant in relation to the corporation;

and for that purpose may be represented by a lawyer or by an agent

authorised in writing for the purpose.

(5B) The Court may put, or allow to be put, to a person being examined

such questions about the corporation or any of its examinable

affairs as the Court thinks appropriate.

(6) A person who is summoned under section 596A or 596B to attend

before the Court must not intentionally or recklessly:

(a) fail to attend as required by the summons; or

(b) fail to attend from day to day until the conclusion of the

examination.

(6A) Subsection (6) does not apply to the extent that the person has a

reasonable excuse.

Note: A defendant bears an evidential burden in relation to the matter in

subsection (6A), see subsection 13.3(3) of the Criminal Code.

(7) A person who attends before the Court for examination must not:

(a) without reasonable excuse, refuse or fail to take an oath or

make an affirmation; or

(b) without reasonable excuse, refuse or fail to answer a question

that the Court directs him or her to answer; or

(c) make a statement that is false or misleading in a material

particular; or

(d) without reasonable excuse, refuse or fail to produce books

that the summons requires him or her to produce.

(9) The Court may direct a person to produce, at an examination of

that or any other person, books that are in the first-mentioned

person’s possession and are relevant to matters to which the

examination relates or will relate.

(9A) A person may comply with a direction under subsection (9) by

causing the books to be produced at the examination.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.9 Miscellaneous

Division 1 Examining a person about a corporation

Section 597

584 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(10) Where the Court so directs a person to produce any books and the

person has a lien on the books, the production of the books does

not prejudice the lien.

(10A) A person must not refuse, or intentionally or recklessly fail, to

comply with a direction under subsection (9).

(11) Subsection (10A) does not apply to the extent that the person has a

reasonable excuse.

Note: A defendant bears an evidential burden in relation to the matter in

subsection (11), see subsection 13.3(3) of the Criminal Code.

(12) A person is not excused from answering a question put to the

person at an examination on the ground that the answer might tend

to incriminate the person or make the person liable to a penalty.

(12A) Where:

(a) before answering a question put to a person (other than a

body corporate) at an examination, the person claims that the

answer might tend to incriminate the person or make the

person liable to a penalty; and

(b) the answer might in fact tend to incriminate the person or

make the person so liable;

the answer is not admissible in evidence against the person in:

(c) a criminal proceeding; or

(d) a proceeding for the imposition of a penalty;

other than a proceeding under this section, or any other proceeding

in respect of the falsity of the answer.

(13) The Court may order the questions put to a person and the answers

given by him or her at an examination to be recorded in writing

and may require him or her to sign that written record.

(14) Subject to subsection (12A), any written record of an examination

so signed by a person, or any transcript of an examination of a

person that is authenticated as provided by the rules, may be used

in evidence in any legal proceedings against the person.

(14A) A written record made under subsection (13):

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Miscellaneous Part 5.9

Examining a person about a corporation Division 1

Section 597A

Corporations Act 2001 585

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(a) is to be open for inspection, without fee, by:

(i) the person who applied for the examination; or

(ii) an officer of the corporation; or

(iii) a creditor of the corporation; and

(b) is to be open for inspection by anyone else on paying the

prescribed fee.

(15) An examination under this Division may, if the Court so directs

and subject to the rules, be held before such other court as is

specified by the Court and the powers of the Court under this

Division may be exercised by that other court.

(16) A person ordered to attend before the Court or another court for

examination under this Division may, at his or her own expense,

employ a solicitor, or a solicitor and counsel, and the solicitor or

counsel, as the case may be, may put to the person such questions

as the Court, or the other court, as the case may be, considers just

for the purpose of enabling the person to explain or qualify any

answers or evidence given by the person.

(17) The Court or another court before which an examination under this

Division takes place may, if it thinks fit, adjourn the examination

from time to time.

597A When Court is to require affidavit about corporation’s

examinable affairs

(1) The Court is to require a person to file an affidavit about a

corporation’s examinable affairs if:

(a) an eligible applicant applies for the requirement to be made;

and

(b) the Court is satisfied that the person is an officer or

provisional liquidator of the corporation or was such an

officer or provisional liquidator during or after the 2 years

ending:

(i) if the corporation is under administration—on the

section 513C day in relation to the administration; or

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.9 Miscellaneous

Division 1 Examining a person about a corporation

Section 597B

586 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(ii) if the corporation has executed a deed of company

arrangement that has not yet terminated—on the

section 513C day in relation to the administration that

ended when the deed was executed; or

(iii) if the corporation is being, or has been, wound up—

when the winding up began; or

(iv) otherwise—when the application is made;

even if the person has been summoned under section 596A or

596B for examination about those affairs.

(2) The requirement is to:

(a) specify such of the information requested in the application

as relates to examinable affairs of the corporation; and

(b) require the affidavit to set out the specified information; and

(c) require the affidavit to be filed on or before a specified day

that is reasonable in the circumstances.

(3) A person must not refuse, or intentionally or recklessly fail, to

comply with a requirement made of the person under

subsection (1).

(3A) Subsection (3) does not apply to the extent that the person has a

reasonable excuse.

Note: A defendant bears an evidential burden in relation to the matter in

subsection (3A), see subsection 13.3(3) of the Criminal Code.

(4) The Court may excuse a person from answering a question at an

examination about a corporation’s examinable affairs if the person

has already filed an affidavit under this section about that

corporation’s examinable affairs that sets out information that

answers the question.

597B Costs of unnecessary examination or affidavit

Where the Court is satisfied that a summons to a person under

section 596A or 596B, or a requirement made of a person under

section 597A, was obtained without reasonable cause, the Court

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Miscellaneous Part 5.9

Examining a person about a corporation Division 1

Section 597B

Corporations Act 2001 587

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

may order some or all of the costs incurred by the person because

of the summons or requirement to be paid by:

(a) in any case—the applicant for the summons or requirement;

or

(b) in the case of a summons—any person who took part in the

examination.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.9 Miscellaneous

Division 2 Orders against a person in relation to a corporation

Section 598

588 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Division 2—Orders against a person in relation to a

corporation

598 Order against person concerned with corporation

(2) Subject to subsection (3), where, on application by an eligible

applicant, the Court is satisfied that:

(a) a person is guilty of fraud, negligence, default, breach of trust

or breach of duty in relation to a corporation; and

(b) the corporation has suffered, or is likely to suffer, loss or

damage as a result of the fraud, negligence, default, breach of

trust or breach of duty;

the Court may make such order or orders as it thinks appropriate

against or in relation to the person (including either or both of the

orders specified in subsection (4)) and may so make an order

against or in relation to a person even though the person may have

committed an offence in respect of the matter to which the order

relates.

(3) The Court must not make an order against a person under

subsection (2) unless the Court has given the person the

opportunity:

(a) to give evidence; and

(b) to call witnesses to give evidence; and

(c) to bring other evidence in relation to the matters to which the

application relates; and

(d) to employ, at the person’s own expense, a solicitor, or a

solicitor and counsel, to put to the person, or to any other

witness, such questions as the Court considers just for the

purpose of enabling the person to explain or qualify any

answers or evidence given by the person.

(4) The orders that may be made under subsection (2) against a person

include:

(a) an order directing the person to pay money or transfer

property to the corporation; and

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Miscellaneous Part 5.9

Orders against a person in relation to a corporation Division 2

Section 598

Corporations Act 2001 589

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(b) an order directing the person to pay to the corporation the

amount of the loss or damage.

(5) Nothing in this section prevents any person from instituting any

other proceedings in relation to matters in respect of which an

application may be made under this section.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.9 Miscellaneous

Division 3 Provisions applying to various kinds of external administration

Section 599

590 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Division 3—Provisions applying to various kinds of

external administration

599 Appeals from decisions of receivers etc.

(1) A person aggrieved by any act, omission or decision of:

(a) a person administering a compromise, arrangement or

scheme referred to in Part 5.1; or

(b) a controller, or a managing controller, of property of a

corporation;

may appeal to the Court in respect of the act, omission or decision

and the Court may confirm, reverse or modify the act or decision,

or remedy the omission, as the case may be, and make such orders

and give such directions as it thinks fit.

(2) Paragraph (1)(b) does not apply to a corporation that is an

Aboriginal and Torres Strait Islander corporation.

Note: Similar provision is made in relation to Aboriginal and Torres Strait

Islander corporations under section 576-10 of the Corporations

(Aboriginal and Torres Strait Islander) Act 2006.

600AA Duty of receiver, administrator or liquidator—parental leave

pay

(1) A person who:

(a) is appointed (whether or not by a court), and acts, as a

receiver and manager in respect of property of a body

corporate; or

(b) is appointed as the administrator of a body corporate under

Division 2 of Part 5.3A; or

(c) is appointed as the liquidator or provisional liquidator of a

body corporate;

must, as soon as possible, notify the Secretary (within the meaning

of the Paid Parental Leave Act 2010) of the person’s appointment,

if the body corporate was a paid parental leave employer just

before the appointment.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Miscellaneous Part 5.9

Provisions applying to various kinds of external administration Division 3

Section 600F

Corporations Act 2001 591

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(2) A person is a paid parental leave employer at a particular time if:

(a) the person must pay an instalment under section 72 of the

Paid Parental Leave Act 2010; and

(b) either:

(i) that time occurs during the instalment period (within the

meaning of that Act) to which the instalment relates; or

(ii) that time occurs after the end of the instalment period to

which the instalment relates, but the person has not paid

the instalment by that time.

600F Limitation on right of suppliers of essential services to insist on

payment as condition of supply

(1) If:

(a) a relevant authority of an eligible company requests, or

authorises someone else to request, a person or authority (the

supplier) to supply an essential service to the company in

Australia; and

(b) the company owes an amount to the supplier in respect of the

supply of the essential service before the effective day;

the supplier must not:

(c) refuse to comply with the request for the reason only that the

amount is owing; or

(d) make it a condition of the supply of the essential service

pursuant to the request that the amount is to be paid.

(2) In this section:

effective day, in relation to a relevant authority of an eligible

company, means the day when the relevant authority became a

relevant authority of the company, even if that day began before

this Act commenced.

eligible company means a company:

(a) that is being wound up; or

(b) a provisional liquidator of which is acting; or

(c) that is under administration; or

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.9 Miscellaneous

Division 3 Provisions applying to various kinds of external administration

Section 600G

592 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(d) that has executed a deed of company arrangement that has

not yet terminated; or

(e) a receiver, or receiver and manager, of property of which is

acting.

essential service means:

(a) electricity; or

(b) gas; or

(c) water; or

(d) a carriage service (within the meaning of the

Telecommunications Act 1997).

relevant authority, in relation to an eligible company, means:

(a) the liquidator; or

(b) the provisional liquidator; or

(c) the administrator of the company; or

(d) the administrator of the deed of company arrangement; or

(e) the receiver, or receiver and manager;

as the case requires.

600G Electronic methods of giving or sending certain notices etc.

(1) This section applies if a person (the notifier) is authorised or

required to give or send a notice, or other document, to a person

(the recipient) under any of the following provisions:

(a) paragraph 436E(3)(a);

(f) subsection 450A(3);

(g) paragraph 450B(a);

(h) paragraph 450C(b);

(i) paragraph 450D(b);

(l) paragraph 497(1)(a);

(p) paragraph 568A(1)(b);

(s) subsection 579J(1);

(t) subsection 579J(2);

(u) subsection 579K(1);

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Miscellaneous Part 5.9

Provisions applying to various kinds of external administration Division 3

Section 600G

Corporations Act 2001 593

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(v) subsection 579K(2);

(w) subsection 579K(3);

(x) subsection 579K(4);

(y) a provision of Schedule 2 or the Insolvency Practice Rules.

(2) If the recipient nominates a fax number, or electronic address, by

which the recipient may be notified of such notices or documents,

the notifier may give or send the notice or document to the

recipient by sending it to that fax number or electronic address.

(3) If the recipient nominates any other electronic means by which the

recipient may be notified of such notices or documents, the notifier

may give or send the notice or document to the recipient by using

that electronic means.

(4) If the notifier makes the notice or document publicly available by

electronic means, the notifier may give or send the notice or

document to the recipient by notifying the recipient (using the

electronic means nominated by the recipient or otherwise in

writing):

(a) that the notice or document is available electronically; and

(b) the way in which the notice or document can be accessed.

(4A) Subsection (4) does not apply if the recipient notifies the notifier in

accordance with the regulations, before the time for giving or

sending the notice or document expires, that the recipient does not

have access to the internet.

(5) A notice or document sent to a fax number or electronic address, or

by other electronic means, is taken to be given or sent on the

business day after it is sent.

(6) A notice or document given or sent under subsection (4) is taken to

be given or sent on the business day after the day on which the

recipient is notified that the notice or document is available.

(7) Subsections (2), (3) and (4) do not limit the provisions mentioned

in subsection (1).

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.9 Miscellaneous

Division 3 Provisions applying to various kinds of external administration

Section 600H

594 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

600H Rights if claim against the company postponed

(1) A person whose claim against a company is postponed under

section 563A is entitled:

(a) to receive a copy of any notice, report or statement to

creditors only if the person asks the administrator or

liquidator of the company, in writing, for a copy of the

notice, report or statement; and

(b) to vote in their capacity as a creditor of the company, at a

meeting ordered under subsection 411(1) or during the

external administration of the company, only if the Court so

orders.

(2) In this section:

external administration includes the following:

(a) voluntary administration;

(b) a compromise or arrangement under part 5.1;

(c) administration under a deed of company arrangement;

(d) winding up by the Court;

(e) voluntary winding up.

600J Acts of external administrator valid etc.

(1) The acts of an external administrator are valid despite any defects

that may afterwards be discovered in his or her appointment or

qualification.

(2) A disposition of a company’s property by an external administrator

(including a disposition by way of conveyance, assignment,

transfer or an instrument giving rise to a security interest) is,

despite any defect or irregularity affecting the validity of the

winding up or the appointment of the external administrator, valid

in favour of any person taking such property in good faith and for

value and without actual knowledge of the defect or irregularity.

(3) A person making or permitting a disposition of property to an

external administrator is to be protected and indemnified in so

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

External administration Chapter 5

Miscellaneous Part 5.9

Provisions applying to various kinds of external administration Division 3

Section 600J

Corporations Act 2001 595

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

doing despite any defect or irregularity affecting the validity of the

winding up or the appointment of the external administrator that is

not then known to that person.

(4) For the purposes of this section, a disposition of property is taken

to include a payment of money.

(5) In this section:

external administrator of a company has the same meaning as in

Schedule 2.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5 External administration

Part 5.9 Miscellaneous

Division 4 Insolvency Practice Schedule (Corporations)

Section 600K

596 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Division 4—Insolvency Practice Schedule (Corporations)

600K Insolvency Practice Schedule (Corporations)

Schedule 2 has effect.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Deregistration, and transfer of registration, of companies Chapter 5A

Deregistration Part 5A.1

Section 601

Corporations Act 2001 597

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Chapter 5A—Deregistration, and transfer of

registration, of companies

Part 5A.1—Deregistration

601 Definitions

In this Part:

property of a company includes PPSA retention of title property, if

the security interest in the property is vested in the company

because of the operation of any of the following provisions:

(a) section 267 or 267A of the Personal Property Securities Act

2009 (property subject to unperfected security interests);

(b) section 588FL of this Act (collateral not registered within

time).

Note: See sections 9 (definition of property) and 51F (PPSA retention of

title property).

601AA Deregistration—voluntary

Who may apply for deregistration

(1) An application to deregister a company may be lodged with ASIC

by:

(a) the company; or

(b) a director or member of the company; or

(c) a liquidator of the company.

If the company lodges the application, it must nominate a person to

be given notice of the deregistration.

Circumstances in which application can be made

(2) A person may apply only if:

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5A Deregistration, and transfer of registration, of companies

Part 5A.1 Deregistration

Section 601AA

598 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(a) all the members of the company agree to the deregistration;

and

(b) the company is not carrying on business; and

(c) the company’s assets are worth less than $1,000; and

(d) the company has paid all fees and penalties payable under

this Act; and

(e) the company has no outstanding liabilities; and

(f) the company is not a party to any legal proceedings.

ASIC may ask for information about officers

(3) The applicant must give ASIC any information that ASIC requests

about the current and former officers of the company.

Deregistration procedure

(4) If:

(a) ASIC decides to deregister the company under this section;

and

(b) ASIC is not aware of any failure to comply with

subsections (1) to (3);

ASIC must:

(c) give notice of the proposed deregistration on ASIC database;

and

(d) publish notice of the proposed deregistration in the

prescribed manner.

(4A) When 2 months have passed since the publication of the notice

under paragraph (4)(d), ASIC may deregister the company.

(5) ASIC must give notice of the deregistration to:

(a) the applicant; or

(b) the person nominated in the application to be given the

notice.

(6) ASIC may refuse to deregister a company under this section if

ASIC decides to order under section 489EA that the company be

wound up.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Deregistration, and transfer of registration, of companies Chapter 5A

Deregistration Part 5A.1

Section 601AB

Corporations Act 2001 599

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(7) Subsection (6) does not limit ASIC’s power to refuse to deregister

the company.

601AB Deregistration—ASIC initiated

Circumstances in which ASIC may deregister

(1) ASIC may decide to deregister a company if:

(a) the response to a return of particulars given to the company is

at least 6 months late; and

(b) the company has not lodged any other documents under this

Act in the last 18 months; and

(c) ASIC has no reason to believe that the company is carrying

on business.

(1A) ASIC may also decide to deregister a company if the company’s

review fee in respect of a review date has not been paid in full at

least 12 months after the due date for payment.

(1B) ASIC may also decide to deregister a company if:

(a) the company is liable to pay levy imposed by the ASIC

Supervisory Cost Recovery Levy Act 2017; and

(b) the company has not paid in full at least 12 months after the

due date for payment:

(i) the amount of the levy; and

(ii) the amount of any late payment penalty payable in

relation to the levy; and

(iii) the amount of any shortfall penalty payable in relation

to the levy.

(2) ASIC may also decide to deregister a company if the company is

being wound up and ASIC has reason to believe that:

(a) the liquidator is no longer acting; or

(b) the company’s affairs have been fully wound up and a return

that the liquidator should have lodged is at least 6 months

late; or

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5A Deregistration, and transfer of registration, of companies

Part 5A.1 Deregistration

Section 601AC

600 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(c) the company’s affairs have been fully wound up under

Part 5.4 and the company has no property or not enough

property to cover the costs of obtaining a Court order for the

company’s deregistration.

Deregistration procedure

(3) If ASIC decides to deregister a company under this section, it

must:

(a) give notice of the proposed deregistration:

(i) to the company; and

(ii) to the company’s liquidator (if any); and

(iii) to the company’s directors; and

(iv) on ASIC database; and

(b) publish notice of the proposed deregistration in the

prescribed manner.

(3A) When 2 months have passed since the publication of the notice

under paragraph (3)(b), ASIC may deregister the company.

(4) ASIC does not have to give a person notice under paragraph (3)(a)

if ASIC does not have the necessary information about the person’s

identity or address.

(5) ASIC must give notice of the deregistration to everyone who was

notified of the proposed deregistration under

subparagraph (3)(a)(ii) or (iii).

(6) ASIC may refuse to deregister a company under this section if

ASIC decides to order under section 489EA that the company be

wound up.

(7) Subsection (6) does not limit ASIC’s power to refuse to deregister

the company.

601AC Deregistration—following amalgamation or winding up

(1) ASIC must deregister a company if the Court orders the

deregistration of the company under:

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Deregistration, and transfer of registration, of companies Chapter 5A

Deregistration Part 5A.1

Section 601AD

Corporations Act 2001 601

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(a) paragraph 413(1)(d) (reconstruction and amalgamation of

Part 5.1 bodies); or

(b) paragraph 481(5)(b) (release of liquidator); or

(c) subsection 509(2) (deregistration after end of administration

return is lodged).

601AD Effect of deregistration

Company ceases to exist

(1) A company ceases to exist on deregistration.

Note: Despite the deregistration, officers of the company may still be liable

for things done before the company was deregistered.

Trust property vests in the Commonwealth

(1A) On deregistration, all property that the company held on trust

immediately before deregistration vests in the Commonwealth. If

property is vested in a liquidator on trust immediately before

deregistration, that property vests in the Commonwealth. This

subsection extends to property situated outside this jurisdiction.

Other company property vests in ASIC

(2) On deregistration, all the company’s property (other than any

property held by the company on trust) vests in ASIC. If company

property is vested in a liquidator (other than any company property

vested in a liquidator on trust) immediately before deregistration,

that property vests in ASIC. This subsection extends to property

situated outside this jurisdiction.

Rights and powers in respect of property

(3) Under subsection (1A) or (2), the Commonwealth or ASIC takes

only the same property rights that the company itself held. If the

company held particular property subject to a security or other

interest or claim, the Commonwealth or ASIC takes the property

subject to that interest or claim.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5A Deregistration, and transfer of registration, of companies

Part 5A.1 Deregistration

Section 601AE

602 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Note: See also subsection 601AE(3)—which deals with liabilities that a law

imposes on the property (particularly liabilities such as rates, taxes

and other charges).

(3A) The Commonwealth has, subject to its obligations as trustee of the

trust, all the powers of an owner over property vested in it under

subsection (1A).

Note: Section 601AF confers additional powers on the Commonwealth to

fulfil outstanding obligations of the deregistered company.

(4) ASIC has all the powers of an owner over property vested in it

under subsection (2).

Note: Section 601AF confers additional powers on ASIC to fulfil

outstanding obligations of the deregistered company.

Company books to be kept by former directors

(5) The directors of the company immediately before deregistration

must keep the company’s books for 3 years after the deregistration.

(6) Subsection (5) does not apply to books that a liquidator has to keep

under subsection 542(2), or subsection 70-35(1) of Schedule 2

(retention and return or destruction of books).

Note: A defendant bears an evidential burden in relation to the matter in

subsection (6), see subsection 13.3(3) of the Criminal Code.

Strict liability offences

(7) An offence based on subsection (5) is an offence of strict liability.

Note: For strict liability, see section 6.1 of the Criminal Code.

601AE What the Commonwealth or ASIC does with the property

Trust property vested in the Commonwealth

(1) If property vests in the Commonwealth under

subsection 601AD(1A), the Commonwealth may:

(a) continue to act as trustee; or

(b) apply to a court for the appointment of a new trustee.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Deregistration, and transfer of registration, of companies Chapter 5A

Deregistration Part 5A.1

Section 601AE

Corporations Act 2001 603

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Note: Under paragraph (1)(a), the Commonwealth may be able to transfer

the property to a new trustee chosen in accordance with the trust

instrument.

(1A) If the Commonwealth continues to act as trustee in respect of the

property, subject to its obligations as trustee, the Commonwealth:

(a) in the case of money—must credit the amount of the money

to a special account (within the meaning of the Public

Governance, Performance and Accountability Act 2013); or

(b) otherwise:

(i) may sell or dispose of the property as it thinks fit; and

(ii) if the Commonwealth does so—must credit the amount

of the proceeds to a special account (within the meaning

of the Public Governance, Performance and

Accountability Act 2013).

Note: ASIC may, for and on behalf of the Commonwealth, perform all the

duties and exercise all the powers of the Commonwealth as trustee in

relation to property held on trust by the Commonwealth (see

subsection 8(6) of the ASIC Act).

Property vested in ASIC

(2) If property vests in ASIC under subsection 601AD(2), ASIC may:

(a) dispose of or deal with the property as it sees fit; and

(b) apply any money it receives to:

(i) defray expenses incurred by ASIC in exercising its

powers in relation to the company under this Chapter;

and

(ii) make payments authorised by subsection (3).

ASIC must deal with the rest (if any) under Part 9.7.

Obligations attaching to property vested in the Commonwealth

(2A) For the purposes of subsection (3), if any liability is imposed on

property under a law of the Commonwealth immediately before the

property vests in the Commonwealth under

subsection 601AD(1A), then:

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5A Deregistration, and transfer of registration, of companies

Part 5A.1 Deregistration

Section 601AF

604 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(a) immediately after that time, the liability applies to the

Commonwealth as if the Commonwealth were a body

corporate; and

(b) the Commonwealth is liable to make notional payments to

discharge that liability.

Obligations attaching to property

(3) Any property that vests in the Commonwealth or ASIC under

subsection 601AD(1A) or (2) remains subject to all liabilities

imposed on the property under a law and does not have the benefit

of any exemption that the property might otherwise have because it

is vested in the Commonwealth or ASIC. These liabilities include a

liability that:

(a) is a security interest in or claim on the property; and

(b) arises under a law that imposes rates, taxes or other charges.

Extent of Commonwealth’s and ASIC’s obligation

(4) The Commonwealth’s or ASIC’s obligation under subsection (2A)

or (3) is limited to satisfying the liabilities out of the company’s

property to the extent that the property is properly available to

satisfy those liabilities.

Accounts

(5) The Commonwealth or ASIC (as the case requires) must keep:

(a) a record of property that it knows is vested in it under this

Chapter; and

(b) a record of its dealings with that property; and

(c) accounts of all money received from those dealings; and

(d) all accounts, vouchers, receipts and papers relating to the

property and that money.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Deregistration, and transfer of registration, of companies Chapter 5A

Deregistration Part 5A.1

Section 601AF

Corporations Act 2001 605

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

601AF The Commonwealth’s and ASIC’s power to fulfil

outstanding obligations of deregistered company

The Commonwealth or ASIC may do an act on behalf of the

company or its liquidator if the Commonwealth or ASIC is

satisfied that the company or liquidator would be bound to do the

act if the company still existed.

Note: This power is a general one and is not limited to acts in relation to

property vested in the Commonwealth under subsection 601AD(1A),

or ASIC under subsection 601AD(2). The Commonwealth or ASIC

has all the powers that automatically flow from the vesting of property

under that subsection (see subsections 601AD(3A) and (4)) and may

exercise those powers whether or not the company was bound to do

so.

601AG Claims against insurers of deregistered company

A person may recover from the insurer of a company that is

deregistered an amount that was payable to the company under the

insurance contract if:

(a) the company had a liability to the person; and

(b) the insurance contract covered that liability immediately

before deregistration.

601AH Reinstatement

Reinstatement by ASIC

(1) ASIC may reinstate the registration of a company if ASIC is

satisfied that the company should not have been deregistered.

(1A) ASIC may reinstate the registration of a company deregistered

under subsection 601AB(1B) if:

(a) ASIC receives an application in relation to the reinstatement

of the company’s registration; and

(b) the levy imposed on the company by the ASIC Supervisory

Cost Recovery Levy Act 2017 is paid in full; and

(c) the amount of any late payment penalty payable in relation to

the levy is paid in full; and

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5A Deregistration, and transfer of registration, of companies

Part 5A.1 Deregistration

Section 601AH

606 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(d) the amount of any shortfall penalty payable in relation to the

levy is paid in full.

Reinstatement by Court

(2) The Court may make an order that ASIC reinstate the registration

of a company if:

(a) an application for reinstatement is made to the Court by:

(i) a person aggrieved by the deregistration; or

(ii) a former liquidator of the company; and

(b) the Court is satisfied that it is just that the company’s

registration be reinstated.

(3) If:

(a) ASIC reinstates the registration of a company under

subsection (1) or (1A); or

(b) the Court makes an order under subsection (2);

the Court may:

(c) validate anything done during the period:

(i) beginning when the company was deregistered; and

(ii) ending when the company’s registration was reinstated;

and

(d) make any other order it considers appropriate.

Note: For example, the Court may direct ASIC to transfer to another person

property vested in ASIC under subsection 601AD(2).

ASIC to give notice of reinstatement

(4) ASIC must give notice of a reinstatement in the Gazette.

(4A) If an application was made to ASIC for the reinstatement of a

company’s registration, ASIC must give notice of the reinstatement

to the applicant.

Effect of reinstatement

(5) If a company is reinstated, the company is taken to have continued

in existence as if it had not been deregistered. A person who was a

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Deregistration, and transfer of registration, of companies Chapter 5A

Deregistration Part 5A.1

Section 601AH

Corporations Act 2001 607

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

director of the company immediately before deregistration

becomes a director again as from the time when ASIC or the Court

reinstates the company. Any property of the company that is still

vested in the Commonwealth or ASIC revests in the company. If

the company held particular property subject to a security or other

interest or claim, the company takes the property subject to that

interest or claim.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5A Deregistration, and transfer of registration, of companies

Part 5A.2 Transfer of registration

Section 601AI

608 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Part 5A.2—Transfer of registration

601AI Transferring registration

A company may transfer its registration to registration under a law

of the Commonwealth, or of a State or Territory, by:

(a) passing a special resolution resolving to transfer its

registration to registration under that law; and

(b) complying with sections 601AJ and 601AK.

The company may transfer its registration to registration under the

law of a State or Territory only if the State or Territory is the one

in which it is taken to be registered.

Note 1: Section 119A tells you which State or Territory the company is taken

to be registered in.

Note 2: In order to be registered under the State or Territory law, the company

may need to amend its constitution, or adopt a new one, and the

provisions of this Act (including the class rights provisions in

Part 2F.2) will apply to the amendment or adoption.

601AJ Applying to transfer registration

(1) To transfer its registration, a company must lodge an application

with ASIC together with:

(a) a copy of the special resolution that resolves to change the

company’s registration to a registration under the law of the

Commonwealth or of the State or Territory; and

(b) a statement signed by the directors of the company that in

their opinion the company’s creditors are not likely to be

materially prejudiced by the change and sets out their reasons

for that opinion.

(2) The application must be in the prescribed form.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Deregistration, and transfer of registration, of companies Chapter 5A

Transfer of registration Part 5A.2

Section 601AK

Corporations Act 2001 609

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

601AK ASIC makes transfer of registration declaration

ASIC may make a transfer of registration declaration in relation to

the company under this section if ASIC is satisfied that:

(a) the application complies with section 601AJ; and

(b) the company’s creditors are not likely to be materially

prejudiced by the transfer of the company’s registration; and

(c) the law of the Commonwealth or of the State or Territory

concerned adequately provides for:

(i) the continuation of the company’s legal personality after

the transfer; and

(ii) the preservation of any rights or claims against the

company (other than the right of a member as a

member) that accrued while the company was registered

under this Act.

601AL ASIC to deregister company

(1) ASIC must deregister the company if:

(a) ASIC makes a transfer of registration declaration in relation

to the company; and

(b) the company is registered under the law of the

Commonwealth or of the State or Territory.

Note: Despite the deregistration, officers of the company may still be liable

for things done before the company was deregistered.

(2) Sections 601AD, 601AE, 601AF and 601AG do not apply to the

deregistration of a company under this section.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5B Bodies corporate registered as companies, and registrable bodies

Part 5B.1 Registering a body corporate as a company

Division 1 Registration

Section 601BA

610 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Chapter 5B—Bodies corporate registered as

companies, and registrable bodies

Part 5B.1—Registering a body corporate as a

company

Division 1—Registration

601BA Bodies corporate may be registered as certain types of

companies

(1) A body corporate that is not a company or corporation sole may be

registered under this Act as a company of one of the following

types:

(a) a proprietary company limited by shares;

(b) an unlimited proprietary company with share capital;

(c) a public company limited by shares;

(d) a company limited by guarantee;

(e) an unlimited public company with share capital;

(f) a no liability company.

(2) A body corporate may be registered as a no liability company only

if:

(a) the body has a share capital; and

(b) the body’s constitution states that its sole objects are mining

purposes; and

(c) under the constitution the body has no contractual right to

recover calls made on its shares from a member who fails to

pay them.

Note: Section 9 defines mining purposes and minerals.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Bodies corporate registered as companies, and registrable bodies Chapter 5B

Registering a body corporate as a company Part 5B.1

Registration Division 1

Section 601BB

Corporations Act 2001 611

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

601BB Bodies registered as proprietary companies

(1) The body must have no more than 50 non-employee shareholders if

it is to be registered as a proprietary company under this Part.

(2) In applying subsection (1):

(a) count joint holders of a particular parcel of shares as

1 person; and

(b) an employee shareholder is:

(i) a shareholder who is an employee of the body or of a

subsidiary of the body; or

(ii) a shareholder who was an employee of the body, or of a

subsidiary of the body, when they became a

shareholder.

601BC Applying for registration under this Part

(1) To register the body as a company under this Part, a person must

lodge an application with ASIC.

Note 1: For the types of companies that can be registered under this Part, see

section 601BA.

Note 2: A name may be reserved for a company to be registered under this

Part before the application is lodged (see Part 2B.6).

(2) The application must state the following:

(a) the type of company that the body is proposed to be

registered as under this Act;

(b) the name of the body;

(c) if the body is a registered body—its ARBN;

(d) the proposed name under which the body is to be registered

(unless the ACN is to be used);

(e) the name and address of each member of the body;

(f) the present given and family name, all former given and

family names and the date and place of birth of each person

who consents in writing to become a director;

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5B Bodies corporate registered as companies, and registrable bodies

Part 5B.1 Registering a body corporate as a company

Division 1 Registration

Section 601BC

612 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(g) the present given and family name, all former given and

family names and the date and place of birth of each person

who consents in writing to become a company secretary;

(h) the address of each person who consents in writing to

become a director or company secretary;

(i) the address of the body’s proposed registered office;

(j) for a body proposed to be registered as a public company—

the proposed opening hours of its registered office (if they

are not the standard opening hours);

(k) the address of the body’s proposed principal place of

business (if it is not the address of the proposed registered

office);

(l) for a body proposed to be registered as a company limited by

shares or an unlimited company—the following:

(i) the number and class of shares each member already

holds or has agreed, in writing, to take up;

(ii) the amount each member has already paid or agreed, in

writing, to pay for each share;

(iia) whether the shares each member already holds or has

agreed, in writing, to take up will be fully paid on

registration;

(iii) the amount unpaid on each share;

(iv) whether or not the shares each member agrees in writing

to take up will be beneficially owned by the member on

registration;

(v) on registration, the classes into which shares will be

divided;

(vi) for each class of share on issue on registration—the

number of shares in the class on registration;

(vii) for each class of share on issue on registration—the

total amount paid up for the class on registration;

(viii) for each class of share on issue on registration—the

total amount unpaid for the class on registration;

(la) whether or not, on registration, the company will have an

ultimate holding company;

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Bodies corporate registered as companies, and registrable bodies Chapter 5B

Registering a body corporate as a company Part 5B.1

Registration Division 1

Section 601BC

Corporations Act 2001 613

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(lb) if, on registration, the company will have an ultimate holding

company—the following:

(i) the name of the ultimate holding company;

(ii) if the ultimate holding company is registered in

Australia—its ABN, ACN or ARBN;

(iii) if the ultimate holding company is not registered in

Australia—the place at which it was incorporated or

formed;

(lc) for a body proposed to be registered as a company limited by

shares or an unlimited company—the top 20 members of

each class (worked out according to the number and class of

shares each member holds and has agreed, in writing, to take

up);

Note: See also section 107.

(m) for a body proposed to be registered as a public company, if

shares have been issued for non-cash consideration—the

prescribed particulars about the issue of the shares, unless the

shares were issued under a written contract and a copy of the

contract is lodged with the application;

(n) for a body proposed to be registered as a company limited by

guarantee—the amount of the guarantee that each member

has agreed to in writing;

(o) the State or Territory in this jurisdiction in which the

company is to be taken to be registered.

Note 1: Paragraph (h)—the address that must be stated is usually the

residential address, although an alternative address can sometimes be

stated instead (see section 205D).

Note 2: Paragraph (i)—if the body when it is registered under this Part is not

to be the occupier of premises at the address of its registered office,

the application must state that the occupier has consented to the

address being specified in the application and has not withdrawn that

consent (see section 100).

(3) If the body is proposed to be registered as a public company, the

application must be accompanied by a copy of each document

(including an agreement or consent) or resolution that is necessary

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5B Bodies corporate registered as companies, and registrable bodies

Part 5B.1 Registering a body corporate as a company

Division 1 Registration

Section 601BC

614 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

to ascertain the rights attached to issued or unissued shares of the

body.

(4) The application must be in the prescribed form.

(5) An applicant must have the consents and agreements referred to in

subsection (2) when the application is lodged. After the body is

registered as a company, the applicant must give the consents and

agreements to the company. The company must keep the consents

and agreements.

(5A) An offence based on subsection (5) is an offence of strict liability.

Note: For strict liability, see section 6.1 of the Criminal Code.

(6) The following documents must be lodged with the application:

(a) a certified copy of a current certificate of the body’s

incorporation in its place of origin, or of a document that has

a similar effect;

(b) a certified printed copy of the body’s constitution (if any);

(d) any other documents that are prescribed;

(e) any other documents that ASIC requires by written notice

given to the body.

A document need not be lodged if ASIC already has the document

and agrees not to require its lodgment.

(7) The application must be accompanied by evidence that:

(a) the body is not a Chapter 5 body corporate; and

(b) no application to wind up the body has been made to a court

(in Australia or elsewhere) that has not been dealt with; and

(c) no application to approve a compromise or arrangement

between the body and another person has been made to a

court (in Australia or elsewhere) that has not been dealt with.

(8) The application must be accompanied by evidence that under the

law of the body’s place of origin:

(a) the body’s type is the same or substantially the same as the

proposed type specified in the application; and

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Bodies corporate registered as companies, and registrable bodies Chapter 5B

Registering a body corporate as a company Part 5B.1

Registration Division 1

Section 601BD

Corporations Act 2001 615

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(b) if the members of the body have limited liability—the body’s

constitution defines how and to what extent that liability is

limited; and

(d) the transfer of the body’s incorporation is authorised; and

(e) the body has complied with the requirements (if any) of that

law for the transfer of its incorporation; and

(f) if those requirements do not include consent to the transfer

by the members of the body—the members:

(i) have consented to the transfer by a resolution that has

been passed at a meeting by at least 75% of the votes

cast by members entitled to vote on the resolution; and

(ii) were given at least 21 days notice of the meeting and

the proposed resolution.

(9) The evidence lodged in accordance with subsections (7) and (8)

must be satisfactory proof to ASIC of the matters referred to in

those subsections.

Note: Section 1304 requires documents that are not in English to be

translated into English.

601BD ASIC gives body ACN, registers as company and issues

certificate

Registration

(1) If an application is lodged under section 601BC, ASIC may:

(a) give the body an ACN; and

(b) register the body as a company of the proposed type specified

in the application; and

(c) issue a certificate that states:

(i) the company’s name; and

(ii) the company’s ACN; and

(iii) the company’s type; and

(iv) that the company is registered as a company under this

Act; and

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5B Bodies corporate registered as companies, and registrable bodies

Part 5B.1 Registering a body corporate as a company

Division 1 Registration

Section 601BE

616 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(v) the State or Territory in which the company is taken to

be registered; and

(vi) the date of registration.

Note: For the evidentiary value of a certificate of registration, see

subsection 1274(7A).

ASIC must keep record of registration

(2) ASIC must keep a record of the registration. Subsections 1274(2)

and (5) apply to the record as if it were a document lodged with

ASIC.

601BE Registered office

The address specified in the application as the body’s proposed

registered office becomes the address of its registered office as a

company on registration.

601BF Name

A company registered under this Part has a name on registration

that is:

(a) an available name; or

(b) the expression “Australian Company Number” followed by

the company’s ACN.

The name must also include the words required by

subsection 148(2) or 148(3).

601BG Constitution

(1) The constitution on registration (if any) of a company registered

under this Part is the constitution lodged with the application.

(2) If any text in a constitution lodged with the application is not in

English, the English translation of that text lodged with the

application for registration is taken to be the relevant text in the

constitution on registration.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Bodies corporate registered as companies, and registrable bodies Chapter 5B

Registering a body corporate as a company Part 5B.1

Registration Division 1

Section 601BH

Corporations Act 2001 617

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

601BH Modifications of constitution

(1) A company registered under this Part must modify its constitution

within 3 months after registration to give effect to this Part.

(2) If the constitution specifies amounts of money expressed in foreign

currency, the company must:

(a) fix a single rate of conversion by resolution; and

(b) modify its constitution by special resolution to convert those

amounts into Australian currency using that rate.

The modification must be made within 3 months after registration.

(2A) An offence based on subsection (1) or (2) is an offence of strict

liability.

Note: For strict liability, see section 6.1 of the Criminal Code.

(3) An amendment of a company’s constitution under this section does

not affect the number and class of shares held by each member.

601BJ ASIC may direct company to apply for Court approval for

modifications of constitution

(1) ASIC may give the company a written direction to apply to the

Court within a specified period for an order approving the modified

constitution.

(2) The Court may make an order:

(a) declaring that the company has complied with

section 601BH; or

(b) declaring that the company will comply with section 601BH

if it makes further modifications of its constitution as

specified in the order.

(3) The company must lodge a copy of the order with ASIC within 14

days after the order is made.

(4) An offence based on subsection (3) is an offence of strict liability.

Note: For strict liability, see section 6.1 of the Criminal Code.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5B Bodies corporate registered as companies, and registrable bodies

Part 5B.1 Registering a body corporate as a company

Division 1 Registration

Section 601BK

618 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

601BK Establishing registers and minute books

(1) A company registered under this Part must, within 14 days after

registration:

(a) set up the register required by section 168; and

(b) include in the register the information that is required to be

included in the register and that is available to the company

on registration; and

(c) set up the minute books required by section 251A.

(1A) An offence based on subsection (1) is an offence of strict liability.

Note: For strict liability, see section 6.1 of the Criminal Code.

(2) During the 14 days the company need not comply with a person’s

request to inspect or obtain a copy of:

(a) information in a register; or

(b) a minute of a general meeting.

However, the period within which the company must comply with

the request begins at the end of the 14 days.

601BL Registration of registered bodies

(1) If a registered body becomes registered as a company under this

Part, it ceases to be a registered body. ASIC must remove the

body’s name from the appropriate register kept for the purposes of

Division 1 or 2 of Part 5B.2.

(2) ASIC may keep any of the documents relating to the company that

were lodged because the company used to be a registered body.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Bodies corporate registered as companies, and registrable bodies Chapter 5B

Registering a body corporate as a company Part 5B.1

Operation of this Act Division 2

Section 601BM

Corporations Act 2001 619

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Division 2—Operation of this Act

601BM Effect of registration under this Part

(1) Registration under this Part does not:

(a) create a new legal entity; or

(b) affect the body’s existing property, rights or obligations

(except as against the members of the body in their capacity

as members); or

(c) render defective any legal proceedings by or against the body

or its members.

(2) This Part sets out special provisions for companies registered under

this Part.

601BN Liability of members on winding up

A person who stopped being a member of the body before it was

registered as a company under this Part is to be treated as a past

member of the company in applying Division 2 of Part 5.6 to a

winding up of the company. However, the person’s liability to

contribute to the company’s property is further limited by this

section to an amount sufficient for the following:

(a) payment of debts and liabilities contracted by the company

before the day on which the company was registered under

this Part;

(b) payment of the costs, charges and expenses of winding up the

company, so far as those costs, charges and expenses relate to

those debts and liabilities;

(c) the adjustment of the rights between the contributories, so far

as the adjustment relates to those debts and liabilities.

601BP Bearer shares

(1) A bearer of a bearer share in a company registered under this Part

may surrender the share to the company. The company must:

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5B Bodies corporate registered as companies, and registrable bodies

Part 5B.1 Registering a body corporate as a company

Division 2 Operation of this Act

Section 601BQ

620 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(a) cancel the share; and

(b) include the bearer’s name in the company’s register of

members.

(1A) An offence based on subsection (1) is an offence of strict liability.

Note: For strict liability, see section 6.1 of the Criminal Code.

(2) The company is liable to compensate anyone who suffers a loss

because the company includes the bearer’s name in the company’s

register of members despite the fact that:

(a) the share was not surrendered to the company; or

(b) the company failed to cancel the share.

(3) Subject to this section, the constitution of a company registered

under this Part may provide that the bearer of a bearer share in the

company is taken to be a member of the company for all purposes

or for specified purposes.

Note: A body must not issue bearer shares after it is registered as a company

under this Part (see paragraph 254F(a)).

601BQ References in pre-registration contracts and other

documents to par value in existing contracts and

documents

(1) This section applies in relation to a company registered under this

Part for the purpose of interpreting and applying after registration:

(a) a contract entered into before the registration; or

(b) a trust deed or other document executed before the

registration.

(2) A reference to the par value of a share is taken to be a reference to

the par value of the share immediately before the registration, or

the par value that the share would have had if it had been issued

then.

(3) A reference to a right to a return of capital on a share is taken to be

a reference to a right to a return of capital of a value equal to the

amount paid before the registration in respect of the share’s par

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Bodies corporate registered as companies, and registrable bodies Chapter 5B

Registering a body corporate as a company Part 5B.1

Operation of this Act Division 2

Section 601BR

Corporations Act 2001 621

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

value, or the par value that the share would have had if it had been

issued then.

(4) A reference to the aggregate par value of the company’s issued

share capital is taken to be a reference to that aggregate as it

existed immediately before the registration.

601BR First AGM

(1) Despite subsection 250N(1), a public company registered under

this Part must hold its first AGM after registration in the calendar

year of its registration.

(2) An offence based on subsection (1) is an offence of strict liability.

Note: For strict liability, see section 6.1 of the Criminal Code.

601BS Modification by regulations

The regulations may modify the operation of this Part in relation to

a company registered under this Part.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5B Bodies corporate registered as companies, and registrable bodies

Part 5B.2 Registrable bodies

Division 1A Preliminary

Section 601C

622 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Part 5B.2—Registrable bodies

Division 1A—Preliminary

601C Definitions

In this Part:

property of a corporation includes PPSA retention of title property,

if the security interest in the property is vested in the corporation

because of the operation of any of the following provisions:

(a) section 267 or 267A of the Personal Property Securities Act

2009 (property subject to unperfected security interests);

(b) section 588FL of this Act (collateral not registered within

time).

Note: See sections 9 (definition of property) and 51F (PPSA retention of

title property).

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Bodies corporate registered as companies, and registrable bodies Chapter 5B

Registrable bodies Part 5B.2

Registrable Australian bodies Division 1

Section 601CA

Corporations Act 2001 623

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Division 1—Registrable Australian bodies

601CA When a registrable Australian body may carry on business

in this jurisdiction and outside its place of origin

A registrable Australian body must not carry on business in a State

or Territory in this jurisdiction unless:

(a) that State or Territory is its place of origin; or

(b) it has its head office or principal place of business in that

State or Territory; or

(c) it is registered under this Division; or

(d) it has applied to be so registered and the application has not

been dealt with.

601CB Application for registration

Subject to this Part, where a registrable Australian body lodges an

application for registration under this Division that is in the

prescribed form and is accompanied by:

(a) a certified copy of a current certificate of its incorporation or

registration in its place of origin, or a document of similar

effect; and

(b) a certified copy of its constitution; and

(c) a list of its directors containing personal details of those

directors that are equivalent to the personal details of

directors referred to in subsection 242(2); and

(e) notice of the address of:

(i) if it has in its place of origin a registered office for the

purposes of a law (other than this Act) there in force—

that office; or

(ii) otherwise—its principal place of business in its place of

origin; and

(f) notice of the address of its registered office under

section 601CT;

ASIC must:

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5B Bodies corporate registered as companies, and registrable bodies

Part 5B.2 Registrable bodies

Division 1 Registrable Australian bodies

Section 601CC

624 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(g) grant the application and register the body under this

Division by entering the body’s name in a register kept for

the purposes of this Division; and

(h) allot to the body an ARBN distinct from the ARBN or ACN

of each body corporate (other than the body) already

registered as a company or registered body under this Act.

601CC Cessation of business etc.

(1) Within 7 days after ceasing to carry on business interstate, a

registered Australian body must lodge written notice that it has so

ceased.

(1A) For the purposes of this section, a body carries on business

interstate if, and only if, the body carries on business at a place

that is in this jurisdiction and outside the body’s place of origin.

(2) Where ASIC has reasonable cause to believe that a registered

Australian body does not carry on business interstate, ASIC may

send to the body in the prescribed manner a letter to that effect and

stating that, if no answer showing cause to the contrary is received

within one month from the date of the letter, a notice will be

published in the Gazette with a view to striking the body’s name

off the register.

(3) Unless ASIC receives, within one month after the date of the letter,

an answer to the effect that the body is still carrying on business

interstate, it may publish in the Gazette, and send to the body in the

prescribed manner, a notice that, at the end of 3 months after the

date of the notice, the body’s name will, unless cause to the

contrary is shown, be struck off the register.

(4) At the end of the period specified in a notice sent under

subsection (3), ASIC may, unless cause to the contrary has been

shown, strike the body’s name off the register and must publish in

the Gazette notice of the striking off.

(5) Nothing in subsection (4) affects the power of the Court to wind up

a body whose name has been struck off the register.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Bodies corporate registered as companies, and registrable bodies Chapter 5B

Registrable bodies Part 5B.2

Registrable Australian bodies Division 1

Section 601CC

Corporations Act 2001 625

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(6) Where a body’s name is struck off the register under

subsection (4), the body ceases to be registered under this Division.

(7) If ASIC is satisfied that a body’s name was struck off the register

as a result of an error on ASIC’s part, ASIC may restore the body’s

name to the register, and thereupon the body’s name is taken never

to have been struck off and the body is taken never to have ceased

to be registered under this Division.

(8) A person who is aggrieved by a body’s name having been struck

off the register may, within 15 years after the striking off, apply to

the Court for the body’s name to be restored to the register.

(9) If, on an application under subsection (8), the Court is satisfied

that:

(a) at the time of the striking off, the body was carrying on

business interstate; or

(b) it is otherwise just for the body’s name to be restored to the

register;

the Court may, by order:

(c) direct the body’s name to be restored to the register; and

(d) give such directions, and make such provisions, as it thinks

just for placing the body and all other persons in the same

position, as nearly as practicable, as if the body’s name had

never been struck off.

(10) On the lodging of an office copy of an order under subsection (9),

the body’s name is taken never to have been struck off.

(11) Where a body’s name is restored to the register under

subsection (7) or (9), ASIC must cause notice of that fact to be

published in the Gazette.

(12) Where a body ceases to be registered under this Division, an

obligation to lodge a document that this Act imposes on the body

by virtue of the doing of an act or thing, or the occurrence of an

event, at or before the time when the body so ceased, being an

obligation not discharged at or before that time, continues to apply

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5B Bodies corporate registered as companies, and registrable bodies

Part 5B.2 Registrable bodies

Division 1 Registrable Australian bodies

Section 601CC

626 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

in relation to the body even if the period prescribed for lodging the

document has not ended at or before that time.

(13) Where a registered Australian body commences to be wound up, or

is dissolved or deregistered, in its place of origin, the Court must,

on application by the person who is the liquidator for the body’s

place of origin, or by ASIC, appoint a liquidator of the body.

(14) A liquidator of a registered Australian body who is appointed by

the Court:

(a) must, before any distribution of the body’s property is made,

by advertisement in a daily newspaper circulating generally

in each State or Territory where the body carried on business

at any time during the 6 years before the liquidation, invite

all creditors to make their claims against the body within a

reasonable time before the distribution; and

(b) must not, without obtaining an order of the Court, pay out a

creditor of the body to the exclusion of another creditor of

the body; and

(c) must, unless the Court otherwise orders, recover and realise

the property of the body that is located:

(i) in this jurisdiction; and

(ii) outside the body’s place of origin;

and must pay the net amount so recovered and realised to the

liquidator of the body for its place of origin.

(15) If a registered Australian body has been wound up so far as its

property located:

(a) in this jurisdiction; and

(b) outside its place of origin;

is concerned and there is no liquidator for its place of origin, the

liquidator may apply to the Court for directions about the disposal

of the net amount recovered under subsection (14).

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Bodies corporate registered as companies, and registrable bodies Chapter 5B

Registrable bodies Part 5B.2

Foreign companies Division 2

Section 601CD

Corporations Act 2001 627

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Division 2—Foreign companies

601CD When a foreign company may carry on business in this

jurisdiction

(1) A foreign company must not carry on business in this jurisdiction

unless:

(a) it is registered under this Division; or

(b) it has applied to be so registered and the application has not

been dealt with.

(2) For the purposes of this Division, a foreign company carries on

business in this jurisdiction if it:

(a) offers debentures in this jurisdiction; or

(b) is a guarantor body for debentures offered in this jurisdiction;

and Part 2L.1 applies to the debentures.

601CDA Limited disclosure if place of origin is a prescribed country

A foreign company is not required to lodge information or a copy

of a document with ASIC under this Division if:

(a) the company’s place of origin is a country prescribed by the

regulations; and

(b) the company has given the information or a copy of the

document to an authority in that country whose functions

under the law of the country include functions equivalent to

any of those of ASIC under this Act.

601CE Application for registration

Subject to this Part, where a foreign company lodges an application

for registration under this Division that is in the prescribed form

and is accompanied by:

(a) a certified copy of a current certificate of its incorporation or

registration in its place of origin, or a document of similar

effect; and

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5B Bodies corporate registered as companies, and registrable bodies

Part 5B.2 Registrable bodies

Division 2 Foreign companies

Section 601CF

628 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(b) a certified copy of its constitution; and

(c) a list of its directors containing personal details of those

directors that are equivalent to the personal details of

directors referred to in subsection 205B(3); and

(d) if that list includes directors who are:

(i) resident in Australia; and

(ii) members of a local board of directors;

a memorandum that is duly executed by or on behalf of the

foreign company and states the powers of those directors;

and

(f) notice of the address of:

(i) if it has in its place of origin a registered office for the

purposes of a law there in force—that office; or

(ii) otherwise—its principal place of business in its place of

origin; and

(g) notice of the address of its registered office under

section 601CT;

ASIC must:

(h) grant the application and register the foreign company under

this Division by entering the foreign company’s name in a

register kept for the purposes of this Division; and

(j) allot to the foreign company an ARBN distinct from the

ARBN or ACN of each body corporate (other than the

foreign company) already registered as a company or

registered body under this Act.

601CF Appointment of local agent

(1) A foreign company may at any time appoint a person as a local

agent.

(2) ASIC must not register a foreign company under this Division

unless the foreign company has at least one local agent in relation

to whom the foreign company has complied with section 601CG.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Bodies corporate registered as companies, and registrable bodies Chapter 5B

Registrable bodies Part 5B.2

Foreign companies Division 2

Section 601CG

Corporations Act 2001 629

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(3) Where:

(a) because a person ceased on a particular day to be a local

agent of the foreign company, a registered foreign company

has no local agent; and

(b) the foreign company carries on business, or has a place of

business, in this jurisdiction;

the foreign company must, within 21 days after that day, appoint a

person as a local agent.

601CG Local agent: how appointed

(1) A foreign company that lodges a memorandum of appointment, or

a power of attorney, that is duly executed by or on behalf of the

foreign company and states the name and address of a person who

is:

(a) a natural person or a company; and

(b) resident in this jurisdiction; and

(c) authorised to accept on the foreign company’s behalf service

of process and notices;

is taken to appoint that person as a local agent.

(2) Where a memorandum of appointment, or a power of attorney,

lodged under subsection (1) is executed on the foreign company’s

behalf, the foreign company must, unless it has already done so,

lodge a copy, verified in writing in the prescribed form to be a true

copy, of the document authorising the execution.

(3) A copy lodged under subsection (2) is taken for all purposes to be

the original of the document.

(4) A foreign company that appoints a local agent must lodge a written

statement that is in the prescribed form and is made by the local

agent.

(5) A person whom a foreign company appoints as a local agent is a

local agent of the foreign company until the person:

(a) ceases by virtue of section 601CH to be such a local agent; or

(b) dies or ceases to exist.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5B Bodies corporate registered as companies, and registrable bodies

Part 5B.2 Registrable bodies

Division 2 Foreign companies

Section 601CH

630 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

601CH Local agent: how removed

(1) Where a person is a local agent of a foreign company, the foreign

company or the person may lodge a written notice stating that the

person’s appointment as a local agent has terminated, or will

terminate, on a specified day.

(2) Where a notice is lodged under subsection (1), the person ceases to

be a local agent of the foreign company at the end of:

(a) the period of 21 days beginning on the day of lodgment; or

(b) the day specified in the notice;

whichever is the later.

601CJ Liability of local agent

A local agent of a registered foreign company:

(a) is answerable for the doing of all acts, matters and things that

the foreign company is required by or under this Act to do;

and

(b) is personally liable to a penalty imposed on the foreign

company for a contravention of this Act if the court or

tribunal hearing the matter is satisfied that the local agent

should be so liable.

601CK Balance-sheets and other documents

(1) Subject to this section, a registered foreign company must, at least

once in every calendar year and at intervals of not more than 15

months, lodge a copy of its balance-sheet made up to the end of its

last financial year, a copy of its cash flow statement for its last

financial year and a copy of its profit and loss statement for its last

financial year, in such form and containing such particulars and

including copies of such documents as the company is required to

prepare by the law for the time being applicable to that company in

its place of origin, together with a statement in writing in the

prescribed form verifying that the copies are true copies of the

documents so required.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Bodies corporate registered as companies, and registrable bodies Chapter 5B

Registrable bodies Part 5B.2

Foreign companies Division 2

Section 601CK

Corporations Act 2001 631

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(2) ASIC may extend the period within which subsection (1) requires a

balance-sheet, profit and loss statement, cash flow statement or

other document to be lodged.

(3) ASIC may, if it is of the opinion that the balance-sheet, the profit

and loss statement and the other documents referred to in

subsection (1) do not sufficiently disclose the company’s financial

position:

(a) require the company to lodge a balance-sheet; or

(b) require the company to lodge an audited balance-sheet; or

(ba) require the company to lodge a cash flow statement; or

(bb) require the company to lodge an audited cash flow statement;

or

(c) require the company to lodge a profit and loss statement; or

(d) require the company to lodge an audited profit and loss

statement;

within such period, in such form, containing such particulars and

including such documents as ASIC by notice in writing to the

company requires, but this subsection does not authorise ASIC to

require a balance-sheet or a profit and loss statement to contain any

particulars or include any documents that would not be required to

be given if the company were a public company within the

meaning of this Act.

(4) The registered foreign company must comply with the

requirements set out in the notice.

(5) Where a registered foreign company is not required by the law of

the place of its incorporation or formation to prepare a

balance-sheet, the company must prepare and lodge a

balance-sheet, or, if ASIC so requires, an audited balance-sheet,

within such period, in such form and containing such particulars

and including such documents as the company would have been

required to prepare if the company were a public company

incorporated under this Act.

(5A) If a registered foreign company is not required by the law of the

place of its incorporation or formation to prepare a cash flow

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5B Bodies corporate registered as companies, and registrable bodies

Part 5B.2 Registrable bodies

Division 2 Foreign companies

Section 601CL

632 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

statement, the company must prepare and lodge a cash flow

statement, or, if ASIC so requires, an audited cash flow statement,

within the period, in the form, containing the particulars and

including the documents that the company would have been

required to prepare if the company were a public company

registered under this Act.

(6) Where a registered foreign company is not required by the law of

its place of origin to prepare a profit and loss statement, the

company must prepare and lodge a profit and loss statement or, if

ASIC so requires, an audited profit and loss statement, within such

period, in such form, containing such particulars and including

such documents as the company would have been required to

prepare if the company were a public company incorporated under

this Act.

(7) ASIC may, by Gazette notice, declare that this section does not

apply to specified foreign companies.

(8) Subsections (1) to (6), inclusive, do not apply in relation to a

foreign company in relation to which a notice is in force under

subsection (7).

(9) A registered foreign company in relation to which a notice is in

force under subsection (7) must, at least once in every calendar

year, lodge with ASIC a return in the prescribed form made up to

the date of its annual general meeting.

(10) The return must be lodged within 1 month after the date to which it

is made up, or within such further period as ASIC, in special

circumstances, allows.

601CL Cessation of business etc.

(1) Within 7 days after ceasing to carry on business in this jurisdiction,

a registered foreign company must lodge written notice that it has

so ceased.

(2) Where ASIC receives notice from a local agent of a registered

foreign company that the foreign company has been dissolved or

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Bodies corporate registered as companies, and registrable bodies Chapter 5B

Registrable bodies Part 5B.2

Foreign companies Division 2

Section 601CL

Corporations Act 2001 633

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

deregistered, ASIC must remove the foreign company’s name from

the register.

(3) Where ASIC has reasonable cause to believe that a registered

foreign company does not carry on business in this jurisdiction,

ASIC may send to the foreign company in the prescribed manner a

letter to that effect and stating that, if no answer showing cause to

the contrary is received within one month from the date of the

letter, a notice will be published in the Gazette with a view to

striking the foreign company’s name off the register.

(4) Unless ASIC receives, within one month after the date of the letter,

an answer to the effect that the foreign company is still carrying on

business in this jurisdiction, it may publish in the Gazette, and send

to the foreign company in the prescribed manner, a notice that, at

the end of 3 months after the date of the notice, the foreign

company’s name will, unless cause to the contrary is shown, be

struck off the register.

(5) At the end of the period specified in a notice sent under

subsection (4), ASIC may, unless cause to the contrary has been

shown, strike the foreign company’s name off the register and must

publish in the Gazette notice of the striking off.

(6) Nothing in subsection (5) affects the power of the Court to wind up

a foreign company whose name has been struck off the register.

(7) Where a foreign company’s name is struck off the register under

subsection (5), the foreign company ceases to be registered under

this Division.

(8) If ASIC is satisfied that a foreign company’s name was struck off

the register as a result of an error on ASIC’s part, ASIC may

restore the foreign company’s name to the register, and thereupon

the foreign company’s name is taken never to have been struck off

and the foreign company is taken never to have ceased to be

registered under this Division.

(9) A person who is aggrieved by a foreign company’s name having

been struck off the register may, within 15 years after the striking

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5B Bodies corporate registered as companies, and registrable bodies

Part 5B.2 Registrable bodies

Division 2 Foreign companies

Section 601CL

634 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

off, apply to the Court for the foreign company’s name to be

restored to the register.

(10) If, on an application under subsection (9), the Court is satisfied

that:

(a) at the time of the striking off, the foreign company was

carrying on business in this jurisdiction; or

(b) it is otherwise just for the foreign company’s name to be

restored to the register;

the Court may, by order:

(c) direct the foreign company’s name to be restored to the

register; and

(d) give such directions, and make such provision, as it thinks

just for placing the foreign company and all other persons in

the same position, as nearly as practicable, as if the foreign

company’s name had never been struck off.

(11) On the lodging of an office copy of an order under subsection (10),

the foreign company’s name is taken never to have been struck off.

(12) Where a foreign company’s name is restored to the register under

subsection (8) or (10), ASIC must cause notice of that fact to be

published in the Gazette.

(13) Where a foreign company ceases to be registered under this

Division, an obligation to lodge a document that this Act imposes

on the foreign company by virtue of the doing of an act or thing, or

the occurrence of an event, at or before the time when the foreign

company so ceased, being an obligation not discharged at or before

that time, continues to apply in relation to the foreign company

even if the period prescribed for lodging the document has not

ended at or before that time.

(14) Where a registered foreign company commences to be wound up,

or is dissolved or deregistered, in its place of origin:

(a) each person who, on the day when the winding up

proceedings began, was a local agent of the foreign company

must, within the period of 1 month after that day or within

that period as extended by ASIC in special circumstances,

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Bodies corporate registered as companies, and registrable bodies Chapter 5B

Registrable bodies Part 5B.2

Foreign companies Division 2

Section 601CM

Corporations Act 2001 635

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

lodge or cause to be lodged notice of that fact and, when a

liquidator is appointed, notice of the appointment; and

(b) the Court must, on application by the person who is the

liquidator for the foreign company’s place of origin, or by

ASIC, appoint a liquidator of the foreign company.

(15) A liquidator of a registered foreign company who is appointed by

the Court:

(a) must, before any distribution of the foreign company’s

property is made, by advertisement in a daily newspaper

circulating generally in each State or Territory where the

foreign company carried on business at any time during the 6

years before the liquidation, invite all creditors to make their

claims against the foreign company within a reasonable time

before the distribution; and

(b) must not, without obtaining an order of the Court, pay out a

creditor of the foreign company to the exclusion of another

creditor of the foreign company; and

(c) must, unless the Court otherwise orders, recover and realise

the property of the foreign company in this jurisdiction and

must pay the net amount so recovered and realised to the

liquidator of the foreign company for its place of origin.

(16) Where a registered foreign company has been wound up so far as

its property in this jurisdiction is concerned and there is no

liquidator for its place of origin, the liquidator may apply to the

Court for directions about the disposal of the net amount recovered

under subsection (15).

601CM Register of members of foreign company

(1) A registered foreign company that has a share capital may cause a

branch register of members to be kept in this jurisdiction.

(2) If a member of a registered foreign company is resident in this

jurisdiction and requests the foreign company in writing to register

in a branch register kept under subsection (1) shares held by the

member, then:

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5B Bodies corporate registered as companies, and registrable bodies

Part 5B.2 Registrable bodies

Division 2 Foreign companies

Section 601CN

636 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(a) if the foreign company already keeps a register under

subsection (1)—the foreign company must register in that

register the shares held by the member; or

(b) otherwise—the foreign company must, within 1 month after

receiving the request:

(i) keep at its registered office or at some other place in this

jurisdiction a branch register of members; and

(ii) register in that register the shares held by the member.

(3) Subsection (2) does not apply in relation to a foreign company

whose constitution prohibits any invitation to the public to

subscribe for, and any offer to the public to accept subscriptions

for, shares in the foreign company.

(4) Subject to this section, a registered foreign company may

discontinue a register kept under subsection (1) and must, if it does

so, transfer all entries in that register to a register of members kept

outside Australia.

(5) If shares held by a member of a registered foreign company who is

resident in this jurisdiction are registered in a register kept by the

foreign company under subsection (1), the foreign company must

not discontinue that register without that member’s written

consent.

601CN Register kept under section 601CM

(1) This section has effect where a registered foreign company keeps a

register under section 601CM.

(2) The foreign company must keep the register in the same manner as

this Act requires a company to keep its register of members.

(3) Subject to subsection (2), the foreign company must register a

transaction in the register in the same way, and at the same charge,

as it would have registered the transaction in the register of

members that the foreign company keeps in its place of origin.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Bodies corporate registered as companies, and registrable bodies Chapter 5B

Registrable bodies Part 5B.2

Foreign companies Division 2

Section 601CP

Corporations Act 2001 637

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(4) A transfer of shares in the foreign company that is lodged at the

foreign company’s registered office, or at the place where the

register is kept, is binding on the foreign company.

(5) The Court has the same powers in relation to correction of the

register as it has in relation to correction of a company’s register of

members.

(6) The register is taken to be part of the foreign company’s register of

members.

(7) At the written request of a member who holds shares registered in

the register, the foreign company must remove the shares from the

register and register them in such other register as is specified in

the request.

(8) The register is prima facie evidence of matters that this Act

requires or authorises to be entered in the register.

601CP Notifying ASIC about register kept under section 601CM

Within 14 days after:

(a) beginning to keep a register under section 601CM; or

(b) changing the place where a register is so kept; or

(c) discontinuing a register under section 601CM;

a registered foreign company must lodge a written notice of that

fact specifying, if paragraph (a) or (b) applies, the address or new

address, as the case may be, where the register is kept.

601CQ Effect of right to acquire shares compulsorily

Where:

(a) a law of the place of origin of a foreign company that

corresponds to section 414, 661A or 664A entitles a person

to give notice to another person that the first-mentioned

person wishes to acquire shares in the foreign company that

the other person holds; and

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5B Bodies corporate registered as companies, and registrable bodies

Part 5B.2 Registrable bodies

Division 2 Foreign companies

Section 601CR

638 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(b) some or all of those shares are registered in a register kept

under section 601CM;

sections 601CM, 601CN and 601CP cease to apply in relation to

the foreign company until the first-mentioned person acquires, or

ceases to be entitled to acquire, the shares so registered.

601CR Index of members and inspection of registers

Subsection 169(2) and sections 173, 174 and 177 apply in relation

to a register kept under section 601CM.

601CS Certificate as to shareholding

A certificate under the seal of a foreign company specifying shares

held by a member of that company and registered in a register kept

under section 601CM is prima facie evidence of the title of the

member to the shares and of the fact that the shares are registered

in the register.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Bodies corporate registered as companies, and registrable bodies Chapter 5B

Registrable bodies Part 5B.2

Bodies registered under this Part Division 3

Section 601CTA

Corporations Act 2001 639

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Division 3—Bodies registered under this Part

601CTA Limited disclosure if place of origin is a prescribed country

A foreign company is not required to lodge information or a copy

of a document with ASIC under this Division if:

(a) the company’s place of origin is a country prescribed by

regulations made for the purposes of section 601CDA; and

(b) the company has given the information or a copy of the

document to an authority in that country whose functions

under the law of the country include functions equivalent to

any of those of ASIC under this Act.

601CT Registered office

(1) A registered body must have a registered office in this jurisdiction

to which all communications and notices may be addressed and

that must be open:

(a) if the body has:

(i) lodged a notice under subsection (2); or

(ii) lodged a notice under subsection (2) and a notice or

notices under subsection (4);

for such hours (being not fewer than 3) between 9 am and 5

pm on each business day as are specified in that notice, or in

the later or last of those notices, as the case may be; or

(b) otherwise—each business day from at least 10 am to 12 noon

and from at least 2 pm to 4 pm;

and at which a representative of the body is present at all times

when the office is open.

(2) A registered body may lodge written notice of the hours (being not

fewer than 3) between 9 am and 5 pm on each business day during

which the body’s registered office is open.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5B Bodies corporate registered as companies, and registrable bodies

Part 5B.2 Registrable bodies

Division 3 Bodies registered under this Part

Section 601CU

640 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(3) Within 7 days after a change in the situation of its registered office,

a registered body must lodge a written notice of the change and of

the new address of that office.

(4) A registered body that has lodged a notice under subsection (2)

must, within 7 days after a change in the hours during which its

registered office is open, lodge a notice, in the prescribed form, of

the change.

601CU Certificate of registration

(1) On registering a body corporate under Division 1 or 2 or

registering under section 601DH or 601DJ a change in a registered

body’s name, ASIC must issue to the body a certificate, under

ASIC’s common seal and in the prescribed form, of the body’s

registration under that Division.

(2) A certificate under subsection (1) is prima facie evidence of the

matters stated in it.

601CV Notice of certain changes

(1) A registered body must, within 1 month after a change in:

(b) its constitution or any other document lodged in relation to

the body; or

(c) its directors; or

(d) if the body is a foreign company;

(i) the powers of any directors who are resident in

Australia and members of an Australian board of

directors of the foreign company; or

(ii) a local agent or local agents; or

(iii) the name or address of a local agent; or

(e) the situation of:

(i) if it has in its place of origin a registered office for the

purposes of a law (other than this Act) there in force—

that office; or

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Bodies corporate registered as companies, and registrable bodies Chapter 5B

Registrable bodies Part 5B.2

Bodies registered under this Part Division 3

Section 601CW

Corporations Act 2001 641

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(ii) otherwise—its principal place of business in its place of

origin;

lodge a written notice of particulars of the change, together with

such documents (if any) as the regulations require.

(2) ASIC may in special circumstances extend the period within which

subsection (1) requires a notice or document to be lodged.

601CW Body’s name etc. must be displayed at office and place of

business

(1) Subject to subsection (2), this section applies to a registrable body.

(2) If the registrable body is a registrable Australian body, this section

does not apply to a place at which the body carries on business if

the place is in the body’s place of origin.

(9) Unless the body is an Australian ADI, it must paint or affix and

keep painted or affixed, in a conspicuous position and in letters

easily legible, on the outside of every office and place (including

its registered office) that is in this jurisdiction, at which its business

is carried on and that is open and accessible to the public:

(a) its name and the name of its place of origin; and

(b) if the liability of its members is limited and the last word of

its name is neither the word “Limited” nor the abbreviation

“Ltd.”—notice of the fact that the liability of its members is

limited; and

(c) in the case of its registered office—the expression

“Registered Office”.

(10) If the body is an Australian ADI, it must paint or affix its name,

and must keep its name painted or affixed, in a conspicuous

position and in letters easily legible, on the outside of every office

or place (including its registered office) that is in this jurisdiction,

at which its business is carried on and that is open and accessible to

the public.

(11) An offence based on subsection (9) or (10) is an offence of strict

liability.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5B Bodies corporate registered as companies, and registrable bodies

Part 5B.2 Registrable bodies

Division 3 Bodies registered under this Part

Section 601CX

642 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Note: For strict liability, see section 6.1 of the Criminal Code.

601CX Service of documents on registered body

(1) A document may be served on a registered body:

(a) by leaving it at, or by sending it by post to, the registered

office of the body; or

(b) in the case of a registered foreign company—by leaving it at,

or by sending it by post to, the address of a local agent of the

foreign company, being:

(i) in a case to which subparagraph (ii) does not apply—an

address notice of which has been lodged under

subsection 601CG(1); or

(ii) if a notice or notices of a change or alteration in that

address has or have been lodged under

subsection 601CV(1)—the address shown in that

last-mentioned notice or the later or latest of those

last-mentioned notices.

(2) For the purposes of subsection (1), the situation of the registered

office of a registered body:

(a) in a case to which neither paragraph (b) nor paragraph (c)

applies—is taken to be the place notice of the address of

which has been lodged under paragraph 601CB(e) or

601CE(g); or

(b) if only one notice of a change in the situation of the

registered office has been lodged with ASIC under

subsection 601CT(3)—is, on and from:

(i) the day that is 7 days after the day on which the notice

was lodged; or

(ii) the day that is specified in the notice as the day from

which the change is to take effect;

whichever is later, taken to be the place the address of which

is specified in the notice; or

(c) if 2 or more notices of a change in the situation of the

registered office have been lodged under

subsection 601CT(3)—is, on and from:

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Bodies corporate registered as companies, and registrable bodies Chapter 5B

Registrable bodies Part 5B.2

Bodies registered under this Part Division 3

Section 601CY

Corporations Act 2001 643

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(i) the day that is 7 days after the day on which the later or

latest of those notices was lodged; or

(ii) the day that is specified in the later or latest of those

notices as the day from which the change is to take

effect;

whichever is later, taken to be the place the address of which

is specified in the relevant notice;

and is so taken to be that place irrespective of whether the address

of a different place is shown as the address of the registered office

of the registered body in a return or other document (not being a

notice under subsection 601CT(3)) lodged after the notice referred

to in paragraph (a) or (b), or the later or latest of the notices

referred to in paragraph (c), was lodged.

(3) Without limiting the operation of subsection (1), if 2 or more

directors of a registered body reside in Australia or an external

Territory, a document may be served on the body by delivering a

copy of the document personally to each of 2 of those directors.

(3A) Without limiting the operation of subsection (1), a document may

be served on a registered body that is registered as a proprietary

company and has only one director by delivering a copy personally

to that director.

(4) Where a liquidator of a registered body has been appointed, a

document may be served on the body by leaving it at, or by

sending it by post to, the last address of the office of the liquidator

notice of which has been lodged.

(5) Nothing in this section affects the power of the Court to authorise a

document to be served on a registered body in a manner not

provided for by this section.

(6) Subject to subsection 8(4), subsection 8(3) applies in relation to a

reference in this section.

601CY Power to hold land

A registered body has power to hold land in this jurisdiction.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5B Bodies corporate registered as companies, and registrable bodies

Part 5B.2 Registrable bodies

Division 4 Register of debenture holders for non-companies

Section 601CZA

644 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Division 4—Register of debenture holders for

non-companies

601CZA Certain documents are debentures

For the purposes of this Division, choses in action (including an

undertaking) that fall into one of the exceptions in paragraphs (a),

(b), (e) and (f) of the definition of debenture in section 9 must also

be entered into the register of debenture holders.

601CZB Register of debenture holders to be maintained by

non-companies

(1) A body that is not a company must set up and maintain a register of

debenture holders if it issues debentures covered by Chapter 2L.

Note 1: Companies have to keep a register of debenture holders under

sections 168 and 171.

Note 2: The register may be kept on computer (see section 1306).

(1A) An offence based on subsection (1) is an offence of strict liability.

Note: For strict liability, see section 6.1 of the Criminal Code.

(2) The register must contain the following information about each

debenture holder:

(a) their name and address;

(b) the amount of the debentures held.

(3) A body’s failure to comply with this section in relation to a

debenture does not affect the debenture itself.

601CZC Location of register

(1) The register must be kept at:

(a) the body’s registered office; or

(b) the body’s principal place of business in this jurisdiction; or

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Bodies corporate registered as companies, and registrable bodies Chapter 5B

Registrable bodies Part 5B.2

Register of debenture holders for non-companies Division 4

Section 601CZD

Corporations Act 2001 645

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

(c) a place in this jurisdiction (whether of the body or of

someone else) where the work involved in maintaining the

register is done; or

(d) another place approved by ASIC.

(2) The body must lodge with ASIC a notice of the address at which

the register is kept within 7 days after the register is:

(a) established at an office that is neither the body’s registered

office nor at its principal place of business; or

(b) moved from one office to another.

Notice is not required for moving the register between the

registered office and an office at the principal place of business.

(3) An offence based on subsection (1) or (2) is an offence of strict

liability.

Note: For strict liability, see section 6.1 of the Criminal Code.

601CZD Application of sections 173 to 177

Sections 173 to 177 apply to a register kept under this Division as

if it were kept under Chapter 2C.

Note: Sections 173 to 177 deal with rights to inspect the register and get

copies, the obligations of agents who maintain the register, correction

of the register, the evidential value of the register and the use of

information on the register.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5B Bodies corporate registered as companies, and registrable bodies

Part 5B.3 Names of registrable Australian bodies and foreign companies

Section 601DA

646 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Part 5B.3—Names of registrable Australian bodies

and foreign companies

601DA Reserving a name

(1) A person may lodge an application in the prescribed form with

ASIC to reserve a name for a registrable Australian body or a

foreign company. If the name is available, ASIC must reserve it.

Note: For available names, see section 601DC.

(2) The reservation lasts for 2 months from the date when the

application was lodged. An applicant may ask ASIC in writing for

an extension of the reservation during a period that the name is

reserved, and ASIC may extend the reservation for 2 months.

(3) ASIC must cancel a reservation if the applicant asks ASIC in

writing to do so.

601DB Acceptable abbreviations

(1) The abbreviations set out in the following table may be used:

(a) instead of words that this Act requires to be part of a

registrable Australian body’s or foreign company’s name or

to be included in a document; and

(b) instead of words that are part of a registrable Australian

body’s or foreign company’s name; and

(c) with or without full stops.

Acceptable abbreviations [operative table]

Word Abbreviation

1 Company Co or Coy

2 Proprietary Pty

3 Limited Ltd

4 Australian Aust

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Bodies corporate registered as companies, and registrable bodies Chapter 5B

Names of registrable Australian bodies and foreign companies Part 5B.3

Section 601DC

Corporations Act 2001 647

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Acceptable abbreviations [operative table]

Word Abbreviation

5 Number No

6 and &

7 Australian Registered Body

Number

ARBN

8 Registered Regd

(2) If a registrable Australian body’s or foreign company’s name

includes any of these abbreviations, the word corresponding to the

abbreviation may be used instead.

601DC When a name is available

Name is available unless identical or unacceptable

(1) A name is available to a registrable Australian body or a foreign

company unless the name is:

(a) identical (under rules set out in the regulations) to a name

that is reserved or registered under this Act for another body;

or

(b) identical (under rules set out in the regulations) to a name

that is held or registered on the Business Names Register in

respect of another individual or body who is not the person

applying to have the name; or

(c) unacceptable for registration under the regulations.

Minister may consent to a name being available

(2) The Minister may consent in writing to a name being available to a

registrable Australian body or foreign company even if the name

is:

(a) identical to a name that is reserved or registered under this

Act for another body; or

(b) unacceptable for registration under the regulations.

(3) The Minister’s consent may be given subject to conditions.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5B Bodies corporate registered as companies, and registrable bodies

Part 5B.3 Names of registrable Australian bodies and foreign companies

Section 601DD

648 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

Note: If the body or company breaches a condition, ASIC may direct it to

change its name under section 601DJ.

(4) The regulations may specify that a particular unacceptable name is

available to a registrable Australian body or foreign company if:

(a) a specified public authority, or an instrumentality or agency

of the Crown in right of the Commonwealth, a State or an

internal Territory has consented to the body or company

using or assuming the name; or

(b) the body or company is otherwise permitted to use or assume

the name by or under a specified provision of an Act of the

Commonwealth, a State or an internal Territory.

The consent of the authority, instrumentality or agency may be

given subject to conditions.

Note: If the consent is withdrawn, the body or company ceases to be

permitted or it breaches a condition, ASIC may direct it to change its

name under section 601DJ.

601DD Registered Australian bodies and registered foreign companies can carry on business with some names only

(1) A registered Australian body or registered foreign company must

not carry on business under a name in this jurisdiction unless

subsection (2) or (3) authorises the body or company to use the

name.

(1A) An offence based on subsection (1) is an offence of strict liability.

Note: For strict liability, see section 6.1 of the Criminal Code.

(2) The body or company may use the name if the company or body is

registered under that name under Part 5B.2.

(3) A registered Australian body may use a name in the State or

Territory that is its place of origin if the name is registered to the

body on the Business Names Register.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Bodies corporate registered as companies, and registrable bodies Chapter 5B

Names of registrable Australian bodies and foreign companies Part 5B.3

Section 601DE

Corporations Act 2001 649

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

601DE Using a name and ARBN

Requirements for bodies that are not Australian ADIs

(1) Subject to sections 601DF and 601DG, a registered Australian

body or registered foreign company must set out the following on

all its public documents and negotiable instruments published or

signed in this jurisdiction:

(a) its name;

(b) either:

(i) the expression “Australian Registered Body Number”

followed by the body’s ARBN; or

(ii) if the last 9 digits of the body’s ABN are the same, and

in the same order, as the last 9 digits of its ARBN—the

words “Australian Business Number” followed by the

body’s ABN;

(c) its place of origin;

(d) if the liability of its members is limited and this is not

apparent from its name—notice of the limited liability of its

members.

Paragraphs (c) and (d) do not apply to an Australian ADI.

Note: In any case where the body’s ARBN would be used, the body’s ABN

may be used instead if section 1344 is satisfied.

(1A) An offence based on subsection (1) is an offence of strict liability.

Note: For strict liability, see section 6.1 of the Criminal Code.

Where information to be set out

(2) Subject to sections 601DF and 601DG, the information required by

paragraph (1)(b) must be set out with the company’s or body’s

name, or 1 of the references to its name in the document or

instrument. If the name appears on 2 or more pages of the

document or instrument, this must be done on the first of those

pages.

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Chapter 5B Bodies corporate registered as companies, and registrable bodies

Part 5B.3 Names of registrable Australian bodies and foreign companies

Section 601DF

650 Corporations Act 2001

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

601DF Exception to requirement to have ARBN on receipts

A registered Australian body or a registered foreign company does

not have to set out the expression “Australian Registered Body

Number” followed by its ARBN on a receipt (for example, a cash

register receipt) that sets out information recorded in the machine

that produced the receipt.

601DG Regulations may exempt from requirement to set out

information on documents

The regulations may exempt a specified registered Australian body

or registered foreign company, or a class of those bodies or

companies, from the requirement in paragraphs 601DE(1)(b), (c)

and (d) to set out information on its public documents and

negotiable instruments. The exemption may relate to specified

documents or instruments, or a class of documents or instruments.

601DH Notice of name change must be given to ASIC

(1) A registered Australian body or a registered foreign company must

give ASIC written notice of a change to its name within 14 days

after the date the change occurred.

(1A) An offence based on subsection (1) is an offence of strict liability.

Note: For strict liability, see section 6.1 of the Criminal Code.

(2) If the proposed name is available, ASIC must alter the details of

the body’s or foreign company’s registration to reflect the change.

For the purposes of this Act (other than subsection (1)), the change

of name takes effect when ASIC alters the details of the body’s or

foreign company’s registration.

Note 1: For the reservation of names, see section 601DA.

Note 2: For available names, see section 601DC.

Note 3: ASIC must issue a new certificate reflecting the name change (see

section 601CU).

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017

Bodies corporate registered as companies, and registrable bodies Chapter 5B

Names of registrable Australian bodies and foreign companies Part 5B.3

Section 601DJ

Corporations Act 2001 651

Compilation No. 79 Compilation date: 1/7/17 Registered: 6/7/17

601DJ ASIC’s power to direct a registered name be changed

(1) ASIC may direct a registered Australian body or registered foreign

company in writing to change the name under which the body or

company is registered within 2 months if:

(a) the name should not have been registered; or

(b) the body or company has breached a condition under

subsection 601DC(3) on the availability of the name; or

(c) a consent given under subsection 601DC(4) to use or assume

the name has been withdrawn; or

(d) the body or company has breached a condition on a consent

given under subsection 601DC(4); or

(e) the body or company ceases to be permitted to use or assume

the name (as referred to in paragraph 601DC(4)(b)).

(2) The body or company must comply with the direction within 2

months after being given it by doing everything necessary to

change its name for the purposes of this Act under section 601DH.

(3) If the body or company does not comply with subsection (2), ASIC

may change the body’s or company’s name to a name that includes

its ARBN by altering the details of the body’s or company’s

registration to reflect the change.

(4) For the purposes of this Act, a change of name under

subsection (3) takes effect when ASIC alters the details of the

body’s or foreign company’s registration.

Note: ASIC must issue a new certificate reflecting the name change (see

section 601CU).

Authorised Version C2017C00210 registered 06/07/2017